I offer no apologies for any departures from the usual style of travel writing that may be charged against me--for I think I have seen with impartial eyes, and I am sure I have written at least honestly, whether wisely or not.
In this volume I have used portions of letters which I wrote for the Daily Alta California, of San Francisco, the proprietors of that journal having waived their rights and given me the necessary permission. I have also inserted portions of several letters written for the New York Tribune and the New York Herald.
THE AUTHOR
SAN FRANCISCO, 1869
BROOKLYN, February 1st, 1867What was there lacking about that program to make it perfectly irresistible? Nothing that any finite mind could discover. Paris, England, Scotland, Switzerland, Italy--Garibaldi! The Grecian Archipelago! Vesuvius! Constantinople! Smyrna! The Holy Land! Egypt and "our friends the Bermudians"! People in Europe desiring to join the excursion--contagious sickness to be avoided--boating at the expense of the ship--physician on board--the circuit of the globe to be made if the passengers unanimously desired it--the company to be rigidly selected by a pitiless "Committee on Applications"--the vessel to be as rigidly selected by as pitiless a "Committee on Selecting Steamer." Human nature could not withstand these bewildering temptations. I hurried to the treasurer's office and deposited my ten percent. I rejoiced to know that a few vacant staterooms were still left. I did avoid a critical personal examination into my character by that bowelless committee, but I referred to all the people of high standing I could think of in the community who would be least likely to know anything about me.The undersigned will make an excursion as above during the coming season, and begs to submit to you the following program:
A first-class steamer, to be under his own command, and capable of accommodating at least one hundred and fifty cabin passengers, will be selected, in which will be taken a select company, numbering not more than three-fourths of the ship's capacity. There is good reason to believe that this company can be easily made up in this immediate vicinity, of mutual friends and acquaintances.
The steamer will be provided with every necessary comfort, including library and musical instruments.
An experienced physician will be on board.
Leaving New York about June 1st, a middle and pleasant route will be taken across the Atlantic, and passing through the group of Azores, St. Michael will be reached in about ten days. A day or two will be spent here, enjoying the fruit and wild scenery of these islands, and the voyage continued, and Gibraltar reached in three or four days.
A day or two will be spent here in looking over the wonderful subterraneous fortifications, permission to visit these galleries being readily obtained.
From Gibraltar, running along the coasts of Spain and France, Marseilles will be reached in three days. Here ample time will be given not only to look over the city, which was founded six hundred years before the Christian era, and its artificial port, the finest of the kind in the Mediterranean, but to visit Paris during the Great Exhibition; and the beautiful city of Lyons, lying intermediate, from the heights of which, on a clear day, Mont Blanc and the Alps can be distinctly seen. Passengers who may wish to extend the time at Paris can do so, and, passing down through Switzerland, rejoin the steamer at Genoa.
From Marseilles to Genoa is a run of one night. The excursionists will have an opportunity to look over this, the magnificent city of palaces," and visit the birthplace of Columbus, twelve miles off, over a beautiful road built by Napoleon I. From this point, excursions may be made to Milan, Lakes Como and Maggiore, or to Milan, Verona (famous for its extraordinary fortifications), Padua, and Venice. Or, if passengers desire to visit Parma (famous for Correggio's frescoes) and Bologna, they can by rail go on to Florence, and rejoin the steamer at Leghorn, thus spending about three weeks amid the cities most famous for art in Italy.
From Genoa the run to Leghorn will be made along the coast in one night, and time appropriated to this point in which to visit Florence, its palaces and galleries; Pisa, its cathedral and "Leaning Tower," and Lucca and its baths, and Roman amphitheater; Florence, the most remote, being distant by rail about sixty miles.
From Leghorn to Naples (calling at Civita Vecchia to land any who may prefer to go to Rome from that point), the distance will be made in about thirty-six hours; the route will lay along the coast of Italy, close by Caprera, Elba, and Corsica. Arrangements have been made to take on board at Leghorn a pilot for Caprera, and, if practicable, a call will be made there to visit the home of Garibaldi.
Rome [by rail], Herculaneum, Pompeii, Vesuvius, Vergil's tomb, and possibly the ruins of Paestum can be visited, as well as the beautiful surroundings of Naples and its charming bay.
The next point of interest will be Palermo, the most beautiful city of Sicily, which will be reached in one night from Naples. A day will be spent here, and leaving in the evening, the course will be taken towards Athens.
Skirting along the north coast of Sicily, passing through the group of Aeolian Isles, in sight of Stromboli and Vulcania, both active volcanoes, through the Straits of Messina, with "Scylla" on the one hand and "Charybdis" on the other, along the east coast of Sicily, and in sight of Mount Etna, along the south coast of Italy, the west and south coast of Greece, in sight of ancient Crete, up Athens Gulf, and into the Piraeus, Athens will be reached in two and a half or three days. After tarrying here awhile, the Bay of Salamis will be crossed, and a day given to Corinth, whence the voyage will be continued to Constantinople, passing on the way through the Grecian Archipelago, the Dardanelles, the Sea of Marmora, and the mouth of the Golden Horn, and arriving in about forty-eight hours from Athens.
After leaving Constantinople, the way will be taken out through the beautiful Bosphorus, across the Black Sea to Sebastopol and Balaklava, a run of about twenty-four hours. Here it is proposed to remain two days, visiting the harbors, fortifications, and battlefields of the Crimea; thence back through the Bosphorus, touching at Constantinople to take in any who may have preferred to remain there; down through the Sea of Marmora and the Dardanelles, along the coasts of ancient Troy and Lydia in Asia, to Smyrna, which will be reached in two or two and a half days from Constantinople. A sufficient stay will be made here to give opportunity of visiting Ephesus, fifty miles distant by rail.
From Smyrna towards the Holy Land the course will lay through the Grecian Archipelago, close by the Isle of Patmos, along the coast of Asia, ancient Pamphylia, and the Isle of Cyprus. Beirut will be reached in three days. At Beirut time will be given to visit Damascus; after which the steamer will proceed to Joppa.
From Joppa, Jerusalem, the River Jordan, the Sea of Tiberias, Nazareth, Bethany, Bethlehem, and other points of interest in the Holy Land can be visited, and here those who may have preferred to make the journey from Beirut through the country, passing through Damascus, Galilee, Capernaum, Samaria, and by the River Jordan and Sea of Tiberias, can rejoin the steamer.
Leaving Joppa, the next point of interest to visit will be Alexandria, which will be reached in twenty-four hours. The ruins of Caesar's Palace, Pompey's Pillar, Cleopatra's Needle, the Catacombs, and ruins of ancient Alexandria will be found worth the visit. The journey to Cairo, one hundred and thirty miles by rail, can be made in a few hours, and from which can be visited the site of ancient Memphis, Joseph's Granaries, and the Pyramids.
From Alexandria the route will be taken homeward, calling at Malta, Cagliari (in Sardinia), and Palma (in Majorca), all magnificent harbors, with charming scenery, and abounding in fruits.
A day or two will be spent at each place, and leaving Parma in the evening, Valencia in Spain will be reached the next morning. A few days will be spent in this, the finest city of Spain.
From Valencia, the homeward course will be continued, skirting along the coast of Spain. Alicant, Carthagena, Palos, and Malaga will be passed but a mile or two distant, and Gibraltar reached in about twenty-four hours.
A stay of one day will be made here, and the voyage continued to Madeira, which will be reached in about three days. Captain Marryatt writes: "I do not know a spot on the globe which so much astonishes and delights upon first arrival as Madeira." A stay of one or two days will be made here, which, if time permits, may be extended, and passing on through the islands, and probably in sight of the Peak of Teneriffe, a southern track will be taken, and the Atlantic crossed within the latitudes of the northeast trade winds, where mild and pleasant weather, and a smooth sea, can always be expected.
A call will be made at Bermuda, which lies directly in this route homeward, and will be reached in about ten days from Madeira, and after spending a short time with our friends the Bermudians, the final departure will be made for home, which will be reached in about three days.
Already, applications have been received from parties in Europe wishing to join the Excursion there.
The ship will at all times be a home, where the excursionists, if sick, will be surrounded by kind friends, and have all possible comfort and sympathy.
Should contagious sickness exist in any of the ports named in the program, such ports will be passed, and others of interest substituted.
The price of passage is fixed at $1,250, currency, for each adult passenger. Choice of rooms and of seats at the tables apportioned in the order in which passages are engaged; and no passage considered engaged until ten percent of the passage money is deposited with the treasurer.
Passengers can remain on board of the steamer, at all ports, if they desire, without additional expense, and all boating at the expense of the ship.
All passages must be paid for when taken, in order that the most perfect arrangements be made for starting at the appointed time.
Applications for passage must be approved by the committee before tickets are issued, and can be made to the undersigned.
Articles of interest or curiosity, procured by the passengers during the voyage, may be brought home in the steamer free of charge.
Five dollars per day, in gold, it is believed, will be a fair calculation to make for all traveling expenses onshore and at the various points where passengers may wish to leave the steamer for days at a time.
The trip can be extended, and the route changed, by unanimous vote of the passengers.
CHAS. C. DUNCAN,
117 WALL STREET, NEW YORK
R. R. G******, TreasurerCommittee on Applications
J. T. H*****, ESQ. R. R. G*****, ESQ. C. C. DuncanCommittee on Selecting Steamer
CAPT. W. W. S* * * *, Surveyor for Board of UnderwritersC. W. C******, Consulting Engineer for U.S. and Canada
J. T. H*****, Esq.
C. C. DUNCANP.S.--The very beautiful and substantial side-wheel steamship Quaker City has been chartered for the occasion, and will leave New York June 8th. Letters have been issued by the government commending the party to courtesies abroad.
Shortly a supplementary program was issued which set forth that the Plymouth Collection of Hymns would be used on board the ship. I then paid the balance of my passage money.
I was provided with a receipt and duly and officially accepted as an excursionist. There was happiness in that but it was tame compared to the novelty of being "select."
This supplementary program also instructed the excursionists to provide themselves with light musical instruments for amusement in the ship, with saddles for Syrian travel, green spectacles and umbrellas, veils for Egypt, and substantial clothing to use in rough pilgrimizing in the Holy Land. Furthermore, it was suggested that although the ship's library would afford a fair amount of reading matter, it would still be well if each passenger would provide himself with a few guidebooks, a Bible, and some standard works of travel. A list was appended, which consisted chiefly of books relating to the Holy Land, since the Holy Land was part of the excursion and seemed to be its main feature.
Reverend Henry Ward Beecher was to have accompanied the expedition, but urgent duties obliged him to give up the idea. There were other passengers who could have been spared better and would have been spared more willingly. Lieutenant General Sherman was to have been of the party also, but the Indian war compelled his presence on the plains. A popular actress had entered her name on the ship's books, but something interfered and she couldn't go. The "Drummer Boy of the Potomac" deserted, and lo, we had never a celebrity left!
However, we were to have a "battery of guns" from the Navy Department (as per advertisement) to be used in answering royal salutes; and the document famished by the Secretary of the Navy, which was to make "General Sherman and party" welcome guests in the courts and camps of the old world, was still left to us, though both document and battery, I think, were shorn of somewhat of their original august proportions. However, had not we the seductive program still, with its Paris, its Constantinople, Smyrna, Jerusalem, Jericho, and "our friends the Bermudians"? What did we care?
I fell under that titular avalanche a torn and blighted thing. I said that if that potentate must go over in our ship, why, I supposed he must--but that to my thinking, when the United States considered it necessary to send a dignitary of that tonnage across the ocean, it would be in better taste, and safer, to take him apart and cart him over in sections in several ships.
Ah, if I had only known then that he was only a common mortal, and that his mission had nothing more overpowering about it than the collecting of seeds and uncommon yams and extraordinary cabbages and peculiar bullfrogs for that poor, useless, innocent, mildewed old fossil the Smithsonian Institute, I would have felt so much relieved.
During that memorable month I basked in the happiness of being for once in my life drifting with the tide of a great popular movement. Everybody was going to Europe--I, too, was going to Europe. Everybody was going to the famous Paris Exposition--I, too, was going to the Paris Exposition. The steamship lines were carrying Americans out of the various ports of the country at the rate of four or five thousand a week in the aggregate. If I met a dozen individuals during that month who were not going to Europe shortly, I have no distinct remembrance of it now. I walked about the city a good deal with a young Mr. Blucher, who was booked for the excursion. He was confiding, good-natured, unsophisticated, companionable; but he was not a man to set the river on fire. He had the most extraordinary notions about this European exodus and came at last to consider the whole nation as packing up for emigration to France. We stepped into a store on Broadway one day, where he bought a handkerchief, and when the man could not make change, Mr. B. said:
"Never mind, I'll hand it to you in Paris."
"But I am not going to Paris."
"How is--what did I understand you to say?"
"I said I am not going to Paris."
"Not going to Paris! Not g-- well, then, where in the nation are you going to?"
"Nowhere at all."
"Not anywhere whatsoever? Not any place on earth but this?"
"Not any place at all but just this--stay here all summer."
My comrade took his purchase and walked out of the store without a word--walked out with an injured look upon his countenance. Up the street apiece he broke silence and said impressively: "It was a lie--that is my opinion of it!"
In the fullness of time the ship was ready to receive her passengers. I was introduced to the young gentleman who was to be my roommate, and found him to be intelligent, cheerful of spirit, unselfish, full of generous impulses, patient, considerate, and wonderfully good-natured. Not any passenger that sailed in the Quaker City will withhold his endorsement of what I have just said. We selected a stateroom forward of the wheel, on the starboard side, "below decks." It had two berths in it, a dismal deadlight, a sink with a washbowl in it, and a long, sumptuously cushioned locker, which was to do service as a sofa--partly--and partly as a hiding place for our things. Notwithstanding all this furniture, there was still room to turn around in, but not to swing a cat in, at least with entire security to the cat. However, the room was large, for a ship's stateroom, and was in every way satisfactory.
The vessel was appointed to sail on a certain Saturday early in June.
A little after noon on that distinguished Saturday I reached the ship and went on board. All was bustle and confusion. [I have seen that remark before somewhere.] The pier was crowded with carriages and men; passengers were arriving and hurrying on board; the vessel's decks were encumbered with trunks and valises; groups of excursionists, arrayed in unattractive traveling costumes, were moping about in a drizzling rain and looking as droopy and woebegone as so many molting chickens. The gallant flag was up, but it was under the spell, too, and hung limp and disheartened by the mast. Altogether, it was the bluest, bluest spectacle! It was a pleasure excursion--there was no gainsaying that, because the program said so--it was so nominated in the bond--but it surely hadn't the general aspect of one.
Finally, above the banging, and rumbling, and shouting, and hissing of steam rang the order to "cast off!"--a sudden rush to the gangways--a scampering ashore of visitors-a revolution of the wheels, and we were off-the picnic was begun! Two very mild cheers went up from the dripping crowd on the pier; we answered them gently from the slippery decks; the flag made an effort to wave, and failed; the "battery of guns" spake not--the ammunition was out.
We steamed down to the foot of the harbor and came to anchor. It was still raining. And not only raining, but storming. "Outside" we could see, ourselves, that there was a tremendous sea on. We must lie still, in the calm harbor, till the storm should abate. Our passengers hailed from fifteen states; only a few of them had ever been to sea before; manifestly it would not do to pit them against a full-blown tempest until they had got their sea legs on. Toward evening the two steam tugs that had accompanied us with a rollicking champagne party of young New Yorkers on board who wished to bid farewell to one of our number in due and ancient form departed, and we were alone on the deep. On deep five fathoms, and anchored fast to the bottom. And out in the solemn rain at that. This was pleasuring with a vengeance.
It was an appropriate relief when the gong sounded for prayer meeting. The first Saturday night of any other pleasure excursion might have been devoted to whist and dancing; but I submit it to the unprejudiced mind if it would have been in good taste for us to engage in such frivolities, considering what we had gone through and the frame of mind we were in. We would have shone at a wake, but not at anything more festive.
However, there is always a cheering influence about the sea; and in my berth that night, rocked by the measured swell of the waves and lulled by the murmur of the distant surf, I soon passed tranquilly out of all consciousness of the dreary experiences of the day and damaging premonitions of the future.
I was up early that Sabbath morning and was early to breakfast. I felt a perfectly natural desire to have a good, long, unprejudiced look at the passengers at a time when they should be free from self-consciousness--which is at breakfast, when such a moment occurs in the lives of human beings at all.
I was greatly surprised to see so many elderly people--I might almost say, so many venerable people. A glance at the long lines of heads was apt to make one think it was all gray. But it was not. There was a tolerably fair sprinkling of young folks, and another fair sprinkling of gentlemen and ladies who were noncommittal as to age, being neither actually old or absolutely young.
The next morning we weighed anchor and went to sea. It was a great happiness to get away after this dragging, dispiriting delay. I thought there never was such gladness in the air before, such brightness in the sun, such beauty in the sea. I was satisfied with the picnic then and with all its belongings. All my malicious instincts were dead within me; and as America faded out of sight, I think a spirit of charity rose up in their place that was as boundless, for the time being, as the broad ocean that was heaving its billows about us. I wished to express my feelings--I wished to lift up my voice and sing; but I did not know anything to sing, and so I was obliged to give up the idea. It was no loss to the ship, though, perhaps.
It was breezy and pleasant, but the sea was still very rough. One could not promenade without risking his neck; at one moment the bowsprit was taking a deadly aim at the sun in midheaven, and at the next it was trying to harpoon a shark in the bottom of the ocean. What a weird sensation it is to feel the stem of a ship sinking swiftly from under you and see the bow climbing high away among the clouds! One's safest course that day was to clasp a railing and hang on; walking was too precarious a pastime.
By some happy fortune I was not seasick. That was a thing to be proud of. I had not always escaped before. If there is one thing in the world that will make a man peculiarly and insufferably self-conceited, it is to have his stomach behave itself, the first day it sea, when nearly all his comrades are seasick. Soon a venerable fossil, shawled to the chin and bandaged like a mummy, appeared at the door of the after deckhouse, and the next lurch of the ship shot him into my arms. I said:
"Good-morning, Sir. It is a fine day."
He put his hand on his stomach and said, "Oh, my!" and then staggered away and fell over the coop of a skylight.
Presently another old gentleman was projected from the same door with great violence. I said:
"Calm yourself, sir--there is no hurry. It is a fine day, Sir."
He, also, put his hand on his stomach and said "Oh, my!" and reeled away.
In a little while another veteran was discharged abruptly from the same door, clawing at the air for a saving support I said:
"Good morning, Sir. It is a fine day for pleasuring. You were about to say--"
"Oh, my!"
I thought so. I anticipated him, anyhow. I stayed there and was bombarded with old gentlemen for an hour, perhaps; and all I got out of any of them was "Oh, my!"
I went away then in a thoughtful mood. I said, this is a good pleasure excursion. I like it. The passengers are not garrulous, but still they are sociable. I like those old people, but somehow they all seem to have the "Oh, my" rather bad.
I knew what was the matter with them. They were seasick. And I was glad of it. We all like to see people seasick when we are not, ourselves. Playing whist by the cabin lamps when it is storming outside is pleasant; walking the quarterdeck in the moonlight is pleasant; smoking in the breezy foretop is pleasant when one is not afraid to go up there; but these are all feeble and commonplace compared with the joy of seeing people suffering the miseries of seasickness.
I picked up a good deal of information during the afternoon. At one time I was climbing up the quarterdeck when the vessel's stem was in the sky; I was smoking a cigar and feeling passably comfortable. Somebody ejaculated:
"Come, now, that won't answer. Read the sign up there--NO SMOKING ABAFT THE WHEEL!"
It was Captain Duncan, chief of the expedition. I went forward, of course. I saw a long spyglass lying on a desk in one of the upper-deck staterooms back of the pilothouse and reached after it--there was a ship in the distance.
"Ah, ah--hands off! Come out of that!"
I came out of that. I said to a deck sweep--but in a low voice:
"Who is that overgrown pirate with the whiskers and the discordant voice?"
"It's Captain Bursley--executive officer--sailing master."
I loitered about awhile, and then, for want of something better to do, fell to carving a railing with my knife. Somebody said, in an insinuating, admonitory voice:
"Now, say--my friend--don't you know any better than to be whittling the ship all to pieces that way? You ought to know better than that."
I went back and found the deck sweep.
"Who is that smooth-faced, animated outrage yonder in the fine clothes?"
"That's Captain L****, the owner of the ship--he's one of the main bosses."
In the course of time I brought up on the starboard side of the pilot-house and found a sextant lying on a bench. Now, I said, they "take the sun" through this thing; I should think I might see that vessel through it. I had hardly got it to my eye when someone touched me on the shoulder and said deprecatingly:
"I'll have to get you to give that to me, Sir. If there's anything you'd like to know about taking the sun, I'd as soon tell you as not--but I don't like to trust anybody with that instrument. If you want any figuring done--Aye, aye, sir!"
He was gone to answer a call from the other side. I sought the deck sweep.
"Who is that spider-legged gorilla yonder with the sanctimonious countenance?"
"It's Captain Jones, sir--the chief mate."
"Well. This goes clear away ahead of anything I ever heard of before. Do you--now I ask you as a man and a brother --do you think I could venture to throw a rock here in any given direction without hitting a captain of this ship?"
"Well, sir, I don't know--I think likely you'd fetch the captain of the watch maybe, because he's a-standing right yonder in the way."
I went below--meditating and a little downhearted. I thought, if five cooks can spoil a broth, what may not five captains do with a pleasure excursion?
At seven bells the first gong rang; at eight there was breakfast, for such as were not too seasick to eat it. After that all the well people walked arm in arm up and down the long promenade deck, enjoying the fine summer mornings, and the seasick ones crawled out and propped themselves up in the lee of the paddle boxes and ate their dismal tea and toast, and looked wretched. From eleven o'clock until luncheon, and from luncheon until dinner at six in the evening, the employments and amusements were various. Some reading was done, and much smoking and sewing, though not by the same parties; there were the monsters of the deep to be looked after and wondered at; strange ships had to be scrutinized through opera glasses, and sage decisions arrived at concerning them; and more than that, everybody took a personal interest in seeing that the flag was run up and politely dipped three times in response to the salutes of those strangers; in the smoking room there were always parties of gentlemen playing euchre, draughts, and dominoes, especially dominoes, that delightfully harmless game; and down on the main deck, "forrard"--forrard of the chicken coops and the cattle--we had what was called "horse billiards." Horse billiards is a fine game. It affords good, active exercise, hilarity, and consuming excitement. It is a mixture of "hopscotch" and shuffleboard played with a crutch. A large hopscotch diagram is marked out on the deck with chalk, and each compartment numbered. You stand off three or four steps, with some broad wooden disks before you on the deck, and these you send forward with a vigorous thrust of a long crutch. If a disk stops on a chalk line, it does not count anything. If it stops in division No. 7, it counts 7; in 5, it counts 5, and so on. The game is 100, and four can play at a time. That game would be very simple played on a stationary floor, but with us, to play it well required science. We had to allow for the reeling of the ship to the right or the left. Very often one made calculations for a heel to the right and the ship did not go that way. The consequence was that that disk missed the whole hopscotch plan a yard or two, and then there was humiliation on one side and laughter on the other.
When it rained the passengers had to stay in the house, of course--or at least the cabins--and amuse themselves with games, reading, looking out of the windows at the very familiar billows, and talking gossip.
By seven o'clock in the evening, dinner was about over; an hour's promenade on the upper deck followed; then the gong sounded and a large majority of the party repaired to the after cabin (upper), a handsome saloon fifty or sixty feet long, for prayers. The unregenerated called this saloon the "Synagogue." The devotions consisted only of two hymns from the Plymouth Collection and a short prayer, and seldom occupied more than fifteen minutes. The hymns were accompanied by parlor-organ music when the sea was smooth enough to allow a performer to sit at the instrument without being lashed to his chair.
After prayers the Synagogue shortly took the semblance of a writing school.
The like of that picture was never seen in a ship before. Behind the long
dining tables on either side of the saloon, and scattered from one end to the
other of the latter, some twenty or thirty gentlemen and ladies sat them down
under the swaying lamps and for two or three hours wrote diligently in their
journals. Alas that journals so voluminously begun should come to so lame and
impotent a conclusion as most of them did! I doubt if there is a single pilgrim
of all that host but can show a hundred fair pages of journal concerning the
first twenty days' voyaging in the Quaker City, and I am morally certain
that not ten of the party can show twenty pages of journal for the succeeding
twenty thousand miles of voyaging! At certain periods it becomes the dearest
ambition of a man to keep a faithful record of his performances in a book; and
he dashes at this work with an enthusiasm that imposes on him the notion that
keeping a journal is the veriest pastime in the world, and the pleasantest.
But if he only lives twenty-one days, he will find out that only those rare
natures that are made up of pluck, endurance, devotion to duty for duty's sake,
and invincible determination may hope to venture upon so tremendous an
enterprise as the keeping of a journal and not sustain a shameful defeat.
One of our favorite youths, Jack, a splendid young fellow with a head full of
good sense, and a pair of legs that were a wonder to look upon in the way of
length and straightness and slimness, used to report progress every morning in
the most glowing and spirited way, and say:
"Oh, I'm coming along bully!" (He was a little given to slang in his happier
moods.) "I wrote ten pages in my journal last night--and you know I wrote nine
the night before and twelve the night before that. Why, it's only fun!"
"What do you find to put in it, Jack?"
"Oh, everything. Latitude and longitude, noon every day; and how many miles we
made last twenty-four hours; and all the domino games I beat and horse
billiards; and whales and sharks and porpoises; and the text of the sermon
Sundays (because that'll tell at home, you know); and the ships we saluted and
what nation they were; and which way the wind was, and whether there was a
heavy sea, and what sail we carried, though we don't ever carry any,
principally, going against a head wind always--wonder what is the reason of
that?--and how many lies Moult has told--oh, everything! I've got everything
down. My father told me to keep that journal. Father wouldn't take a thousand
dollars for it when I get it done."
"No, Jack; it will be worth more than a thousand dollars--when you get it
done."
"Do you? No, but do you think it will, though?"
"Yes, it will be worth at least as much as a thousand dollars--when you get it
done. Maybe more."
"Well, I about half think so, myself. It ain't no slouch of a journal."
But it shortly became a most lamentable "slouch of a journal." One night in
Paris, after a hard day's toil in sightseeing, I said:
"Now I'll go and stroll around the cafés awhile, Jack, and give you a
chance to write up your journal, old fellow."
His countenance lost its fire. He said:
"Well, no, you needn't mind. I think I won't run that journal anymore. It is
awful tedious. Do you know--I reckon I'm as much as four thousand pages
behindhand. I haven't got any France in it at all. First I thought I'd leave
France out and start fresh. But that wouldn't do, would it? The
governor would say, 'Hello, here--didn't see anything in France? That
cat wouldn't fight, you know. First I thought I'd copy France out of the
guidebook, like old Badger in the forrard cabin, who's writing a book, but
there's more than three hundred pages of it. Oh, I don't think a
journal's any use---do you? They're only a bother, ain't they?"
"Yes, a journal that is incomplete isn't of much use, but a journal properly
kept is worth a thousand dollars--when you've got it done."
"A thousand!--well, I should think so. I wouldn't finish it for a million."
His experience was only the experience of the majority of that industrious
night school in the cabin. If you wish to inflict a heartless and malignant
punishment upon a young person, pledge him to keep a journal a year.
A good many expedients were resorted to to keep the excursionists amused and
satisfied. A club was formed, of all the passengers, which met in the writing
school after prayers and read aloud about the countries we were approaching and
discussed the information so obtained.
Several times the photographer of the expedition brought out his transparent
pictures and gave us a handsome magic-lantern exhibition. His views were
nearly all of foreign scenes, but there were one or two home pictures among
them. He advertised that he would "open his performance in the after cabin at
'two bells' (nine P.M.) and show the passengers where they shall eventually
arrive"--which was all very well, but by a funny accident the first picture
that flamed out upon the canvas was a view of Greenwood Cemetery!
On several starlight nights we danced on the upper deck, under the awnings, and
made something of a ballroom display of brilliancy by hanging a number of
ship's lanterns to the stanchions. Our music consisted of the well-mixed
strains of a melodeon which was a little asthmatic and apt to catch its breath
where it ought to come out strong, a clarinet which was a little unreliable on
the high keys and rather melancholy on the low ones, and a disreputable
accordion that had a leak somewhere and breathed louder than it squawked--a
more elegant term does not occur to me just now. However, the dancing was
infinitely worse than the music. When the ship rolled to starboard the whole
platoon of dancers came charging down to starboard with it, and brought up in
mass at the rail; and when it rolled to port they went floundering down to port
with the same unanimity of sentiment. Waltzers spun around precariously for a
matter of fifteen seconds and then went scurrying down to the rail as if they
meant to go overboard. The Virginia reel, as performed on board the Quaker
City, had more genuine reel about it than any reel I ever saw before, and
was as full of interest to the spectator as it was full of desperate chances
and hairbreadth escapes to the participant. We gave up dancing, finally.
We celebrated a lady's birthday anniversary with toasts, speeches, a poem, and
so forth. We also had a mock trial. No ship ever went to sea that hadn't a
mock trial on board. The purser was accused of stealing an overcoat from
stateroom No. 10. A judge was appointed; also clerks, a crier of the court,
constables, sheriffs; counsel for the State and for the defendant; witnesses
were subpoenaed, and a jury empaneled after much challenging. The witnesses
were stupid and unreliable and contradictory, as witnesses always are. The
counsel were eloquent, argumentative, and vindictively abusive of each other,
as was characteristic and proper. The case was at last submitted and duly
finished by the judge with an absurd decision and a ridiculous sentence.
The acting of charades was tried on several evenings by the young gentlemen and
ladies, in the cabins, and proved the most distinguished success of all the
amusement experiments.
An attempt was made to organize a debating club, but it was a failure. There
was no oratorical talent in the ship.
We all enjoyed ourselves--I think I can safely say that, but it was in a rather
quiet way. We very, very seldom played the piano; we played the flute and the
clarinet together, and made good music, too, what there was of it, but we
always played the same old tune; it was a very pretty tune--how well I remember
it--I wonder when I shall ever get rid of it. We never played either the
melodeon or the organ except at devotions --but I am too fast: young Albert
did know part of a tune something about "O Something-or-Other How Sweet
It Is to Know That He's His What's-His-Name" (I do not remember the exact title
of it, but it was very plaintive and full of sentiment); Albert played that
pretty much all the time until we contracted with him to restrain himself. But
nobody ever sang by moonlight on the upper deck, and the congregational singing
at church and prayers was not of a superior order of architecture. I put up
with it as long as I could and then joined in and tried to improve it, but this
encouraged young George to join in too, and that made a failure of it; because
George's voice was just "turning," and when he was singing a dismal sort of
bass it was apt to fly off the handle and startle everybody with a most
discordant cackle on the upper notes. George didn't know the tunes, either,
which was also a drawback to his performances. I said:
"Come, now, George, don't improvise. It looks too egotistical. It will
provoke remark. Just stick to 'Coronation,' like the others. It is a good
tune--you can't improve it any, just offhand, in this way."
"Why, I'm not trying to improve it-- and I am singing like the
others--just as it is in the notes."
And he honestly thought he was, too; and so he had no one to blame but himself
when his voice caught on the center occasionally and gave him the lockjaw.
There were those among the unregenerated who attributed the unceasing head
winds to our distressing choir music. There were those who said openly that it
was taking chances enough to have such ghastly music going on, even when it was
at its best; and that to exaggerate the crime by letting George help was simply
flying in the face of Providence. These said that the choir would keep up
their lacerating attempts at melody until they would bring down a storm some
day that would sink the ship.
There were even grumblers at the prayers. The executive officer said the
pilgrims had no charity:
"There they are, down there every night at. eight bells, praying for fair
winds--when they know as well as I do that this is the only ship going east
this time of the year, but there's a thousand coming west--what's a fair wind
for us is a head wind to them--the Almighty's blowing a fair wind for a
thousand vessels, and this tribe wants him to turn it clear around so as to
accommodate one--and she a steamship at that! It ain't good sense, it
ain't good reason, it ain't good Christianity, it ain't common human charity.
Avast with such nonsense!"
Young Mr. Blucher, who is from the Far West and is on his first voyage, was a
good deal worried by the constantly changing "ship time." He was proud of his
new watch at first and used to drag it out promptly when eight bells struck at
noon, but he came to look after a while as if he were losing confidence in it.
Seven days out from New York he came on deck and said with great decision:
"This thing's a swindle!"
"What's a swindle?"
"Why, this watch. I bought her out in Illinois--gave $150 for her--and I
thought she was good. And, by George, she is good onshore, but somehow
she don't keep up her lick here on the water--gets seasick maybe. She skips;
she runs along regular enough till half-past eleven, and then, all of a sudden,
she lets down. I've set that old regulator up faster and faster, till I've
shoved it clear around, but it don't do any good; she just distances every
watch in the ship, and clatters along in a way that's astonishing till it is
noon, but them eight bells always gets in about ten minutes ahead of her
anyway. I don't know what to do with her now. She's doing all she can--she's
going her best gait, but it won't save her. Now, don't you know, there ain't a
watch in the ship that's making better time than she is, but what does it
signify? When you hear them eight bells you'll find her just about ten minutes
short of her score sure."
The ship was gaining a full hour every three days, and this fellow was trying
to make his watch go fast enough to keep up to her. But, as he had said, he
had pushed the regulator up as far as it would go, and the watch was "on its
best gait," and so nothing was left him but to fold his hands and see the ship
beat the race. We sent him to the captain, and he explained to him the mystery
of "ship time" and set his troubled mind at rest. This young man asked a great
many questions about seasickness before we left, and wanted to know what its
characteristics were and how he was to tell when he had it. He found out.
We saw the usual sharks, blackfish, porpoises, etc., of course, and by and by
large schools of Portuguese men-of-war were added to the regular list of sea
wonders. Some of them were white and some of a brilliant carmine color. The
nautilus is nothing but a transparent web of jelly that spreads itself to catch
the wind, and has fleshy-looking strings a foot or two long dangling from it to
keep it steady in the water. It is an accomplished sailor and has good sailor
judgment. It reefs its sail when a storm threatens or the wind blows pretty
hard, and furls it entirely and goes down when a gale blows. Ordinarily it
keeps its sail wet and in good sailing order by turning over and dipping it in
the water for a moment. Seamen say the nautilus is only found in these waters
between the thirty-fifth and forty-fifth parallels of latitude.
At three o'clock on the morning of the twenty-first of June, we were awakened
and notified that the Azores islands were in sight. I said I did not take any
interest in islands at three o'clock in the morning. But another persecutor
came, and then another and another, and finally believing that the general
enthusiasm would permit no one to slumber in peace, I got up and went sleepily
on deck. It was five and a half o'clock now, and a raw, blustering morning.
The passengers were huddled about the smokestacks and fortified behind
ventilators, and all were wrapped in wintry costumes and looking sleepy and
unhappy in the pitiless gale and the drenching spray.
The island in sight was Flores. It seemed only a mountain of mud standing up
out of the dull mists of the sea. But as we bore down upon it the sun came out
and made it a beautiful picture--a mass of green farms and meadows that swelled
up to a height of fifteen hundred feet and mingled its upper outlines with the
clouds. It was ribbed with sharp, steep ridges and cloven with narrow canyons,
and here and there on the heights, rocky upheavals shaped themselves into mimic
battlements and castles; and out of rifted clouds came broad shafts of sunlight
that painted summit and slope and glen with bands of fire and left belts of
somber shade between. It was the aurora borealis of the frozen pole exiled to
a summer land!
We skirted around two-thirds of the island, four miles from shore, and all the
opera glasses in the ship were called into requisition to settle disputes as to
whether mossy spots on the uplands were groves of trees or groves of weeds, or
whether the white villages down by the sea were really villages or only the
clustering tombstones of cemeteries. Finally we stood to sea and bore away for
San Miguel, and Flores shortly became a dome of mud again and sank down among
the mists ,and disappeared. But to many a seasick passenger it was good to see
the green hills again, and all were more cheerful after this episode than
anybody could have expected them to be, considering how sinfully early they had
gotten up.
But we had to change our purpose about San Miguel, for a storm came up about
noon that so tossed and pitched the vessel that common sense dictated a run for
shelter. Therefore we steered for the nearest island of the group--Fayal (the
people there pronounce it Fy-all, and put the accent on the first syllable).
We anchored in the open roadstead of Horta, half a mile from the shore. The
town has eight thousand to ten thousand inhabitants. Its snow-white houses
nestle cosily in a sea of fresh green vegetation, and no village could look
prettier or more attractive. It sits in the lap of an amphitheater of hills
which are three hundred to seven hundred feet high, and carefully cultivated
clear to their summits--not a foot of soil left idle. Every farm and every
acre is cut up into little square enclosures by stone walls, whose duty it is
to protect the growing products from the destructive gales that blow there.
These hundreds of green squares, marked by their black lava walls, make the
hills look like vast checkerboards.
The islands belong to Portugal, and everything in Fayal has Portuguese
characteristics about it. But more of that anon. A swarm of swarthy, noisy,
lying, shoulder-shrugging, gesticulating Portuguese boatmen, with brass rings
in their ears and fraud in their hearts, climbed the ship's sides, and various
parties of us contracted with them to take us ashore at so much a head, silver
coin of any country. We landed under the walls of a little fort, armed with
batteries of twelve- and thirty-two-pounders, which Horta considered a most
formidable institution, but if we were ever to get after it with one of our
turreted monitors, they would have to move it out in the country if they wanted
it where they could go and find it again when they needed it. The group on the
pier was a rusty one--men and women, and boys and girls, all ragged and
barefoot, uncombed and unclean, and by instinct, education, and profession
beggars. They trooped after us, and never more while we tarried in Fayal did
we get rid of them. We walked up the middle of the principal street, and these
vermin surrounded us on all sides and glared upon us; and every moment excited
couples shot ahead of the procession to get a good look back, just as village
boys do when they accompany the elephant on his advertising trip from street to
street. It was very flattering to me to be part of the material for such a
sensation. Here and there in the doorways we saw women with fashionable
Portuguese hoods on. This hood is of thick blue cloth, attached to a cloak of
the same stuff, and is a marvel of ugliness. It stands up high and spreads far
abroad, and is unfathomably deep. It fits like a circus tent, and a woman's
head is hidden away in it like the man's who prompts the singers from his tin
shed in the stage of an opera. There is no particle of trimming about this
monstrous capote, as they call it--it is just a plain, ugly dead-blue mass of
sail, and a woman can't go within eight points of the wind with one of them on;
she has to go before the wind or not at all. The general style of the capote
is the same in all the islands, and will remain so for the next ten thousand
years, but each island shapes its capotes just enough differently from the
others to enable an observer to tell at a glance what particular island a lady
hails from.
The Portuguese pennies, or reis (pronounced rays), are prodigious. It takes
one thousand reis to make a dollar, and all financial estimates are made in
reis. We did not know this until after we had found it out through Blucher.
Blucher said he was so happy and so grateful to be on solid land once more that
he wanted to give a feast--said he had heard it was a cheap land, and he was
bound to have a grand banquet. He invited nine of us, and we ate an excellent
dinner at the principal hotel. In the midst of the jollity produced by good
cigars, good wine, and passable anecdotes, the landlord presented his bill.
Blucher glanced at it and his countenance fell. He took another look to assure
himself that his senses had not deceived him and then read the items aloud, in
a faltering voice, while the roses in his cheeks turned to ashes:
"'Ten dinners, at 600 reis, 6,000 reis!' Ruin and desolation!
" 'Twenty-five cigars, at 100 reis, 2,500 reis!' Oh, my sainted mother!
"'Eleven bottles of wine, at 1,200 reis, 13,200 reis!' Be with us all!
"'TOTAL, TWENTY-ONE THOUSAND SEVEN HUNDRED REIS!' The suffering Moses! There
ain't money enough in the ship to pay that bill! Go--leave me to my misery,
boys, I am a ruined community."
I think it was the blankest-looking party I ever saw. Nobody could say a word.
It was as if every soul had been stricken dumb. Wine glasses descended slowly
to the table, their contents untasted. Cigars dropped unnoticed from nerveless
fingers. Each man sought his neighbor's eye, but found in it no ray of hope,
no encouragement. At last the fearful silence was broken. The shadow of a
desperate resolve settled upon Blucher's countenance like a cloud, and he rose
up and said:
"Landlord, this is a low, mean swindle, and I'll never, never stand it. Here's
a hundred and fifty dollars, Sir, and it's all you'll get--I'll swim in blood
before I'll pay a cent more."
Our spirits rose and the landlord's fell--at least we thought so; he was
confused, at any rate, notwithstanding he had not understood a word that had
been said. He glanced from the little pile of gold pieces to Blucher several
times and then went out. He must have visited an American, for when he
returned, he brought back his bill translated into a language that a Christian
could understand--thus:
Total 21,700 reis, or $21.70
The community is eminently Portuguese--that is to say, it is slow, poor,
shiftless, sleepy, and lazy. There is a civil governor, appointed by the King
of Portugal, and also a military governor, who can assume supreme control and
suspend the civil government at his pleasure. The islands contain a population
of about 200,000, almost entirely Portuguese. Everything is staid and settled,
for the country was one hundred years old when Columbus discovered America.
The principal crop is corn, and they raise it and grind it just as their
great-great-great-grandfathers did. They plow with a board slightly shod with
iron; their trifling little harrows are drawn by men and women; small windmills
grind the corn, ten bushels a day, and there is one assistant superintendent to
feed the mill and a general superintendent to stand by and keep him from going
to sleep. When the wind changes they hitch on some donkeys and actually turn
the whole upper half of the mill around until the sails are in proper position,
instead of fixing the concern so that the sails could be moved instead of the
mill. Oxen tread the wheat from the ear, after the fashion prevalent in the
time of Methuselah. There is not a wheelbarrow in the land--they carry
everything on their heads, or on donkeys, or in a wicker-bodied cart, whose
wheels are solid blocks of wood and whose axles turn with the wheel. There is
not a modern plow in the islands or a threshing machine. All attempts to
introduce them have failed. The good Catholic Portuguese crossed himself and
prayed God to shield him from all blasphemous desire to know more than his
father did before him. The climate is mild; they never have snow or ice, and I
saw no chimneys in the town. The donkeys and the men, women, and children of a
family all eat and sleep in the same room, and are unclean, are ravaged by
vermin, and are truly happy. The people lie, and cheat the stranger, and are
desperately ignorant, and have hardly any reverence for their dead. The latter
trait shows how little better they are than the donkeys they eat and sleep
with. The only well-dressed Portuguese in the camp are the half a dozen
well-to-do families, the Jesuit priests, and the soldiers of the little
garrison. The wages of a laborer are twenty to twenty-four cents a day, and
those of a good mechanic about twice as much. They count it in reis at a
thousand to the dollar, and this makes them rich and contented. Fine grapes
used to grow in the islands, and an excellent wine was made and exported. But
a disease killed all the vines fifteen years ago, and since that time no wine
has been made. The islands being wholly of volcanic origin, the soil is
necessarily very rich. Nearly every foot of ground is under cultivation, and
two or three crops a year of each article are produced, but nothing is exported
save a few oranges--chiefly to England. Nobody comes here, and nobody goes
away. News is a thing unknown in Fayal. A thirst for it is a passion equally
unknown. A Portuguese of average intelligence inquired if our civil war was
over. Because, he said, somebody had told him it was--or at least it ran in
his mind that somebody had told him something like that! And when a passenger
gave an officer of the garrison copies of the Tribune, the Herald,
and Times, he was surprised to find later news in them from Lisbon
than he had just received by the little monthly steamer. He was told that it
came by cable. He said he knew they had tried to lay a cable ten years ago,
but it had been in his mind somehow that they hadn't succeeded!
It is in communities like this that Jesuit humbuggery flourishes. We visited a
Jesuit cathedral nearly two hundred years old and found in it a piece of the
veritable cross upon which our Saviour was crucified. It was polished and
hard, and in as excellent a state of preservation as if the dread tragedy on
Calvary had occurred yesterday instead of eighteen centuries ago. But these
confiding people believe in that piece of wood unhesitatingly.
In a chapel of the cathedral is an altar with facings of solid silver--at least
they call it so, and I think myself it would go a couple of hundred to the ton
(to speak after the fashion of the silver miners)--and before it is kept
forever burning a small lamp. A devout lady who died, left money and
contracted for unlimited masses for the repose of her soul, and also stipulated
that this lamp should be kept lighted always, day and night. She did all this
before she died, you understand. It is a very small lamp and a very dim one,
and it could not work her much damage, I think, if it went out altogether.
The great altar of the cathedral and also three or four minor ones are a
perfect mass of gilt gimcracks and gingerbread. And they have a swarm of
rusty, dusty, battered apostles standing around the filagree work, some on one
leg and some with one eye out but a gamey look in the other, and some with two
or three fingers gone, and some with not enough nose left to blow--all of them
crippled and discouraged, and fitter subjects for the hospital than the
cathedral.
The walls of the chancel are of porcelain, all pictured over with figures of
almost life size, very elegantly wrought and dressed in the fanciful costumes
of two centuries ago. The design was a history of something or somebody, but
none of us were learned enough to read the story. The old father, reposing
under a stone close by, dated 1686, might have told us if he could have risen.
But he didn't.
As we came down through the town we encountered a squad of little donkeys ready
saddled for use. The saddles were peculiar, to say the least. They consisted
of a sort of sawbuck with a small mattress on it, and this furniture covered
about half the donkey. There were no stirrups, but really such supports were
not needed--to use such a saddle was the next thing to riding a dinner
table--there was ample support clear out to one's knee joints. A pack of
ragged Portuguese muleteers crowded around us, offering their beasts at half a
dollar an hour--more rascality to the stranger, for the market price is sixteen
cents. Half a dozen of us mounted the ungainly affairs and submitted to the
indignity of making a ridiculous spectacle of ourselves through the principal
streets of a town of 10,000 inhabitants.
We started. It was not a trot, a gallop, or a canter, but a stampede, and made
up of all possible or conceivable gaits. No spurs were necessary. There was a
muleteer to every donkey and a dozen volunteers beside, and they banged the
donkeys with their goad sticks, and pricked them with their spikes, and shouted
something that sounded like "Sekki-yah!" and kept up a din and a racket
that was worse than Bedlam itself. These rascals were all on foot, but no
matter, they were always up to time--they can outrun and outlast a donkey.
Altogether, ours was a lively and a picturesque procession, and drew crowded
audiences to the balconies wherever we went.
Blucher could do nothing at all with his donkey. The beast scampered zigzag
across the road and the others ran into him; he scraped Blucher against carts
and the corners of houses; the road was fenced in with high stone walls, and
the donkey gave him a polishing first on one side and then on the other, but
never once took the middle; he finally came to the house he was born in and
darted into the parlor, scraping Blucher off at the doorway. After remounting,
Blucher said to the muleteer, "Now, that's enough, you know; you go slow
hereafter." But the fellow knew no English and did not understand, so he simply
said, "Sekki-yah!" and the donkey was off again like a shot. He turned
a corner suddenly, and Blucher went over his head. And, to speak truly, every
mule stumbled over the two, and the whole cavalcade was piled up in a heap. No
harm done. A fall from one of those donkeys is of little more consequence than
rolling off a sofa. The donkeys all stood still after the catastrophe and
waited for their dismembered saddles to be patched up and put on by the noisy
muleteers. Blucher was pretty angry and wanted to swear, but every time he
opened his mouth his animal did so also and let off a series of brays that
drowned all other sounds.
It was fun, scurrying around the breezy hills and through the beautiful
canyons. There was that rare thing, novelty, about it; it was a fresh, new,
exhilarating sensation, this donkey riding, and worth a hundred worn and
threadbare home pleasures.
The roads were a wonder, and well they might be. Here was an island with only
a handful of people in it--25,000--and yet such fine roads do not exist in the
United States outside of Central Park. Everywhere you go, in any direction,
you find either a hard, smooth, level thoroughfare, just sprinkled with black
lava sand, and bordered with little gutters neatly paved with small smooth
pebbles, or compactly paved ones like Broadway. They talk much of the Russ
pavement in New York, and call it a new invention--yet here they have been
using it in this remote little isle of the sea for two hundred years! Every
street in Horta is handsomely paved with the heavy Russ blocks, and the surface
is neat and true as a floor--not marred by holes like Broadway. And every road
is fenced in by tall, solid lava walls, which will last a thousand years in
this land where frost is unknown. They are very thick, and are often plastered
and whitewashed and capped with projecting slabs of cut stone. Trees from
gardens above hang their swaying tendrils down, and contrast their bright green
with the whitewash or the black lava of the walls and make them beautiful. The
trees and vines stretch across these narrow roadways sometimes and so shut out
the sun that you seem to be riding through a tunnel. The pavements, the roads,
and the bridges are all government work.
The bridges are of a single span--a single arch--of cut stone, without a
support, and paved on top with flags of lava and ornamental pebblework.
Everywhere are walls, walls, walls, and all of them tasteful and handsome--and
eternally substantial; and everywhere are those marvelous pavements, so neat,
so smooth, and so indestructible. And if ever roads and streets and the
outsides of houses were perfectly free from any sign or semblance of dirt, or
dust, or mud, or uncleanliness of any kind, it is Horta, it is Fayal. The
lower classes of the people, in their persons and their domiciles, are not
clean--but there it stops--the town and the island are miracles of
cleanliness.
We arrived home again finally, after a ten-mile excursion, and the
irrepressible muleteers scampered at our heels through the main street, goading
the donkeys, shouting the everlasting "Sekki-yah," and singing "John
Brown's Body" in ruinous English.
When we were dismounted and it came to settling, the shouting and jawing and
swearing and quarreling among the muleteers and with us was nearly deafening.
One fellow would demand a dollar an hour for the use of his donkey; another
claimed half a dollar for pricking him up, another a quarter for helping in
that service, and about fourteen guides presented bills for showing us the way
through the town and its environs; and every vagrant of them was more
vociferous, and more vehement and more frantic in gesture than his neighbor.
We paid one guide and paid for one muleteer to each donkey.
The mountains on some of the islands are very high. We sailed along the shore
of the island of Pico, under a stately green pyramid that rose up with one
unbroken sweep from our very feet to. an altitude of 7,613 feet, and thrust its
summit above the white clouds like an island adrift in a fog!
We got plenty of fresh oranges, lemons, figs, apricots, etc., in these Azores,
of course. But I will desist. I am not here to write Patent Office reports.
We are on our way to Gibraltar, and shall reach there five or six days out from
the Azores.
And the last night of the seven was the stormiest of all. There was no
thunder, no noise but the pounding bows of the ship, the keen whistling of the
gale through the cordage, and the rush of the seething waters. But the vessel
climbed aloft as if she would climb to heaven--then paused an instant that
seemed a century and plunged headlong down again, as from a precipice. The
sheeted sprays drenched the decks like rain. The blackness of darkness was
everywhere. At long intervals a flash of lightning clove it with a quivering
line of fire that revealed a heaving world of water where was nothing before,
kindled the dusky cordage to glittering silver, and lit up the faces of the men
with a ghastly luster!
Fear drove many on deck that were used to avoiding the night winds and the
spray. Some thought the vessel could not live through the night, and it seemed
less dreadful to stand out in the midst of the wild tempest and see the
peril that threatened than to be shut up in the sepulchral cabins, under the
dim lamps, and imagine the horrors that were abroad on the ocean. And once
out--once where they could see the ship struggling in the strong grasp of the
storm--once where they could hear the shriek of the winds and face the driving
spray and look out upon the majestic picture the lightnings disclosed, they
were prisoners to a fierce fascination they could not resist, and so remained.
It was a wild night--and a very, very long one.
Everybody was sent scampering to the deck at seven o'clock this lovely morning
of the thirtieth of June with the glad news that land was in sight! It was a
rare thing and a joyful, to see all the ship's family abroad once more,
albeit the happiness that sat upon every countenance could only partly conceal
the ravages which that long siege of storms had wrought there. But dull eyes
soon sparkled with pleasure, pallid cheeks flushed again, and frames weakened
by sickness gathered new life from the quickening influences of the bright,
fresh morning. Yea, and from a still more potent influence: the worn castaways
were to see the blessed land again!--and to see it was to bring back that
motherland that was in all their thoughts.
Within the hour we were fairly within the Straits of Gibraltar, the tall
yellow-splotched hills of Africa on our right, with their bases veiled in a
blue haze and their summits swathed in clouds--the same being according to
Scripture, which says that "clouds and darkness are over the land." The words
were spoken of this particular portion of Africa, I believe. On our left were
the granite-ribbed domes of old Spain. The strait is only thirteen miles wide
in its narrowest part.
At short intervals along the Spanish shore were quaint-looking old stone
towers--Moorish, we thought--but learned better afterwards. In former times
the Morocco rascals used to coast along the Spanish Main in their boats till a
safe opportunity seemed to present itself, and then dart in and capture a
Spanish village and carry off all the pretty women they could find. It was a
pleasant business, and was very popular. The Spaniards built these watchtowers
on the hills to enable them to keep a sharper lookout on the Moroccan
speculators.
The picture on the other hand was very beautiful to eyes weary of the
changeless sea, and by and by the ship's company grew wonderfully cheerful.
But while we stood admiring the cloud-capped peaks and the lowlands robed in
misty gloom a finer picture burst upon us and chained every eye like a
magnet--a stately ship, with canvas piled on canvas till she was one towering
mass of bellying sail! She came speeding over the sea like a great bird.
Africa and Spain were forgotten. All homage was for the beautiful stranger.
While everybody gazed she swept superbly by and flung the Stars and Stripes to
the breeze! Quicker than thought, hats and handkerchiefs flashed in the air,
and a cheer went up! She was beautiful before--she was radiant now. Many a one
on our decks knew then for the first time how tame a sight his country's flag
is at home compared to what it is in a foreign land. To see it is to see a
vision of home itself and all its idols, and feel a thrill that would stir a
very river of sluggish blood!
We were approaching the famed Pillars of Hercules, and already the African one,
"Ape's Hill," a grand old mountain with summit streaked with granite ledges,
was in sight. The other, the great Rock of Gibraltar, was yet to come. The
ancients considered the Pillars of Hercules the head of navigation and the end
of the world. The information the ancients didn't have was very voluminous.
Even the prophets wrote book after book and epistle after epistle, yet never
once hinted at the existence of a great continent on our side of the water; yet
they must have known it was there, I should think.
In a few moments a lonely and enormous mass of rock, standing seemingly in the
center of the wide strait and apparently washed on all sides by the sea, swung
magnificently into view, and we needed no tedious traveled parrot to tell us it
was Gibraltar. There could not be two rocks like that in one kingdom.
The Rock of Gibraltar is about a mile and a half long, I should say, by 1,400
to 1,500 feet high, and a quarter of a mile wide at its base. One side and one
end of it come about as straight up out of the sea as the side of a house, the
other end is irregular and the other side is a steep slant which an army would
find very difficult to climb. At the foot of this slant is the walled town of
Gibraltar--or rather the town occupies part of the slant. Everywhere--on
hillside, in the precipice, by the sea, on the heights--everywhere you choose
to look, Gibraltar is clad with masonry and bristling with guns. It makes a
striking and lively picture from whatsoever point you contemplate it. It is
pushed out into the sea on the end of a flat, narrow strip of land, and is
suggestive of a "gob" of mud on the end of a shingle. A few hundred yards of
this flat ground at its base belongs to the English, and then, extending across
the strip from the Atlantic to the Mediterranean, a distance of a quarter of a
mile, comes the "Neutral Ground," a space two or three hundred yards wide,
which is free to both parties.
"Are you going through Spain to Paris?" That question was bandied about the
ship day and night from Fayal to Gibraltar, and I thought I never could get so
tired of hearing any one combination of words again or more tired of answering,
"I don't know." At the last moment six or seven had sufficient decision of
character to make up their minds to go, and did go, and I felt a sense of
relief at once--it was forever too late now and I could make up my mind at my
leisure not to go. I must have a prodigious quantity of mind; it takes me as
much as a week sometimes to make it up.
But behold how annoyances repeat themselves. We had no sooner gotten rid of
the Spain distress than the Gibraltar guides started another--a tiresome
repetition of a legend that had nothing very astonishing about it, even in the
first place: "That high hill yonder is called the Queen's Chair; it is because
one of the queens of Spain placed her chair there when the French and Spanish
troops were besieging Gibraltar, and said she would never move from the spot
till the English flag was lowered from the fortresses. If the English hadn't
been gallant enough to lower the flag for a few hours one day, she'd have had
to break her oath or die up there."
We rode on asses and mules up the steep, narrow streets and entered the
subterranean galleries the English have blasted out in the rock. These
galleries are like spacious railway tunnels, and at short intervals in them
great guns frown out upon sea and town through portholes five or six hundred
feet above the ocean. There is a mile or so of this subterranean work, and it
must have cost a vast deal of money and labor. The gallery guns command the
peninsula and the harbors of both oceans, but they might as well not be there,
I should think, for an army could hardly climb the perpendicular wall of the
rock anyhow. Those lofty portholes afford superb views of the sea, though. At
one place, where a jutting crag was hollowed out into a great chamber whose
furniture was huge cannon and whose windows were portholes, a glimpse was
caught of a hill not far away, and a soldier said:
"That high hill yonder is called the Queen's Chair; it is because a queen of
Spain placed her chair there once when the French and Spanish troops were
besieging Gibraltar, and said she would never move from the spot till the
English flag was lowered from the fortresses. If the English hadn't been
gallant enough to lower the flag for a few hours one day, she'd have had to
break her oath or die up there."
On the topmost pinnacle of Gibraltar we halted a good while, and no doubt the
mules were tired. They had a right to be. The military road was good, but
rather steep, and there was a good deal of it. The view from the narrow ledge
was magnificent; from it vessels seeming like the tiniest little toy boats were
turned into noble ships by the telescopes, and other vessels that were fifty
miles away and even sixty, they said, and invisible to the naked eye, could be
clearly distinguished through those same telescopes. Below, on one side, we
looked down upon an endless mass of batteries and on the other straight down to
the sea.
While I was resting ever so comfortably on a rampart, and cooling my baking
head in the delicious breeze, an officious guide belonging to another party
came up and said:
"Señor, that high hill yonder is called the Queen's Chair--"
Sir, I am a helpless orphan in a foreign land. Have pity on me. Don't--now
don't inflict that most in-FERNAL old legend on me anymore today!"
There--I had used strong language after promising I would never do so again;
but the provocation was more than human nature could bear. If you had been
bored so, when you had the noble panorama of Spain and Africa and the blue
Mediterranean spread abroad at your feet, and wanted to gaze and enjoy and
surfeit yourself in its beauty in silence, you might have even burst into
stronger language than I did.
Gibraltar has stood several protracted sieges, one of them of nearly four
years' duration (it failed), and the English only captured it by stratagem.
The wonder is that anybody should ever dream of trying so impossible a project
as the taking it by assault--and yet it has been tried more than once.
The Moors held the place twelve hundred years ago, and a staunch old castle of
theirs of that date still frowns from the middle of the town, with moss-grown
battlements and sides well scarred by shots fired in battles and sieges that
are forgotten now. A secret chamber in the rock behind it was discovered some
time ago, which contained a sword of exquisite workmanship, and some quaint old
armor of a fashion that antiquaries are not acquainted with, though it is
supposed to be Roman. Roman armor and Roman relics of various kinds have been
found in a cave in the sea extremity of Gibraltar; history says Rome held this
part of the country about the Christian era, and these things seem to confirm
the statement.
In that cave also are found human bones, crusted with a very thick, stony
coating, and wise men have ventured to say that those men not only lived before
the flood, but as much as ten thousand years before it. It may be true--it
looks reasonable enough--but as long as those parties can't vote anymore, the
matter can be of no great public interest. In this cave likewise are found
skeletons and fossils of animals that exist in every part of Africa, yet within
memory and tradition have never existed in any portion of Spain save this lone
peak of Gibraltar! So the theory is that the channel between Gibraltar and
Africa was once dry land, and that the low, neutral neck between Gibraltar and
the Spanish hills behind it was once ocean, and of course that these African
animals, being over at Gibraltar (after rock, perhaps--there is plenty there),
got closed out when the great change occurred. The hills in Africa, across the
channel, are full of apes, and there are now and always have been apes on the
rock of Gibraltar--but not elsewhere in Spain! The subject is an interesting
one.
There is an English garrison at Gibraltar of 6,000 or 7,000 men, and so
uniforms of flaming red are plenty; and red and blue, and undress costumes of
snowy white, and also the queer uniform of the bare-kneed Highlander; and one
sees soft-eyed Spanish girls from San Roque, and veiled Moorish beauties (I
suppose they are beauties) from Tarifa, and turbaned, sashed, and trousered
Moorish merchants from Fez, and long-robed, bare-legged, ragged Muhammadan
vagabonds from Tetuán and Tangier, some brown, some yellow and some as
black as virgin ink--and Jews from all around, in gabardine, skullcap, and
slippers, just as they are in pictures and theaters, and just as they were
three thousand years ago, no doubt. You can easily understand that a tribe
(somehow our pilgrims suggest that expression, because they march in a
straggling procession through these foreign places with such an Indian-like air
of complacency and independence about them) like ours, made up from fifteen or
sixteen states of the Union, found enough to stare at in this shifting panorama
of fashion today.
Speaking of our pilgrims reminds me that we have one or two people among us who
are sometimes an annoyance. However, I do not count the Oracle in that list.
I will explain that the Oracle is an innocent old ass who eats for four and
looks wiser than the whole Academy of France would have any right to look, and
never uses a one-syllable word when he can think of a longer one, and never by
any possible chance knows the meaning of any long word he uses or ever gets it
in the right place; yet he will serenely venture an opinion on the most
abstruse subject and back it up complacently with quotations from authors who
never existed, and finally when cornered will slide to the other side of the
question, say he has been there all the time, and come back at you with your
own spoken arguments, only with the big words all tangled, and play them in
your very teeth as original with himself. He reads a chapter in the
guidebooks, mixes the facts all up, with his bad memory, and then goes off to
inflict the whole mess on somebody as wisdom which has been festering in his
brain for years and which he gathered in college from erudite authors who are
dead now and out of print. This morning at breakfast he pointed out of the
window and said:
"Do you see that there hill out there on that African coast? It's one of them
Pillows of Herkewls, I should say--and there's the ultimate one alongside of
it."
"The ultimate one--that is a good word--but the pillars are not both on the
same side of the strait." (I saw he had been deceived by a carelessly written
sentence in the guidebook.)
"Well, it ain't for you to say, nor for me. Some authors states it that way,
and some states it different. Old Gibbons don't say nothing about it--just
shirks it complete--Gibbons always done that when he got stuck--but there is
Rolampton, what does he say? Why, be says that they was both on the
same side, and Trinculian, and Sobaster, and Syraccus, and Langomarganb----"
"Oh, that will do--that's enough. If you have got your hand in for inventing
authors and testimony, I have nothing more to say--let them be on the
same side."
We don't mind the Oracle. We rather like him. We can tolerate the Oracle very
easily, but we have a poet and a good-natured enterprising idiot on board, and
they do distress the company. The one gives copies of his verses to
consuls, commanders, hotel keepers, Arabs, Dutch--to anybody, in fact, who will
submit to a grievous infliction most kindly meant. His poetry is all very well
on shipboard, notwithstanding when he wrote an "Ode to the Ocean in a Storm" in
one half hour, and an "Apostrophe to the Rooster in the Waist of the Ship" in
the next, the transition was considered to be rather abrupt; but when he sends
an invoice of rhymes to the Governor of Fayal and another to the commander in
chief and other dignitaries in Gibraltar with the compliments of the Laureate
of the Ship, it is not popular with the passengers.
The other personage I have mentioned is young and green, and not bright, not
learned, and not wise. He will be, though, someday if he recollects the
answers to all his questions. He is known about the ship as the "Interrogation
Point," and this by constant use has become shortened to "Interrogation." He
has distinguished himself twice already. In Fayal they pointed out a hill and
told him it was 800 feet high and 1,100 feet long. And they told him there was
a tunnel 2,000 feet long and 1,000 feet high running through the hill, from end
to end. He believed it. He repeated it to everybody, discussed it, and read
it from his notes. Finally, he took a useful hint from this remark, which a
thoughtful old pilgrim made:
"Well, yes, it is a little remarkable--singular tunnel
altogether--stands up out of the top of the hill about two hundred feet, and
one end of it sticks out of the hill about nine hundred!"
Here in Gibraltar he corners these educated British officers and badgers them
with braggadocio about America and the wonders she can perform! He told one of
them a couple of our gunboats could come here and knock Gibraltar into the
Mediterranean Sea!
At this present moment half a dozen of us are taking a private pleasure
excursion of our own devising. We form rather more than half the list of white
passengers on board a small steamer bound for the venerable Moorish town of
Tangier, Africa. Nothing could be more absolutely certain than that we are
enjoying ourselves. One can not do otherwise who speeds over these sparkling
waters and breathes the soft atmosphere of this sunny land. Care cannot assail
us here. We are out of its jurisdiction.
We even steamed recklessly by the frowning fortress of Malabat (a stronghold of
the Emperor of Morocco) without a twinge of fear. The whole garrison turned
out under arms and assumed a threatening attitude--yet still we did not fear.
The entire garrison marched and counter-marched within the rampart, in full
view--yet notwithstanding even this, we never flinched.
I suppose we really do not know what fear is. I inquired the name of the
garrison of the fortress of Malabat, and they said it was Mehemet Ali Ben
Sancom. I said it would be a good idea to get some more garrisons to help him;
but they said no, he had nothing to do but hold the place, and he was competent
to do that, had done it two years already. That was evidence which one could
not well refute. There is nothing like reputation.
Every now and then my glove purchase in Gibraltar last night intrudes itself
upon me. Dan and the ship's surgeon and I had been up to the great square,
listening to the music of the fine military bands and contemplating English and
Spanish female loveliness and fashion, and at nine o'clock were on our way to
the theater, when we met the General, the Judge, the Commodore, the Colonel,
and the Commissioner of the United States of America to Europe, Asia, and
Africa, who had been to the Club House to register their several titles and
impoverish the bill of fare; and they told us to go over to the little variety
store near the Hall of Justice and buy some kid gloves. They said they were
elegant and very moderate in price. It seemed a stylish thing to go to the
theater in kid gloves, and we acted upon the hint. A very handsome young lady
in the store offered me a pair of blue gloves. I did not want blue, but she
said they would look very pretty on a hand like mine. The remark touched me
tenderly. I glanced furtively at my hand, and somehow it did seem rather a
comely member. I tried a glove on my left and blushed a little. Manifestly
the size was too small for me. But I felt gratified when she said:
"Oh, it is just right!" Yet I knew it was no such thing.
I tugged at it diligently, but it was discouraging work. She said:
"Ah! I see you are accustomed to wearing kid gloves--but some gentlemen
are so awkward about putting them on."
It was the last compliment I had expected. I only understand putting on the
buckskin article perfectly. I made another effort and tore the glove from the
base of the thumb into the palm of the hand--and tried to hide the rent. She
kept up her compliments, and I kept up my determination to deserve them or
die:
"Ah, you have had experience! [A rip down the back of the hand.] They are just
right for you--your hand is very small--if they tear you need not pay for them.
[A rent across the middle.] I can always tell when a gentleman understands
putting on kid gloves. There is a grace about it that only comes with long
practice." The whole afterguard of the glove "fetched away," as the sailors
say, the fabric parted across the knuckles, and nothing was left but a
melancholy ruin.
I was too much flattered to make an exposure and throw the merchandise on the
angel's hands. I was hot, vexed, confused, but still happy; but I hated the
other boys for taking such an absorbing interest in the proceedings. I wished
they were in Jericho. I felt exquisitely mean when I said cheerfully:
"This one does very well; it fits elegantly. I like a glove that fits. No,
never mind, ma'am, never mind; I'll put the other on in the street. It is warm
here."
It was warm. It was the warmest place I ever was in. I paid the bill,
and as I passed out with a fascinating bow I thought I detected a light in the
woman's eye that was gently ironical; and when I looked back from the street,
and she was laughing all to herself about something or other, I said to myself
with withering sarcasm, "Oh, certainly; you know how to put on kid
gloves, don't you? A self-complacent ass, ready to be flattered out of your
senses by every petticoat that chooses to take the trouble to do it!"
The silence of the boys annoyed me. Finally Dan said musingly:
"Some gentlemen don't know how to put on kid gloves at all, but some do."
And the doctor said (to the moon, I thought):
"But it is always easy to tell when a gentleman is used to putting on kid
gloves."
Dan soliloquized after a pause:
"Ah, yes; there is a grace about it that only comes with long, very long
practice."
"Yes, indeed, I've noticed that when a man hauls on a kid glove like he was
dragging a cat out of an ash hole by the tail, he understands putting on
kid gloves; he's had ex----"
"Boys, enough of a thing's enough! You think you are very smart, I suppose, but
I don't. And if you go and tell any of those old gossips in the ship about
this thing, I'll never forgive you for it; that's all."
They let me alone then for the time being. We always let each other alone in
time to prevent ill feeling from spoiling a joke. But they had bought gloves,
too, as I did. We threw all the purchases away together this morning. They
were coarse, unsubstantial, freckled all over with broad yellow splotches, and
could neither stand wear nor public exhibition. We had entertained an angel
unawares, but we did not take her in. She did that for us.
Tangier! A tribe of stalwart Moors are wading into the sea to carry us ashore
on their backs from the small boats.
There are stalwart Bedouins of the desert here, and stately Moors proud of a
history that goes back to the night of time; and Jews whose fathers fled hither
centuries upon centuries ago; and swarthy Riffians from the mountains--born
cutthroats--and original, genuine Negroes as black as Moses; and howling
dervishes and a hundred breeds of Arabs--an sorts and descriptions of people
that are foreign and curious to look upon.
And their dresses are strange beyond all description. Here is a bronzed Moor
in a prodigious white turban, curiously embroidered jacket, gold and crimson
sash, of many folds, wrapped round and round his waist, trousers that only come
a little below his knee and yet have twenty yards of stuff in them, ornamented
scimitar, bare shins, stockingless feet, yellow slippers, and gun of
preposterous length--a mere soldier!--I thought he was the Emperor at least.
And here are aged Moors with flowing white beards and long white robes with
vast cowls; and Bedouins with long, cowled, striped cloaks; and Negroes and
Riffians with heads clean-shaven except a kinky scalp lock back of the ear or,
rather, upon the aftercorner of the skull; and all sorts of barbarians in all
sorts of weird costumes, and all more or less ragged. And here are Moorish
women who are enveloped from head to foot in coarse white robes, and whose sex
can only be determined by the fact that they only leave one eye visible and
never look at men of their own race, or are looked at by them in public. Here
are five thousand Jews in blue gabardines, sashes about their waists, slippers
upon their feet, little skullcaps upon the backs of their heads, hair combed
down on the forehead, and cut straight across the middle of it from side to
side--the selfsame fashion their Tangier ancestors have worn for I don't know
how many bewildering centuries. Their feet and ankles are bare. Their noses
are all hooked, and hooked alike. They all resemble each other so much that
one could almost believe they were of one family. Their women are plump and
pretty, and do smile upon a Christian in a way which is in the last degree
comforting.
What a funny old town it is! It seems like profanation to laugh and jest and
bandy the frivolous chat of our day amid its hoary relics. Only the stately
phraseology and the measured speech of the sons of the Prophet are suited to a
venerable antiquity like this. Here is a crumbling wall that was old when
Columbus discovered America; was old when Peter the Hermit roused the knightly
men of the Middle Ages to arm for the first Crusade; was old when Charlemagne
and his paladins beleaguered enchanted castles and battled with giants and
genii in the fabled days of the olden time; was old when Christ and his
disciples walked the earth; stood where it stands today when the lips of Memnon
were vocal and men bought and sold in the streets of ancient Thebes!
The Phoenicians, the Carthagenians, the English, Moors, Romans, all have
battled for Tangier--all have won it and lost it. Here is a ragged,
oriental-looking Negro from some desert place in interior Africa, filling his
goatskin with water from a stained and battered fountain built by the Romans
twelve hundred years ago. Yonder is a ruined arch of a bridge built by Julius
Caesar nineteen hundred years ago. Men who had seen the infant Saviour in the
Virgin's arms have stood upon it, maybe.
Near it are the ruins of a dockyard where Caesar repaired his ships and loaded
them with grain when he invaded Britain, fifty years before the Christian
era.
Here, under the quiet stars, these old streets seem thronged with the phantoms
of forgotten ages. My eyes are resting upon a spot where stood a monument
which was seen and described by Roman historians less than two thousand years
ago, whereon was inscribed:
Tangier has been mentioned in history for three thousand years. And it was a
town, though a queer one, when Hercules, clad in his lion skin, landed here,
four thousand years ago. In these streets he met Anitus, the king of the
country, and brained him with his club, which was the fashion among gentlemen
in those days. The people of Tangier (called Tingis then) lived in the rudest
possible huts and dressed in skins and carried clubs, and were as savage as the
wild beasts they were constantly obliged to war with. But they were a
gentlemanly race and did no work. They lived on the natural products of the
land. Their king's country residence was at the famous Garden of Hesperides,
seventy miles down ' the coast from here. The garden, with its golden apples
(oranges), is gone now--no vestige of it remains. Antiquarians concede that
such a personage as Hercules did exist in ancient times and agree that he was
an enterprising and energetic man, but decline to believe him a good, bona-fide
god, because that would be unconstitutional.
Down here at Cape Spartel is the celebrated cave of Hercules, where that hero
took refuge when he was vanquished and driven out of the Tangier country. It
is full of inscriptions in the dead languages, which fact makes me think
Hercules could not have traveled much, else he would not have kept a journal.
Five days' journey from here--say two hundred miles--are the ruins of an
ancient city, of whose history there is neither record nor tradition. And yet
its arches, its columns, and its statues proclaim it to have been built by an
enlightened race.
The general size of a store in Tangier is about that of an ordinary shower bath
in a civilized land. The Muhammadan merchant, tinman, shoemaker, or vendor of
trifles sits cross-legged on the floor and reaches after any article you may
want to buy. You can rent a whole block of these pigeonholes for fifty dollars
a month. The market people crowd the marketplace with their baskets of figs,
dates, melons, apricots, etc., and among them file trains of laden asses, not
much larger, if any, than a Newfoundland dog. The scene is lively, is
picturesque, and smells like a police court. The Jewish money-changers have
their dens close at hand, and all day long are counting bronze coins and
transferring them from one bushel basket to another. They don't coin much
money nowadays, I think. I saw none but what was dated four or five hundred
years back, and was badly worn and battered. These coins are not very
valuable. Jack went out to get a napoleon changed, so as to have money suited
to the general cheapness of things, and came back and said he bad "swamped the
bank, had bought eleven quarts of coin, and the head of the firm had gone on
the street to negotiate for the balance of the change." I bought nearly half a
pint of their money for a shilling myself. I am not proud on account of having
so much money, though. I care nothing for wealth.
The Moors have some small silver coins and also some silver slugs worth a
dollar each. The latter are exceedingly scarce--so much so that when poor
ragged Arabs see one they beg to be allowed to kiss it.
They have also a small gold coin worth two dollars. And that reminds me of
something. When Morocco is in a state of war, Arab couriers carry letters
through the country and charge a liberal postage. Every now and then they fall
into the hands of marauding bands and get robbed. Therefore, warned by
experience, as soon as they have collected two dollars' worth of money they
exchange it for one of those little gold pieces, and when robbers come upon
them, swallow it. The stratagem was good while it was unsuspected, but after
that the marauders simply gave the sagacious United States mail an emetic and
sat down to wait.
The Emperor of Morocco is a soulless despot, and the great officers under him
are despots on a smaller scale. There is no regular system of taxation, but
when the Emperor or the Bashaw want money, they levy on some rich man, and he
has to furnish the cash or go to prison. Therefore, few men in Morocco dare to
be rich. It is too dangerous a luxury. Vanity occasionally leads a man to
display wealth, but sooner or later the Emperor trumps up a charge against
him--any sort of one will do--and confiscates his property. Of course, there
are many rich men in the empire, but their money is buried, and they dress in
rags and counterfeit poverty. Every now and then the Emperor imprisons a man
who is suspected of the crime of being rich, and makes things so uncomfortable
for him that he is forced to discover where he has hidden his money.
Moors and Jews sometimes place themselves under the protection of the foreign
consuls, and then they can flout their riches in the Emperor's face with
impunity.
Some years ago the clock in the tower of the mosque got out of order. The
Moors of Tangier have so degenerated that it has been long since there was an
artificer among them capable of curing so delicate a patient as a debilitated
clock. The great men of the city met in solemn conclave to consider how the
difficulty was to be met. They discussed the matter thoroughly but arrived at
no solution. Finally, a patriarch arose and said:
"Oh, children of the Prophet, it is known unto you that a Portuguee dog of a
Christian clock mender pollutes the city of Tangier with his presence. Ye
know, also, that when mosques are builded, asses bear the stones and the
cement, and cross the sacred threshold. Now, therefore, send the Christian dog
on all fours, and barefoot, into the holy place to mend the clock, and let him
go as an ass!"
And in that way it was done. Therefore, if Blucher ever sees the inside of a
mosque, he will have to cast aside his humanity and go in his natural
character. We visited the jail and found Moorish prisoners making mats and
baskets. (This thing of utilizing crime savors of civilization.) Murder is
punished with death. A short time ago three murderers were taken beyond the
city walls and shot. Moorish guns are not good, and neither are Moorish
marksmen. In this instance they set up the poor criminals at long range, like
so many targets, and practiced on them--kept them hopping about and dodging
bullets for half an hour before they managed to drive the center.
When a man steals cattle, they cut off his right hand and left leg and nail
them up in the marketplace as a warning to everybody. Their surgery is not
artistic. They slice around the bone a little, then break off the limb.
Sometimes the patient gets well; but, as a general thing, he don't. However,
the Moorish heart is stout. The Moors were always brave. These criminals
undergo the fearful operation without a wince, without a tremor of any kind,
without a groan! No amount of suffering can bring down the pride of a Moor or
make him shame his dignity with a cry.
Here, marriage is contracted by the parents of the parties to it. There are no
valentines, no stolen interviews, no riding out, no courting in dim parlors, no
lovers' quarrels and reconciliations--no nothing that is proper to approaching
matrimony. The young man takes the girl his father selects for him, marries
her, and after that she is unveiled, and he sees her for the first time. If
after due acquaintance she suits him, he retains her; but if he suspects her
purity, he bundles her back to her father; if he finds her diseased, the same;
or if, after just and reasonable time is allowed her, she neglects to bear
children, back she goes to the home of her childhood.
Muhammadans here who can afford it keep a good many wives on hand. They are
called wives, though I believe the Koran only allows four genuine wives--the
rest are concubines. The Emperor of Morocco don't know how many wives he has,
but thinks he has five hundred. However, that is near enough--a dozen or so,
one way or the other, don't matter.
Even the Jews in the interior have a plurality of wives.
I have caught a glimpse of the faces of several Moorish women (for they are
only human, and will expose their faces for the admiration of a Christian dog
when no male Moor is by), and I am full of veneration for the wisdom that leads
them to cover up such atrocious ugliness.
They carry their children at their backs, in a sack, like other savages the
world over.
Many of the Negroes are held in slavery by the Moors. But the moment a female
slave becomes her master's concubine her bonds are broken, and as soon as a
male slave can read the first chapter of the Koran (which contains the creed)
he can no longer be held in bondage.
They have three Sundays a week in Tangier. The Muhammadans' comes on Friday,
the Jews' on Saturday, and that of the Christian Consuls on Sunday. The Jews
are the most radical. The Moor goes to his mosque about noon on his Sabbath,
as on any other day, removes his shoes at the door, performs his ablutions,
makes his salaams, pressing his forehead to the pavement time and again, says
his prayers, and goes back to his work.
But the Jew shuts up shop; will not touch copper or bronze money at all; soils
his fingers with nothing meaner than silver and gold; attends the synagogue
devoutly; will not cook or have anything to do with fire; and religiously
refrains from embarking in any enterprise.
The Moor who has made a pilgrimage to Mecca is entitled to high distinction.
Men call him Hadji, and he is thenceforward a great personage. Hundreds of
Moors come to Tangier every year and embark for Mecca. They go part of the way
in English steamers, and the ten or twelve dollars they pay for passage is
about all the trip costs. They take with them a quantity of food, and when the
commissary department fails they "skirmish," as Jack terms it in his sinful,
slangy way. From the time they leave till they get home again., they never
wash, either on land or sea. They are usually gone from five to seven months,
and as they do not change their clothes during all that time, they are totally
unfit for the drawing room when they get back.
Many of them have to rake and scrape a long time to gather together the ten
dollars their steamer passage costs, and when one of them gets back be is a
bankrupt forever after. Few Moors can ever build up their fortunes again in
one short lifetime after so reckless an outlay. In order to confine the
dignity of Hadji to gentlemen of patrician blood and possessions, the Emperor
decreed that no man should make the pilgrimage save bloated aristocrats who
were worth a hundred dollars in specie. But behold how iniquity can circumvent
the law! For a consideration, the Jewish moneychanger lends the pilgrim one
hundred dollars long enough for him to swear himself through, and then receives
it back before the ship sails out of the harbor!
Spain is the only nation the Moors fear. The reason is that Spain sends her
heaviest ships of war and her loudest guns to astonish these Muslims, while
America and other nations send only a little contemptible tub of a gunboat
occasionally. The Moors, like other savages, learn by what they see, not what
they hear or read. We have great fleets in the Mediterranean, but they seldom
touch at African ports. The Moors have a small opinion of England, France, and
America, and put their representatives to a deal of red-tape circumlocution
before they grant them their common rights, let alone a favor. But the moment
the Spanish minister makes a demand, it is acceded to at once, whether it be
just or not.
Spain chastised the Moors five or six years ago, about a disputed piece of
property opposite Gibraltar, and captured the city of Tetuán. She
compromised on an augmentation of her territory, twenty million dollars'
indemnity in money, and peace. And then she gave up the city. But she never
gave it up until the Spanish soldiers had eaten up all the cats. They would
not compromise as long as the cats held out. Spaniards are very fond of cats.
On the contrary, the Moors reverence cats as something sacred. So the
Spaniards touched them on a tender point that time. Their unfeline conduct in
eating up all the Tetuán cats aroused a hatred toward them in the
breasts of the Moors, to which even the driving them out of Spain was tame and
passionless. Moors and Spaniards are foes forever now. France had a minister
here once who embittered the nation against him in the most innocent way. He
killed a couple of battalions of cats (Tangier is full of them) and made a
parlor carpet out of their hides. He made his carpet in circles--first a
circle of old gray tomcats, with their tails all pointing toward the center;
then a circle of yellow cats; next a circle of black cats and a circle of white
ones; then a circle of all sorts of cats; and, finally, a centerpiece of
assorted kittens. It was very beautiful, but the Moors curse his memory to
this day.
When we went to call on our American Consul General today I noticed that all
possible games for parlor amusement seemed to be represented on his center
tables. I thought that hinted at lonesomeness. The idea was correct. His is
the only American family in Tangier. There are many foreign consuls in this
place, but much visiting is not indulged in. Tangier is clear out of the
world, and what is the use of visiting when people have nothing on earth to
talk about? There is none. So each consul's family stays at home chiefly and
amuses itself as best it can. Tangier is full of interest for one day, but
after that it is a weary prison. The Consul General has been here five years,
and has got enough of it to do him for a century, and is going home shortly.
His family seize upon their letters and papers when the mail arrives, read them
over and over again for two days or three, talk them over and over again for
two or three more till they wear them out, and after that for days together
they eat and drink and sleep, and ride out over the same old road, and see the
same old tiresome things that even decades of centuries have scarcely changed,
and say never a single word! They have literally nothing whatever to talk
about. The arrival of an American man-of-war is a godsend to them. "O
Solitude, where are the charms which sages have seen in thy face?" It is the
completest exile that I can conceive of. I would seriously recommend to the
government of the United States that when a man commits a crime so heinous that
the law provides no adequate punishment for it, they make him Consul General to
Tangier.
I am glad to have seen Tangier--the second-oldest town in the world. But I am
ready to bid it good-bye, I believe.
We shall go hence to Gibraltar this evening or in the morning, and doubtless
the Quaker City will sail from that port within the next forty-eight
hours.
They even have fine sunsets on the Mediterranean--a thing that is certainly
rare in most quarters of the globe. The evening we sailed away from Gibraltar,
that hard-featured rock was swimming in a creamy mist so rich, so soft, so
enchantingly vague and dreamy, that even the Oracle, that serene, that
inspired, that overpowering humbug, scorned the dinner gong and tarried to
worship!
He said: "Well, that's gorgis, ain't it! They don't have none of them things
in our parts, do they? I consider that them effects is on account of
the superior refragability, as you may say, of the sun's diramic combination
with the lymphatic forces of the perihelion of Jubiter. What should you
think?"
"Oh, go to bed!" Dan said that and went away.
"Oh, yes, it's all very well to say go to bed when a man makes an argument
which another man can't answer. Dan don't never stand any chance in an
argument with me. And he knows it, too. What should you say, Jack?"
"Now, Doctor, don't you come bothering around me with that dictionary bosh. I
don't do you any harm, do I? Then you let me alone."
"He's gone, too. Well, them fellows have all tackled the old Oracle, as they
say, but the old man's most too many for 'em. Maybe the Poet Lariat ain't
satisfied with them deductions?"
The poet replied with a barbarous rhyme and went below.
"'Pears that he can't qualify, neither. Well, I didn't expect nothing
out of him. I never see one of them poets yet that knowed anything.
He'll go down now and grind out about four reams of the awfullest slush about
that old rock and give it to a consul, or a pilot, or a nigger, or anybody he
comes across first which he can impose on. Pity but somebody'd take that poor
old lunatic and dig all that poetry rubbage out of him. Why can't a man put
his intellect onto things that's some value? Gibbons, and Hippocratus, and
Sarcophagus, and all them old ancient philosophers was down on poets--"
"Doctor," I said, "you are going to invent authorities now and I'll leave you,
too. I always enjoy your conversation, notwithstanding the luxuriance of your
syllables, when the philosophy you offer rests on your own responsibility; but
when you begin to soar--when you begin to support it with the evidence of
authorities who are the creations of your own fancy--I lose confidence."
That was the way to flatter the doctor. He considered it a sort of
acknowledgment on my part of a fear to argue with him. He was always
persecuting the passengers with abstruse propositions framed in language that
no man could understand, and they endured the exquisite torture a minute or two
and then abandoned the field. A triumph like this over half a dozen
antagonists was sufficient for one day; from that time forward he would patrol
the decks beaming blandly upon all comers, and so tranquilly, blissfully
happy!
But I digress. The thunder of our two brave cannon announced the Fourth of
July, at daylight, to all who were awake. But many of us got our information
at a later hour, from the almanac. All the flags were sent aloft except half a
dozen that were needed to decorate portions of the ship below, and in a short
time the vessel assumed a holiday appearance. During the morning, meetings
were held and all manner of committees set to work on the celebration
ceremonies. in the afternoon the ship's company assembled aft, on deck, under
the awnings; the flute, the asthmatic melodeon, and the consumptive clarinet
crippled "The Star-Spangled Banner," the choir chased it to cover, and George
came in with a peculiarly lacerating screech on the final note and slaughtered
it. Nobody mourned.
We carried out the corpse on three cheers (that joke was not intentional and I
do not endorse it), and then the President, throned behind a cable locker with
a national flag spread over it, announced the "Reader," who rose up and read
that same old Declaration of Independence which we have all listened to so
often without paying any attention to what it said; and after that the
President piped the Orator of the Day to quarters and he made that same old
speech about our national greatness which we so religiously believe and so
fervently applaud. Now came the choir into court again, with the complaining
instruments, and assaulted "Hail Columbia"; and when victory hung wavering in
the scale, George returned with his dreadful wild-goose stop turned on and the
choir won, of course. A minister pronounced the benediction, and the patriotic
little gathering disbanded. The Fourth of July was safe, as far as the
Mediterranean was concerned.
At dinner in the evening, a well-written original poem was recited with spirit
by one of the ship's captains, and thirteen regular toasts were washed down
with several baskets of champagne. The speeches were bad execrable almost
without exception. In fact, without any exception but one. Captain
Duncan made a good speech; he made the only good speech of the evening. He
said:
"Ladies and gentlemen: May we all live to a green old age and be prosperous and
happy. Steward, bring up another basket of champagne."
It was regarded as a very able effort.
The festivities, so to speak, closed with another of those miraculous balls on
the promenade deck. We were not used to dancing on an even keel, though, and
it was only a questionable success. But take it all together, it was a bright,
cheerful, pleasant Fourth.
Toward nightfall the next evening, we steamed into the great artificial harbor
of this noble city of Marseilles, and saw the dying sunlight gild its
clustering spires and ramparts, and flood its leagues of environing verdure
with a mellow radiance that touched with an added charm the white villas that
flecked the landscape far and near. [Copyright secured according to law.]
There were no stages out, and we could not get on the pier from the ship. It
was annoying. We were full of enthusiasm--we wanted to see France! Just at
nightfall our party of three contracted with a waterman for the privilege of
using his boat as a bridge--its stern was at our companion ladder and its bow
touched the pier. We got in and the fellow backed out into the harbor. I told
him in French that all we wanted was to walk over his thwarts and step ashore,
and asked him what he went away out there for. He said he could not understand
me. I repeated. Still he could not understand. He appeared to be very
ignorant of French. The doctor tried him, but he could not understand the
doctor. I asked this boatman to explain his conduct, which he did; and then I
couldn't understand him. Dan said:
"Oh, go to the pier, you old fool--that's where we want to go!"
We reasoned calmly with Dan that it was useless to speak to this foreigner in
English--that he had better let us conduct this business in the French language
and not let the stranger see how uncultivated he was.
"Well, go on, go on," he said, "don't mind me. I don't wish to interfere.
Only, if you go on telling him in your kind of French, he never will find out
where we want to go to. That is what I think about it."
We rebuked him severely for this remark and said we never knew an ignorant
person yet but was prejudiced. The Frenchman spoke again, and the doctor
said:
"There now, Dan, he says he is going to allez to the douain.
Means he is going to the hotel. Oh, certainly--we don't know the
French language."
This was a crusher, as Jack would say. It silenced further criticism from the
disaffected member. We coasted past the sharp bows of a navy of great
steamships and stopped at last at a government building on a stone pier. It
was easy to remember then that the douain was the customhouse and not
the hotel. We did not mention it, however. With winning French politeness the
officers merely opened and closed our satchels, declined to examine our
passports, and sent us on our way. We stopped at the first café we came
to and entered. An old woman seated us at a table and waited for orders. The
doctor said:
"Avez-vous du vin?"
The dame looked perplexed. The doctor said again, with elaborate distinctness
of articulation:
"Avez-vous du--vin!"
The dame looked more perplexed than before. I said:
"Doctor, there is a flaw in your pronunciation somewhere. Let me try her.
Madame, avez-vous du vin? It isn't any use, Doctor--take the
witness."
"Madame, avez-vous du vin--du fromage--pain--pickled pigs'
feet--beurre--des oeufs--du boeuf--horseradish, sauerkraut, hog
and hominy--anything, anything in the world that can stay a Christian
stomach!"
She said:
"Bless you, why didn't you speak English before? I don't know anything about
your plagued French!"
The humiliating taunts of the disaffected member spoiled the supper, and we
dispatched it in angry silence and got away as soon as we could. Here we were
in beautiful France--in a vast stone house of quaint architecture--surrounded
by all manner of curiously worded French signs--stared at by strangely habited,
bearded French people--everything gradually and surely forcing upon us the
coveted consciousness that at last, and beyond all question, we were in
beautiful France and absorbing its nature to the forgetfulness of everything
else, and coming to feel the happy romance of the thing in all its enchanting
delightfulness--and to think of this skinny veteran intruding with her vile
English, at such a moment, to blow the fair vision to the winds! It was
exasperating.
We set out to find the center of the city, inquiring the direction every now.
and then. We never did succeed in making anybody understand just exactly what
we wanted, and neither did we ever succeed in comprehending just exactly what
they said in reply, but then they always pointed--they always did that--and we
bowed politely and said, "Merci, monsieur," and so it was a blighting
triumph over the disaffected member anyway. He was restive under these
victories and often asked:
"What did that pirate say?"
"Why, he told us which way to go to find the Grand Casino."
"Yes, but what did he say?"
"Oh, it don't matter what he said--we understood him. These are educated
people not like that absurd boatman."
"Well, I wish they were educated enough to tell a man a direction that goes
somewhere--for we've been going around in a circle for an hour. I've
passed this same old drugstore seven times."
We said it was a low, disreputable falsehood (but we knew it was not). It was
plain that it would not do to pass that drugstore again, though--we might go on
asking directions, but we must cease from following finger-pointings if we
hoped to check the suspicions of the disaffected member.
A long walk through smooth, asphaltum-paved streets bordered by blocks of vast
new mercantile houses of cream-colored stone every house and every block
precisely like all the other houses and all the other blocks for a mile, and
all brilliantly lighted--brought us at last to the principal thoroughfare. On
every hand were bright colors, flashing constellations of gas burners, gaily
dressed men and women thronging the sidewalks--hurry, life, activity,
cheerfulness, conversation, and laughter everywhere! We found the Grand Hotel
du Louvre et de la Paix, and wrote down who we were, where we were born, what
our occupations were, the place we came from last, whether we were married or
single, how we liked it, how old we were, where we were bound for and when we
expected to get there, and a great deal of information of similar
importance--all for the benefit of the landlord and the secret police. We
hired a guide and began the business of sightseeing immediately. That first
night on French soil was a stirring one. I cannot think of half the places we
went to or what we particularly saw; we had no disposition to examine carefully
into anything at all--we only wanted to glance and go--to move, keep moving!
The spirit of the country was upon us. We sat down, finally, at a late hour,
in the great Casino, and called for unstinted champagne. It is so easy to be
bloated aristocrats where it costs nothing of consequence! There were about
five hundred people in that dazzling place, I suppose, though the walls being
papered entirely with mirrors, so to speak, one could not really tell but that
there were a hundred thousand. Young, daintily dressed exquisites and young,
stylishly dressed women, and also old gentlemen and old ladies, sat in couples
and groups about innumerable marble-topped tables and ate fancy suppers, drank
wine, and kept up a chattering din of conversation that was dazing to the
senses. There was a stage at the far end and a large orchestra; and every now
and then actors and actresses in preposterous comic dresses came out and sang
the most extravagantly funny songs, to judge by their absurd actions; but that
audience merely suspended its chatter, stared cynically, and never once smiled,
never once applauded! I had always thought that Frenchmen were ready to laugh
at anything.
We have learned to go through the lingering routine of the table d'hôte
with patience, with serenity, with satisfaction. We take soup, then wait a few
minutes for the fish; a few minutes more and the plates are changed, and the
roast beef comes; another change and we take peas; change again and take
lentils; change and take snail patties (I prefer grasshoppers); change and take
roast chicken and salad; then strawberry pie and ice cream; then green figs,
pears, oranges, green almonds, etc.; finally coffee. Wine with every course,
of course, being in France. With such a cargo on board, digestion is a slow
process, and we must sit long in the cool chambers and smoke--and read French
newspapers, which have a strange fashion of telling a perfectly straight story
till you get to the "nub" of it, and then a word drops in that no man can
translate, and that story is ruined. An embankment fell on some Frenchmen
yesterday, and the papers are full of it today--but whether those sufferers
were killed, or crippled, or bruised, or only scared is more than I can
possibly make out, and yet I would just give anything to know.
We were troubled a little at dinner today by the conduct of an American, who
talked very loudly and coarsely and laughed boisterously where all others were
so quiet and well behaved. He ordered wine with a royal flourish and said: "I
never dine without wine, sir" (which was a pitiful falsehood), and looked
around upon the company to bask in the admiration he expected to find in their
faces. All these airs in a land where they would as soon expect to leave the
soup out of the bill of fare as the wine!--in a land where wine is nearly as
common among all ranks as water! This fellow said: "I am a freeborn sovereign,
sir, an American, sir, and I want everybody to know it!" He did not mention
that he was a lineal descendant of Balaam's ass, but everybody knew that
without his telling it.
We have driven in the Prado--that superb avenue bordered with patrician
mansions and noble shade trees--and have visited the château Boarely and
its curious museum. They showed us a miniature cemetery there--a copy of the
first graveyard that was ever in Marseilles, no doubt. The delicate little
skeletons were lying in broken vaults and had their household gods and kitchen
utensils with them. The original of this cemetery was dug up in the principal
street of the city a few years ago. It had remained there, only twelve feet
underground, for a matter of twenty-five hundred years or thereabouts. Romulus
was here before he built Rome, and thought something of founding a city on this
spot, but gave up the idea. He may have been personally acquainted with some
of these Phoenicians whose skeletons we have been examining.
In the great Zoological Gardens we found specimens of all the animals the world
produces, I think, including a dromedary, a monkey ornamented with tufts of
brilliant blue and carmine hair--a very gorgeous monkey he was--a hippopotamus
from the Nile, and a sort of tall, long-legged bird with a beak like a powder
horn and close-fitting wings like the tails of a dress coat. This fellow stood
up with his eyes shut and his shoulders stooped forward a little, and looked as
if he had his hands under his coattails. Such tranquil stupidity, such
supernatural gravity, such self-righteousness, and such ineffable
self-complacency as were in the countenance and attitude of that gray-bodied,
dark-winged, bald-headed, and preposterously uncomely bird! He was so
ungainly, so pimply about the head, so scaly about the legs, yet so serene, so
unspeakably satisfied! He was the most comical-looking creature that can be
imagined. It was good to hear Dan and the doctor laugh--such natural and such
enjoyable laughter had not been heard among our excursionists since our ship
sailed away from America. This bird was a godsend to us, and I should be an
ingrate if I forgot to make honorable mention of him in these pages. Ours was
a pleasure excursion; therefore we stayed with that bird an hour and made the
most of him. We stirred him up occasionally, but he only unclosed an eye and
slowly closed it again, abating no jot of his stately piety of demeanor or his
tremendous seriousness. He only seemed to say, "Defile not Heaven's anointed
with unsanctified hands." We did not know his name, and so we called him "The
Pilgrim." Dan said:
"All he wants now is a Plymouth Collection."
The boon companion of the colossal elephant was a common cat! This cat had a
fashion of climbing up the elephant's hind legs and roosting on his back. She
would sit up there, with her paws curved under her breast, and sleep in the sun
half the afternoon. It used to annoy the elephant at first, and he would reach
up and take her down, but she would go aft and climb up again. She persisted
until she finally conquered the elephant's prejudices, and now they are
inseparable friends. The cat plays about her comrade's forefeet or his trunk
often, until dogs approach, and then she goes aloft out of danger. The
elephant has annihilated several dogs lately that pressed his companion too
closely.
We hired a sailboat and a guide and made an excursion to one of the small
islands in the harbor to visit the Castle d'If. This ancient fortress has a
melancholy history. It has been used as a prison for political offenders for
two or three hundred years, and its dungeon walls are scarred with the rudely
carved names of many and many a captive who fretted his life away here and left
no record of himself but these sad epitaphs wrought with his own hands. How
thick the names were! And their long-departed owners seemed to throng the
gloomy cells and corridors with their phantom shapes. We loitered through
dungeon after dungeon, away down into the living rock below the level of the
sea, it seemed. Names everywhere!--some plebeian, some noble, some even
princely. Plebeian, prince, and noble had one solicitude in common--they would
not be forgotten! They could suffer solitude, inactivity, and the horrors of a
silence that no sound ever disturbed, but they could not bear the thought of
being utterly forgotten by the world. Hence the carved names. In one cell,
where a little light penetrated, a man had lived twenty-seven years without
seeing the face of a human being--lived in filth and wretchedness, with no
companionship but his own thoughts, and they were sorrowful enough and hopeless
enough, no doubt. Whatever his jailers considered that he needed was conveyed
to his cell by night through a wicket. This man carved the walls of his prison
house from floor to roof with all manner of figures of men and animals grouped
in intricate designs. He had toiled there year after year, at his
self-appointed task, while infants grew to boyhood--to vigorous youth--idled
through school and college--acquired a profession--claimed man's mature
estate--married and looked back to infancy as to a thing of some vague, ancient
time almost. But who shall tell how many ages it seemed to this prisoner?
With the one, time flew sometimes; with the other, never--it crawled always.
To the one, nights spent in dancing had seemed made of minutes instead of
hours; to the other, those selfsame nights had been like all other nights of
dungeon life and seemed made of slow, dragging weeks instead of hours and
minutes.
One prisoner of fifteen years had scratched verses upon his walls, and brief
prose sentences--brief, but full of pathos. These spoke not of himself and his
hard estate, but only of the shrine where his spirit fled the prison to
worship--of home and the idols that were templed there. He never lived to see
them.
The walls of these dungeons are as thick as some bedchambers at home are
wide--fifteen feet. We saw the damp, dismal cells in which two of Dumas'
heroes passed their confinement--heroes of Monte Cristo. It was here
that the brave Abbé wrote a book with his own blood, with a pen made of
a piece of iron hoop, and by the light of a lamp made out of shreds of cloth
soaked in grease obtained from his food; and then dug through the thick wall
with some trifling instrument which he wrought himself out of a stray piece of
iron or table cutlery and freed Dantés from his chains. It was a pity
that so many weeks of dreary labor should have come to naught at last.
They showed us the noisome cell where the celebrated "Iron Mask"--that
ill-starred brother of a hardhearted king of France--was confined for a season
before he was sent to hide the strange mystery of his life from the curious in
the dungeons of Ste. Marguerite. The place had a far greater interest for us
than it could have had if we had known beyond all question who the Iron Mask
was, and what his history had been, and why this most unusual punishment had
been meted out to him. Mystery! That was the charm. That speechless tongue,
those prisoned features, that heart so freighted with unspoken troubles, and
that breast so oppressed with its piteous secret had been here. These dank
walls had known the man whose dolorous story is a sealed book forever! There
was fascination in the spot.
We had such glimpses of the Rhone gliding along between its grassy banks; of
cosy cottages buried in flowers and shrubbery; of quaint old red-tiled villages
with mossy medieval cathedrals looming out of their midst; of wooded hills with
ivy-grown towers and turrets of feudal castles projecting above the foliage;
such glimpses of Paradise, it seemed to us, such visions of fabled fairyland!
We knew then what the poet meant when he sang of:
--thy cornfields green, and sunny vines,
And it is a pleasant land. No word describes it so felicitously as that
one. They say there is no word for "home" in the French language. Well,
considering that they have the article itself in such an attractive aspect,
they ought to manage to get along without the word. Let us not waste too much
pity on "homeless" France. I have observed that Frenchmen abroad seldom wholly
give up the idea of going back to France some time or other. I am not
surprised at it now.
We are not infatuated with these French railway cars, though. We took
first-class passage, not because we wished to attract attention by doing a
thing which is uncommon in Europe but because we could make our journey quicker
by so doing. It is hard to make railroading pleasant in any country. It is
too tedious. Stagecoaching is infinitely more delightful. Once I crossed the
plains and deserts and mountains of the West in a stagecoach, from the Missouri
line to California, and since then all my pleasure trips must be measured to
that rare holiday frolic. Two thousand miles of ceaseless rush and rattle and
clatter, by night and by day, and never a weary moment, never a lapse of
interest! The first seven hundred miles a level continent, its grassy carpet
greener and softer and smoother than any sea and figured with designs fitted to
its magnitude--the shadows of the clouds. Here were no scenes but summer
scenes, and no disposition inspired by them but to lie at full length on the
mail sacks in the grateful breeze and dreamily smoke the pipe of peace--what
other, where all was repose and contentment? In cool mornings, before the sun
was fairly up, it was worth a lifetime of city toiling and moiling to perch in
the foretop with the driver and see the six mustangs scamper under the sharp
snapping of the whip that never touched them; to scan the blue distances of a
world that knew no lords but us; to cleave the wind with uncovered head and
feel the sluggish pulses rousing to the spirit of a speed that pretended to the
resistless rush of a typhoon! Then thirteen hundred miles of desert solitudes;
of limitless panoramas of bewildering perspective; of mimic cities, of
pinnacled cathedrals, of massive fortresses, counterfeited in the eternal rocks
and splendid with the crimson and gold of the setting sun; of dizzy altitudes
among fog-wreathed peaks and never-melting snows, where thunders and lightnings
and tempests warred magnificently at our feet and the storm clouds above swung
their shredded banners in our very faces! But I forgot. I am in elegant France
now, and not scurrying through the great South Pass and the Wind River
Mountains, among antelopes and buffaloes and painted Indians on the warpath.
It is not meet that I should make too disparaging comparisons between humdrum
travel on a railway and that royal summer flight across a continent in a
stagecoach. I meant in the beginning to say that railway journeying is tedious
and tiresome, and so it is--though at the time I was thinking particularly of a
dismal fifty-hour pilgrimage between New York and St. Louis. Of course our
trip through France was not really tedious because all its scenes and
experiences were new and strange; but as Dan says, it had its
"discrepancies."
The cars are built in compartments that hold eight persons each. Each
compartment is partially subdivided, and so there are two tolerably distinct
parties of four in it. Four face the other four. The seats and backs are
thickly padded and cushioned and are very comfortable; you can smoke if you
wish; there are no bothersome peddlers; you are saved the infliction of a
multitude of disagreeable fellow passengers. So far, so well. But then the
conductor locks you in when the train starts; there is no water to drink in the
car; there is no heating apparatus for night travel; if a drunken rowdy should
get in, you could not remove a matter of twenty seats from him or enter another
car; but above all, if you are worn out and must sleep, you must sit up and do
it in naps, with cramped legs and in a torturing misery that leaves you
withered and lifeless the next day--for behold they have not that culmination
of all charity and human kindness, a sleeping car, in all France. I prefer the
American system. It has not so many grievous "discrepancies."
In France, all is clockwork, all is order. They make no mistakes. Every third
man wears a uniform, and whether he be a marshal of the empire or a brakeman,
he is ready and perfectly willing to answer all your questions with tireless
politeness, ready to tell you which car to take, yea, and ready to go and put
you into it to make sure that you shall not go astray. You cannot pass into
the waiting room of the depot till you have secured your ticket, and you cannot
pass from its only exit till the train is at its threshold to receive you.
Once on board, the train will not start till your ticket has been
examined--till every passenger's ticket has been inspected. This is chiefly
for your own good. If by any possibility you have managed to take the wrong
train, you will be handed over to a polite official who will take you whither
you belong and bestow you with many an affable bow. Your ticket will be
inspected every now and then along the route, and when it is time to change
cars you will know it. You are in the hands of officials who zealously study
your welfare and your interest, instead of turning their talents to the
invention of new methods of discommoding and snubbing you, as is very often the
main employment of that exceedingly self-satisfied monarch, the railroad
conductor of America.
But the happiest regulation in French railway government is--thirty minutes to
dinner! No five-minute boltings of flabby rolls, muddy coffee, questionable
eggs, gutta-percha beef, and pies whose conception and execution are a dark and
bloody mystery to all save the cook that created them! No, we sat calmly
down--it was in old Dijon, which is so easy to spell and so impossible to
pronounce except when you civilize it and call it Demijohn--and poured out rich
Burgundian wines and munched calmly through a long table d'hôte bill of
fare, snail patties, delicious fruits and all, then paid the trifle it cost and
stepped happily aboard the train again, without once cursing the railroad
company. A rare experience and one to be treasured forever.
They say they do not have accidents on these French roads, and I think it must
be true. If I remember rightly, we passed high above wagon roads or through
tunnels under them, but never crossed them on their own level. About every
quarter of a mile, it seemed to me, a man came out and held up a club till the
train went by, to signify that everything was safe ahead. Switches were
changed a mile in advance by pulling a wire rope that passed along the ground
by the rail from station to station. Signals for the day and signals for the
night gave constant and timely notice of the position of switches.
No, they have no railroad accidents to speak of in France. But why? Because
when one occurs, somebody has to hang for it! Not hang, maybe, but be
punished at least with such vigor of emphasis as to make negligence a thing to
be shuddered at by railroad officials for many a day thereafter. "No blame
attached to the officers"--that lying and disaster-breeding verdict so common
to our softhearted juries is seldom rendered in France. If the trouble
occurred in the conductor's department, that officer must suffer if his
subordinate cannot be proven guilty; if in the engineer's department and the
case be similar, the engineer must answer.
Footnote 1
The Old Travelers--those delightful parrots who have "been here before" and
know more about the country than Louis Napoleon knows now or ever will
know--tell us these things, and we believe them because they are pleasant
things to believe and because they are plausible and savor of the rigid
subjection to law and order which we behold about us everywhere.
But we love the Old Travelers. We love to hear them prate and drivel and lie.
We can tell them the moment we see them. They always throw out a few feelers;
they never cast themselves adrift till they have sounded every individual and
know that he has not traveled. Then they open their throttle valves, and how
they do brag, and sneer, and swell, and soar, and blaspheme the sacred name of
Truth! Their central idea, their grand aim, is to subjugate you, keep you down,
make you feel insignificant and humble in the blaze of their cosmopolitan
glory! They will not let you know anything. They sneer at your most
inoffensive suggestions; they laugh unfeelingly at your treasured dreams of
foreign lands; they brand the statements of your traveled aunts and uncles as
the stupidest absurdities; they deride your most trusted authors and demolish
the fair images they have set up for your willing worship with the pitiless
ferocity of the fanatic iconoclast! But still I love the Old Travelers. I love
them for their witless platitudes, for their supernatural ability to bore, for
their delightful asinine vanity, for their luxuriant fertility of imagination,
for their startling, their brilliant, their overwhelming mendacity!
By Lyons and the Saône (where we saw the lady of Lyons and thought little
of her comeliness), by Villa Franca, Tonnere, venerable Sens, Melun,
Fontainebleau, and scores of other beautiful cities, we swept, always noting
the absence of hog wallows, broken fences, cow lots, unpainted houses, and mud,
and always noting, as well, the presence of cleanliness, grace, taste in
adorning and beautifying, even to the disposition of a tree or the turning of a
hedge, the marvel of roads in perfect repair, void of ruts and guiltless of
even an inequality of surface--we bowled along, hour after hour, that brilliant
summer day, and as nightfall approached we entered a wilderness of odorous
flowers and shrubbery, sped through it, and then, excited, delighted, and half
persuaded that we were only the sport of a beautiful dream, lo, we stood in
magnificent Paris!
What excellent order they kept about that vast depot! There was no frantic
crowding and jostling, no shouting and swearing, and no swaggering intrusion of
services by rowdy hackmen. These latter gentry stood outside--stood quietly by
their long line of vehicles and said never a word. A kind of hackman general
seemed to have the whole matter of transportation in his hands. He politely
received the passengers and ushered them to the kind of conveyance they wanted,
and told the driver where to deliver them. There was no "talking back," no
dissatisfaction about overcharging, no grumbling about anything. In a little
while we were speeding through the streets of Paris and delightfully
recognizing certain names and places with which books had long ago made us
familiar. It was like meeting an old friend when we read "Rue de Rivoli" on
the street corner; we knew the genuine vast palace of the Louvre as well as we
knew its picture; when we passed by the Column of July we needed no one to tell
us what it was or to remind us that on its site once stood the grim Bastille,
that grave of human hopes and happiness, that dismal prison house within whose
dungeons so many young faces put on the wrinkles of age, so many proud spirits
grew humble, so many brave hearts broke.
We secured rooms at the hotel, or rather, we had three beds put into one room,
so that we might be together, and then we went out to a restaurant, just after
lamplighting, and ate a comfortable, satisfactory, lingering dinner. It was a
pleasure to eat where everything was so tidy, the food so well cooked, the
waiters so polite, and the coming and departing company so moustached, so
frisky, so affable, so fearfully and wonderfully Frenchy! All the surroundings
were gay and enlivening. Two hundred people sat at little tables on the
sidewalk, sipping wine and coffee; the streets were thronged with light
vehicles and with joyous pleasure-seekers; there was music in the air, life and
action all about us, and a conflagration of gaslight everywhere!
After dinner we felt like seeing such Parisian specialties as we might see
without distressing exertion, and so we sauntered through the brilliant streets
and looked at the dainty trifles in variety stores and jewelry shops.
Occasionally, merely for the pleasure of being cruel, we put unoffending
Frenchmen on the rack with questions framed in the incomprehensible jargon of
their native language, and while they writhed we impaled them, we peppered
them, we scarified them, with their own vile verbs and participles.
We noticed that in the jewelry stores they had some of the articles marked
"gold" and some labeled "imitation." We wondered at this extravagance of
honesty and inquired into the matter. We were informed that inasmuch as most
people are not able to tell false gold from the genuine article, the government
compels jewelers to have their gold work assayed and stamped officially
according to its fineness and their imitation work duly labeled with the sign
of its falsity. They told us the jewelers would not dare to violate this law,
and that whatever a stranger bought in one of their stores might be depended
upon as being strictly what it was represented to be. Verily, a wonderful land
is France!
Then we hunted for a barbershop. From earliest infancy it had been a cherished
ambition of mine to be shaved some day in a palatial barbershop in Paris. I
wished to recline at full length in a cushioned invalid chair, with pictures
about me and sumptuous furniture; with frescoed walls and gilded arches above
me and vistas of Corinthian columns stretching far before me; with perfumes of
Araby to intoxicate my senses and the slumbrous drone of distant noises to
soothe me to sleep. At the end of an hour I would wake up regretfully and find
my face as smooth and as soft as an infant's. Departing, I would lift my hands
above that barber's head and say, "Heaven bless you, my son!"
So we searched high and low, for a matter of two hours, but never a barbershop
could we see. We saw only wigmaking establishments, with shocks of dead and
repulsive hair bound upon the heads of painted waxen brigands who stared out
from glass boxes upon the passerby with their stony eyes and scared him with
the ghostly white of their countenances. We shunned these signs for a time,
but finally we concluded that the wigmakers must of necessity be the barbers as
well, since we could find no single legitimate representative of the
fraternity. We entered and asked, and found that it was even so.
I said I wanted to be shaved. The barber inquired where my room was. I said
never mind where my room was, I wanted to be shaved--there, on the spot. The
doctor said he would be shaved also. Then there was an excitement among those
two barbers! There was a wild consultation, and afterwards a hurrying to and
fro and a feverish gathering up of razors from obscure places and a ransacking
for soap. Next they took us into a little mean, shabby back room; they got two
ordinary sitting-room chairs and placed us in them with our coats on. My old,
old dream of bliss vanished into thin air!
I sat bolt upright, silent, sad, and solemn. One of the wigmaking villains
lathered my face for ten terrible minutes and finished by plastering a mass of
suds into my mouth. I expelled the nasty stuff with a strong English expletive
and said, "Foreigner, beware!" Then this outlaw strapped his razor on his boot,
hovered over me ominously for six fearful seconds, and then swooped down upon
me like the genius of destruction. The first rake of his razor loosened the
very hide from my face and lifted me out of the chair. I stormed and raved,
and the other boys enjoyed it. Their beards are not strong and thick. Let us
draw the curtain over this harrowing scene. Suffice it that I submitted and
went through with the cruel infliction of a shave by a French barber; tears of
exquisite agony coursed down my cheeks now and then, but I survived. Then the
incipient assassin held a basin of water under my chin and slopped its contents
over my face, and into my bosom, and down the back of my neck, with a mean
pretense of washing away the soap and blood. He dried my features with a towel
and was going to comb my hair, but I asked to be excused. I said, with
withering irony, that it was sufficient to be skinned--I declined to be
scalped.
I went away from there with my handkerchief about my face, and never, never,
never desired to dream of palatial Parisian barbershops anymore. The truth is,
as I believe I have since found out, that they have no barbershops worthy of
the name in Paris--and no barbers, either, for that matter. The impostor who
does duty as a barber brings his pans and napkins and implements of torture to
your residence and deliberately skins you in your private apartments. Ah, I
have suffered, suffered, suffered, here in Paris, but never mind--the time is
coming when I shall have a dark and bloody revenge. Someday a Parisian barber
will come to my room to skin me, and from that day forth that barber will never
be heard of more.
At eleven o'clock we alighted upon a sign which manifestly referred to
billiards. Joy! We had played billiards in the Azores with balls that were
not round and on an ancient table that was very little smoother than a brick
pavement--one of those wretched old things with dead cushions, and with patches
in the faded cloth and invisible obstructions that made the balls describe the
most astonishing and unsuspected angles and perform feats in the way of
unlooked-for and almost impossible "scratches" that were perfectly bewildering.
We had played at Gibraltar with balls the size of a walnut on a table like a
public square and in both instances we achieved far more aggravation than
amusement. We expected to fare better here, but we were mistaken. The
cushions were a good deal higher than the balls, and as the balls had a fashion
of always stopping under the cushions, we accomplished very little in the way
of caroms. The cushions were hard and unelastic, and the cues were so crooked
that in making a shot you had to allow for the curve or you would infallibly
put the "English" on the wrong side of the hall. Dan was to mark while the
doctor and I played. At the end of an hour neither of us had made a count, and
so Dan was tired of keeping tally with nothing to tally, and we were heated and
angry and disgusted. We paid the heavy bill--about six cents--and said we
would call around sometime when we had a week to spend, and finish the game.
We adjourned to one of those pretty cafés and took supper and tested the
wines of the country, as we had been instructed to do, and found them harmless
and unexciting. They might have been exciting, however, if we had chosen to
drink a sufficiency of them.
To close our first day in Paris cheerfully and pleasantly, we now sought our
grand room in the Grand Hotel du Louvre and climbed into our sumptuous bed to
read and smoke--but alas!
"If ze zhentlemans will to me make ze grande honneur to me rattain in hees
serveece, I shall show to him everysing zat is magnifique to look upon in ze
beautiful Parree. I speaky ze Angleesh pairfaitemaw."
He would have done well to have stopped there, because he had that much by
heart and said it right off without making a mistake. But his self-complacency
seduced him into attempting a flight into regions of unexplored English, and
the reckless experiment was his ruin. Within ten seconds he was so tangled up
in a maze of mutilated verbs and torn and bleeding forms of speech that no
human ingenuity could ever have gotten him out of it with credit. It was plain
enough that he could not "speaky" the English quite as "pairfaitemaw" as he had
pretended he could.
The third man captured us. He was plainly dressed, but he had a noticeable air
of neatness about him. He wore a high silk hat which was a little old, but had
been carefully brushed. He wore secondhand kid gloves, in good repair, and
carried a small rattan cane with a curved handle--a female leg--of ivory. He
stepped as gently and as daintily as a cat crossing a muddy street; and oh, he
was urbanity; he was quiet, unobtrusive self-possession; he was deference
itself! He spoke softly and guardedly; and when he was about to make a
statement on his sole responsibility or offer a suggestion, he weighed it by
drachms and scruples first, with the crook of his little stick placed
meditatively to his teeth. His opening speech was perfect. It was perfect in
construction, in phraseology, in grammar, in emphasis, in
pronunciation--everything. He spoke little and guardedly after that. We were
charmed. We were more than charmed--we were overjoyed. We hired him at once.
We never even asked him his price. This man--our lackey, our servant, our
unquestioning slave though he was--was still a gentleman--we could see
that--while of the other two one was coarse and awkward and the other was a
born pirate. We asked our man Friday's name. He drew from his pocketbook a
snowy little card and passed it to us with a profound bow:
Guide to Paris, France, Germany,
That was an "aside" from Dan. The atrocious name grated harshly on my ear,
too. The most of us can learn to forgive, and even to like, a countenance that
strikes us unpleasantly at first, but few of us, I fancy, become reconciled to
a jarring name so easily. I was almost sorry we had hired this man, his name
was so unbearable. However, no matter. We were impatient to start.
Billfinger stepped to the door to call a carriage, and then the doctor said:
"Well, the guide goes with the barbershop, with the billiard table, with the
gasless room, and maybe with many another pretty romance of Paris. I expected
to have a guide named Henri de Montmorency or Armand de la Chartreuse Or
something that would sound grand in letters to the villagers at home, but to
think of a Frenchman by the name of Billfinger! Oh! This is absurd, you know.
This will never do. We can't say Billfinger; it is nauseating. Name him over
again; what had we better call him? Alexis du Caulaincourt?"
"Alphonse Henri Gustave de Hauteville," I suggested.
"Call him Ferguson," said Dan.
That was practical, unromantic good sense. Without debate, we expunged
Billfinger as Billfinger and called him Ferguson.
The carriage--an open barouche--was ready. Ferguson mounted beside the driver,
and we whirled away to breakfast. As was proper, Mr. Ferguson stood by to
transmit our orders and answer questions. By and by, he mentioned
casually--the artful adventurer--that he would go and get his breakfast as soon
as we had finished ours. He knew we could not get along without him and that
we would not want to loiter about and wait for him. We asked him to sit down
and eat with us. He begged, with many a bow, to be excused. It was not
proper, he said; he would sit at another table. We ordered him peremptorily to
sit down with us.
Here endeth the first lesson. It was a mistake.
As long as we had that fellow after that, he was always hungry; he was always
thirsty. He came early; he stayed late; he could not pass a restaurant; he
looked with a lecherous eye upon every wineshop. Suggestions to stop, excuses
to eat and to drink, were forever on his lips. We tried all we could to fill
him so full that he would have no room to spare for a fortnight, but it was a
failure. He did not , hold enough to smother the cravings of his superhuman
appetite.
He had another "discrepancy" about him. He was always wanting us to buy
things. On the shallowest pretenses he would inveigle us into shirt stores,
boot stores, tailor shops, glove shops--anywhere under the broad sweep of the
heavens that there seemed a chance of our buying anything. Anyone could have
guessed that the shopkeepers paid him a percentage on the sales, but in our
blessed innocence we didn't until this feature of his conduct grew unbearably
prominent. One day Dan happened to mention that he thought of buying three or
four silk dress patterns for presents. Ferguson's hungry eye was upon him in
an instant. In the course of twenty minutes the carriage stopped.
"What's this?"
"Zis is ze finest silk magasin in Paris--ze most celebrate."
"What did you come here for? We told you to take us to the palace of the
Louvre."
"I suppose ze gentleman say he wish to buy some silk."
"You are not required to
'suppose' things for the party, Ferguson. We do not wish to tax your energies
too much. We will bear some of the burden and heat of the day ourselves. We
will endeavor to do such 'supposing' as is really necessary to be done. Drive
on." So spake the doctor.
Within fifteen minutes the carriage halted again, and before another silk
store. The doctor said:
"Ah, the palace of the Louvre--beautiful, beautiful edifice! Does the Emperor
Napoleon live here now, Ferguson?"
"Ah, Doctor! You do jest; zis is not ze palace; we come there directly. But
since we pass right by zis store, where is such beautiful silk--'
"Ah! I see, I see. I meant to have told you that we did not wish to purchase
any silks today, but in my absentmindedness I forgot it. I also meant to tell
you we wished to go directly to the Louvre, but I forgot that also. However,
we will go there now. Pardon my seeming carelessness, Ferguson. Drive on."
Within the half hour we stopped again--in front of another silk store. We were
angry; but the doctor was always serene, always smooth-voiced. He said:
"At last! How imposing the Louvre is, and yet how small! How exquisitely
fashioned! How charmingly situated! Venerable, venerable pile--"
"Pairdon, Doctor, zis is not ze Louvre--it is--"
"What is it?'
"I have ze idea--it come to me in a moment--zat ze silk in zis
magasin--"
"Ferguson, how heedless I am. I fully intended to tell you that we did not
wish to buy any silks today, and I also intended to tell you that we yearned to
go immediately to the palace of the Louvre, but enjoying the happiness of
seeing you devour four breakfasts this morning has so filled me with
pleasurable emotions that I neglect the commonest interests of the time.
However, we will proceed now to the Louvre, Ferguson."
"But, Doctor" (excitedly), "it will take not a minute--not but one small
minute! Ze gentleman need not to buy if he not wish to--but only look
at ze silk--look at ze beautiful fabric. [Then pleadingly.]
Sair--just only one leetle moment!"
Dan said, "Confound the idiot! I don't want to see any silks today, and I
won't look at them. Drive on."
And the doctor: "We need no silks now, Ferguson. Our hearts yearn for the
Louvre. Let us journey on--let us journey on."
"But, Doctor! It is only one moment--one leetle moment. And ze time
will be save--entirely save! Because zere is nothing to see now--it is too
late. It want ten minute to four and ze Louvre close at four--only one
leetle moment, Doctor!"
The treacherous miscreant! After four breakfasts and a gallon of champagne, to
serve us such a scurvy trick. We got no sight of the countless treasures of
art in the Louvre galleries that day, and our only poor little satisfaction was
in the reflection that Ferguson sold not a solitary silk dress pattern.
I am writing this chapter partly for the satisfaction of abusing that
accomplished knave Billfinger, and partly to show whosoever shall read this how
Americans fare at the hands of the Paris guides and what sort of people Paris
guides are. It need not be supposed that we were a stupider or an easier prey
than our countrymen generally are, for we were not. The guides deceive and
defraud every American who goes to Paris for the first time and sees its sights
alone or in company with others as little experienced as himself. I shall
visit Paris again someday, and then let the guides beware! I shall go in my war
paint--I shall carry my tomahawk along.
I think we have lost but little time in Paris. We have gone to bed every night
tired out. Of course we visited the renowned International Exposition. All
the world did that. We went there on our third day in Paris--and we stayed
there nearly two hours. That was our first and last visit. To tell the
truth, we saw at a glance that one would have to spend weeks--yea, even
months--in that monstrous establishment to get an intelligible idea of it. It
was a wonderful show, but the moving masses of people of all nations we saw
there were a still more wonderful show. I discovered that if I were to stay
there a month, I should still find myself looking at the people instead of the
inanimate objects on exhibition. I got a little interested in some curious old
tapestries of the thirteenth century, but a party of Arabs came by, and their
dusky faces and quaint costumes called my attention away at once. I watched a
silver swan, which had a living grace about his movements and a living
intelligence in his eyes--watched him swimming about as comfortably and as
unconcernedly as if he had been born in a morass instead of a jeweler's
shop--watched him seize a silver fish from under the water and hold up his head
and go through all the customary and elaborate motions of swallowing it--but
the moment it disappeared down his throat some tattooed South Sea Islanders
approached and I yielded to their attractions. Presently I found a revolving
pistol several hundred years old which looked strangely like a modern Colt, but
just then I heard that the Empress of the French was in another part of the
building, and hastened away to see what she might look like. We heard martial
music--we saw an unusual number of soldiers walking hurriedly about--there was
a general movement among the people. We inquired what it was all about and
learned that the Emperor of the French and the Sultan of Turkey were about to
review twenty-five thousand troops at the Arc de l'Etoile. We immediately
departed. I had a greater anxiety to see these men than I could have had to
see twenty expositions.
We drove away and took up a position in an open space opposite the American
minister's house. A speculator bridged a couple of barrels with a board and we
hired standing places on it. Presently there was a sound of distant music; in
another minute a pillar of dust came moving slowly toward us; a moment more and
then, with colors flying and a grand crash of military music, a gallant array
of cavalrymen emerged from the dust and came down the street on a gentle trot.
After them came a long line of artillery; then more cavalry, in splendid
uniforms; and then their imperial majesties Napoleon III and Abdul-Aziz. The
vast concourse of people swung their hats and shouted--the windows and
housetops in the wide vicinity burst into a snowstorm of waving handkerchiefs,
and the wavers of the same mingled their cheers with those of the masses below.
It was a stirring spectacle.
But the two central figures claimed all my attention. Was ever such a contrast
set up before a multitude till then? Napoleon in military uniform--a
long-bodied, short-legged man, fiercely moustached, old, wrinkled, with eyes
half closed, and such a deep, crafty, scheming expression about them!
Napoleon bowing ever so gently to the loud plaudits, and watching everything
and everybody with his cat eyes from under his depressed hat brim, as if to
discover any sign that those cheers were not heartfelt and cordial.
Abdul-Aziz, absolute lord of the Ottoman empire--clad in dark green European
clothes, almost without ornament or insignia of rank; a red Turkish fez on his
head; a short, stout, dark man, black-bearded, black-eyed, stupid,
unprepossessing--a man whose whole appearance somehow suggested that if he only
had a cleaver in his hand and a white apron on, one would not be at all
surprised to hear him say: "A mutton roast today, or will you have a nice
porterhouse steak?"
Napoleon III, the representative of the highest modem civilization, progress,
and refinement; Abdul-Aziz, the representative of a people by nature and
training filthy, brutish, ignorant, unprogressive, superstitious--and a
government whose Three Graces are Tyranny, Rapacity, Blood. Here in brilliant
Paris, under this majestic Arch of Triumph, the first century greets the
nineteenth
Napoleon III, Emperor of France! Surrounded by shouting thousands, by military
pomp, by the splendors of his capital city, and companioned by kings and
princes--this is the man who was sneered at and reviled and called Bastard--yet
who was dreaming of a crown and an empire all the while; who was driven into
exile--but carried his dreams with him; who associated with the common herd in
America and ran foot races for a wager--but still sat upon a throne in fancy;
who braved every danger to go to his dying mother--and grieved that she could
not be spared to see him cast aside his plebeian vestments for the purple of
royalty; who kept his faithful watch and walked his weary beat a common
policeman of London--but dreamed the while of a coming night when he should
tread the long-drawn corridors of the Tuileries; who made the miserable fiasco
of Strasbourg; saw his poor, shabby eagle, forgetful of its lesson, refuse to
perch upon his shoulder; delivered his carefully prepared, sententious burst of
eloquence unto unsympathetic ears; found himself a prisoner, the butt of small
wits, a mark for the pitiless ridicule of all the world--yet went on dreaming
of coronations and splendid pageants as before; who lay a forgotten captive in
the dungeons of Ham--and still schemed and planned and pondered over future
glory and future power; President of France at last! a coup d'etat, and
surrounded by applauding armies, welcomed by the thunders of cannon, he mounts
a throne and waves before an astounded world the scepter of a mighty empire!
Who talks of the marvels of fiction? Who speaks of the wonders of romance?
Who prates of the tame achievements of Aladdin and the Magii of Arabia?
Abdul-Aziz, Sultan of Turkey, Lord of the Ottoman Empire! Born to a throne;
weak, stupid, ignorant, almost, as his meanest slave; chief of a vast royalty,
yet the puppet of his premier and the obedient child of a tyrannical mother; a
man who sits upon a throne--the beck of whose finger moves navies and
armies--who holds in his hands the power of life and death over millions--yet
who sleeps, sleeps, eats, eats, idles with his eight hundred concubines, and
when he is surfeited with eating and sleeping and idling, and would rouse up
and take the reins of government and threaten to be a sultan, is charmed
from his purpose by wary Fuad Pasha with a pretty plan for a new palace or a
new ship--charmed away with a new toy, like any other restless child; a man who
sees his people robbed and oppressed by soulless tax gatherers, but speaks no
word to save them; who believes in gnomes and genii and the wild fables of
The Arabian Nights, but has small regard for the mighty magicians of
today and is nervous in the presence of their mysterious railroads and
steamboats and telegraphs; who would see undone in Egypt all that great Mehemet
Ali achieved and would prefer rather to forget than emulate him; a man who
found his great empire a blot upon the earth--a degraded, poverty-stricken,
miserable, infamous agglomeration of ignorance, crime, and brutality--and will
idle away the allotted days of his trivial life and then pass to the dust and
the worms and leave it so!
Napoleon has augmented the commercial prosperity of France in ten years to such
a degree that figures can hardly compute it. He has rebuilt Paris and has
partly rebuilt every city in the state. He condemns a whole street at a time,
assesses the damages, pays them, and rebuilds superbly. Then speculators buy
up the ground and sell, but the original owner is given the first choice by the
government at a stated price before the speculator is permitted to purchase.
But above all things, he has taken the sole control of the empire of France
into his hands and made it a tolerably free land--for people who will not
attempt to go too far in meddling with government affairs. No country offers
greater security to life and property than France, and one has all the freedom
he wants, but no license--no license to interfere with anybody or make anyone
uncomfortable.
As for the Sultan, one could set a trap anywhere and catch a dozen abler men in
a night.
The bands struck up, and the brilliant adventurer, Napoleon III, the genius of
Energy, Persistence, Enterprise, and the feeble Abdul-Aziz, the genius of
Ignorance, Bigotry, and Indolence, prepared for the Forward--March!
We saw the splendid review, we saw the white-moustached old Crimean soldier
Canrobert, marshal of France, we saw--well, we saw everything, and then we went
home satisfied.
They say that a pagan temple stood where Notre Dame now stands, in the old
Roman days, eighteen or twenty centuries ago--remains of it are still preserved
in Paris; and that a Christian church took its place about A.D. 300; another
took the place of that in A.D. 500; and that the foundations of the present
cathedral were laid about A.D. 1100. The ground ought to be measurably sacred
by this time, one would think. One portion of this noble old edifice is
suggestive of the quaint fashions of ancient times. It was built by Jean
Sans-Peur, Duke of Burgundy, to set his conscience at rest--he had assassinated
the Duke of Orleans. Alas! Those good old times are gone when a murderer
could wipe the stain from his name and soothe his troubles to sleep simply by
getting out his bricks and mortar and building an addition to a church.
The portals of the great western front are bisected by square pillars. They
took the central one away in 1852, on the occasion of thanksgivings for the
reinstitution of the presidential power--but precious soon they had occasion to
reconsider that motion and put it back again! And they did.
We loitered through the grand aisles for an hour or two, staring up at the rich
stained-glass windows embellished with blue and yellow and crimson saints and
martyrs, and trying to admire the numberless great pictures in the chapels, and
then we were admitted to the sacristy and shown the magnificent robes which the
pope wore when he crowned Napoleon I; a wagonload of solid gold and silver
utensils used in the great public processions and ceremonies of the church;
some nails of the true cross, a fragment of the cross itself, a part of the
crown of thorns. We had already seen a large piece of the true cross in a
church in the Azores, but no nails. They showed us likewise the bloody robe
which that archbishop of Paris wore who exposed his sacred person and braved
the wrath of the insurgents of 1848, to mount the barricades and hold aloft the
olive branch of peace in the hope of stopping the slaughter. His noble effort
cost him his life. He was shot dead. They showed us a cast of his face taken
after death, the bullet that killed him, and the two vertebrae in which it
lodged. These people have a somewhat singular taste in the matter of relics.
Ferguson told us that the silver cross which the good archbishop wore at his
girdle was seized and thrown into the Seine, where it lay embedded in the mud
for fifteen years, and then an angel appeared to a priest and told him where to
dive for it; he did dive for it and got it, and now it is there on
exhibition at Notre Dame, to be inspected by anybody who feels an interest in
inanimate objects of miraculous intervention.
Next we went to visit the Morgue, that horrible receptacle for the dead who die
mysteriously and leave the manner of their taking off a dismal secret. We
stood before a grating and looked through into a room which was hung all about
with the clothing of dead men; coarse blouses, water-soaked; the delicate
garments of women and children; patrician vestments, hacked and stabbed and
stained with red; a hat that was crushed and bloody. On a slanting stone lay a
drowned man, naked, swollen, purple; clasping the fragment of a broken bush
with a grip which death had so petrified that human strength could not unloose
it--mute witness of the last despairing effort to save the life that was doomed
beyond all help. A stream of water trickled ceaselessly over the hideous fare.
We knew that the body and the clothing were there for identification by
friends, but still we wondered if anybody could love that repulsive object or
grieve for its loss. We grew meditative and wondered if, some forty years ago,
when the mother of that ghastly thing was dandling it upon her knee, and
kissing it and petting it and displaying it with satisfied pride to the
passersby, a prophetic vision of this dread ending ever flitted through her
brain. I half feared that the mother or the wife or a brother of the dead man
might come while we stood there, but nothing of the kind occurred. Men and
women came, and some looked eagerly in and pressed their faces against the
bars; others glanced carelessly at the body and turned away with a disappointed
look--people, I thought, who live upon strong excitements and who attend the
exhibitions of the Morgue regularly, just as other people go to see theatrical
spectacles every night. When one of these looked in and passed on, I could not
help thinking:
"Now this don't afford you any satisfaction--a party with his head shot off is
what you need."
One night we went to the celebrated Jardin Mabille, but only stayed a little
while. We wanted to see some of this kind of Paris life, however, and
therefore the next night we went to a similar place of entertainment in a great
garden in the suburb of Asnières. We went to the railroad depot toward
evening, and Ferguson got tickets for a second-class carriage. Such a perfect
jam of people I have not often seen--but there was no noise, no disorder, no
rowdyism. Some of the women and young girls that entered the train we knew to
be of the demimonde, but others we were not at all sure about.
The girls and women in our carriage behaved themselves modestly and becomingly
all the way out, except that they smoked. When we arrived at the garden in
Asnières, we paid a franc or two admission and entered a place which had
flower beds in it, and grass plots, and long, curving rows of ornamental
shrubbery, with here and there a secluded bower convenient for eating ice cream
in. We moved along the sinuous gravel walks, with the great concourse of girls
and young men, and suddenly a domed and filigreed white temple, starred over
and over and over again with brilliant gas jets, burst upon us like a fallen
sun. Nearby was a large, handsome house with its ample front illuminated in
the same way, and above its roof floated the Star-Spangled Banner of America.
"Well!" I said. "How is this?" It nearly took my breath away.
Ferguson said an American--a New Yorker--kept the place, and was carrying on
quite a stirring opposition to the Jardin Mabille.
Crowds composed of both sexes and nearly all ages were frisking about the
garden or sitting in the open air in front of the flagstaff and the temple,
drinking wine and coffee or smoking. The dancing had not begun yet. Ferguson
said there was to be an exhibition. The famous Blondin was going to perform on
a tightrope in another part of the garden. We went thither. Here the light
was dim, and the masses of people were pretty closely packed together. And now
I made a mistake which any donkey might make, but a sensible man never. I
committed an error which I find myself repeating every day of my life.
Standing right before a young lady, I said:
"Dan, just look at this girl, how beautiful she is!"
"I thank you more for the evident sincerity of the compliment, sir, than for
the extraordinary publicity you have given to it!" This in good, pure
English.
We took a walk, but my spirits were very, very sadly dampened. I did not feel
right comfortable for some time afterward. Why will people be so stupid
as to suppose themselves the only foreigners among a crowd of ten thousand
persons?
But Blondin came out shortly. He appeared on a stretched cable, far away above
the sea of tossing hats and handkerchiefs, and in the glare of the hundreds of
rockets that whizzed heavenward by him he looked like a wee insect. He
balanced his pole and walked the length of his rope--two or three hundred feet;
he came back and got a man and carried him across; he returned to the center
and danced a jig; next he performed some gymnastic and balancing feats too
perilous to afford a pleasant spectacle; and he finished by fastening to his
person a thousand Roman candies, Catherine wheels, serpents and rockets of all
manner of brilliant colors, setting them on fire all at once and walking and
waltzing across his rope again in a blinding blaze of glory that lit up the
garden and the people's faces like a great conflagration at midnight.
The dance had begun, and we adjourned to the temple. Within it was a drinking
saloon, and all around it was a broad circular platform for the dancers. I
backed up against the wall of the temple and waited. Twenty sets formed, the
music struck up, and then--I placed my hands before my face for very shame.
But I looked through my fingers. They were dancing the renowned "Cancan." A
handsome girl in the set before me tripped forward lightly to meet the opposite
gentleman, tripped back again, grasped her dresses vigorously on both sides
with her hands, raised them pretty high, danced an extraordinary jig that had
more activity and exposure about it than any jig I ever saw before, and then,
drawing her clothes still higher, she advanced gaily to the center and launched
a vicious kick full at her vis-à-vis that must infallibly have
removed his nose if he had been seven feet high. It was a mercy he was only
six.
That is the cancan. The idea of it is to dance as wildly, as noisily, as
furiously as you can; expose yourself as much as possible if you are a woman;
and kick as high as you can, no matter which sex you belong to. There is no
word of exaggeration in this. Any of the staid, respectable, aged people who
were there that night can testify to the truth of that statement. There were a
good many such people present. I suppose French morality is not of that
straight-laced description which is shocked at trifles.
I moved aside and took a general view of the cancan. Shouts, laughter, furious
music, a bewildering chaos of darting and intermingling forms, stormy jerking
and snatching of gay dresses, bobbing beads, flying arms, lightning flashes of
white-stockinged calves and dainty slippers in the air, and then a grand final
rush, riot, a terrific hubbub, and a wild stampede! Heavens! Nothing like it
has been seen on earth since trembling Tam O'Shanter saw the devil and the
witches at their orgies that stormy night in "Alloway's auld haunted kirk."
We visited the Louvre, at a time when we had no silk purchases in view, and
looked at its miles of paintings by the old masters. Some of them were
beautiful, but at the same time they carried such evidences about them of the
cringing spirit of those great men that we found small pleasure in examining
them. Their nauseous adulation of princely patrons was more prominent to me
and chained my attention more surely than the charms of color and expression
which are claimed to be in the pictures. Gratitude for kindnesses is well, but
it seems to me that some of those artists carried it so far that it ceased to
be gratitude and became worship. If there is a plausible excuse for the
worship of men, then by all means let us forgive Rubens and his brethren.
But I will drop the subject, lest I say something about the old masters that
might as well be left unsaid.
Of course we drove in the Bois de Boulogne, that limitless park, with its
forests, its lakes, its cascades, and its broad avenues. There were thousands
upon thousands of vehicles abroad, and the scene was full of life and gaiety.
There were very common hacks, with father and mother and all the children in
them; conspicuous little open carriages with celebrated ladies of questionable
reputation in them; there were dukes and duchesses abroad, with gorgeous
footmen perched behind, and equally gorgeous outriders perched on each of the
six horses; there were blue and silver, and green and gold, and pink and black,
and all sorts and descriptions of stunning and startling liveries out, and I
almost yearned to be a flunky myself, for the sake of the fine clothes.
But presently the Emperor came along and he outshone them all. He was preceded
by a bodyguard of gentlemen on horseback in showy uniforms, his carriage horses
(there appeared to be somewhere in the remote neighborhood of a thousand of
them) were bestridden by gallant-looking fellows, also in stylish uniforms, and
after the carriage followed another detachment of bodyguards. Everybody got
out of the way; everybody bowed to the Emperor and his friend the Sultan; and
they went by on a swinging trot and disappeared.
I will not describe the Bois de Boulogne. I cannot do it. It is simply a
beautiful, cultivated, endless, wonderful wilderness. It is an enchanting
place. It is in Paris now, one may say, but a crumbling old cross in one
portion of it reminds one that it was not always so. The cross marks the spot
where a celebrated troubadour was waylaid and murdered in the fourteenth
century. It was in this park that that fellow with an unpronounceable name
made the attempt upon the Russian czar's life last spring with a pistol. The
bullet struck a tree. Ferguson showed us the place. Now in America that
interesting tree would be chopped down or forgotten within the next five years,
but it will be treasured here. The guides will point it out to visitors for
the next eight hundred years, and when it decays and falls down they will put
up another there and go on with the same old story just the same.
We had stood in the ancient church of St. Denis, where the marble effigies of
thirty generations of kings and queens lay stretched at length upon the tombs,
and the sensations invoked were startling and novel; the curious armor, the
obsolete costumes, the placid faces, the hands placed palm to palm in eloquent
supplication--it was a vision of gray antiquity. It seemed curious enough to
be standing face to face, as it were, with old Dagobert I, and Clovis and
Charlemagne, those vague, colossal heroes, those shadows, those myths of a
thousand years ago! I touched their dust-covered faces with my finger, but
Dagobert was deader than the sixteen centuries that have passed over him,
Clovis slept well after his labor for Christ, and old Charlemagne went on
dreaming of his paladins, of bloody Roncesvalles, and gave no heed to me.
The great names of Père la Chaise impress one, too, but differently.
There the suggestion brought constantly to his mind is that this place is
sacred to a nobler royalty--the royalty of heart and brain. Every faculty of
mind, every noble trait of human nature, every high occupation which men engage
in, seems represented by a famous name. The effect is a curious medley.
Davoust and Massena, who wrought in many a battle tragedy, are here, and so
also is Rachel, of equal renown in mimic tragedy on the stage. The Abbé
Sicard sleeps here--the first great teacher of the deaf and dumb--a man whose
heart went out to every unfortunate, and whose life was given to kindly offices
in their service; and not far off, in repose and peace at last, lies Marshal
Ney, whose stormy spirit knew no music like the bugle call to arms. The man
who originated public gas-lighting, and that other benefactor who introduced
the cultivation of the potato and thus blessed millions of his starving
countrymen, lie with the Prince of Masserano, and with exiled queens and
princes of Further India. Gay-Lussac the chemist, Laplace the astronomer,
Larrey the surgeon, De Seze the advocate, are here, and with them are Talma,
Bellini, Rubini; de Balzac, Beaumarchais, Beranger; Molière and La
Fontaine, and scores of other men whose names and whose worthy labors are as
familiar in the remote byplaces of civilization as are the historic deeds of
the kings and princes that sleep in the marble vaults of St. Denis.
But among the thousands and thousands of tombs in Père la Chaise, there
is one that no man, no woman, no youth of either sex, ever passes by without
stopping to examine. Every visitor has a sort of indistinct idea of the
history of its dead and comprehends that homage is due there, but not one in
twenty thousand clearly remembers the story of that tomb and its romantic
occupants. This is the grave of Abelard and Héloïse a grave which
has been more revered, more widely known, more written and sung about and wept
over, for seven hundred years, than any other in Christendom save only that of
the Saviour. All visitors linger pensively about it; all young people capture
and carry away keepsakes and mementos of it; all Parisian youths and maidens
who are disappointed in love come there to bail out when they are full of
tears; yea, many stricken lovers make pilgrimages to this shrine from distant
provinces to weep and wail and "grit" their teeth over their heavy sorrows, and
to purchase the sympathies of the chastened spirits of that tomb with offerings
of immortelles and budding flowers.
Go when you will, you find somebody snuffling over that tomb. Go when you
will, you find it furnished with those bouquets and immortelles. Go when you
will, you find a gravel train from Marseilles arriving to supply the
deficiencies caused by memento-cabbaging vandals whose affections have
miscarried.
Yet who really knows the story of Abelard and Héloïse? Precious
few people. The names are perfectly familiar to everybody, and that is about
all. With infinite pains I have acquired a knowledge of that history, and I
propose to narrate it here, partly for the honest information of the public and
partly to show that public that they have been wasting a good deal of
marketable sentiment very unnecessarily.
Just at this time, Pierre Abelard, who had already made himself widely famous
as a rhetorician, came to found a school of rhetoric in Paris. The originality
of his principles, his eloquence, and his great physical strength and beauty
created a profound sensation. He saw Héloïse, and was captivated
by her blooming youth, her beauty, and her charming disposition. He wrote to
her; she answered. He wrote again; she answered again. He was now in love.
He longed to know her--to speak to her face to face.
His school was near Fulbert's house. He asked Fulbert to allow him to call.
The good old swivel saw here a rare opportunity: his niece, whom he so much
loved, would absorb knowledge from this man, and it would not cost him a cent.
Such was Fulbert--penurious.
Fulbert's first name is not mentioned by any author, which is unfortunate.
However, George W. Fulbert will answer for him as well as any other. We will
let him go at that. He asked Abelard to teach her.
Abelard was glad enough of the opportunity. He came often and stayed long. A
letter of his shows in its very first sentence that he came under that friendly
roof like a cold-hearted villain as he was, with the deliberate intention of
debauching a confiding, innocent girl. This is the letter:
He drove Abelard from his house. Abelard returned secretly and carried
Hé1oïse away to Palais, in Brittany, his native country. Here,
shortly afterward, she bore a son, who, from his rare beauty, was surnamed
Astrolabe--William G. The girl's flight enraged Fulbert, and he longed for
vengeance, but feared to strike lest retaliation visit Héloïse--for
he still loved her tenderly. At length Abelard offered to marry
Héloïse--but on a shameful condition: that the marriage should be
kept secret from the world, to the end that (while her good name remained a
wreck, as before) his priestly reputation might be kept untarnished. It was
like that miscreant. Fulbert saw his opportunity and consented. He would see
the parties married and then violate the confidence of the man who had taught
him that trick; he would divulge the secret and so remove somewhat of the
obloquy that attached to his niece's fame. But the niece suspected his scheme.
She refused the marriage at first; she said Fulbert would betray the
secret to save her, and besides, she did not wish to drag down a lover who was
so gifted, so honored by the world, and who had such a splendid career before
him. It was noble, self-sacrificing love, and characteristic of the
pure-souled Héloïse, but it was not good sense.
But she was overruled, and the private marriage took place. Now for Fulbert!
The heart so wounded should be healed at last; the proud spirit so tortured
should find rest again; the humbled head should be lifted up once more. He
proclaimed the marriage in the high places of the city and rejoiced that
dishonor had departed from his house. But lo! Abelard denied the marriage!
Héloïse denied it! The people, knowing the former circumstances,
might have believed Fulbert had only Abelard denied it, but when the person
chiefly interested--the girl herself--denied it, they laughed, despairing
Fulbert to scorn.
The poor canon of the cathedral of Paris was spiked again. The last hope of
repairing the wrong that had been done his house was gone. What next? Human
nature suggested revenge. He compassed it. The historian says:
Héloïse entered a convent and gave good-bye to the world and its
pleasures for all time. For twelve years she never heard of Abelard--never
even heard his name mentioned. She had become prioress of Argenteuil and led a
life of complete seclusion. She happened one day to see a letter written by
him, in which he narrated his own history. She cried over it and wrote him.
He answered, addressing her as his "sister in Christ." They continued to
correspond, she in the unweighed language of unwavering affection, he in the
chilly phraseology of the polished rhetorician. She poured out her heart in
passionate, disjointed sentences; he replied with finished essays, divided
deliberately into heads and subheads, premises and argument. She showered upon
him the tenderest epithets that love could devise, he addressed her from the
North PoIe of his frozen heart as the "Spouse of Christ"! The abandoned
villain!
On account of her too easy government of her nuns, some disreputable
irregularities were discovered among them, and the Abbot of St. Denis broke up
her establishment. Abelard was the official head of the monastery of St.
Gildas de Ruys at that time, and when he heard of her homeless condition a
sentiment of pity was aroused in his breast (it is a wonder the unfamiliar
emotion did not blow his head off ), and he placed her and her troop in the
little oratory of the Paraclete, a religious establishment which he had
founded. She had many privations and sufferings to undergo at first, but her
worth and her gentle disposition won influential friends for her, and she built
up a wealthy and flourishing nunnery. She became a great favorite with the
heads of the church, and also the people, though she seldom appeared in public.
She rapidly advanced in esteem, in good report, and in usefulness, and Abelard
as rapidly lost ground. The Pope so honored her that he made her the head of
her order. Abelard, a man of splendid talents, and ranking as the first
debater of his time, became timid, irresolute, and distrustful of his powers.
He only needed a great misfortune to topple him from the high position he held
in the world of intellectual excellence, and it came. Urged by kings and
princes to meet the subtle St. Bernard in debate and crush him, he stood up in
the presence of a royal and illustrious assemblage, and when his antagonist had
finished he looked about him and stammered a commencement; but his courage
failed him, the cunning of his tongue was gone; with his speech unspoken, he
trembled and sat down, a disgraced and vanquished champion.
He died a nobody, and was buried at Cluny, A.D. 1144. They removed his body to
the Paraclete afterward, and when Héloïse died, twenty years later,
they buried her with him, in accordance with her last wish. He died at the
ripe age of 64, and she at 63. After the bodies had remained entombed three
hundred years, they were removed once more. They were removed again in 1800,
and finally, seventeen years afterward, they were taken up and transferred to
Pére la Chaise, where they will remain in peace and quiet until it comes
time for them to get up and move again.
History is silent concerning the last acts of the mountain howitzer. Let the
world say what it will about him, I, at least, shall always respect the memory
and sorrow for the abused trust and the broken heart and the troubled spirit of
the old smooth bore. Rest and repose be his!
Such is the story of Abelard and Héloïse. Such is the history that
Lamartine has shed such cataracts of tears over. But that man never could come
within the influence of a subject in the least pathetic without overflowing his
banks. He ought to be dammed--or leveed, I should more properly say. Such is
the history--not as it is usually told, but as it is when stripped of the
nauseous sentimentality that would enshrine for our loving worship a dastardly
seducer like Pierre Abelard. I have not a word to say against the misused,
faithful girl, and would not withhold from her grave a single one of those
simple tributes which blighted youths and maidens offer to her memory, but I am
sorry enough that I have not time and opportunity to write four or five volumes
of my opinion of her friend the founder of the Parachute, or the Paraclete, or
whatever it was.
The tons of sentiment I have wasted on that unprincipled humbug in my
ignorance! I shall throttle down my emotions hereafter, about this sort of
people, until I have read them up and know whether they are entitled to any
tearful attentions or not. I wish I had my immortelles back now, and that
bunch of radishes.
In Paris we often saw in shop windows the sign "English Spoken Here,"
just as one sees in the windows at home the sign "Ici on parle
française." We always invaded these places at once--and invariably
received the information, framed in faultless French, that the clerk who did
the English for the establishment had just gone to dinner and would be back in
an hour. Would monsieur buy something? We wondered why those parties happened
to take their dinners at such erratic and extraordinary hours, for we never
called at a time when an exemplary Christian would be in the least likely to be
abroad on such an errand. The truth was, it was a base fraud--a snare to trap
the unwary--chaff to catch fledglings with. They had no English-murdering
clerk. They trusted to the sign to inveigle foreigners into their lairs, and
trusted to their own blandishments to keep them there till they bought
something.
We ferreted out another French impositions frequent sign to this effect: "ALL
MANNER OF AMERICAN DRINKS ARTISTICALLY PREPARED HERE." We procured the services
of a gentleman experienced in the nomenclature of the American bar, and moved
upon the works of one of these impostors. A bowing, aproned Frenchman skipped
forward and said:
"Que voulez les messieurs?" I do not know what "Que voulez les
messieurs?" means, but such was his remark.
Our general said, "We will take a whiskey straight."
[A stare from the Frenchman.]
"Well, if you don't know what that is, give us a champagne cocktail."
[A stare and a shrug.]
"Well, then, give us a sherry cobbler."
The Frenchman was checkmated. This was all Greek to him.
"Give us a brandy smash!"
The Frenchman began to back away, suspicious of the ominous vigor of the last
order--began to back away, shrugging his shoulders and spreading his hands
apologetically.
The general followed him up and gained a complete victory. The uneducated
foreigner could not even furnish a Santa Cruz Punch, an Eye-Opener, a Stone
Fence, or an Earthquake. It was plain that he was a wicked impostor.
An acquaintance of mine said the other day that he was doubtless the only
American visitor to the Exposition who had had the high honor of being escorted
by the Emperor's bodyguard. I said with unobtrusive frankness that I was
astonished that such a long-legged, lantern-jawed, unprepossessing-looking
specter as he should be singled out for a distinction like that, and asked how
it came about. He said he had attended a great military review in the Champ de
Mars some time ago, and while the multitude about him was growing thicker and
thicker every moment he observed an open space inside the railing. He left his
carriage and went into it. He was the only person there, and so he had plenty
of room, and the situation being central, he could see all the preparations
going on about the field. By and by there was a sound of music, and soon the
Emperor of the French and the Emperor of Austria, escorted by the famous
Cent Gardes, entered the enclosure. They seemed not to observe him, but
directly, in response to a sign from the commander of the guard, a young
lieutenant came toward him with a file of his men following, halted, raised his
hand, and gave the military salute, and then said in a low voice that he was
sorry to have to disturb a stranger and a gentleman, but the place was sacred
to royalty. Then this New Jersey phantom rose up and bowed and begged pardon,
then with the officer beside him, the file of men marching behind him, and with
every mark of respect, he was escorted to his carriage by the imperial Cent
Gardes! The officer saluted again and fell back, the New Jersey sprite
bowed in return and had presence of mind enough to pretend that he had simply
called on a matter of private business with those emperors, and so waved them
an adieu and drove from the field!
Imagine a poor Frenchman ignorantly intruding upon a public rostrum sacred to
some sixpenny dignitary in America. The police would scare him to death first
with a storm of their elegant blasphemy, and then pull him to pieces getting
him away from there. We are measurably superior to the French in some things,
but they are immeasurably our betters in others.
Enough of Paris for the present. We have done our whole duty by it. We have
seen the Tuileries, the Napoleon Column, the Madeleine, that wonder of wonders
the tomb of Napoleon, all the great churches and museums, libraries, imperial
palaces, and sculpture and picture galleries, the Panthéon, Jardin des
Plantes, the opera, the circus, the legislative body, the billiard rooms, the
barbers, the grisettes--
Ah, the grisettes! I had almost forgotten. They are another romantic fraud.
They were (if you let the books of travel tell it) always so beautiful--so neat
and trim, so graceful--so naive and trusting--so gentle, so winning--so
faithful to their shop duties, so irresistible to buyers in their prattling
importunity--so devoted to their poverty-stricken students of the Latin
Quarter--so lighthearted and happy on their Sunday picnics in the suburbs--and
oh, so charmingly, so delightfully immoral!
Stuff I For three or four days I was constantly saying:
"Quick, Ferguson! Is that a grisette?"
And he always said, "No."
He comprehended at last that I wanted to see a grisette. Then he showed me
dozens of them. They were like nearly all the Frenchwomen I ever saw--homely.
They had large hands, large feet, large mouths; they had pug noses as a general
thing, and moustaches that not even good breeding could overlook; they combed
their hair straight back without parting; they were ill-shaped, they were not
winning, they were not graceful; I knew by their looks that they ate garlic and
onions; and lastly and finally, to my thinking it would be base flattery to
call them immoral.
Aroint thee, wench! I sorrow for the vagabond student of the Latin Quarter
now, even more than formerly I envied him. Thus topples to earth another idol
of my infancy.
We have seen everything, and tomorrow we go to Versailles. We shall see Paris
only for a little while as we come back to take up our line of march for the
ship, and so I may as well bid the beautiful city a regretful farewell. We
shall travel many thousands of miles after we leave here and visit many great
cities, but we shall find none so enchanting as this.
Some of our party have gone to England, intending to take a roundabout course
and rejoin the vessel at Leghorn or Naples several weeks hence. We came near
going to Geneva, but have concluded to return to Marseilles and go up through
Italy from Genoa.
I will conclude this chapter with a remark that I am sincerely proud to be able
to make--and glad, as well, that my comrades cordially endorse it, to wit: by
far the handsomest women we have seen in France were born and reared in
America.
I feel now like a man who has redeemed a failing reputation and shed luster
upon a dimmed escutcheon by a single just deed done at the eleventh hour.
Let the curtain fall, to slow music.
It was worth a pilgrimage to see. Everything is on so gigantic a scale.
Nothing is small--nothing is cheap. The statues are all large; the palace is
grand; the park covers a fair-sized county; the avenues are interminable. All
the distances and all the dimensions about Versailles are vast. I used to
think the pictures exaggerated these distances and these dimensions beyond all
reason, and that they made Versailles more beautiful than it was possible for
any place in the world to be. I know now that the pictures never came up to
the subject in any respect, and that no painter could represent Versailles on
canvas as beautiful as it is in reality. I used to abuse Louis XIV for
spending two hundred millions of dollars in creating this marvelous park when
bread was so scarce with some of his subjects, but I have forgiven him now. He
took a tract of land sixty miles in circumference and set to work to make this
park and build this palace and a road to it from Paris. He kept 36,000 men
employed daily on it, and the labor was so unhealthy that they used to die and
be hauled off by cartloads every night. The wife of a nobleman of the time
speaks of this as an "inconvenience," but naïvely remarks that "it
does not seem worthy of attention in the happy state of tranquillity we now
enjoy." I always thought ill of people at home who trimmed their shrubbery
into pyramids and squares and spires and all manner of unnatural shapes, and
when I saw the same thing being practiced in this great park I began to feel
dissatisfied. But I soon saw the idea of the thing and the wisdom of it. They
seek the general effect. We distort a dozen sickly trees into
unaccustomed shapes in a little yard no bigger than a dining room, and then
surely they look absurd enough. But here they take two hundred thousand tall
forest trees and set them in a double row; allow no sign of leaf or branch to
grow on the trunk lower down than six feet above the ground; from that point
the boughs begin to project, and very gradually they extend outward further and
further till they meet overhead, and a faultless tunnel of foliage is formed.
The arch is mathematically precise. The effect is then very fine. They make
trees take fifty different shapes, and so these quaint effects are infinitely
varied and picturesque. The trees in no two avenues are shaped alike, and
consequently the eye is not fatigued with anything in the nature of monotonous
uniformity. I will drop this subject now, leaving it to others to determine
how these people manage to make endless ranks of lofty forest trees grow to
just a certain thickness of trunk (say a foot and two-thirds); how they make
them spring to precisely the same height for miles; how they make them grow so
close together; how they compel one huge limb to spring from the same identical
spot on each tree and form the main sweep of the arch; and how all these things
are kept exactly in the same condition and in the same exquisite shapeliness
and symmetry month after month and year after year--for I have tried to reason
out the problem and have failed.
We walked through the great hall of sculpture and the one hundred and fifty
galleries of paintings in the palace of Versailles, and felt that to be in such
a place was useless unless one had a whole year at his disposal. These
pictures are all battle scenes, and only one solitary little canvas among them
all treats of anything but great French victories. We wandered, also, through
the Grand Trianon and the Petit Trianon, those monuments of royal prodigality,
and with histories so mournful--filled, as it is, with souvenirs of Napoleon
the First, and three dead kings and as many queens. In one sumptuous bed they
had all slept in succession, but no one occupies it now. In a large dining
room stood the table at which Louis XIV and his mistress Madame Maintenon, and
after them Louis XV, and Pompadour, had sat at their meals naked and
unattended--for the table stood upon a trapdoor, which descended with it to
regions below when it was necessary to replenish its dishes. In a room of the
Petit Trianon stood the furniture, just as poor Marie Antoinette left it when
the mob came and dragged her and the King to Paris, never to return. Near at
hand, in the stables, were prodigious carriages that showed no color but
gold--carriages used by former kings of France on state occasions, and never
used now save when a kingly head is to be crowned or an imperial infant
christened. And with them were some curious sleighs, whose bodies were shaped
like lions, swans, tigers, etc.--vehicles that had once been handsome with
pictured designs and fine workmanship, but were dusty and decaying now. They
had their history. When Louis XIV had finished the Grand Trianon, he told
Maintenon he had created a paradise for her, and asked if she could think of
anything now to wish for. He said he wished the Trianon to be
perfection--nothing less. She said she could think of but one thing--it was
summer, and it was balmy France--yet she would like well to sleigh ride in the
leafy avenues of Versailles! The next morning found miles and miles of grassy
avenues spread thick with snowy salt and sugar, and a procession of those
quaint sleighs waiting to receive the chief concubine of the gaiest and most
unprincipled court that France has ever seen!
From sumptuous Versailles, with its palaces, its statues, its gardens, and its
fountains, we journeyed back to Paris and sought its antipodes--the Faubourg
St. Antoine. Little, narrow streets; dirty children blockading them; greasy,
slovenly women capturing and spanking them; filthy dens on first floors, with
rag stores in them (the heaviest business in the Faubourg is the chiffonier's);
other filthy dens where whole suits of second- and third-hand clothing are sold
at prices that would ruin any proprietor who did not steal his stock; still
other filthy dens where they sold groceries--sold them by the
halfpennyworth--five dollars would buy the man out, goodwill and all. Up these
little crooked streets they will murder a man for seven dollars and dump the
body in the Seine. And up some other of these streets--most of them, I should
say--live lorettes.
All through this Faubourg St. Antoine, misery, poverty, vice, and crime go hand
in hand, and the evidences of it stare one in the face from every side. Here
the people live who begin the revolutions. Whenever there is anything of that
kind to be done, they are always ready. They take as much genuine pleasure in
building a barricade as they do in cutting a throat or shoving a friend into
the Seine. It is these savage-looking ruffians who storm the splendid halls of
the Tuileries occasionally, and swarm into Versailles when a king is to be
called to account.
But they will build no more barricades; they will break no more soldiers' heads
with paving stones. Louis Napoleon has taken care of all that. He is
annihilating the crooked streets and building in their stead noble boulevards
as straight as an arrow--avenues which a cannon ball could traverse from end to
end without meeting an obstruction more irresistible than the flesh and bones
of men--boulevards whose stately edifices will never afford refuges and
plotting places for starving, discontented revolution breeders. Five of these
great thoroughfares radiate from one ample center--a center which is
exceedingly well adapted to the accommodation of heavy artillery. The mobs
used to riot there, but they must seek another rallying place in future. And
this ingenious Napoleon paves the streets of his great cities with a smooth,
compact composition of asphaltum and sand. No more barricades of
flagstones--no more assaulting his majesty's troops with cobbles. I cannot
feel friendly toward my quondam fellow American Napoleon III, especially at
this time,* when in fancy I see his credulous victim, Maximilian, lying stark
and stiff in Mexico, and his maniac widow watching eagerly from her French
asylum for the form that will never come--but I do admire his nerve, his calm
self-reliance, his shrewd good sense.
It was like home to us to step on board the comfortable ship again and smoke
and lounge about her breezy decks. And yet it was not altogether like home,
either, because so many members of the family were away. We missed some
pleasant faces which we would rather have found at dinner, and at night there
were gaps in the euchre parties which could not be satisfactorily filled.
"Moult" was in England, Jack in Switzerland, Charley in Spain. Blucher was
gone, none could tell where. But we were at sea again, and we had the stars
and the ocean to look at, and plenty of room to meditate in.
In due time the shores of Italy were sighted, and as we stood gazing from the
decks, early in the bright summer morning, the stately city of Genoa rose up
out of the sea and flung back the sunlight from her hundred palaces.
Here we rest for the present--or rather, here we have been trying to rest, for
some little time, but we run about too much to accomplish a great deal in that
line.
I would like to remain here. I had rather not go any further. There may be
prettier women in Europe, but I doubt it. The population of Genoa is 120,000;
two-thirds of these are women, I think, and at least two-thirds of the women
are beautiful. They are as dressy and as tasteful and as graceful as they
could possibly be without being angels. However, angels are not very dressy, I
believe. At least the angels in pictures are not--they wear nothing but wings.
But these Genoese women do look so charming. Most of the young demoiselles are
robed in a cloud of white from head to foot, though many trick themselves out
more elaborately. Nine-tenths of them wear nothing on their heads but a filmy
sort of veil, which falls down their backs like a white mist. They are very
fair, and many of them have blue eyes, but black and dreamy dark brown ones are
met with oftenest.
The ladies and gentlemen of Genoa have a pleasant fashion of promenading in a
large park on the top of a hill in the center of the city, from six till nine
in the evening, and then eating ices in a neighboring garden an hour or two
longer. We went to the park on Sunday evening. Two thousand persons were
present, chiefly young ladies and gentlemen. The gentlemen were dressed in the
very latest Paris fashions, and the robes of the ladies glinted among the trees
like so many snowflakes. The multitude moved round and round the park in a
great procession. The bands played, and so did the fountains; the moon and the
gas lamps lit up the scene, and altogether it was a brilliant and an animated
picture. I scanned every female face that passed, and it seemed to me that all
were handsome. I never saw such a freshet of loveliness before. I did not see
how a man of only ordinary decision of character could marry here, because
before he could get his mind made up he would fall in love with somebody
else.
Never smoke any Italian tobacco. Never do it on any account. It makes me
shudder to think what it must be made of. You cannot throw an old cigar "stub"
down anywhere, but some vagabond will pounce upon it on the instant. I like to
smoke a good deal, but it wounds my sensibilities to see one of these
stub-hunters watching me out of the comers of his hungry eyes and calculating
how long my cigar will be likely to last. It reminded me too painfully of that
San Francisco undertaker who used to go to sickbeds with his watch in his hand
and time the corpse. One of these stub-hunters followed us all over the park
last night, and we never had a smoke that was worth anything. We were always
moved to appease him with the stub before the cigar was half gone, because he
looked so viciously anxious. He regarded us as his own legitimate prey, by
right of discovery, I think, because he drove off several other professionals
who wanted to take stock in us.
Now, they surely must chew up those old stubs and dry and sell them for smoking
tobacco. Therefore, give your custom to other than Italian brands of the
article.
"The Superb" and the "City of Palaces" are names which Genoa has held for
centuries. She is full of palaces, certainly, and the palaces are sumptuous
inside, but they are very rusty without and make no pretensions to
architectural magnificence. "Genoa the Superb" would be a felicitous title if
it referred to the women.
We have visited several of the palaces--immense thick-walled piles, with great
stone staircases, tessellated marble pavement on the floors (sometimes they
make a mosaicwork of intricate designs, wrought in pebbles or little fragments
of marble laid in cement), and grand salons hung with pictures by
Rubens, Guido, Titian, Paul Veronese, and so on, and portraits of heads of the
family in plumed helmets and gallant coats of mail, and patrician ladies in
stunning costumes of centuries ago. But, of course, the folks were all out in
the country for the summer, and might not have known enough to ask us to dinner
if they had been at home, and so all the grand empty salons, with their
resounding pavements, their grim pictures of dead ancestors, and tattered
banners with the dust of bygone centuries upon them seemed to brood solemnly of
death and the grave, and our spirits ebbed away, and our cheerfulness passed
from us. We never went up to the eleventh story. We always began to suspect
ghosts. There was always an undertaker-looking servant along, too, who handed
us a program, pointed to the picture that began the list of the salon he
was in, and then stood stiff and stark and unsmiling in his petrified livery
till we were ready to move on to the next chamber, whereupon he marched sadly
ahead and took up another malignantly respectful position as before. I wasted
so much time praying that the roof would fall in on these dispiriting flunkies
that I had but little left to bestow upon palace and pictures.
And besides, as in Paris, we had a guide. Perdition catch all the guides.
This one said he was the most gifted linguist in Genoa, as far as English was
concerned, and that only two persons in the city beside himself could talk the
language at all. He showed us the birthplace of Christopher Columbus, and
after we had reflected in silent awe before it for fifteen minutes, he said it
was not the birthplace of Columbus, but of Columbus' grandmother! When we
demanded an explanation of his conduct he only shrugged his shoulders and
answered in barbarous Italian. I shall speak further of this guide in a future
chapter. All the information we got out of him we shall be able to carry along
with us, I think.
I have not been to church so often in a long time as I have in the last few
weeks. The people in these old lands seem to make churches their specialty.
Especially does this seem to be the case with the citizens of Genoa. I think
there is a church every three or four hundred yards all over town. The streets
are sprinkled from end to end with shovel-hatted, long-robed, well-fed priests,
and the church bells by dozens are pealing all the day long, nearly. Every now
and then one comes across a friar of orders gray, with shaven head, long,
coarse robe, rope girdle and beads, and with feet cased in sandals or entirely
bare. These worthies suffer in the flesh and do penance all their lives, I
suppose, but they look like consummate famine-breeders. They are all fat and
serene.
The old Cathedral of San Lorenzo is about as notable a building as we have
found in Genoa. It is vast, and has colonnades of noble pillars, and a great
organ, and the customary pomp of gilded moldings, pictures, frescoed ceilings,
and so forth. I cannot describe it, of course--it would require a good many
pages to do that. But it is a curious place. They said that half of it--from
the front door halfway down to the altar--was a Jewish synagogue before the
Saviour was born, and that no alteration had been made in it since that time.
We doubted the statement, but did it reluctantly. We would much rather have
believed it. The place looked in too perfect repair to be so ancient.
The main point of interest about the cathedral is the little Chapel of St. John
the Baptist. They only allow women to enter it on one day in the year, on
account of the animosity they still cherish against the sex because of the
murder of the saint to gratify a caprice of Herodias. In this chapel is a
marble chest, in which, they told us, were the ashes of St. John; and around it
was wound a chain, which, they said, had confined him when he was in prison.
We did not desire to disbelieve these statements, and yet we could not feel
certain that they were correct--partly because we could have broken that chain,
and so could St. John, and partly because we had seen St. John's ashes before,
in another church. We could not bring ourselves to think St. John had two sets
of ashes.
They also showed us a portrait of the Madonna which was painted by St. Luke,
and it did not look half as old and smoky as some of the pictures by Rubens.
We could not help admiring the Apostle's modesty in never once mentioning in
his writings that he could paint.
But isn't this relic matter a little overdone? We find a piece of the true
cross in every old church we go into, and some of the nails that held it
together. I would not like to be positive, but I think we have seen as much as
a keg of these nails. Then there is the crown of thorns; they have part of one
in Sainte Chapelle, in Paris, and part of one also in Notre Dame. And as for
bones of St. Denis, I feel certain we have seen enough of them to duplicate him
if necessary.
I only meant to write about the churches, but I keep wandering from the
subject. I could say that the Church of the Annunciation is a wilderness of
beautiful columns, of statues, gilded moldings, and pictures almost countless,
but that would give no one an entirely perfect idea of the thing, and so where
is the use? One family built the whole edifice and have got money left. There
is where the mystery lies. We had an idea at first that only a mint could have
survived the expense.
These people here live in the heaviest, highest, broadest, darkest, solidest
houses one can imagine. Each one might "laugh a siege to scorn." A hundred
feet front and a hundred high is about the style, and you go up three flights
of stairs before you begin to come upon signs of occupancy. Everything is
stone, and stone of the heaviest--floors, stairways, mantels,
benches--everything. The walls are four to five feet thick. The streets
generally are four or five to eight feet wide and as crooked as a corkscrew.
You go along one of these gloomy cracks, and look up and behold the sky like a
mere ribbon of light, far above your head, where the tops of the tall houses on
either side of the street bend almost together. You feel as if you were at the
bottom of some tremendous abyss, with all the world far above you. You wind in
and out and here and there, in the most mysterious way, and have no more idea
of the points of the compass than if you were a blind man. You can never
persuade yourself that these are actually streets, and the frowning, dingy,
monstrous houses dwellings, till you see one of these beautiful, prettily
dressed women emerge from them--see her emerge from a dark, dreary-looking den
that looks dungeon all over, from the ground away halfway up t6 heaven. And
then you wonder that such a charming moth could come from such a forbidding
shell as that. The streets are wisely made narrow and the houses heavy and
thick and stony, in order that the people may be cool in this roasting climate.
And they are cool, and stay so. And while I think of it--the men wear hats and
have very dark complexions, but the women wear no headgear but a flimsy veil
like a gossamer's web, and yet are exceedingly fair as a general thing.
Singular, isn't it?
The huge palaces of Genoa are each supposed to be occupied by one family, but
they could accommodate a hundred, I should think. They are relics of the
grandeur of Genoa's palmy days--the days when she was a great commercial and
maritime power several centuries ago. These houses, solid marble palaces
though they be, are in many cases of a dull pinkish color, outside, and from
pavement to eaves are pictured with Genoese battle scenes, with monstrous
Jupiters and Cupids, and with familiar illustrations from Grecian mythology.
Where the paint has yielded to age and exposure and is peeling off in flakes
and patches, the effect is not happy. A noseless Cupid or a Jupiter with an
eye out or a Venus with a fly blister on her breast are not attractive features
in a picture. Some of these painted walls reminded me somewhat of the tall
van, plastered with fanciful bills and posters, that follows the bandwagon of a
circus about a country village. I have not read or heard that the outsides of
the houses of any other European city are frescoed in this way.
I cannot conceive of such a thing as Genoa in ruins. Such massive arches, such
ponderous substructions as support these towering broad-winged edifices, we
have seldom seen before; and surely the great blocks of stone of which these
edifices are built can never decay; walls that are as thick as an ordinary
American doorway is high cannot crumble.
The republics of Genoa and Pisa were very powerful in the Middle Ages. Their
ships filled the Mediterranean, and they carried on an extensive commerce with
Constantinople and Syria. Their warehouses were the great distributing depots
from whence the costly merchandise of the East was sent abroad over Europe.
They were warlike little nations and defied, in those days, governments that
overshadow them now as mountains overshadow molehills. The Saracens captured
and pillaged Genoa nine hundred years ago, but during the following century
Genoa and Pisa entered into an offensive and defensive alliance and besieged
the Saracen colonies in Sardinia and the Balearic Isles with an obstinacy that
maintained its pristine vigor and held to its purpose for forty long years.
They were victorious at last and divided their conquests equably among their
great patrician families.
Descendants of some of those proud families still inhabit the palaces of Genoa,
and trace in their own features a resemblance to the grim knights whose
portraits hang in their stately halls, and to pictured beauties with pouting
lips and merry eyes whose originals have been dust and ashes for many a dead
and forgotten century.
The hotel we live in belonged to one of those great orders of knights of the
Cross in the times of the Crusades, and its mailed sentinels once kept watch
and ward in its massive turrets and woke the echoes of these halls and
corridors with their iron heels.
But Genoa's greatness has degenerated into an unostentatious commerce in
velvets and silver filagreework. They say that each European town has its
specialty. These filagree things are Genoa's specialty. Her smiths take
silver ingots and work them up into all manner of graceful and beautiful forms.
They make bunches of flowers, from flakes and wires of silver, that counterfeit
the delicate creations the frost weaves upon a windowpane; and we were shown a
miniature silver temple whose fluted columns, whose Corinthian capitals and
rich entablatures, whose spire, statues, bells, and ornate lavishness of
sculpture were wrought in polished silver, and with such matchless art that
every detail was a fascinating study and the finished edifice a wonder of
beauty.
We are ready to move again, though we are not really tired yet of the narrow
passages of this old marble cave. Cave is a good word--when speaking of Genoa
under the stars. When we have been prowling at midnight through the gloomy
crevices they call streets, where no footfalls but ours were echoing, where
only ourselves were abroad, and lights appeared only at long intervals and at a
distance, and mysteriously disappeared again, and the houses at our elbows
seemed to stretch upward farther than ever toward the heavens, the memory of a
cave I used to know at home was always in my mind, with its lofty passages, its
silence and solitude, its shrouding gloom, its sepulchral echoes, its flitting
lights, and more than all, its sudden revelations of branching crevices and
corridors where we least expected them.
We are not tired of the endless processions of cheerful, chattering gossipers
that throng these courts and streets all day long, either; nor of the
coarse-robed monks; nor of the "Asti" wines, which that old doctor (whom we
call the Oracle), with customary felicity in the matter of getting everything
wrong, misterms "nasty." But we must go, nevertheless.
Our last sight was the cemetery (a burial place intended to accommodate 60,000
bodies), and we shall continue to remember it after we shall have forgotten the
palaces. It is a vast marble colonnaded corridor extending around a great
unoccupied square of ground; its broad floor is marble, and on every slab is an
inscription--for every slab covers a corpse. On either side, as one walks down
the middle of the passage, are monuments, tombs, and sculptured figures that
are exquisitely wrought and are full of grace and beauty. They are new and
snowy; every outline is perfect, every feature guiltless of mutilation, flaw, or
blemish; and therefore, to us these far-reaching ranks of bewitching forms are
a hundredfold more lovely than the damaged and dingy statuary they have saved
from the wreck of ancient art and set up in the galleries of Paris for the
worship of the world.
Well provided with cigars and other necessaries of life, we are now ready to
take the cars for Milan.
We had plenty of chilly tunnels wherein to check our perspiration, though. We
timed one of them. We were twenty minutes passing through it, going at the
rate of thirty to thirty-five miles an hour.
Beyond Alessandria we passed the battlefield of Marengo.
Toward dusk we drew near Milan and caught glimpses of the city and the blue
mountain peaks beyond. But we were not caring for these things--they did not
interest us in the least. We were in a fever of impatience; we were dying to
see the renowned cathedral! We watched--in this direction and that--all
around--everywhere. We needed no one to point it out--we did not wish anyone
to point it out--we would recognize it even in the desert of the great
Sahara.
At last, a forest of graceful needles, shimmering in the amber sunlight, rose
slowly above the pygmy housetops, as one sometimes sees, in the far horizon, a
gilded and pinnacled mass of cloud lift itself above the waste of waves, at
sea--the cathedral! We knew it in a moment.
Half of that night and all of the next day this architectural autocrat was our
sole object of interest.
What a wonder it is! So grand, so solemn, so vast! And yet so delicate, so
airy, so graceful! A very world of solid weight, and yet it seems in the soft
moonlight only a fairy delusion of frostwork that might vanish with a breath!
How sharply its pinnacled angles and its wilderness of spires were cut against
the sky, and how richly their shadows fell upon its snowy roof! It was a
vision!--a miracle!--an anthem sung in stone, a poem wrought in marble!
Howsoever you look at the great cathedral, it is noble, it is beautiful!
Wherever you stand in Milan or within seven miles of Milan, it is visible and
when it is visible, no other object can chain your whole attention. Leave your
eyes unfettered by your will but a single instant and they will surely turn to
seek it. It is the first thing you look for when you rise in the morning, and
the last your lingering gaze rests upon at night. Surely it must be the
princeliest creation that ever brain of man conceived.
At nine o'clock in the morning we went and stood before this marble colossus.
The central one of its five great doors is bordered with a bas-relief of birds
and fruits and beasts and insects, which have been so ingeniously carved out of
the marble that they seem like living creatures--and the figures are so
numerous and the design so complex that one might study it a week without
exhausting its interest. On the great steeple--surmounting the myriad of
spires--inside of the spires--over the doors, the windows--in nooks and comers
everywhere that a niche or a perch can be found about the enormous building,
from summit to base, there is a marble statue, and every statue is a study in
itself! Raphael, Angelo, Canova--giants like these gave birth to the designs,
and their own pupils carved them. Every face is eloquent with expression, and
every attitude is full of grace. Away above, on the lofty roof, rank on rank
of carved and fretted spires spring high in the air, and through their rich
tracery one sees the sky beyond. In their midst the central steeple towers
proudly up like the mainmast of some great Indiaman among a fleet of
coasters.
We wished to go aloft. The sacristan showed us a marble stairway (of course it
was marble, and of the purest and whitest--there is no other stone, no brick,
no wood, among its building materials) and told us to go up one hundred and
eighty-two steps and stop till he came. It was not necessary to say stop--we
should have done that anyhow. We were tired by the time we got there. This
was the roof. Here, springing from its broad marble flagstones, were the long
files of spires, looking very tall close at hand, but diminishing in the
distance like the pipes of an organ. We could see now that the statue on the
top of each was the size of a large man, though they all looked like dolls from
the street. We could see also that from the inside of each and every one of
these hollow spires, from sixteen to thirty-one beautiful marble statues looked
out upon the world below.
From the eaves to the comb of the roof stretched in endless succession great
curved marble beams, like the fore-and-aft braces of a steamboat, and along
each beam from end to end stood up a row of richly carved flowers and
fruits--each separate and distinct in kind, and over 15,000 species
represented. At a little distance these rows seem to close together like the
ties of a railroad track, and then the mingling together of the buds and
blossoms of this marble garden forms a picture that is very charming to the
eye.
We descended and entered. Within the church, long rows of fluted columns, like
huge monuments, divided the building into broad aisles, and on the figured
pavement fell many a soft blush from the painted windows above. I knew the
church was very large, but I could not fully appreciate its great size until I
noticed that the men standing far down by the altar looked like boys, and
seemed to glide, rather than walk. We loitered about gazing aloft at the
monster windows all aglow with brilliantly colored scenes in the lives of the
Saviour and his followers. Some of these pictures are mosaics, and so
artistically are their thousand particles of tinted glass or stone put together
that the work has all the smoothness and finish of a painting. We counted
sixty panes of glass in one window, and each pane was adorned with one of these
master achievements of genius and patience.
The guide showed us a coffee-colored piece of sculpture which he said was
considered to have come from the hand of Phidias, since it was not possible
that any other artist, of any epoch, could have copied nature with such
faultless accuracy. The figure was that of a man without a skin; with every
vein, artery, muscle, every fiber and tendon and tissue of the human frame
represented in minute detail. It looked natural, because somehow it looked as
if it were in pain. A skinned man would be likely to look that way unless his
attention were occupied with some other matter. It was a hideous thing, and
yet there was a fascination about it somewhere. I am very sorry I saw it,
because I shall always see it now. I shall dream of it sometimes. I shall
dream that it is resting its corded arms on the bed's head and looking down on
me with its dead eyes; I shall dream that it is stretched between the sheets
with me and touching me with its exposed muscles and its stringy cold legs.
It is hard to forget repulsive things. I remember yet how I ran off from
school once, when I was a boy, and then, pretty late at night, concluded to
climb into the window of my father's office and sleep on a lounge, because I
had a delicacy about going home and getting thrashed. As I lay on the lounge
and my eyes grew accustomed to the darkness, I fancied I could see a long,
dusky, shapeless thing stretched upon the floor. A cold shiver went through
me. I turned my face to the wall. That did not answer. I was afraid that
that thing would creep over and seize me in the dark. I turned back and stared
at it for minutes and minutes--they seemed hours. It appeared to me that the
lagging moonlight never, never would get to it. I turned to the wall and
counted twenty, to pass the feverish time away. I looked--the pale square was
nearer. I turned again and counted fifty--it was almost touching it. With
desperate will I turned again and counted one hundred, and faced about, all in
a tremble. A white human hand lay in the moonlight! Such an awful sinking at
the heart--such a sudden gasp for breath! I felt--I cannot tell what
I
felt. When I recovered strength enough, I faced the wall again.
But no boy could have remained so with that mysterious hand behind him. I
counted again and looked--the most of a naked arm was exposed. I put my hands
over my eyes and counted till I could stand it no longer, and then--the pallid
face of a man was there, with the corners of the mouth drawn down, and the eyes
fixed and glassy in death! I raised to a sitting posture and glowered on that
corpse till the light crept down the bare breastline by line--inch by
inch--past the nipple--and then it disclosed a ghastly stab!
I went away from there. I do not say that I went away in any sort of a hurry,
but I simply went--that is sufficient. I went out at the window, and I carried
the sash along with me. I did not need the sash, but it was handier to take it
than it was to leave it, and so I took it. I was not scared, but I was
considerably agitated.
When I reached home, they whipped me, but I enjoyed it. It seemed perfectly
delightful. That man had been stabbed near the office that afternoon, and they
carried him in there to doctor him, but he only lived an hour. I have slept in
the same room with him often since then--in my dreams.
Now we will descend into the crypt, under the grand altar of Milan Cathedral,
and receive an impressive sermon from lips that have been silent and hands that
have been gestureless for three hundred years.
The priest stopped in a small dungeon and held up his candle. This was the
last resting place of a good man, a warmhearted, unselfish man; a man whose
whole life was given to succoring the poor, encouraging the fainthearted,
visiting the sick; in relieving distress whenever and wherever he found it.
His heart, his hand, and his purse were always open. With his story in one's
mind we can almost see his benignant countenance moving calmly among the
haggard faces of Milan in the days when the plague swept the city, brave where
all others were cowards, full of compassion where pity had been crushed out of
all other breasts by the instinct of self-preservation gone mad with terror,
cheering all, praying with all, helping all, with hand and brain and purse, at
a time when parents forsook their children, the friend deserted the friend, and
the brother turned away from the sister while her pleadings were still wailing
in his ears.
This was good St. Charles Borromeo, Bishop of Milan. The people idolized him;
princes lavished uncounted treasures upon him. We stood in his tomb. Nearby
was the sarcophagus, lighted by the dripping candles. The walls were faced
with bas-reliefs representing scenes in his life done in massive silver. The
priest put on a short white lace garment over his black robe, crossed himself,
bowed reverently, and began to turn a windlass slowly. The sarcophagus
separated in two parts, lengthwise, and the lower part sank down and disclosed
a coffin of rock crystal as clear as the atmosphere. Within lay the body,
robed in costly habiliments covered with gold embroidery and starred with
scintillating gems. The decaying head was black with age, the dry skin was
drawn tight to the bones, the eyes were gone, there was a hole in the temple
and another in the cheek, and the skinny lips were parted as in a ghastly
smile! Over this dreadful face, its dust and decay and its mocking grin, hung a
crown sown thick with flashing brilliants; and upon the breast lay crosses and
crosiers of solid gold that were splendid with emeralds and diamonds.
How poor and cheap and trivial these gewgaws seemed in presence of the
solemnity, the grandeur, the awful majesty of Death! Think of Milton,
Shakespeare, Washington, standing before a reverent world tricked out in the
glass beads, the brass earrings, and tin trumpery of the savages of the plains!
Dead Borromeo preached his pregnant sermon, and its burden was: You that
worship the vanities of earth--you that long for worldly honor, worldly wealth,
worldly fame--behold their worth!
To us it seemed that so good a man, so kind a heart, so simple a nature,
deserved rest and peace in a grave sacred from the intrusion of prying eyes,
and believed that he himself would have preferred to have it so, but
peradventure our wisdom was at fault in this regard.
As we came out upon the floor of the church again, another priest volunteered
to show us the treasures of the church. What, more? The furniture of the
narrow chamber of death we had just visited weighed six millions of francs in
ounces and carats alone, without a penny thrown into the account for the costly
workmanship bestowed upon them! But we followed into a large room filled with
tall wooden presses like wardrobes. He threw them open, and behold, the
cargoes of "crude bullion" of the assay offices of Nevada faded out of my
memory. There were Virgins and bishops there, above their natural size, made
of solid silver, each worth, by weight, from eight hundred thousand to two
millions of francs, and bearing gemmed books in their hands worth eighty
thousand; there were bas-reliefs that weighed six hundred pounds, carved in
solid silver; crosiers and crosses, and candlesticks six and eight feet high,
all of virgin gold and brilliant with precious stones; and beside these were
all manner of cups and vases and such things, rich in proportion. It was an
Aladdin's palace. The treasures here, by simple weight, without counting
workmanship, were valued at fifty millions of francs! If I could get the
custody of them for a while, I fear me the market price of silver bishops would
advance shortly, on account of their exceeding scarcity in the Cathedral of
Milan.
The priests showed us two of St. Paul's fingers and one of St. Peter's; a bone
of Judas Iscariot (it was black) and also bones of all the other disciples; a
handkerchief in which the Saviour had left the impression of his face. Among
the most precious of the relics were a stone from the Holy Sepulchre, part of
the crown of thorns (they have a whole one at Notre Dame), a fragment of the
purple robe worn by the Saviour, a nail from the Cross, and a picture of the
Virgin and Child painted by the veritable hand of St. Luke. This is the second
of St. Luke's Virgins we have seen. Once a year all these holy relics are
carried in procession through the streets of Milan.
I like to revel in the dryest details of the great cathedral. The building is
five hundred feet long by one hundred and eighty wide, and the principal
steeple is in the neighborhood of four hundred feet high. It has 7,148 marble
statues, and will have upwards of three thousand more when it is finished. In
addition it has one thousand five hundred bas-reliefs. It has one hundred and
thirty-six spires--twenty-one more are to be added. Each spire is surmounted
by a statue six and a half feet high. Everything about the church is marble,
and all from the same quarry; it was bequeathed to the Archbishopric for this
purpose centuries ago. So nothing but the mere workmanship costs; still, that
is expensive--the bill foots up six hundred and eighty-four millions of francs
thus far (considerably over a hundred millions of dollars), and it is estimated
that it will take a hundred and twenty years yet to finish the cathedral. It
looks complete, but is far from being so. We saw a new statue put in its niche
yesterday, alongside of one which had been standing these four hundred years,
they said. There are four staircases leading up to the main steeple, each of
which cost a hundred thousand dollars, with the four hundred and eight statues
which adorn them. Marco Compioni was the architect who designed the wonderful
structure more than five hundred years ago, and it took him forty-six years to
work out the plan and get it ready to hand over to the builders. He is dead
now. The building was begun a little less than five hundred years ago, and the
third generation hence will not see it completed.
The building looks best by moonlight, because the older portions of it, being
stained with age, contrast unpleasantly with the newer and whiter portions. It
seems somewhat too broad for its height, but maybe familiarity with it might
dissipate this impression.
They say that the Cathedral of Milan is second only to St. Peter's at Rome. I
cannot understand how it can be second to anything made by human hands.
We bid it good-bye now--possibly for all time. How surely, in some future day,
when the memory of it shall have lost its vividness, shall we half believe we
have seen it in a wonderful dream, but never with waking eyes!
This was what the guide asked when we were looking up at the bronze horses on
the Arch of Peace. It meant, do you wish to go up there? I give it as a
specimen of guide-English. These are the people that make life a burthen to
the tourist. Their tongues are never still. They talk forever and forever,
and that is the kind of billingsgate they use. Inspiration itself could hardly
comprehend them. If they would only show you a masterpiece of art, or a
venerable tomb, or a prison house, or a battlefield, hallowed by touching
memories or historical reminiscences, or grand traditions, and then step aside
and hold still for ten minutes and let you think, it would not be so bad. But
they interrupt every dream, every pleasant train of thought, with their
tiresome cackling. Sometimes when I have been standing before some cherished
old idol of mine that I remembered years and years ago in pictures in the
geography at school, I have thought I would give a whole world if the human
parrot at my side would suddenly perish where he stood and leave me to gaze and
ponder and worship.
No, we did not "wis zo haut can be." We wished to go to La Scala, the largest
theater in the world, I think they call it. We did so. It was a large place.
Seven separate and distinct masses of humanity--six great circles and a monster
parquette.
We wished to go to the Ambrosian Library, and we did that also. We saw a
manuscript of Vergil, with annotations in the handwriting of Petrarch, the
gentleman who loved another man's Laura and lavished upon her all through life
a love which was a clear waste of the raw material. It was sound sentiment,
but bad judgment. It brought both parties fame and created a fountain of
commiseration for them in sentimental breasts that is running yet. But who
says a word in behalf of poor Mr. Laura? (I do not know his other name.) Who
glorifies him? Who bedews him with tears? Who writes poetry about him?
Nobody. How do you suppose he liked the state of things that has given the
world so much pleasure? How did he enjoy having another n following his wife
everywhere and making her name a familiar word in every garlic-exterminating
mouth in Italy with his sonnets to her preempted eyebrows? They got
fame and sympathy--he got neither. This is a peculiarly felicitous instance of
what is called poetical justice. It is all very fine, but it does not chime
with my notions of right. It is too one-sided--too ungenerous. Let the world
go on fretting about Laura and Petrarch if it will; but as for me, my tears and
my lamentations shall be lavished upon the unsung defendant.
We saw also an autograph letter of Lucrezia Borgia, a lady for whom I have
always entertained the highest respect, on account of her rare histrionic
capabilities, her opulence in solid gold goblets made of gilded wood, her high
distinction as an operatic screamer, and the facility with which she could
order a sextuple funeral and get the corpses ready for it. We saw one single
coarse yellow hair from Lucrezia's head, likewise. It awoke emotions, but we
still live. In this same library we saw some drawings by Michelangelo (these
Italians call him Mickelangelo) and Leonardo da Vinci. (They spell it Vinci and
pronounce it Vinchy; foreigners always spell better than they pronounce.) We
reserve our opinion of these sketches.
In another building they showed us a fresco representing some lions and other
beasts drawing chariots; and they seemed to project so far from the wall that
we took them to be sculptures. The artist had shrewdly heightened the delusion
by painting dust on the creatures' backs, as if it had fallen there naturally
and properly. Smart fellow--if it be smart to deceive strangers.
Elsewhere we saw a huge Roman amphitheater, with its stone seats still in good
preservation. Modernized, it is now the scene of more peaceful recreations
than the exhibition of a party of wild beasts with Christians for dinner. Part
of the time the Milanese use it for a racetrack, and at other seasons they
flood it with water and have spirited yachting regattas there. The guide told
us these things, and he would hardly try so hazardous an experiment as the
telling of a falsehood, when it is all he can do to speak the truth in English
without getting the lockjaw.
In another place we were shown a sort of summer arbor with a fence before it.
We said that was nothing. We looked again and saw, through the arbor, an
endless stretch of garden and shrubbery and grassy lawn. We were perfectly
willing to go in there and rest, but it could not be done. It was only another
delusions painting by some ingenious artist with little charity in his heart
for tired folk. The deception was perfect. No one could have imagined the
park was not real. We even thought we smelled the flowers at first.
We got a carriage at twilight and drove in the shaded avenues with the other
nobility, and after dinner we took wine and ices in a fine garden with the
great public. The music was excellent, the flowers and shrubbery were pleasant
to the eye, the scene was vivacious, everybody was genteel and well behaved,
and the ladies were slightly moustached, and handsomely dressed, but very
homely.
We adjourned to a café and played billiards an hour, and I made six or
seven points by the doctor pocketing his ball, and he made as many by my
pocketing my ball. We came near making a carom sometimes, but not the one we
were trying to make. The table was of the usual European style--cushions dead
and twice as high as the balls; the cues in bad repair. The natives play only
a sort of pool on them. We have never seen anybody playing the French
three-ball game yet, and I doubt if there is any such game known in France or
that there lives any man mad enough to try to play it on one of these European
tables. We bad to stop playing finally because Dan got to sleeping fifteen
minutes between the counts and paying no attention to his marking.
Afterward we walked up and down one of the most popular streets for some time,
enjoying other people's comfort and wishing we could export some of it to our
restless, driving, vitality-consuming marts at home. Just in this one matter
lies the main charm of life in Europe--comfort. In America we hurry--which is
well; but when the day's work is done, we go on thinking of losses and gains,
we plan for the morrow, we even carry our business cares to bed with us, and
toss and worry over them when we ought to be restoring our racked bodies and
brains with sleep. We burn up our energies with these excitements, and either
die early or drop into a lean and mean old age at a time of life which they
call a man's prime in Europe. When an acre of ground has produced long and
well, we let it lie fallow and rest for a season; we take no man clear across
the continent in the same coach he started in--the coach is stabled somewhere
on the plains and its heated machinery allowed to coot for a few days; when a
razor has seen long service and refuses to hold an edge, the barber lays it
away for a few weeks, and the edge comes back of its own accord. We bestow
thoughtful care upon inanimate objects, but none upon ourselves. What a robust
people, what a nation of thinkers we might be, if we would only lay ourselves
on the shelf occasionally and renew our edges!
I do envy these Europeans the comfort they take. When the work of the day is
done, they forget it. Some of them go, with wife and children, to a beer hall
and sit quietly and genteelly drinking a mug or two of ale and listening to
music; others walk the streets, others drive in the avenues; others assemble in
the great ornamental squares in the early evening to enjoy the sight and the
fragrance of flowers and to hear the military bands play--no European city
being without its fine military music at eventide; and yet others of the
populace sit in the open air in front of the refreshment houses and eat ices
and drink mild beverages that could not harm a child. They go to bed
moderately early and sleep well. They are always quiet, always orderly, always
cheerful, comfortable, and appreciative of life and its manifold blessings.
One never sees a drunken man among them. The change that has come over our
little party is surprising. Day by day we lose some of our restlessness and
absorb some of the spirit of quietude and ease that is in the tranquil
atmosphere about us and in the demeanor of the people. We grow wise apace. We
begin to comprehend what life is for.
We have had a bath in Milan, in a public bathhouse. They were going to put all
three of us in one bathtub, but we objected. Each of us had an Italian farm on
his back. We could have felt affluent if we had been officially surveyed and
fenced in. We chose to have three bathtubs, and large ones--tubs suited to the
dignity of aristocrats who had real estate and brought it with them. After we
were stripped and had taken the first chilly dash, we discovered that haunting
atrocity that has embittered our lives in so many cities and villages of Italy
and France--there was no soap. I called. A woman answered, and I barely had
time to throw myself against the door--she would have been in, in another
second. I said:
"Beware, woman! Go away from here--go away now or it will be the worse for you.
I am an unprotected male, but I will preserve my honor at the peril of my
life!"
These words must have frightened her, for she scurried away very fast.
Dan's voice rose on the air:
"Oh, bring some soap, why don't you!"
The reply was Italian. Dan resumed:
"Soap, you know--soap. That is what I want--soap. S-o-a-p, soap; s-o-p-e,
soap; s-o-u-p, soap. Hurry up! I don't know how you Irish spell it, but I
want it. Spell it to suit yourself, but fetch it. I'm freezing."
I heard the doctor say impressively:
"Dan, how often have we told you that these foreigners cannot understand
English? Why will you not depend upon us? Why will you not tell us what
you want, and let us ask for it in the language of the country? It would save
us a great deal of the humiliation your reprehensible ignorance causes us. I
will address this person in his mother tongue: 'Here, cospetto! Corpo di Bacco!
Sacramento! Solferino! Soap, you son of a gun!' Dan, if you would let us
talk for you, you would never expose your ignorant vulgarity."
Even this fluent discharge of Italian did not bring the soap at once, but there
was a good reason for it. There was not such an article about the
establishment. It is my belief that there never had been. They had to send
far uptown and to several different places before they finally got it, so they
said. We had to wait twenty or thirty minutes. The same thing had occurred
the evening before at the hotel. I think I have divined the reason for this
state of things at last. The English know how to travel comfortably, and they
carry soap with them; other foreigners do not use the article.
At every hotel we stop at we always have to send out for soap, at the last
moment, when we are grooming ourselves for dinner, and they put it in the bill
along with the candles and other nonsense. In Marseilles they make half the
fancy toilet soap we consume in America, but the Marseillaises only have a
vague theoretical idea of its use, which they have obtained from books of
travel, just as they have acquired an uncertain notion of clean shirts and the
peculiarities of the gorilla and other curious matters. This reminds me of
poor Blucher's note to the landlord in Paris:
Monsieur le Landlord--Sir: Pourquoi don't you mettez some
savon in your bedchambers? Est-ce que vous pensez I will steal
it? La nuit passée you charged me pour deux chandelles
when I only had one; hier vous avez charged me avec grace
when I had none at all; tout les jours you are coming some fresh
game or other on me, mais vous ne pouvez pas play this savon
dodge on me twice. Savon is a necessary de la vie to anybody
but a Frenchman, et je I'aurai hors de cet hôtel or make trouble.
You hear me. Allons.
BLUCHER.
Blucher's French is bad enough, but it is not much worse than the English one
finds in advertisements all over Italy every day. For instance, observe the
printed card of the hotel we shall probably stop at on the shores of Lake
Como:
This hotel which the best it is in Italy and most superb, is handsome locate on
the best situation of the lake, with the most splendid view near the Villas
Melzy, to the King of Belgian, and Serbelloni. This hotel have recently
enlarge, do offer all commodities on moderate price, at the strangers gentlemen
who whish spend the seasons on the Lake Como.
Here in Milan, in an ancient tumble-down ruin of a church, is the mournful
wreck of, the most celebrated painting in the world--"The Last Supper," by
Leonardo da Vinci. We are not infallible judges of pictures, but of course we
went there to see this wonderful painting, once so beautiful, always so
worshipped by masters in art, and forever to be famous in song and story. And
the first thing that occurred was the infliction on us of a placard fairly
reeking with wretched English. Take a morsel of it:
This paragraph recalls the picture. "The Last Supper" is painted on the
dilapidated wall of what was a little chapel attached to the main church in
ancient times, I suppose. It is battered and scarred in every direction, and
stained and discolored by time, and Napoleon's horses kicked the legs off most
the disciples when they (the horses, not the disciples) were stabled there more
than half a century ago.
I recognized the old picture in a moment--the Saviour with bowed head seated at
the center of a long, rough table with scattering fruits and dishes upon it,
and six disciples on either side in their long robes, talking to each
other--the picture from which all engravings and all copies have been made for
three centuries. Perhaps no living man has ever known an attempt to paint the
Lord's Supper differently. The world seems to have become settled in the
belief, long ago, that it is not possible for human genius to outdo this
creation of da Vinci's. I suppose painters will go on copying it as long as
any of the original is left visible to the eye. There were a dozen easels in
the room, and as many artists transferring the great picture to their canvases.
Fifty proofs of steel engravings and lithographs were scattered around, too.
And as usual, I could not help noticing how superior the copies were to the
original, that is, to my inexperienced eye. Wherever you find a Raphael, a
Rubens, a Michelangelo, a Carracci, or a da Vinci (and we see them every day),
you find artists copying them, and the copies are always the handsomest. Maybe
the originals were handsome when they were new, but they are not now.
This picture is about thirty feet long and ten or twelve high, I should think,
and the figures are at least life-size. It is one of the largest paintings in
Europe.
The colors are dimmed with age; the countenances are scaled and marred, and
nearly all expression is gone from them; the hair is a dead blur upon the wall,
and there is no life in the eyes. Only the attitudes are certain.
People come here from all parts of the world and glorify this masterpiece.
They stand entranced before it with bated breath and parted lips, and when they
speak, it is only in the catchy ejaculations of rapture:
"Oh, wonderful!"
"Such expression!"
"Such grace of attitude!"
"Such dignity!"
"Such faultless drawing!"
"Such matchless coloring!"
"Such feeling!"
"What delicacy of touch!"
"What sublimity of conception!"
"A vision! A vision!"
I only envy these people; I envy them their honest admiration, if it be
honest--their delight, if they feel delight. I harbor no animosity toward any
of them. But at the same time the thought will intrude itself upon me: How can
they see what is not visible? What would you think of a man who looked at some
decayed, blind, toothless, pock-marked Cleopatra and said: "What matchless
beauty! What soul! What expression!" What would you think of a man who gazed
upon a dingy, foggy sunset and said: "What sublimity! What feeling! What
richness of coloring!" What would you think of a man who stared in ecstasy upon
a desert of stumps and said: "Oh, my soul, my beating heart, what a noble
forest is here!"
You would think that those men had an astonishing talent for seeing things that
had already passed away. It was what I thought when I stood before "The Last
Supper" and heard men apostrophizing wonders and beauties and perfections which
had faded out of the picture and gone a hundred years before they were born.
We can imagine the beauty that was once in an aged face; we can imagine the
forest if we see the stumps; but we cannot absolutely see these things
when they are not there. I am willing to believe that the eye of the practiced
artist can rest upon "The Last Supper" and renew a luster where only a hint of
it is left, supply a tint that has faded away, restore an expression that is
gone; patch and color and add to the dull canvas until at last its figures
shall stand before him aglow with the life, the feeling, the freshness, yea,
with all the noble beauty that was theirs when first they came from the hand of
the master. But I cannot work this miracle. Can those other uninspired
visitors do it, or do they only happily imagine they do?
After reading so much about it, I am satisfied that 'The Last Supper" was a
very miracle of art once. But it was three hundred years ago.
It vexes me to hear people talk so glibly of "feeling," "expression," "tone,"
and those other easily acquired and inexpensive technicalities of art that make
such a fine show in conversations concerning pictures. There is not one an in
seventy-five hundred that can tell what a pictured face is intended to
express. There is not one man in five hundred that can go into a courtroom and
be sure that he will not mistake some harmless innocent of a juryman for the
black-hearted assassin on trial. Yet such people talk of "character" and
presume to interpret "expression" in pictures. There is an old story that
Matthews, the actor, was once lauding the ability of the human face to express
the passions and emotions hidden in the breast. He said the countenance could
disclose what was passing in the heart plainer than the tongue could.
"Now," he said, "observe my face--what does it express?"
"Despair!"
"Bah, it expresses peaceful resignation! What does this express?"
"Rage!"
"Stuff! It means terror! This!"
"Imbecility!"
"Fool! It is smothered ferocity! Now this!"
"Joy!"
"Oh, perdition! Any ass can see it means insanity!"
Expression! People coolly pretend to read it who would think themselves
presumptuous if they pretended to interpret the hieroglyphics on the obelisks
of Luxor--yet they are fully as competent to do the one thing as the other. I
have heard two very intelligent critics speak of Murillo's "Immaculate
Conception" (now in the museum at Seville) within the past few days. One
said:
"Oh, the Virgin's face is full of the ecstasy of a joy that is complete--that
leaves nothing more to be desired on earth!"
The other said:
"Ah, that wonderful face is so humble, so pleading--it says as plainly as words
could say it: 'I fear; I tremble; I am unworthy. But Thy will be done; sustain
Thou Thy servant!'"
The reader can see the picture in any drawing room; it can be easily
recognized: the Virgin (the only young and really beautiful Virgin that was
ever painted by one of the old masters, some of us think) stands in the
crescent of the new moon, with a multitude of cherubs hovering about her, and
more coming; her hands are crossed upon her breast, and upon her uplifted
countenance falls a glory out of the heavens. The reader may amuse himself, if
he chooses, in trying to determine which of these gentlemen read the Virgin's
"expression" aright or if either of them did it.
Anyone who is acquainted with the old masters will comprehend how much "The
Last Supper" is damaged when I say that the spectator cannot really tell now
whether the disciples are Hebrews or Italians. These ancient painters never
succeeded in denationalizing themselves. The Italian artists painted Italian
Virgins, the Dutch painted Dutch Virgins, the Virgins of the French painters
were Frenchwomen--none of them ever put into the face of the Madonna that
indescribable something which proclaims the Jewess, whether you find her in New
York, in Constantinople, in Paris, Jerusalem, or in the empire of Morocco. I
saw in the Sandwich Islands, once, a picture copied by a talented German artist
from an engraving in one of the American illustrated papers. It was an
allegory, representing Mr. Davis in the act of signing a secession act or some
such document. Over him hovered the ghost of Washington in warning attitude,
and in the background a troop of shadowy soldiers in Continental uniform were
limping with shoeless, bandaged feet through a driving snowstorm. Valley Forge
was suggested, of course. The copy seemed accurate, and yet there was a
discrepancy somewhere. After a long examination I discovered what it was--the
shadowy soldiers were all Germans! Jeff Davis was a German! Even the hovering
ghost was a German ghost! The artist had unconsciously worked his nationality
into the picture. To tell the truth, I am getting a little perplexed about
John the Baptist and his portraits. In France I finally grew reconciled to him
as a Frenchman; here he is unquestionably an Italian. What next? Can it be
possible that the painters make John the Baptist a Spaniard in Madrid and an
Irishman in Dublin?
We took an open barouche and drove two miles out of Milan to "see ze echo," as
the guide expressed it. The road was smooth, it was bordered by trees, fields,
and grassy meadows, and the soft air was filled with the odor of flowers.
Troops of picturesque peasant girls, coming from work, hooted at us, shouted at
us, made all manner of game of us, and entirely delighted me. My
long-cherished judgment was confirmed. I always did think those frowzy,
romantic, unwashed peasant girls I had read so much about in poetry were a
glaring fraud.
We enjoyed our jaunt. It was an exhilarating relief from tiresome
sightseeing.
We distressed ourselves very little about the astonishing echo the guide talked
so much about. We were growing accustomed to encomiums on wonders that too
often proved no wonders at all. And so we were most happily disappointed to
find in the sequel that the guide had even failed to rise to the magnitude of
his subject.
We arrived at a tumbledown old rookery called the Palazzo Simonetti--a massive
hewn-stone affair occupied by a family of ragged Italians. A good-looking
young girl conducted us to a window on the second floor which looked out on a
court walled on three sides by tall buildings. She put her head out at the
window and shouted. The echo answered more times than we could count. She
took a speaking trumpet and through it she shouted, sharp and quick, a single
"Ha!" The echo answered:
"Ha!------ha!-----ha!---ha!--ha!-ha! ha! h-a-a-a-a-a!" and finally went off
into a rollicking convulsion of the jolliest laughter that could be imagined.
It was so joyful--so long continued--so perfectly cordial and hearty that
everybody was forced to join in. There was no resisting it.
Then the girl took a gun and fired it. We stood ready to count the astonishing
clatter of reverberations. We could not say one, two, three, fast enough, but
we could dot our notebooks with our pencil points almost rapidly enough to take
down a sort of shorthand report of the result. My page revealed the following
account. I could not keep up, but I did as well as I could.
<INSERT PICTURE HERE>
I set down fifty-two distinct repetitions, and then the echo got the advantage
of me. The doctor set down sixty-four, and thenceforth the echo moved too fast
for him also. After the separate concussions could no longer be noted, the
reverberations dwindled to a wild, long-sustained clatter of sounds such as a
watchman's rattle produces. It is likely that this is the most remarkable echo
in the world.
The doctor, in jest, offered to kiss the young girl, and was taken a little
aback when she said he might for a franc! The commonest gallantry compelled
him to stand by his offer, and so he paid the franc and took the kiss. She was
a philosopher. She said a franc was a good thing to have, and she did not care
anything for one paltry kiss, because she had a million left. Then our
comrade, always a shrewd businessman, offered to take the whole cargo at thirty
days, but that little financial scheme was a failure.
We passed through a range of wild, picturesque hills, steep, wooded,
cone-shaped, with rugged crags projecting here and there, and with dwellings
and ruinous castles perched away up toward the drifting clouds. We lunched at
the curious old town of Como, at the foot of the lake, and then took the small
steamer and had an afternoon's pleasure excursion to this place--Bellaggio.
When we walked ashore, a party of policemen (people whose cocked hats and showy
uniforms would shame the finest uniform in the military service of the United
States) put us into a little stone cell and locked us in. We had the whole
passenger list for company, but their room would have been preferable, for
there was no light, there were no windows, no ventilation. It was close and
hot. We were much crowded. It was the Black Hole of Calcutta on a small
scale. Presently a smoke rose about our feet--a smoke that smelled of all the
dead things of earth, of all the putrefaction and corruption imaginable.
We were there five minutes, and when we got out it was hard to tell which of us
carried the vilest fragrance.
These miserable outcasts called that "fumigating" us, and the term was a tame
one indeed. They fumigated us to guard themselves against the cholera, though
we hailed from no infected port. We had left the cholera far behind us all the
time. However, they must keep epidemics away somehow or other, and fumigation
is cheaper than soap. They must either wash themselves or fumigate other
people. Some of the lower classes had rather die than wash, but the fumigation
of strangers causes them no pangs. They need no fumigation themselves. Their
habits make it unnecessary. They carry their preventive with them; they sweat
and fumigate all the day long. I trust I am a humble and a consistent
Christian. I try to do what is right. I know it is my duty to "pray for them
that despitefully use me"; and therefore, hard as it is, I shall still try to
pray for these fumigating, maccaroni-stuffing organ-grinders.
Our hotel sits at the water's edge--at least its front garden does--and we walk
among the shrubbery and smoke at twilight; we look afar off at Switzerland and
the Alps and feel an indolent willingness to look no closer; we go down the
steps and swim in the lake; we take a shapely little boat and sail abroad among
the reflections of the stars, lie on the thwarts and listen to the distant
laughter, the singing, the soft melody of flutes and guitars that comes
floating across the water from pleasuring gondolas; we close the evening with
exasperating billiards on one of those same old execrable tables. A midnight
luncheon in our ample bedchamber; a final smoke in its contracted veranda
facing the water, the gardens, and the mountains; a summing up of the day's
events. Then to bed, with drowsy brains harassed with a mad panorama that
mixes up pictures of France, of Italy, of the ship, of the ocean, of home, in
grotesque and bewildering disorder. Then a melting away of familiar faces, of
cities, and of tossing waves, into a great calm of forgetfulness and peace.
After which, the nightmare.
Breakfast in the morning, and then the lake.
I did not like it yesterday. I thought Lake Tahoe was much finer. I
have to confess now, however, that my judgment erred somewhat, though not
extravagantly. I always had an idea that Como was a vast basin of water, like
Tahoe, shut in by great mountains. Well, the border of huge mountains is here,
but the lake itself is not a basin. It is as crooked as any brook, and only
from one-quarter to two-thirds as wide as the Mississippi. There is not a yard
of low ground on either side of it--nothing but endless chains of mountains
that spring abruptly from the water's edge and tower to altitudes varying from
a thousand to two thousand feet. Their craggy sides are clothed with
vegetation, and white specks of houses peep out from the luxuriant foliage
everywhere; they are even perched upon jutting and picturesque pinnacles a
thousand feet above your head.
Again, for miles along the shores, handsome country seats, surrounded by
gardens and groves, sit fairly in the water, sometimes in nooks carved by
Nature out of the vine-hung precipices, and with no ingress or egress save by
boats. Some have great broad stone staircases leading down to the water, with
heavy stone balustrades ornamented with statuary and fancifully adorned with
creeping vines and bright-colored flowers--for all the world like a drop
curtain in a theater--and lacking nothing but long-waisted, high-heeled women
and plumed gallants in silken tights coming down to go serenading in the
splendid gondola in waiting.
A great feature of Como's attractiveness is the multitude of pretty houses and
gardens that cluster upon its shores and on its mountainsides. They look so
snug and so homelike, and at eventide, when everything seems to slumber and the
music of the vesper bells comes stealing over the water, one almost believes
that nowhere else than on the lake of Como can there be found such a paradise
of tranquil repose.
From my window here in Bellaggio I have a view of the other side of the lake
now, which is as beautiful as a picture. A scarred and wrinkled precipice
rises to a height of eighteen hundred feet; on a tiny bench halfway up its vast
wall sits a little snowflake of a church, no bigger than a martin box
apparently; skirting the base of the cliff are a hundred orange groves and
gardens, flecked with glimpses of the white dwellings that are buried in them;
in front, three or four gondolas lie idle upon the water--and in the burnished
mirror of the lake, mountain, chapel, houses, groves, and boats are
counterfeited so brightly and so clearly that one scarce knows where the
reality leaves off and the reflection begins!
The surroundings of this picture are fine. A mile away a grove-plumed
promontory juts far into the lake and glasses its palace in the blue depths; in
midstream a boat is cutting the shining surface and leaving a long track behind
like a ray of light; the mountains beyond are veiled in a dreamy purple haze;
far in the opposite direction a tumbled mass of domes and verdant slopes and
valleys bars the lake, and here indeed does distance lend enchantment to the
view--for on this broad canvas, sun and clouds and the richest of atmospheres
have blended a thousand tints together, and over its surface the filmy lights
and shadows drift, hour after hour, and glorify it with a beauty that seems
reflected out of heaven itself. Beyond all question, this is the most
voluptuous scene we have yet looked upon.
Last night the scenery was striking and picturesque. On the other side crags
and trees and snowy houses were reflected in the lake with a wonderful
distinctness, and streams of light from many a distant window shot far abroad
over the still waters. On this side, near at hand, great mansions, white with
moonlight, glared out from the midst of masses of foliage that lay black and
shapeless in the shadows that fell from the cliff above--and down in the margin
of the lake every feature of the weird vision was faithfully repeated.
Today we have idled through a wonder of a garden attached to a ducal
estate--but enough of description is enough, I judge. I suspect that this was
the same place the gardener's son deceived the Lady of Lyons with, but I do not
know. You may have heard of the passage somewhere:
As I go back in spirit and recall that noble sea, reposing among the snow peaks
six thousand feet above the ocean, the conviction comes strong upon me again
that Como would only seem a bedizened little courtier in that august
presence.
Sorrow and misfortune overtake the legislature that still from year to year
permits Tahoe to retain its unmusical cognomen! Tahoe! It suggests no crystal
waters, no picturesque shores, no sublimity. Tahoe for a sea in the clouds: a
sea that has character and asserts it in solemn calms at times, at times in
savage storms; a sea whose royal seclusion is guarded by a cordon of sentinel
peaks that lift their frosty fronts nine thousand feet above the level world; a
sea whose every aspect is impressive, whose belongings are all beautiful, whose
lonely majesty types the Deity!
Tahoe means grasshoppers. It means grasshopper soup. It is Indian and
suggestive of Indians. They say it is Paiute--possibly it is Digger. I am
satisfied it was named by the Diggers--those degraded savages who roast their
dead relatives, then mix the human grease and ashes of bones with tar and
"gaum" it thick all over their heads and foreheads and ears, and go
caterwauling about the hills and call it mourning. These are the gentry
that named the lake.
People say that Tahoe means "silver lake"--"limpid water"--"falling leaf."
Bosh. It means grasshopper soup, the favorite dish of the Digger tribe,--and
of the Paiutes as well. It isn't worthwhile, in these practical times, for
people to talk about Indian poetry--there never was any in them--except in the
Fenimore Cooper Indians. But they are an extinct tribe that never
existed. I know the Noble Red Man. I have camped with the Indians; I have
been on the warpath with them, taken part in the chase with them--for
grasshoppers; helped them steal cattle; I have roamed with them, scalped them,
had them for breakfast. I would gladly eat the whole race if I had a chance.
But I am growing unreliable. I will return to my comparison of the lakes.
Como is a little deeper than Tahoe, if people here tell the truth. They say it
is eighteen hundred feet deep at this point, but it does not look a dead enough
blue for that. Tahoe is one thousand five hundred and twenty-five feet deep in
the center, by the state geologist's measurement. They say the great peak
opposite this town is five thousand feet high, but I feel sure that three
thousand feet of that statement is--a good honest lie. The lake is a mile wide
here and maintains at>out that width from this point to its northern
extremity--which is distant sixteen miles, from here to its southern
extremity--say fifteen miles--it is not over half a mile wide in any place, I
should think. Its snow-clad mountains one hears so much about are only seen
occasionally, and then in the distance, the Alps. Tahoe is from ten to
eighteen miles wide, and its mountains shut it in like a wall. Their summits
are never free from snow the year round. One thing about it is very strange:
it never has even a skim of ice upon its surface, although lakes in the same
range of mountains, lying in a lower and warmer temperature, freeze over in
winter.
It is cheerful to meet a shipmate in these out-of-the-way places and compare
notes with him. We have found one of ours here--an old soldier of the war, who
is seeking bloodless adventures and rest from his campaigns in these sunny
lands.*
We voyaged by steamer down the Lago di Lecco, through wild
mountain scenery, and by hamlets and villas, and disembarked
at the town of Lecco. They said it was two hours, by carriage
to the ancient city of Bergamo, and that we would arrive there
in good season for the railway train. We got an open barouche
and a wild, boisterous driver, and set out. It was delightful.
We had a fast team and a perfectly smooth road. There were towering
cliffs on our left, and the pretty Lago di Lecco on our right,
and every now and then it rained on us. Just before starting,
the driver picked up, in the street, a stump of a cigar an inch
long, and put it in his mouth. When he had carried it thus about
an hour, I thought it would be only Christian charity to give
him a light. I handed him my cigar, which I had just lit, and
he put it in his mouth and returned his stump to his pocket!
I never saw a more sociable man. At least I never saw a man
who was more sociable on a short acquaintance.
We saw interior Italy, now. The houses were of solid stone,
and not often in good repair. The peasants and their children
were idle, as
a general thing, and the donkeys and chickens made themselves
at home in drawing-room and bed-chamber and were not molested.
The drivers of each and every one of the slow-moving market-carts
we met were stretched in the sun upon their merchandise, sound
asleep. Every three or four hundred yards, it seemed to me,
we came upon the shrine of some saint or other--a rude picture
of him built into a huge cross or a stone pillar by the road-side.--Some
of the pictures of the Saviour were curiosities in their way.
They represented him stretched upon the cross, his countenance
distorted with agony. From the wounds of the crown of thorns;
from the pierced side; from the mutilated hands and feet; from
the scourged body--from every handbreadth of his person streams
of blood were flowing! Such a gory, ghastly spectacle would
frighten the children out of their senses, I should think. There
were some unique auxiliaries to the painting which added to
its spirited effect. These were genuine wooden and iron implements,
and were prominently disposed round about the figure: a bundle
of nails; the hammer to drive them; the sponge; the reed that
supported it; the cup of vinegar; the ladder for the ascent
of the cross; the spear that pierced the Saviour's side. The
crown of thorns was made of real thorns, and was nailed to the
sacred head. In some Italian church-paintings,
even by the old masters, the Saviour and the Virgin wear silver
or gilded crowns that are fastened to the pictured head with
nails. The effect is as grotesque as it is incongruous.
Here and there, on the fronts of roadside inns, we found
huge, coarse frescoes of suffering martyrs like those in the
shrines. It could not have diminished their sufferings any to
be so uncouthly represented. We were in the heart and home of
priestcraft--of a happy, cheerful, contented ignorance, superstition,
degradation, poverty, indolence, and everlasting unaspiring
worthlessness. And we said fervently, It suits these people
precisely; let them enjoy it, along with the other animals,
and Heaven forbid that they be molested. We feel no malice
toward these fumigators.
We passed through the strangest, funniest, undreampt-of
old towns, wedded to the customs and steeped in the dreams of
the elder ages, and perfectly unaware that the world turns round!
And perfectly indifferent, too, as to whether it turns around
or stands still. They have nothing to do but eat and
sleep and sleep and eat, and toil a little when they can get
a friend to stand by and keep them awake. They are not
paid for thinking--they are not paid to fret about the
world's concerns. They were were not respectable people--they
were not worthy people--they were not learned and wise and brilliant
people--but in their breasts, all their stupid lives long, resteth
a peace that passeth understanding! How can men, calling themselves
men, consent to be so degraded and happy.
We whisked by many a gray old medieval castle, clad thick
with ivy that swung its green banners down from towers and tur-
rets where once some old Crusader's flag had floated. The driver
pointed to one of these ancient fortresses, and said, (I translate):
"Do you see that great iron hook that projects from the
wall just under the highest window in the ruined tower?"
We said we could not see it at such a distance, but had
no doubt it was there.
"Well," he said; "there is a legend connected with that
iron hook. Nearly seven hundred years ago, that castle was the
property of the noble Count Luigi Gennaro Guido Alphonso di
Genova--"
"What was his other name?" said Dan.
"He had no other name. The name I have spoken was all
the name he had. He was the son of--"
"Poor but honest parents--that is all right--never mind
the particulars--go on with the legend."
He made a raid on a neighboring baron and completed his
outfit with the booty secured. He then razed the castle to the
ground, massacred the family and moved on. They were hardy fellows
in the grand old days of chivalry. Alas! Those days will never
come again.
Count Luigi grew high in fame in Holy Land. He plunged
into the carnage of a hundred battles, but his good Excalibur
always brought him out alive, albeit often sorely wounded. His
face became browned by exposure to the Syrian sun in long marches;
he suffered hunger and thirst; he pined in prisons, he languished
in loathsome plague-hospitals. And many and many a time he thought
of his loved ones at home, and wondered if all was well with
them. But his heart said, Peace, is not thy brother watching
over thy household?
Forty-two years waxed and waned; the good fight was won;
Godfrey reigned in Jerusalem--the Christian hosts reared the
banner of the cross above the Holy Sepulchre!
Twilight was approaching. Fifty harlequins, in flowing
robes, approached this castle wearily, for they were on foot,
and the dust upon their garments betokened that they had traveled
far. They overtook a peasant, and asked him if it were likely
they could get food and a hospitable bed there, for love of
Christian charity, and if perchance, a moral parlor entertainment
might meet with generous countenance--"for," said they, "this
exhibition hath no feature that could offend the most fastidious
taste."
"Marry," quoth the peasant, "an' it please your worships,
ye had better journey many a good rood hence with your juggling
circus than trust your bones in yonder castle."
"How now, sirrah!" exclaimed the chief monk, "explain
thy ribald speech, or by'r Lady it shall go hard with thee."
"Peace, good mountebank, I did but utter the truth that
was in my heart. San Paolo be my witness that did ye but find
the stout Count Leonardo in his cups, sheer from the castle's
topmost battlements would he hurl ye all! Alack-a-day, the good
Lord Luigi reigns not here in these sad times."
"The good Lord Luigi?"
"Aye, none other, please your worship. In his day, the
poor rejoiced in plenty and the rich he did oppress; taxes were
not known, the fathers of the church waxed fat upon his bounty;
travelers went and came, with none to interfere; and whosoever
would, might tarry in his halls in cordial welcome, and eat
his bread and drink his wine, withal. But woe is me! some two
and forty years agone the good count rode hence to fight for
Holy Cross, and many a year hath flown since word or token have
we had of him. Men say his bones lie bleaching in the fields
of Palestine."
"And now?"
"Now! God 'a mercy, the cruel Leonardo lords it
in the castle. He wrings taxes from the poor; he robs all travelers
that journey by his gates; he spends his days in feuds and murders,
and his nights in revel and debauch; he roasts the fathers of
the church upon his kitchen spits, and enjoyeth the same, calling
it pastime. These thirty years Luigi's countess
hath not been seen by any he in all this land, and many whisper
that she pines in the dungeons of the castle for that she will
not wed with Leonardo, saying her dear lord still liveth and
that she will die ere she prove false to him. They whisper likewise
that her daughter is a prisoner as well. Nay, good jugglers,
seek ye refreshment other wheres. 'Twere better that ye perished
in a Christian way than that ye plunged from off yon dizzy tower.
Give ye good-day."
"God keep ye, gentle knave--farewell."
But heedless of the peasant's warning, the players moved
straightway toward the castle.
Word was brought to Count Leonardo that a company of mountebanks
besought his hospitality.
"'Tis well. Dispose of them in the customary manner. Yet
stay! I have need of them. Let them come hither. Later, cast
them from the battlements--or--how many priests have ye on hand?"
"The day's results are meagre, good my lord. An abbot
and a dozen beggarly friars is all we have."
"Hell and furies! Is the estate going to seed? Send hither
the mountebanks. Afterward, broil them with the priests."
The robed and close-cowled harlequins entered. The grim
Leonardo sate in state at the head of his council board. Ranged
up and down the hall on either hand stood near a hundred men-at-arms.
"Ha, villains!" quoth the count, "What can ye do to earn
the hospitality ye crave."
"Dread lord and mighty, crowded audiences have greeted
our humble efforts with rapturous applause. Among our body count
we the versatile and talented Ugolino; the justly celebrated
Rodolpho; the gifted and accomplished Roderigo; the management
have spared neither pains nor expense--"
"S'death! What can ye do? Curb thy prating tongue."
"Good my lord, in acrobatic feats, in practice with the
dumb-bells, in balancing and ground and lofty tumbling are we
versed--and sith your highness asketh me, I venture here to
publish that in the truly marvelous and entertaining Zampillaerostation--"
"Gag him! throttle him! Body of Bacchus! am I a dog that
I am to be assailed with polysyllabled blasphemy like to this?
But hold! Lucretia, Isabel, stand forth! Sirrah, behold this
dame, this weeping wench. The first I marry, within the hour;
the other shall dry her tears or feed the vultures. Thou and
thy vagabonds shall crown the wedding with thy merry-makings.
Fetch hither the priest!"
The dame sprang toward the chief player.
"O, save me!" she cried; "save me from a fate far worse
than death! Behold these sad eyes, these sunken cheeks, this
withered frame! See thou the wreck this fiend hath made, and
let thy heart be moved with pity! Look upon this damosel; note
her wasted form, her halting step, her bloomless cheeks where
youth should blush and happiness exult in smiles! Hear us and
have compassion. This monster was my husband's brother. He who
should have been our shield against all harm, hath kept us shut
within the noisome caverns of his donjon-keep for lo these thirty
years. And for what crime? None other than that I would not
belie my troth, root out my strong love for him who marches
with the legions of the cross in Holy Land, (for O, he is not
dead!) and wed with him! Save us, O, save thy persecuted suppliants!"
She flung herself at his feet and clasped his knees.
"Ha!-ha!-ha!" shouted the brutal Leonardo. "Priest, to
thy work!" and he dragged the weeping dame from her refuge.
"Say, once for all, will you be mine?--for by my halidome,
that breath that uttereth thy refusal shall be thy last on earth!"
"NE-VER?"
"Then die!" and the sword leaped from its scabbard.
Quicker than thought, quicker than the lightning's flash,
fifty monkish habits disappeared, and fifty knights in splendid
armor stood revealed! fifty falchions gleamed in air above the
men-at-arms, and brighter, fiercer than them all, flamed Excalibur
aloft, and cleaving downward struck the brutal Leonardo's weapon
from his grasp!
"A Luigi to the rescue! Whoop!"
"A Leonardo! tare an ouns!"
"Oh, God, Oh, God, my husband!"
"Oh, God, Oh, God, my wife!"
"My father!"
"My precious!" [Tableau.]
Count Luigi bound his usurping brother hand and foot.
The practiced
knights from Palestine made holyday sport of carving the awkward
men-at-arms into chops and steaks. The victory was complete.
Happiness reigned. The knights all married the daughter. Joy!
wassail! finis!
"But what did they do with the wicked brother?"
"Oh nothing--only hanged him on that iron hook I was speaking
of. By the chin."
"As how?"
"Passed it up through his gills into his mouth."
"Leave him there?"
"Couple of years."
"Ah--is--is he dead?"
"Six hundred and fifty years ago, or such a matter."
"Splendid legend--splendid lie--drive on."
We reached the quaint old fortified city of Bergamo, the
renowned in history, some three-quarters of an hour before the
train was ready to start. The place has thirty or forty thousand
inhabitants and is remarkable for being the birthplace of harlequin.
When we discovered that, that legend of our driver took to itself
a new interest in our eyes.
Rested and refreshed, we took the rail happy and contented.
I shall not tarry to speak of the handsome Lago di Gardi; its
stately castle that holds in its stony bosom the secrets of
an age so remote that even tradition goeth not back to it;
the imposing mountain scenery that ennobles the landscape thereabouts;
nor yet of ancient Padua or haughty Verona; nor of their Montagues
and Capulets, their famous balconies and tombs of Juliet and
Romeo et al., but hurry straight to the ancient city
of the sea, the widowed bride of the Adriatic. It was a long,
long ride. But toward evening, as we sat silent and hardly conscious
of where we were--subdued into that meditative calm that comes
so surely after a conversational storm--some one shouted--
"VENICE!"
And sure enough, afloat on the placid sea a league away,
lay a great city, with its towers and domes and steeples drowsing
in a golden mist of sunset.
This Venice, which was a haughty. invincible, magnificent
Republic for nearly fourteen
hundred years; whose armies compelled the world's applause whenever
and wherever they battled;
whose navies well nigh held dominion of the seas, and whose merchant
fleets whitened the
remotest oceans with their sails and loaded these piers with
the products of every clime, is fallen a
prey to poverty, neglect and melancholy decay. Six hundred years
ago, Venice was the Autocrat
of Commerce; her mart was the great commercial centre, the distributing-house
from whence the
enormous trade of the Orient was spread abroad over the Western
world. To-day her piers are
deserted, her warehouses are empty, her merchant fleets are vanished,
her armies and her navies
are but memories. Her glory is departed, and with her crumbling
grandeur of wharves and palaces
about her she sits among her stagnant lagoons, forlorn and beggared,
forgotten of the world. She
that in her palmy days commanded the commerce of a hemisphere
and made the weal or woe of
nations with a beck of her puissant finger, is become the humblest
among the peoples of the
earth,--a peddler of glass beads for women, and trifling toys
and trinkets for school-girls and
children.
The venerable Mother of the Republics is scarce a fit
subject for flippant speech or the
idle gossipping of tourists. It seems a sort of sacrilege to
disturb the glamour of old romance that
pictures her to us softly from afar off as through a tinted mist,
and curtains her ruin and her
desolation from our view. One ought, indeed, to turn away from
her rags, her poverty and her
humiliation, and think of her only as she was when she
sunk the fleets of Charlemagne; when she humbled Frederick Barbarossa
or waved her victorious
banners above the battlements of Constantinople.
We reached Venice at eight in the evening, and entered
a hearse belonging to the Grand
Hotel d'Europe. At any rate, it was more like a hearse than any
thing else, though to speak by the
card, it was a gondola. And this was the storied gondola of Venice!--the
fairy boat in which the
princely cavaliers of the olden time were wont to cleave the
waters of the moonlit canals and look
the eloquence of love into the soft eyes of patrician beauties,
while the gay gondolier in silken
doublet touched his guitar and sang as only gondoliers can sing!
This the famed gondola and this
the gorgeous gondolier!--the one an inky, rusty old canoe with
a sable hearse-body clapped on to
the middle of it, and the other a mangy, barefooted guttersnipe
with a portion of his raiment on
exhibition which should have been sacred from public scrutiny.
Presently, as he turned a corner
and shot his hearse into a dismal ditch between two long rows
of towering, untenanted buildings,
the gay gondolier began to sing, true to the traditions of his
race. I stood it a little while. Then I
said:
"Now, here, Roderigo Gonzales Michael Angelo, I'm a pilgrim,
and I'm a stranger, but I
am not going to have my feelings lacerated by any such caterwauling
as that. If that goes on, one
of us has got to take water. It is enough that my cherished dreams
of Venice have been blighted
forever as to the romantic gondola and the gorgeous gondolier;
this system of destruction shall go
no farther; I will accept the hearse, under protest, and you
may fly your flag of truce in peace, but
here I register a dark and bloody oath that you shan't sing.
Another yelp, and overboard you go."
I began to feel that the old Venice of song and story
had departed forever. But I was too
hasty. In a few minutes we swept gracefully out into the Grand
Canal, and under the mellow
moonlight the Venice of poetry and romance stood revealed. Right
from the water's edge rose
long lines of stately palaces of marble; gondolas were gliding
swiftly hither and
thither and disappearing suddenly through unsuspected gates and
alleys; ponderous stone bridges
threw their shadows athwart the glittering waves. There was life
and motion everywhere, and yet
everywhere there was a hush, a stealthy sort of stillness, that
was suggestive of secret enterprises
of bravoes and of lovers; and clad half in moonbeams and half
in mysterious shadows, the grim
old mansions of the Republic seemed to have an expression about
them of having an eye out for
just such enterprises as these at that same moment. Music came
floating over the waters--Venice
was complete.
It was a beautiful picture--very soft and dreamy and beautiful.
But what was this Venice
to compare with the Venice of midnight? Nothing. There was a
fête--a grand fête in
honor of some saint who had been instrumental in checking the
cholera three hundred years ago,
and all Venice was abroad on the water. It was no common affair,
for the Venetians did not know
how soon they might need the saint's services again, now that
the cholera was spreading every
where. So in one vast space--say a third of a mile wide and two
miles long--were collected two
thousand gondolas, and every one of them had from two to ten,
twenty and even thirty colored
lanterns suspended about it, and from four to a dozen occupants.
Just as far as the eye could
reach, these painted lights were massed together--like a vast
garden of many-colored flowers,
except that these blossoms were never still; they were ceaselessly
gliding in and out, and mingling
together, and seducing you into bewildering attempts to follow
their mazy evolutions. Here and
there a strong red, green, or blue glare from a rocket that was
struggling to get away, splendidly
illuminated all the boats around it. Every gondola that swam
by us, with its crescents and
pyramids and circles of colored lamps hung aloft, and lighting
up the faces of the young and the
sweet-scented and lovely below, was a picture; and the reflections
of those lights, so long, so
slender, so numberless, so many-colored and so distorted and
wrinkled by the waves, was a
picture likewise, and one that was enchantingly beautiful. Many
and many a party of young ladies
and gentlemen had their state gondolas hand-
somely decorated, and ate supper on board, bringing their swallow-tailed,
white-cravatted varlets
to wait upon them, and having their tables tricked out as if
for a bridal supper. They had brought
along the costly globe lamps from their drawing-rooms, and the
lace and silken curtains from the
same places, I suppose. And they had also brought pianos and
guitars, and they played and sang
operas, while the plebeian paper-lanterned gondolas from the
suburbs and the back alleys crowded
around to stare and listen.
There was music every where--chorusses, string bands,
brass bands, flutes, every thing. I
was so surrounded, walled in, with music, magnificence and loveliness,
that I became inspired
with the spirit of the scene, and sang one tune myself. However,
when I observed that the other
gondolas had sailed away, and my gondolier was preparing to go
overboard, I stopped.
The fête was magnificent. They kept it up the whole
night long, and I never
enjoyed myself better than I did while it lasted.
What a funny old city this Queen of the Adriatic is! Narrow
streets, vast, gloomy marble
palaces, black with the corroding damps of centuries, and all
partly submerged; no dry
land visible any where, and no sidewalks worth mentioning; if
you want to go to church, to the
theatre, or to the restaurant, you must call a gondola. It must
be a paradise for cripples, for verily
a man has no use for legs here.
For a day or two the place looked so like an overflowed
Arkansas town, because of its
currentless waters laving the very doorsteps of all the houses,
and the cluster of boats made fast
under the windows, or skimming in and out of the alleys and by-ways,
that I could not get rid of
the impression that there was nothing the matter here but a spring
freshet, and that the river
would fall in a few weeks and leave a dirty high-water mark on
the houses, and the streets full of
mud and rubbish.
In the glare of day, there is little poetry about Venice,
but under the charitable moon her
stained palaces are white again, their battered sculptures are
hidden in shadows, and the old city
seems crowned once more with the grandeur that was hers five
hundred years ago. It is easy,
then, in fancy, to people these silent canals with plumed gallants
and fair ladies--with Shylocks in
gaberdine and sandals, venturing loans upon the rich argosies
of Venetian commerce--with
Othellos and Desdemonas, with Iagos and Roderigos--with noble
fleets and victorious legions
returning from the wars. In the treacherous sunlight we see Venice
decayed, forlorn,
poverty-stricken, and commerceless--forgotten and utterly insignificant.
But in the moonlight, her
fourteen centuries of greatness fling their glories about her,
and once more is she the princeliest
among the nations of the earth.
What would one naturally wish to see first in Venice? The
Bridge of Sighs, of course--and
next the Church and the Great Square of St. Mark, the Bronze
Horses, and the famous Lion of St.
Mark.
We intended to go to the Bridge of Sighs, but happened
into the Ducal Palace first--a
building which necessarily figures largely in Venetian poetry
and tradition. In the Senate Chamber
of the ancient Republic we wearied our eyes with staring at acres
of historical paintings by
Tintoretto and Paul Veronese, but nothing struck us forcibly
except the one thing that strikes
all strangers forcibly--a black square in the midst of
a gallery of portraits. In one long row,
around the great hall, were painted the portraits of the Doges
of Venice (venerable fellows, with
flowing white beards, for of the three hundred Senators eligible
to the office, the oldest was
usually chosen Doge,) and each had its complimentary inscription
attached--till you came to the
place that should have had Marino Faliero's picture in it, and
that was blank and black--blank,
except that it bore a terse inscription, saying that the conspirator
had died for his crime. It seemed
cruel to keep that pitiless inscription still staring from the
walls after the unhappy wretch had been
in his grave five hundred years.
At the head of the Giant's Staircase, where Marino Faliero
was beheaded, and where the
Doges were crowned in ancient times, two small slits in the stone
wall were pointed out--two
harmless, insignificant orifices that would never attract a stranger's
attention--yet these were the
terrible Lions' Mouths! The heads were gone (knocked off by the
French during their occupation
of Venice,) but these were the throats, down which went the anonymous
accusation, thrust in
secretly at dead of night by an enemy, that doomed many an innocent
man to walk the Bridge of
Sighs and descend into the dungeon which
none entered and hoped to see the sun again. This was in the
old days when the Patricians alone
governed Venice--the common herd had no vote and no voice. There
were one thousand five
hundred Patricians; from these, three hundred Senators were chosen;
from the Senators a Doge
and a Council of Ten were selected, and by secret ballot the
Ten chose from their own number a
Council of Three. All these were Government spies, then, and
every spy was under surveillance
himself--men spoke in whispers in Venice, and no man trusted
his neighbor--not always his own
brother. No man knew who the Council of Three were--not even
the Senate, not even the Doge;
the members of that dread tribunal met at night in a chamber
to themselves, masked, and robed
from head to foot in scarlet cloaks, and did not even know each
other, unless by voice. It was
their duty to judge heinous political crimes, and from their
sentence there was no appeal. A nod to
the executioner was sufficient. The doomed man was marched down
a hall and out at a door-way
into the covered Bridge of Sighs, through it and into the dungeon
and unto his death. At no time
in his transit was he visible to any save his conductor. If a
man had an enemy in those old days,
the cleverest thing he could do was to slip a note for the Council
of Three into the Lion's mouth,
saying "This man is plotting against the Government." If the
awful Three found no proof, ten to
one they would drown him anyhow, because he was a deep rascal,
since his plots were unsolvable.
Masked judges and masked executioners, with unlimited power,
and no appeal from their
judgements, in that hard, cruel age, were not likely to be lenient
with men they suspected yet
could not convict.
We walked through the hall of the Council of Ten, and
presently entered the infernal den
of the Council of Three.
The table around which they had sat was there still, and
likewise the stations where the
masked inquisitors and executioners formerly stood, frozen, upright
and silent, till they received a
bloody order, and then, without a word, moved off like the inexorable
machines they were, to
carry it out. The frescoes on the walls were startlingly suited
to the place. In
all the other saloons, the halls, the great state chambers of
the palace, the walls and ceilings were
bright with gilding, rich with elaborate carving, and resplendent
with gallant pictures of Venetian
victories in war, and Venetian display in foreign courts, and
hallowed with portraits of the Virgin,
the Saviour of men, and the holy saints that preached the Gospel
of Peace upon earth--but here, in
dismal contrast, were none but pictures of death and dreadful
suffering!--not a living figure but
was writhing in torture, not a dead one but was smeared with
blood, gashed with wounds, and
distorted with the agonies that had taken away its life!
From the palace to the gloomy prison is but a step--one
might almost jump across the
narrow canal that intervenes. The ponderous stone Bridge of Sighs
crosses it at the second story--a bridge that is a covered tunnel--you
can not be seen when you walk in it. It is partitioned
lengthwise, and through one compartment walked such as bore light
sentences in ancient times,
and through the other marched sadly the wretches whom the Three
had doomed to lingering
misery and utter oblivion in the dungeons, or to sudden and mysterious
death. Down below the
level of the water, by the light of smoking torches, we were
shown the damp, thick-walled cells
where many a proud patrician's life was eaten away by the long-drawn
miseries of solitary
imprisonment--without light, air, books; naked, unshaven, uncombed,
covered with vermin; his
useless tongue forgetting its office, with none to speak to;
the days and nights of his life no longer
marked, but merged into one eternal eventless night; far away
from all cheerful sounds, buried in
the silence of a tomb; forgotten by his helpless friends, and
his fate a dark mystery to them
forever; losing his own memory at last, and knowing no more who
he was or how he came there;
devouring the loaf of bread and drinking the water that were
thrust into the cell by unseen hands,
and troubling his worn spirit no more with hopes and fears and
doubts and longings to be free;
ceasing to scratch vain prayers and complainings on walls where
none, not even himself, could see
them, and resigning himself to hopeless apathy, driveling child-
ishness, lunacy! Many and many a sorrowful story like this these
stony walls could tell if they
could but speak.
In a little narrow corridor, near by, they showed us where
many a prisoner, after lying in
the dungeons until he was forgotten by all save his persecutors,
was brought by masked
executioners and garroted, or sewed up in a sack, passed through
a little window to a boat, at
dead of night, and taken to some remote spot and drowned.
They used to show to visitors the implements of torture
wherewith the Three were wont
to worm secrets out of the accused--villainous machines for crushing
thumbs; the stocks where a
prisoner sat immovable while water fell drop by drop upon his
head till the torture was more than
humanity could bear; and a devilish contrivance of steel, which
inclosed a prisoner's head like a
shell, and crushed it slowly by means of a screw. It bore the
stains of blood that had trickled
through its joints long ago, and on one side it had a projection
whereon the torturer rested his
elbow comfortably and bent down his ear to catch the moanings
of the sufferer perishing within.
Of course we went to see the venerable relic of the ancient
glory of Venice, with its
pavements worn and broken by the passing feet of a thousand years
of plebeians and patricians--The Cathedral of St. Mark. It is
built entirely of precious marbles, brought from the Orient--nothing
in its composition is domestic. Its hoary traditions make it
an object of absorbing interest
to even the most careless stranger, and thus far it had interest
for me; but no further. I could not
go into ecstacies over its coarse mosaics, its unlovely Byzantine
architecture, or its five hundred
curious interior columns from as many distant quarries. Every
thing was worn out--every block of
stone was smooth and almost shapeless with the polishing hands
and shoulders of loungers who
devoutly idled here in by-gone centuries and have died and gone
to the dev--no, simply died, I
mean.
Under the altar repose the ashes of St. Mark--and Matthew,
Luke and John, too, for all I
know. Venice reveres those relics above all things earthly. For
fourteen hundred years St. Mark
has been her patron saint. Every thing about the city
seems to be named after him or so named as to refer to him in
some way--so named, or some
purchase rigged in some way to scrape a sort of hurrahing acquaintance
with him. That seems to
be the idea. To be on good terms with St. Mark, seems to be the
very summit of Venetian
ambition. They say St. Mark had a tame lion, and used to travel
with him--and every where that
St. Mark went, the lion was sure to go. It was his protector,
his friend, his librarian. And so the
Winged Lion of St. Mark, with the open Bible under his paw, is
a favorite emblem in the grand
old city. It casts its shadow from the most ancient pillar in
Venice, in the Grand Square of St.
Mark, upon the throngs of free citizens below, and has so done
for many a long century. The
winged lion is found every where--and doubtless here, where the
winged lion is, no harm can
come.
St. Mark died at Alexandria, in Egypt. He was martyred,
I think. However, that has
nothing to do with my legend. About the founding of the city
of Venice--say four hundred and
fifty years after Christ--(for Venice is much younger than any
other Italian city,) a priest dreamed
that an angel told him that until the remains of St. Mark were
brought to Venice, the city could
never rise to high distinction among the nations; that the body
must be captured, brought to the
city, and a magnificent church built over it; and that if ever
the Venetians allowed the Saint to be
removed from his new resting-place, in that day Venice would
perish from off the face of the the
earth. The priest proclaimed his dream, and forthwith Venice
set about procuring the corpse of St.
Mark. One expedition after another tried and failed, but the
project was never abandoned during
four hundred years. At last it was secured by stratagem, in the
year eight hundred and something.
The commander of a Venetian expedition disguised himself, stole
the bones, separated them, and
packed them in vessels filled with lard. The religion of Mahomet
causes its devotees to abhor
anything that is in the nature of pork, and so when the Christian
was stopped by the officers at the
gates of the city, they only glanced once into his precious baskets,
then turned up their noses at
the unholy lard, and let him go. The bones were buried in the
vaults of the grand cathedral, which
had been waiting long years to receive them, and thus the safety
and the greatness of Venice were
secured. And to this day there be those in Venice who believe
that if those holy ashes were stolen
away, the ancient city would vanish like a dream, and its foundations
be buried forever in the
unremembering sea.
The Venetian gondola is as free and graceful, in its gliding
movement, as a serpent. It is twenty or thirty feet long, and
is narrow and deep, like a canoe; its sharp bow and stern sweep
upward from the water like the horns of a crescent with the
abruptness of the curve slightly modified.
The bow is ornamented with a steel comb with a battle-ax
attachment which threatens to cut passing boats in two occasionally,
but never does. The gondola is painted black because in the
zenith of Venetian magnificence the gondolas became too gorgeous
altogether, and the Senate decreed that all such display must
cease, and a solemn, unembellished black be substituted. If
the truth were known, it would doubtless appear that rich plebeians
grew too prominent in their affectation of patrician show on
the Grand Canal, and required a wholesome snubbing. Reverence
for the hallowed Past and its traditions keeps the dismal fashion
in force now that the compulsion exists no longer. So let it
remain. It is the color of mourning. Venice mourns. The stern
of the boat is decked over and the gondolier stands there. He
uses a single oar--a long blade, of course, for he stands nearly
erect. A wooden peg, a foot and a half high, with two slight
crooks or curves in one side of it and one in the other, projects
above the starboard gunwale. Against that peg the gondolier
takes a purchase with his oar, changing it at intervals to the
other side of the peg or dropping it into another of the crooks,
as the steering of the craft may demand--and how in the world
he can back and fill, shoot straight ahead, or flirt suddenly
around a corner, and make the oar stay in those insignificant
notches, is a problem to me and a never diminishing matter of
interest. I am afraid I study the gondolier's marvelous skill
more than I do the sculptured palaces we glide among. He cuts
a corner so closely, now and then, or misses another gondola
by such an imperceptible hair-breadth that I feel myself "scrooching,"
as the children say, just as one does when a buggy wheel grazes
his elbow. But he makes all his calculations with the nicest
precision, and goes darting in and out among a Broadway confusion
of busy craft with the easy confidence of the educated hackman.
He never makes a mistake.
Sometimes we go flying down the great canals at such a
gait that we can get only the merest glimpses into front doors,
and again, in obscure alleys in the suburbs, we put on a solemnity
suited to the silence, the mildew, the stagnant waters, the
clinging weeds, the deserted houses and the general lifelessness
of the place, and move to the spirit of grave meditation.
The gondolier is a picturesque rascal for all he
wears no satin harness, no plumed bonnet, no silken tights.
His attitude is stately; he is lithe and supple; all his movements
are full of grace. When his long canoe, and his fine figure,
towering from its high perch on the stern, are cut against the
evening sky, they make a picture that is very novel and striking
to a foreign eye.
We sit in the cushioned carriage-body of a cabin, with
the curtains drawn, and smoke, or read, or look out upon the
passing boats, the houses, the bridges, the people, and enjoy
ourselves much more than we could in a buggy jolting over our
cobble-stone pavements at home. This is the gentlest, pleasantest
locomotion we have ever known.
But it seems queer--ever so queer--to see a boat doing
duty as a private carriage. We see business men come to the front
door, step into a gondola, instead of a street car, and go off
down town to the counting-room.
We see visiting young ladies stand on the stoop, and laugh,
and kiss good-bye, and flirt their fans and say "Come soon--now
do--you've been just as mean as ever you can be--mother's
dying to see you--and we've moved into the new house, O such
a love of a place!--so convenient to the post office and the
church, and the Young Men's Christian Association; and we do
have such fishing, and such carrying on,
and such swimming-matches in the back yard--Oh, you must
come--no distance at all, and if you go down through by St.
Mark's and the Bridge of Sighs, and cut through the alley and
come up by the church of Santa Maria dei Frari, and into the
Grand Canal, there isn't a bit of current--now do
come, Sally Maria--by-bye!" and then the little humbug trips
down the steps, jumps into the gondola, says, under her breath,
"Disagreeable old thing, I hope she won't!" goes skimming
away, round the corner; and the other girl slams the street
door and says, "Well, that infliction's over, any way,--but
I suppose I've got to go and see her--tiresome stuck-up thing!"
Human nature appears to be just the same, all over the world.
We see the diffident young man, mild of moustache, affluent
of hair, indigent of brain, elegant of costume, drive up to
her father's mansion, tell his hackman to bail out and
wait, start fearfully up the steps and meet "the old gentleman"
right on the threshold!--hear him ask what street the new British
Bank is in--as if that were what he came for--and then
bounce into his boat and skurry away with his coward heart in
his boots!--see him come sneaking around the corner again, directly,
with a crack of the curtain open toward the old gentleman's
disappearing gondola, and out scampers his Susan with a flock
of little Italian endearments fluttering from her lips, and
goes to drive with him in the watery avenues down toward the
Rialto.
We see the ladies go out shopping, in the most natural
way, and flit from street to street and from store to store,
just in the good old fashion, except that they leave the gondola,
instead of a private carriage, waiting at the curbstone a couple
of hours for them,--waiting while they make the nice young clerks
pull down tons and tons of silks and velvets and moire antiques
and those things; and then they buy a paper of pins and go paddling
away to confer the rest of their disastrous patronage on some
other firm. And they always have their purchases sent home just
in the good old way. Human nature is very much the same
all over the world; and it is so like my dear native
home to see a Venetian lady go into a
store and buy ten cents' worth of blue ribbon and have it sent
home in a scow. Ah, it is these little touches of nature that
move one to tears in these far-off foreign lands.
We see little girls and boys go out in gondolas with their
nurses, for an airing. We see staid families, with prayer-book
and beads, enter the gondola dressed in their Sunday best, and
float away to church. And at midnight we see the theatre break
up and discharge its swarm of hilarious youth and beauty; we
hear the cries of the hackman-gondoliers, and behold the struggling
crowd jump aboard, and the black multitude of boats go skimming
down the moonlit avenues; we see them separate here and there,
and disappear up divergent streets; we hear the faint sounds
of laughter and of shouted farewells floating up out of the
distance; and then, the strange pageant being gone, we have
lonely stretches of glittering water--of stately buildings--of
blotting shadows--of weird stone faces creeping into the moonlight--of
deserted bridges--of motionless boats at anchor. And over all
broods that mysterious stillness, that stealthy quiet, that
befits so well this old dreaming Venice.
We have been pretty much every where in our gondola. We
have bought beads and photographs in the stores, and wax matches
in the Great Square of St. Mark. The last remark suggests a
digression. Every body goes to this vast square in the evening.
The military bands play in the centre of it and countless couples
of ladies and gentlemen promenade up and down on either side,
and platoons of them are constantly drifting away toward the
old Cathedral, and by the venerable column with the Winged Lion
of St. Mark on its top, and out to where the boats lie moored;
and other platoons are as constantly arriving from the gondolas
and joining the great throng. Between the promenaders and the
side-walks are seated hundreds and hundreds of people at small
tables, smoking and taking granita, (a first cousin to
ice-cream;) on the side-walks are more employing themselves
in the same way. The shops in the first floor of the tall rows
of buildings that wall in three sides of the square are brilliantly
lighted,
the air is filled with music and merry voices, and altogether
the scene is as bright and spirited and full of cheerfulness
as any man could desire. We enjoy it thoroughly. Very many of
the young women are exceedingly pretty and dress with rare good
taste. We are gradually and laboriously learning the ill-manners
of staring them unflinchingly in the face--not because such
conduct is agreeable to us, but because it is the custom of
the country and they say the girls like it. We wish to learn
all the curious, outlandish ways of all the different countries,
so that we can "show off" and astonish people when we get home.
We wish to excite the envy of our untraveled friends with our
strange foreign fashions which we can't shake off. All our passengers
are paying strict attention to this thing, with the end in view
which I have mentioned. The gentle reader will never, never
know what a consummate ass he can become, until he goes abroad.
I speak now, of course, in the supposition that the gentle reader
has not been abroad, and therefore is not already a consummate
ass. If the case be otherwise, I beg his pardon and extend to
him the cordial hand of fellowship and call him brother. I shall
always delight to meet an ass after my own heart when I shall
have finished my travels.
On this subject let me remark that there are Americans
abroad in Italy who have actually forgotten their mother tongue
in three months--forgot it in France. They can not even write
their address in English in a hotel register. I append these
evidences, which I copied verbatim from the register
of a hotel in a certain Italian city:
I love this sort of people. A lady passenger of ours tells
of a fellow-citizen of hers who spent eight weeks in Paris and
then returned home and addressed his dearest old bosom
friend Herbert as Mr. "Er-bare!" He apologized, though, and said,
"'Pon my soul it is aggravating, but I cahn't help it--I have
got so used to speaking nothing but French, my dear Erbare--damme
there it goes again!--got so used to French pronunciation that
I cahn't get rid of it--it is positively annoying, I assure
you." This entertaining idiot, whose name was Gordon, allowed
himself to be hailed three times in the street before he paid
any attention, and then begged a thousand pardons and said he
had grown so accustomed to hearing himself addressed as M'sieu
Gor-r-dong," with a roll to the r, that he had forgotten
the legitimate sound of his name! He wore a rose in his button-hole;
he gave the French salutation--two flips of the hand in front
of the face; he called Paris Pairree in ordinary English
conversation; he carried envelopes bearing foreign postmarks
protruding from his breast-pocket; he cultivated a moustache
and imperial, and did what else he could to suggest to the beholder
his pet fancy that he resembled Louis Napoleon--and in a spirit
of thankfulness which is entirely unaccountable, considering
the slim foundation there was for it, he praised his Maker that
he was as he was, and went on enjoying his little life
just the same as if he really had been deliberately designed
and erected by the great Architect of the Universe.
Think of our Whitcombs, and our Ainsworths and our Williamses
writing themselves down in dilapidated French in foreign hotel
registers! We laugh at Englishmen, when we are at home, for
sticking so sturdily to their national ways and customs, but
we look back upon it from abroad very forgivingly. It is not
pleasant to see an American thrusting his nationality forward
obtrusively in a foreign land, but Oh, it is
pitiable to see him making of himself a thing that is neither
male nor female, neither fish, flesh, nor fowl--a poor, miserable,
hermaphrodite Frenchman!
Among a long list of churches, art galleries, and such
things, visited by us in Venice, I shall mention only one--the
church of Santa Maria dei Frari. It is about five hundred years
old, I believe, and stands on twelve hundred thousand piles.
In it lie the body of Canova and the heart of Titian, under
magnificent monuments. Titian died at the age of almost one
hundred years. A plague which swept away fifty thousand lives
was raging at the time, and there is notable evidence of the
reverence in which the great painter was held, in the fact that
to him alone the state permitted a public funeral in all that
season of terror and death.
In this church, also, is a monument to the doge Foscari,
whose name a once resident of Venice, Lord Byron, has made permanently
famous.
The monument to the doge Giovanni Pesaro, in this church,
is a curiosity in the way of mortuary adornment. It is eighty
feet high and is fronted like some fantastic pagan temple. Against
it stand four colossal Nubians, as black as night, dressed in
white marble garments. The black legs are bare, and through
rents in sleeves and breeches, the skin, of shiny black marble,
shows. The artist was as ingenious as his funeral designs were
absurd. There are two bronze skeletons bearing scrolls, and
two great dragons uphold the sarcophagus. On high, amid all
this grotesqueness, sits the departed doge.
In the conventual buildings attached to this church are
the state archives of Venice. We did not see them, but they
are said to number millions of documents. "They are the records
of centuries of the most watchful, observant and suspicious
government that ever existed--in which every thing was written
down and nothing spoken out." They fill nearly three hundred
rooms. Among them are manuscripts from the archives of nearly
two thousand families, monasteries and convents. The secret
history of Venice for a thousand years
is here--its plots, its hidden trials, its assassinations, its
commissions of hireling spies and masked bravoes--food, ready
to hand, for a world of dark and mysterious romances.
Yes, I think we have seen all of Venice. We have seen,
in these old churches, a profusion of costly and elaborate sepulchre
ornamentation such as we never dreampt of before. We have stood
in the dim religious light of these hoary sanctuaries, in the
midst of long ranks of dusty monuments and effigies of the great
dead of Venice, until we seemed drifting back, back, back, into
the solemn past, and looking upon the scenes and mingling with
the peoples of a remote antiquity. We have been in a half-waking
sort of dream all the time. I do not know how else to describe
the feeling. A part of our being has remained still in the nineteenth
century, while another part of it has seemed in some unaccountable
way walking among the phantoms of the tenth.
We have seen famous pictures until our eyes are weary
with looking at them and refuse to find interest in them any
longer. And what wonder, when there are twelve hundred pictures
by Palma the Younger in Venice and fifteen hundred by Tintoretto?
And behold there are Titians and the works of other artists
in proportion. We have seen Titian's celebrated Cain and Abel,
his David and Goliath, his Abraham's Sacrifice. We have seen
Tintoretto's monster picture, which is seventy-four feet long
and I do not know how many feet high, and
thought it a very commodious picture. We have seen pictures of
martyrs enough, and saints enough, to regenerate the world.
I ought not to confess it, but still, since one has no opportunity
in America to acquire a critical judgment in art, and since
I could not hope to become educated in it in Europe in a few
short weeks, I may therefore as well acknowledge with such apologies
as may be due, that to me it seemed that when I had seen one
of these martyrs I had seen them all. They all have a marked
family resemblance to each other, they dress alike, in coarse
monkish robes and sandals, they are all bald headed, they all
stand in about the same attitude, and without exception they
are gazing heavenward with countenances which the Ainsworths,
the Mortons and the Williamses, et fils, inform me are
full of "expression." To me there is nothing tangible about
these imaginary portraits, nothing that I can grasp and take
a living interest in. If great Titian had only been gifted with
prophecy, and had skipped a martyr, and gone over to England
and painted a portrait of Shakspeare, even as a youth, which
we could all have confidence in now, the world down to the latest
generations would have forgiven him the lost martyr in the rescued
seer. I think posterity could have spared one more martyr for
the sake of a great historical picture of Titian's time and
painted by his brush--such as Columbus returning in chains from
the discovery of a world, for instance. The old masters did
paint some Venetian historical pictures, and these we did not
tire of looking at, notwithstanding representations of the formal
introduction of defunct doges to the Virgin Mary in regions
beyond the clouds clashed rather harshly with the proprieties,
it seemed to us.
But humble as we are, and unpretending, in the matter
of art, our researches among the painted monks and martyrs have
not been wholly in vain. We have striven hard to learn. We have
had some success. We have mastered some things, possibly of
trifling import in the eyes of the learned, but to us they give
pleasure, and we take as much pride in our little acquirements
as do others who have learned far more, and we
love to display them full as well. When we see a monk going about
with a lion and looking tranquilly up to heaven, we know that
that is St. Mark. When we see a monk with a book and a pen,
looking tranquilly up to heaven, trying to think of a word,
we know that that is St. Matthew. When we see a monk sitting
on a rock, looking tranquilly up to heaven, with a human skull
beside him, and without other baggage, we know that that is
St. Jerome. Because we know that he always went flying light
in the matter of baggage. When we see a party looking tranquilly
up to heaven, unconscious that his body is shot through and
through with arrows, we know that that is St. Sebastian. When
we see other monks looking tranquilly up to heaven, but having
no trade-mark, we always ask who those parties are. We do this
because we humbly wish to learn. We have seen thirteen thousand
St. Jeromes, and twenty-two thousand St. Marks, and sixteen
thousand St. Matthews, and sixty thousand St. Sebastians, and
four millions of assorted monks, undesignated, and we
feel encouraged to believe that when we have seen some more of
these various pictures, and had a larger experience, we shall
begin to take an absorbing interest in them like our cultivated
countrymen from Amerique.
Now it does give me real pain to speak in this almost
unappreciative way of the old masters and their martyrs, because
good friends of mine in the ship--friends who do thoroughly
and conscientiously appreciate them and are in every way competent
to discriminate between good pictures and inferior ones--have
urged me for my own sake not to make public the fact that I
lack this appreciation and this critical discrimination myself.
I believe that what I have written and may still write about
pictures will give them pain, and I am honestly sorry for it.
I even promised that I would hide my uncouth sentiments in my
own breast. But alas! I never could keep a promise. I do not
blame myself for this weakness, because the fault must lie in
my physical organization. It is likely that such a very liberal
amount of space was given to the organ which enables me to make
promises, that the organ which should enable me to keep them
was crowded out. But I grieve not. I like no half-way things.
I had rather have one faculty nobly developed than two faculties
of mere ordinary capacity. I certainly meant to keep that promise,
but I find I can not do
it. It is impossible to travel through Italy without speaking
of pictures, and can I see them through others' eyes?
If I did not so delight in the grand pictures that are
spread before me every day of my life by that monarch of all
the old masters, Nature, I should come to believe, sometimes,
that I had in me no appreciation of the beautiful, whatsoever.
It seems to me that whenever I glory to think that for
once I have discovered an ancient painting that is beautiful
and worthy of all praise, the pleasure it gives me is an infallible
proof that it is not a beautiful picture and not in any
wise worthy of commendation. This very thing has occurred more
times than I can mention, in Venice. In every single instance
the guide has crushed out my swelling enthusiasm with the remark:
"It is nothing--it is of the Renaissance."
I did not know what in the mischief the Renaissance was,
and so always I had to simply say,
"Ah! so it is--I had not observed it before."
I could not bear to be ignorant before a cultivated negro,
the offspring of a South Carolina slave. But it occurred too
often for even my self-complacency, did that exasperating "It
is nothing--it is of the Renaissance." I said at last:
"Who is this Renaissance? Where did he come from?
Who gave him permission to cram the Republic with his execrable
daubs?"
We learned, then, that Renaissance was not a man; that
renaissance was a term used to signify what was at best
but an imperfect rejuvenation of art. The guide said that after
Titian's time and the time of the other great names we had grown
so familiar with, high art declined; then it partially rose
again--an inferior sort of painters sprang up, and these shabby
pictures were the work of their hands. Then I said, in my heat,
that I "wished to goodness high art had declined five hundred
years sooner." The Renaissance pictures suit me very well, though
sooth to say its school were too much given to painting real
men and did not indulge enough in martyrs.
The guide I have spoken of is the only one we have had
yet who knew any thing. He was born in South Carolina, of slave
parents. They came to Venice while he was an infant. He has
grown up here. He is well educated. He reads, writes, and speaks
English, Italian, Spanish, and French, with perfect facility;
is a worshipper of art and thoroughly conversant with it; knows
the history of Venice by heart and never tires of talking of
her illustrious career. He dresses better than any of us, I
think, and is daintily polite. Negroes are deemed as good as
white people, in Venice, and so this man feels no
desire to go back to his native land. His judgment is correct.
I have had another shave. I was writing in our front room
this afternoon and trying hard to keep my attention on my work
and refrain from looking out upon the canal. I was resisting
the soft influences of the climate as well as I could, and endeavoring
to overcome the desire to be indolent and happy. The boys sent
for a barber. They asked me if I would be shaved. I reminded
them of my tortures in Genoa, Milan, Como; of my declaration
that I would suffer no more on Italian soil. I said "Not any
for me, if you please."
I wrote on. The barber began on the doctor. I heard him
say:
"Dan, this is the easiest shave I have had since we left
the ship."
He said again, presently:
"Why Dan, a man could go to sleep with this man shaving
him."
Dan took the chair. Then he said:
"Why this is Titian. This is one of the old masters."
I wrote on. Directly Dan said:
"Doctor, it is perfect luxury. The ship's barber isn't
any thing to him."
My rough beard wee distressing me beyond measure. The
barber was rolling up his apparatus. The temptation was too
strong. I said:
"Hold on, please. Shave me also."
I sat down in the chair and closed my eyes. The barber
soaped my face, and then took his razor and gave me a rake that
well nigh threw me into convulsions. I jumped out of the chair:
Dan and the doctor were both wiping blood off their faces and
laughing.
I said it was a mean, disgraceful fraud.
They said that the misery of this shave had gone so far
beyond any thing they had ever experienced before, that they
could not bear the idea of losing such a chance of hearing a
cordial opinion from me on the subject.
It was shameful. But there was no help for it. The skinning
was begun and had to be finished. The tears flowed with every
rake, and so did the fervent execrations. The barber grew confused,
and brought blood every time. I think the boys enjoyed it better
than any thing they have seen or heard since they left home.
We have seen the Campanile, and Byron's house and Balbi's
the geographer, and the palaces of all the ancient dukes and
doges of Venice, and we have seen their effeminate descendants
airing their nobility in fashionable French attire in the Grand
Square of St. Mark, and eating ices and drinking cheap wines,
instead of wearing gallant coats of mail and destroying fleets
and armies as their great ancestors did in the days of Venetian
glory. We have seen no bravoes with poisoned stilettos, no masks,
no wild carnival; but we have seen the ancient pride of Venice,
the grim Bronze Horses that figure in a thousand legends. Venice
may well cherish them, for they are the only horses she ever
had. It is said there are hundreds of people in this curious
city who never have seen a living horse in their lives. It is
entirely true, no doubt.
And so, having satisfied ourselves, we depart to-morrow,
and leave the venerable Queen of the Republics to summon her
vanished ships, and marshal her shadowy armies, and know again
in dreams the pride of her old renown.
Some of the Quaker City's passengers had arrived in Venice
from Switzerland and other lands before we left there, and others
were expected every day. We heard of no casualties among them,
and no sickness.
We were a little fatigued with sight seeing, and so we
rattled through a good deal of country by rail without caring
to stop. I took few notes. I find no mention of Bologna in my
memorandum book, except that we arrived there in good season,
but saw none of the sausages for which the place is so justly
celebrated.
Pistoia awoke but a passing interest.
Florence pleased us for a while. I think we appreciated
the great figure of David in the grand square, and the sculptured
group they call the Rape of the Sabines. We wandered through
the endless collections of paintings and statues of the Pitti
and Ufizzi galleries, of course. I make that statement in self-defense;
there let it stop. I could not rest under the imputation that
I visited Florence and did not traverse its weary miles of picture
galleries. We tried indolently to recollect something about
the Guelphs and Ghibelines and the other historical cut-throats
whose quarrels and assassinations make up so large a share of
Florentine history, but the subject was not attractive. We had
been robbed of all the fine mountain scenery on our little journey
by a system of railroading that had three miles of tunnel to
a hundred yards of daylight, and we were not inclined to be
sociable with Florence. We had seen the spot, outside the city
somewhere, where these people
had allowed the bones of Galileo to rest in unconsecrated ground
for an age because his great discovery that the world turned
around was regarded as a damning heresy by the church; and we
know that long after the world had accepted his theory and raised
his name high in the list of its great men, they had still let
him rot there. That we had lived to see his dust in honored
sepulture in the church of Santa Croce we owed to a society
of literati, and not to Florence or her rulers. We saw
Danté's tomb in that church, also, but we were glad to
know that his body was not in it; that the ungrateful city that
had exiled him and persecuted him would give much to have it
there, but need not hope to ever secure that high honor to herself.
Medicis are good enough for Florence. Let her plant Medicis
and build grand monuments over them to testify how gratefully
she was wont to lick the hand that scourged her.
Magnanimous Florence! Her jewelry marts are filled with
artists in mosaic. Florentine mosaics are the choicest in all
the world. Florence loves to have that said. Florence is
proud of it. Florence would foster this specialty of hers. She
is grateful to the artists that bring to her this high credit
and fill her coffers with foreign money, and so she encourages
them with pensions. With pensions! Think of the lavishness of
it. She knows that people who piece together the beautiful trifles
die early, because the labor is so confining, and so exhausting
to hand and brain, and so she has decreed that all these people
who reach the age of sixty shall have a pension after that!
I have not heard that any of them have called for their dividends
yet. One man did fight along till he was sixty, and started
after his pension, but it appeared that there had been a mistake
of a year in his family record, and so he gave it up and died.
These artists will take particles of stone or glass no
larger than a mustard seed, and piece them together on a sleeve
button or a shirt stud, so smoothly and with such nice adjustment
of the delicate shades of color the pieces bear, as to form
a pigmy rose with stem, thorn, leaves, petals complete, and
all as softly and as truthfully tinted as though Nature had
builded it herself. They will counterfeit a fly, or a high-toned
bug, or the ruined Coliseum, within the cramped circle of a
breastpin, and do it so deftly and so neatly that any man might
think a master painted it.
I saw a little table in the great mosaic school in Florence--a
little trifle of a centre table--whose top was made of some
sort of precious polished stone, and in the stone was inlaid
the
figure of a flute, with bell-mouth and a mazy complication of
keys. No painting in the world could have been softer or richer;
no shading out of one tint into another could have been more
perfect; no work of art of any kind could have been more faultless
than this flute, and yet to count the multitude of little fragments
of stone of which they swore it was formed would bankrupt any
man's arithmetic! I do not think one could have seen where two
particles joined each other with eyes of ordinary shrewdness.
Certainly we could detect no such blemish. This table-top
cost the labor of one man for ten long years, so they said,
and it was for sale for thirty-five thousand dollars.
We went to the Church of Santa Croce, from time to time,
in Florence, to weep over the tombs of Michael Angelo, Raphael
and Machiavelli, (I suppose they are buried there, but it may
be that they reside elsewhere and rent their tombs to other
parties--such being the fashion in Italy,) and between times
we used to go and stand on the bridges and admire the Arno.
It is popular to admire the Arno. It is a great historical creek
with four feet in the channel and some scows floating around.
It would be a very plausible river if they would pump some water
into it. They all call it a river, and they honestly think it
is a river, do these dark and bloody Florentines. They
even help out the delusion by building bridges over it. I do
not see why they are too good to wade.
How the fatigues and annoyances of travel fill one with
bitter prejudices sometimes! I might enter Florence under happier
auspices a month hence and find it all beautiful, all attractive.
But I do not care to think of it now, at all, nor of its roomy
shops filled to the ceiling with snowy marble and alabaster
copies of all the celebrated sculptures in Europe--copies so
enchanting to the eye that I wonder how they can really be shaped
like the dingy petrified nightmares they are the portraits of.
I got lost in Florence at nine o'clock, one night, and staid
lost in that labyrinth of narrow streets and long rows of vast
buildings that look all alike, until toward
three o'clock in the morning. It was a pleasant night and at
first there were a good many people abroad, and there were cheerful
lights about. Later, I grew accustomed to prowling about mysterious
drifts and tunnels and astonishing and interesting myself with
coming around corners expecting to find the hotel staring me
in the face, and not finding it doing any thing of the kind.
Later still, I felt tired. I soon felt remarkably tired. But
there was no one abroad, now--not even a policeman. I walked
till I was out of all patience, and very hot and thirsty. At
last, somewhere after one o'clock, I came unexpectedly to one
of the city gates. I knew then that I was very far from the
hotel. The soldiers thought I wanted to leave the city, and
they sprang up and barred the way with their muskets. I said:
"Hotel d'Europe!"
It was all the Italian I knew, and I was not certain whether
that was Italian or French. The soldiers looked stupidly at
each other and at me, and shook their heads and took me into
custody. I said I wanted to go home. They did not understand
me. They took me into the guard-house and searched me, but they
found no sedition on me. They found a small piece of soap (we
carry soap with us, now,) and I made them a present of it, seeing
that they regarded it as a curiosity. I continued to say Hotel
d'Europe, and they continued to shake their heads, until at
last a young soldier nodding in the corner roused up and said
something. He said he knew where the hotel was, I suppose, for
the officer of the guard sent him away with me. We walked a
hundred or a hundred and fifty miles, it appeared to me, and
then he got lost. He turned this way and that, and finally
gave it up and signified that he was going to spend the remainder
of the morning trying to find the city gate again. At that moment
it struck me that there was something familiar about the house
over the way. It was the hotel!
It was a happy thing for me that there happened to be
a soldier there that knew even as much as he did; for they say
that the policy of the government is to change the soldiery
from one place to another constantly and from country to city,
so that they can not become acquainted with the people and grow
lax in their duties and enter into plots and conspiracies with
friends. My experiences of Florence were chiefly unpleasant.
I will change the subject.
At Pisa we climbed up to the top of the strangest structure
the world has any knowledge of--the Leaning Tower. As every
one knows, it is in the neighborhood of one hundred and eighty
feet high--and I beg to observe that one hundred and eighty
feet reach to about the hight of four ordinary three-story buildings
piled one on top of the other, and is a very considerable altitude
for a tower of uniform thickness to aspire to, even when it
stands upright--yet this one leans more than thirteen feet out
of the perpendicular. It is seven hundred years old, but neither
history or tradition say whether it was built as it is, purposely,
or whether one of its sides has settled. There is no record
that it ever stood straight up. It is built
of marble. It is an airy and a beautiful structure, and each
of its eight stories is encircled by fluted columns, some of
marble and some of granite, with Corinthian capitals that were
handsome when they were new. It is a bell tower, and in its
top hangs a chime of ancient bells. The winding staircase within
is dark, but one always knows which side of the tower he is
on because of his naturally gravitating from one side to the
other of the staircase with the rise or dip of the tower. Some
of the stone steps are foot-worn only on one end; others only
on the other end; others only in the middle. To look down into
the tower from the top is like looking down into a tilted well.
A rope that hangs from the centre
of the top touches the wall before it reaches the bottom. Standing
on the summit, one does not feel altogether comfortable when
he looks down from the high side; but to crawl on your breast
to the verge on the lower side and try to stretch your neck
out far enough to see the base of the tower, makes your flesh
creep, and convinces you for a single moment in spite of all
your philosophy, that the building is falling. You handle yourself
very carefully, all the time, under the silly impression that
if it is not falling, your trifling weight will start
it unless you are particular not to "bear down" on it.
The Duomo, close at hand, is one of the finest cathedrals
in Europe. It is eight hundred years old. Its grandeur has outlived
the high commercial prosperity and the political importance
that made it a necessity, or rather a possibility. Surrounded
by poverty, decay and ruin, it conveys to us a more tangible
impression of the former greatness of Pisa than books could
give us.
The Baptistery, which is a few years older than the Leaning
Tower, is a stately rotunda, of huge dimensions, and was a costly
structure. In it hangs the lamp whose measured swing suggested
to Galileo the pendulum. It looked an insignificant thing to
have conferred upon the world of science and mechanics such
a mighty extension of their dominions as it has. Pondering,
in its suggestive presence, I seemed to see a crazy universe
of swinging disks, the toiling children of this sedate parent.
He appeared to have an intelligent expression about him of knowing
that he was not a lamp at all; that he was a Pendulum; a pendulum
disguised, for prodigious and inscrutable purposes of his own
deep devising, and not a common pendulum either, but the old
original patriarchal Pendulum--the Abraham Pendulum of the world.
This Baptistery is endowed with the most pleasing echo
of all the echoes we have read of. The guide sounded two sonorous
notes, about half an octave apart; the echo answered with the
most enchanting, the most melodious, the richest blending of
sweet sounds that one can imagine. It was like a long-drawn
chord of a church organ, infinitely softened by
distance. I may be extravagant in this matter, but if this be
the case my ear is to blame--not my pen. I am describing a memory--and
one that will remain long with me.
The peculiar devotional spirit of the olden time, which
placed a higher confidence in outward forms of worship than
in the watchful guarding of the heart against sinful thoughts
and the hands against sinful deeds, and which believed in the
protecting virtues of inanimate objects made holy by contact
with holy things, is illustrated in a striking manner in one
of the cemeteries of Pisa. The tombs are set in soil brought
in ships from the Holy Land ages ago. To be buried in such ground
was regarded by the ancient Pisans as being more potent for
salvation than many masses purchased of the church and the vowing
of many candles to the Virgin.
Pisa is believed to be about three thousand years old.
It was one of the twelve great cities of ancient Etruria, that
commonwealth which has left so many monuments in testimony of
its extraordinary advancement, and so little history of itself
that is tangible and comprehensible. A Pisan antiquarian gave
me an ancient tear-jug which he averred was full four thousand
years old. It was found among the ruins of one of the oldest
of the Etruscan cities. He said it came from a tomb, and was
used by some bereaved family in that remote age when even the
Pyramids of Egypt were young, Damascus a village, Abraham a
prattling infant and ancient Troy not yet dreampt of, to receive
the tears wept for some lost idol of a household. It spoke to
us in a language of its own; and with a pathos more tender than
any words might bring, its mute eloquence swept down the long
roll of the centuries with its tale of a vacant chair, a familiar
footstep missed from the threshold, a pleasant voice gone from
the chorus, a vanished form!--a tale which is always so new
to us, so startling, so terrible, so benumbing to the senses,
and behold how threadbare and old it is! No shrewdly-worded
history could have brought the myths and shadows of that old
dreamy age before us clothed with human flesh and warmed with
human sympathies so vividly as did this poor little unsentient
vessel of pottery.
Pisa was a republic in the middle ages, with a government
of her own, armies and navies of her own and a great commerce.
She was a warlike power, and inscribed upon her banners many
a brilliant fight with Genoese and Turks. It is said that the
city once numbered a population of four hundred thousand; but
her sceptre has passed from her grasp, now, her ships and her
armies are gone, her commerce is dead. Her battle-flags bear
the mold and the dust of centuries, her marts are deserted,
she has shrunken far within her crumbling walls, and her great
population has diminished to twenty thousand souls. She has
but one thing left to boast of, and that is not much, viz: she
is the second city of Tuscany.
We reached Leghorn in time to see all we wished to see
of it long before the city gates were closed for the evening,
and then came on board the ship.
We felt as though we had been away from home an age. We
never entirely appreciated, before, what a very pleasant den
our state-room is; nor how jolly it is to sit at dinner in one's
own seat in one's own cabin, and hold familiar conversation
with friends in one's own language. Oh, the rare happiness of
comprehending every single word that is said, and knowing that
every word one says in return will be understood as well! We
would talk ourselves to death, now, only there are only about
ten passengers out of the sixty-five to talk to. The others
are wandering, we hardly know where. We shall not go ashore
in Leghorn. We are surfeited with Italian cities for the present,
and much prefer to walk the familiar quarterdeck and view this
one from a distance.
The stupid magnates of this Leghorn government can not
understand that so large a steamer as ours could cross the broad
Atlantic with no other purpose than to indulge a party of ladies
and gentlemen in a pleasure excursion. It looks too improbable.
It is suspicious, they think. Something more important must
be hidden behind it all. They can not understand it, and they
scorn the evidence of the ship's papers. They have decided at
last that we are a battalion of incen-
diary, blood-thirsty Garibaldians in disguise! And in all seriousness
they have set a gun-boat to watch the vessel night and day,
with orders to close down on any revolutionary movement in a
twinkling! Police boats are on patrol duty about us all the
time, and it is as much as a sailor's liberty is worth to show
himself in a red shirt. These policemen follow the executive
offlcer's boat from shore to ship and from ship to shore and
watch his dark maneuvres with a vigilant eye. They will arrest
him yet unless he assumes an expression of countenance that
shall have less of carnage, insurrection and sedition in it.
A visit paid in a friendly way to General Garibaldi yesterday
(by cordial invitation,) by some of our passengers, has gone
far to confirm the dread suspicions the government harbors toward
us. It is thought the friendly visit was only the cloak of a
bloody conspiracy. These people draw near and watch us when
we bathe in the sea from the ship's side. Do they think we are
communing with a reserve force of rascals at the bottom?
It is said that we shall probably be quarantined at Naples. Two
or three of us prefer not to run this risk. Therefore, when
we are rested, we propose to go in a French steamer to Civita
and from thence to Rome, and by rail to Naples. They do not
quarantine the cars, no matter where they got their passengers
from.
There are a good many things about this Italy which I do not
understand--and more especially I can not understand how a bankrupt
Government can have such palatial railroad depots and such marvels
of turnpikes. Why, these latter are as hard as adamant, as straight
as a line, as smooth as a floor, and as white as snow. When
it is too dark to see any other object, one can still see the
white turnpikes of France and Italy; and they are clean enough
to eat from, without a table-cloth. And yet no tolls are charged.
As for the railways--we have none like them. The cars
slide as smoothly along as if they were on runners. The depots
are vast palaces of cut marble, with stately colonnades of the
same royal stone traversing them from end to end, and with ample
walls and ceilings richly decorated with frescoes. The lofty
gateways are graced with statues, and the broad floors are all
laid in polished flags of marble.
These things win me more than Italy's hundred galleries
of priceless art treasures, because I can understand the one
and am not competent to appreciate the other. In the turnpikes,
the railways, the depots, and the new boulevards of uniform
houses in Florence and other cities here, I see the genius of
Louis Napoleon, or rather, I see the works of that statesman
imitated. But Louis has taken care that in France there shall
be a foundation for these improvements--money. He has always
the wherewithal to back up his projects; they strengthen France
and never weaken her. Her material prosperity is genuine. But
here the case is different. This country is
bankrupt. There is no real foundation for these great works.
The prosperity they would seem to indicate is a pretence. There
is no money in the treasury, and so they enfeeble her instead
of strengthening. Italy has achieved the dearest wish of her
heart and become an independent State--and in so doing she has
drawn an elephant in the political lottery. She has nothing
to feed it on. Inexperienced in government, she plunged into
all manner of useless expenditure, and swamped her treasury
almost in a day. She squandered millions of francs on a navy
which she did not need, and the first time she took her new
toy into action she got it knocked higher than Gilderoy's kite--to
use the language of the Pilgrims.
But it is an ill-wind that blows nobody good. A year ago,
when Italy saw utter ruin staring her in the face and her greenbacks
hardly worth the paper they were printed on, her Parliament
ventured upon a coup de main that would have appalled
the stoutest of her statesmen under less desperate circumstances.
They, in a manner, confiscated the domains of the Church! This
in priest-ridden Italy! This in a land which has groped in the
midnight of priestly superstition for sixteen hundred years!
It was a rare good fortune for Italy, the stress of weather
that drove her to break from this prison-house.
They do not call it confiscating the church property.
That would sound too harshly yet. But it amounts to that. There
are thousands of churches in Italy, each with untold millions
of treasures stored away in its closets, and each with its battalion
of priests to be supported. And then there are the estates of
the Church--league on league of the richest lands and the noblest
forests in all Italy--all yielding immense revenues to the Church,
and none paying a cent in taxes to the State. In some great
districts the Church owns all the property--lands, watercourses,
woods, mills and factories. They buy, they sell, they manufacture,
and since they pay no taxes, who can hope to compete with them?
Well, the Government has seized all this in effect, and
will yet seize it in rigid and unpoetical reality, no doubt.
Some-
thing must be done to feed a starving treasury, and there is
no other resource in all Italy--none but the riches of the Church.
So the Government intends to take to itself a great portion
of the revenues arising from priestly farms, factories, etc.,
and also intends to take possession of the churches and carry
them on, after its own fashion and upon its own responsibility.
In a few instances it will leave the establishments of great
pet churches undisturbed, but in all others only a handful of
priests will be retained to preach and pray, a few will be pensioned,
and the balance turned adrift.
Pray glance at some of these churches and their embellishments,
and see whether the Government is doing a righteous thing or
not. In Venice, to-day, a city of a hundred thousand inhabitants,
there are twelve hundred priests. Heaven only knows how many
there were before the Parliament reduced their numbers. There
was the great Jesuit Church. Under the old regime it required
sixty priests to engineer it--the Government does it with five,
now, and the others are discharged from service. All about that
church wretchedness and poverty abound. At its door a dozen
hats and bonnets were doffed to us, as many heads were humbly
bowed, and as many hands extended, appealing for pennies--appealing
with foreign words we could not understand, but appealing mutely,
with sad eyes, and sunken cheeks, and ragged raiment, that no
words were needed to translate. Then we passed within the great
doors, and it seemed that the riches of the world were before
us! Huge columns carved out of single masses of marble, and
inlaid from top to bottom with a hundred intricate figures wrought
in costly verde antique; pulpits of the same rich materials,
whose draperies hung down in many a pictured fold, the stony
fabric counterfeiting the delicate work of the loom; the grand
altar brilliant with polished facings and balustrades of oriental
agate, jasper, verde antique, and other precious stones, whose
names, even, we seldom hear--and slabs of priceless lapis lazuli
lavished every where as recklessly as if the church had owned
a quarry of it. In the midst of all this magnificence, the solid
gold and silver furniture of the altar
seemed cheap and trivial. Even the floors and ceilings cost a
princely fortune.
Now, where is the use of allowing all those riches to
lie idle, while half of that community hardly know, from day
to day, how they are going to keep body and soul together? And,
where is the wisdom in permitting hundreds upon hundreds of
millions of francs to be locked up in the useless trumpery of
churches all over Italy, and the people ground to death with
taxation to uphold a perishing Government?
As far as I can see, Italy, for fifteen hundred years,
has turned all her energies, all her finances, and all her industry
to the building up of a vast array of wonderful church edifices,
and starving half her citizens to accomplish it. She is to-day
one vast museum of magnificence and misery. All the churches
in an ordinary American city put together could hardly buy the
jeweled frippery in one of her hundred cathedrals. And for every
beggar in America, Italy can show a hundred--and rags and vermin
to match. It is the wretchedest, princeliest land on earth.
Look at the grand Duomo of Florence--a vast pile that
has
been sapping the purses of her citizens for five hundred years,
and is not nearly finished yet. Like all other men, I fell down
and worshipped it, but when the filthy beggars swarmed around
me the contrast was too striking, too suggestive, and I said,
"O, sons of classic Italy, is the spirit of enterprise,
of self-reliance, of noble endeavor, utterly dead within ye?
Curse your indolent worthlessness, why don't you rob your church?"
Three hundred happy, comfortable priests are employed
in that Cathedral.
And now that my temper is up, I may as well go on and
abuse every body I can think of. They have a grand mausoleum
in Florence, which they built to bury our Lord and Saviour and
the Medici family in. It sounds blasphemous, but it is true,
and here they act blasphemy. The dead and damned Medicis
who cruelly tyrannized over Florence and were her curse for
over two hundred years, are salted away in a circle of costly
vaults, and in their midst the Holy Sepulchre was to have been
set up. The expedition sent to Jerusalem to seize it got into
trouble and could not accomplish the burglary, and so the centre
of the mausoleum is vacant now. They say the entire mausoleum
was intended for the Holy Sepulchre, and was only turned into
a family burying place after the Jerusalem expedition failed--but
you will excuse me. Some of those Medicis would have smuggled
themselves in sure.-- What they had not the effrontery
to do, was not worth doing. Why, they had their trivial, forgotten
exploits on land and sea pictured out in grand frescoes (as
did also the ancient Doges of Venice) with the Saviour and the
Virgin throwing bouquets to them out of the clouds, and the
Deity himself applauding from his throne in Heaven! And who
painted these things? Why, Titian, Tintoretto, Paul Veronese,
Raphael--none other than the world's idols, the "old masters."
Andrea del Sarto glorified his princes in pictures that
must save them for ever from the oblivion they merited, and
they let him starve. Served him right. Raphael pictured such
infernal villains as Catherine and Marie de Medicis seated in
heaven and
conversing familiarly with the Virgin Mary and the angels, (to
say nothing of higher personages,) and yet my friends abuse
me because I am a little prejudiced against the old masters--because
I fail sometimes to see the beauty that is in their productions.
I can not help but see it, now and then, but I keep on protesting
against the groveling spirit that could persuade those masters
to prostitute their noble talents to the adulation of such monsters
as the French, Venetian and Florentine Princes of two and three
hundred years ago, all the same.
I am told that the old masters had to do these shameful
things for bread, the princes and potentates being the only
patrons of art. If a grandly gifted man may drag his pride and
his manhood in the dirt for bread rather than starve with the
nobility that is in him untainted, the excuse is a valid one.
It would excuse theft in Washingtons and Wellingtons, and unchastity
in women as well.
But somehow, I can not keep that Medici mausoleum out
of my memory. It is as large as a church; its pavement is rich
enough for the pavement of a King's palace; its great dome is
gorgeous with frescoes; its walls are made of--what? Marble?--plaster?--wood?--paper?
No. Red porphyry--verde antique--jasper--oriental agate--alabaster--mother-of-pearl--chalcedony--red
coral--lapis lazuli! All the vast walls are made wholly of these
precious stones, worked in, and in and in together in elaborate
patterns and figures, and polished till they glow like great
mirrors with the pictured splendors reflected from the dome
overhead. And before a statue of one of those dead Medicis reposes
a crown that blazes with diamonds and emeralds enough to buy
a ship-of-the-line, almost. These are the things the Government
has its evil eye upon, and a happy thing it will be for Italy
when they melt away in the public treasury.
And now--. However, another beggar approaches. I will
go out and destroy him, and then come back and write another
chapter of vituperation.
Having eaten the friendless orphan--having driven away
his
comrades--having grown calm and reflective at length--I now feel
in a kindlier mood. I feel that after talking so freely about
the priests and the churches, justice demands that if I know
any thing good about either I ought to say it. I have
heard of many things that redound to the credit of the priesthood,
but the most notable matter that occurs to me now is the devotion
one of the mendicant orders showed during the prevalence of
the cholera last year. I speak of the Dominican friars--men
who wear a coarse, heavy brown robe and a cowl, in this hot
climate, and go barefoot. They live on alms altogether, I believe.
They must unquestionably love their religion, to suffer so much
for it. When the cholera was raging in Naples; when the people
were dying by hundreds and hundreds every day; when every concern
for the public welfare was swallowed up in selfish private interest,
and every citizen made the taking care of himself his sole object,
these men banded themselves together and went about nursing
the sick and burying the dead. Their noble efforts cost many
of them their lives. They laid them down cheerfully, and well
they might. Creeds mathematically precise, and hair-splitting
niceties of doctrine, are absolutely necessary for the salvation
of some kinds of souls, but surely the charity, the purity,
the unselfishness that are in the hearts of men like these would
save their souls though they were bankrupt in the true religion--which
is ours.
One of these fat bare-footed rascals came here to Civita
Vecchia with us in the little French steamer. There were only
half a dozen of us in the cabin. He belonged in the steerage.
He was the life of the ship, the bloody-minded son of the Inquisition!
He and the leader of the marine band of a French man-of-war
played on the piano and sang opera turn about; they sang duets
together; they rigged impromptu theatrical costumes and gave
us extravagant farces and pantomimes. We got along first-rate
with the friar, and were excessively conversational, albeit
he could not understand what we said, and certainly he never
uttered a word that we could guess the meaning of.
This Civita Vecchia is the finest nest of dirt, vermin and ignorance
we have found yet, except that African perdition they call Tangier,
which is just like it. The people here live in alleys two yards
wide, which have a smell about them which is peculiar but not
entertaining. It is well the alleys are not wider, because they
hold as much smell now as a person can stand, and of course,
if they were wider they would hold more, and then the people
would die. These alleys are paved with stone, and carpeted with
deceased cats, and decayed rags, and decomposed vegetable-tops,
and remnants of old boots, all soaked with dish-water, and the
people sit around on stools and enjoy it. They are indolent,
as a general thing, and yet have few pastimes. They work two
or three hours at a time, but not hard, and then they knock
off and catch flies. This does not require any talent, because
they only have to grab--if they do not get the one they are
after, they get another. It is all the same to them. They have
no partialities. Whichever one they get is the one they want.
They have other kinds of insects, but it does not make
them arrogant. They are very quiet, unpretending people. They
have more of these kind of things than other communities, but
they do not boast.
They are very uncleanly--these people--in face, in person
and dress. When they see any body with a clean shirt on, it
arouses their scorn. The women wash clothes, half the day, at
the public tanks in the streets, but they are probably somebody
else's. Or may be they keep one set to wear and another to wash;
because they never put on any that have ever been washed. When
they get done washing, they sit in the alleys and nurse their
cubs. They nurse one ash-cat at a time, and the others scratch
their backs against the door-post and are happy.
All this country belongs to the Papal States. They do
not appear to have any schools here, and only one billiard table.
Their education is at a very low stage. One portion of the men
go into the military, another into the priesthood, and the rest
into the shoe-making business.
They keep up the passport system here, but so they do in Turkey.
This shows that the Papal States are as far advanced as Turkey.
This fact will be alone sufficient to silence the tongues of
malignant calumniators. I had to get my passport vised
for Rome in Florence, and then they would not let me come ashore
here until a policeman had examined it on the wharf and sent
me a permit. They did not even dare to let me take my passport
in my hands for twelve hours, I looked so formidable. They judged
it best to let me cool down. They thought I wanted to take the
town, likely. Little did they know me. I wouldn't have it. They
examined my baggage at the depot. They took one of my ablest
jokes and read it over carefully twice and then read it backwards.
But it was too deep for them. They passed it around, and every
body speculated on it awhile, but it mastered them all.
It was no common joke. At length a veteran officer spelled
it over deliberately and shook his head three or four times
and said that in his opinion it was seditious. That was the
first time I felt alarmed. I immediately said I would explain
the document, and they crowded around. And so I explained and
explained and explained, and they took notes of all I said, but
the more I explained the more they could not understand it,
and when they desisted at last, I could not even understand
it myself. They said they believed it was an incendiary document,
leveled at the government. I declared solemnly that it was not,
but they only shook their heads and would not be satisfied.
Then they consulted a good while; and finally they confiscated
it. I was very sorry for this, because I had worked a long time
on that joke, and took a good deal of pride in it, and now I
suppose I shall never see it any more. I suppose it will be
sent up and filed away among the criminal archives of Rome,
and will always be regarded as a mysterious infernal machine
which would have blown up like a mine and scattered the good
Pope all around, but for a miraculous providential interference.
And I suppose that all the time I am in Rome the police will
dog me about from place to place because they think I am a dangerous
character.
It is fearfully hot in Civita Vecchia. The streets are made
very narrow and the houses built very solid and heavy and high,
as a protection against the heat. This is the first Italian
town I have seen which does not appear to have a patron saint.
I suppose no saint but the one that went up in the chariot of
fire could stand the climate.
There is nothing here to see. They have not even a cathedral,
with eleven tons of solid silver archbishops in the back room;
and they do not show you any moldy buildings that are seven
thousand years old; nor any smoke-dried old fire-screens which
are chef d'œuvres of Reubens or Simpson, or Titian
or Ferguson, or any of those parties; and they haven't any bottled
fragments of saints, and not even a nail from the true cross.
We are going to Rome. There is nothing to see here.
What is it that confers the noblest delight? What is that
which swells a man's breast with pride above that which any
other experience can bring to him? Discovery! To know that you
are walking where none others have walked; that you are beholding
what human eye has not seen before; that you are breathing a
virgin atmosphere. To give birth to an idea--to discover a great
thought--an intellectual nugget, right under the dust of a field
that many a brain--plow had gone over before. To find a new
planet, to invent a new hinge, to find the way to make the lightnings
carry your messages. To be the first--that is the idea.
To do something, say something, see something, before any
body else--these are the things that confer a pleasure compared
with which other pleasures are tame and commonplace, other ecstasies
cheap and trivial. Morse, with his first message, brought by
his servant, the lightning; Fulton, in that long-drawn century
of suspense, when he placed his hand upon the throttle- valve
and lo, the steamboat moved; Jenner, when his patient with the
cow's virus in his blood, walked through the smallpox hospitals
unscathed; Howe, when the idea shot through his brain that for
a hundred and twenty generations the eye had been bored through
the wrong end of the needle; the nameless lord of art who laid
down his chisel in some old age that is forgotten, now, and
gloated upon the finished Laocoon; Daguerre, when he commanded
the sun, riding in the zenith, to print the landscape upon his
insignificant silvered plate, and
he obeyed; Columbus, in the Pinta's shrouds, when he swung his
hat above a fabled sea and gazed abroad upon an unknown world!
These are the men who have really lived--who have actually
comprehended what pleasure is--who have crowded long lifetimes
of ecstasy into a single moment.
What is there in Rome for me to see that others have not
seen before me? What is there for me to touch that others have
not touched? What is there for me to feel, to learn, to hear,
to know, that shall thrill me before it pass to others? What
can I discover?--Nothing. Nothing whatsoever. One charm of travel
dies here. But if I were only a Roman!--If, added to my own
I could be gifted with modern Roman sloth, modern Roman superstition,
and modern Roman boundlessness of ignorance, what bewildering
worlds of unsuspected wonders I would discover! Ah, if I were
only a habitant of the Campagna five and twenty miles from Rome!
Then I would travel.
I would go to America, and see, and learn, and return
to the Campagna and stand before my countrymen an illustrious
discoverer. I would say:
"I saw there a country which has no overshadowing Mother
Church, and yet the people survive. I saw a government which
never was protected by foreign soldiers at a cost greater than
that required to carry on the government itself. I saw common
men and common women who could read; I even saw small children
of common country people reading from books; if I dared think
you would believe it, I would say they could write, also. In
the cities I saw people drinking a delicious beverage made of
chalk and water, but never once saw goats driven through their
Broadway or their Pennsylvania Avenue or their Montgomery street
and milked at the doors of the houses. I saw
real glass windows in the houses of even the commonest people.
Some of the houses are not of stone, nor yet of bricks; I solemnly
swear they are made of wood. Houses there will take fire and
burn, sometimes--actually burn entirely down, and not leave
a single vestige behind. I could state that for a truth, upon
my death-bed. And as a proof that the circumstance is not rare,
I aver that they have a thing which they call a fire-engine,
which vomits forth great streams of water, and is kept always
in readiness, by night and by day, to rush to houses that are
burning. You would think one engine would be sufficient, but
some great cities have a hundred; they keep men hired, and pay
them by the month to do nothing but put out fires. For a certain
sum of money other men will insure that your house shall not
burn down; and if it burns they will pay you for it. There are
hundreds and thousands of schools, and any body may go and learn
to be wise, like a priest. In that singular country if a rich
man dies a sinner, he is damned; he can not buy salvation with
money for masses. There is really not much use in being rich,
there. Not much use as far as the other world is concerned,
but much, very much use, as concerns this; because there, if
a man be rich, he is very greatly honored, and can become a
legislator, a governor, a general, a senator, no matter how
ignorant an ass he is--just as in our beloved Italy the nobles
hold all the great places, even though sometimes they are born
noble idiots. There, if a man be rich, they give him costly
presents, they ask him to feasts, they invite him to drink complicated
beverages; but if he be poor and in debt, they require him to
do that which they term to "settle." The women put on a different
dress almost every day; the dress is usually fine, but absurd
in shape; the very shape and fashion of it changes twice in
a hundred years; and did I but covet to be called an extravagant
falsifier, I would say it changed even oftener. Hair does not
grow upon the American women's heads; it is made for them by
cunning workmen in the shops, and is curled and frizzled into
scandalous and ungodly forms. Some persons wear eyes of glass
which they see through with facility per-
haps, else they would not use them; and in the mouths of some
are teeth made by the sacrilegious hand of man. The dress of
the men is laughably grotesque. They carry no musket in ordinary
life, nor no long-pointed pole; they wear no wide green-lined
cloak; they wear no peaked black felt hat, no leathern gaiters
reaching to the knee, no goat-skin breeches with the hair side
out, no hob- nailed shoes, no prodigious spurs. They wear a
conical hat termed a "nail-kag ;" a coat of saddest black; a
shirt which shows dirt so easily that it has to be changed every
month, and is very troublesome; things called pantaloons, which
are held up by shoulder straps, and on their feet they wear
boots which are ridiculous in pattern and can stand no wear.
Yet dressed in this fantastic garb, these people laughed at
my costume. In that country, books are so common that
it is really no curiosity to see one. Newspapers also. They
have a great machine which prints such things by thousands every
hour.
"I saw common men, there--men who were neither priests
nor princes--who yet absolutely owned the land they tilled.
It was not rented from the church, nor from the nobles. I am
ready to take my oath of this. In that country you might fall
from a third story window three several times, and not mash
either a soldier or a priest.--The scarcity of such people is
astonishing. In the cities you will see a dozen civilians for
every soldier, and as many for every priest or preacher. Jews,
there, are treated just like human beings, instead of dogs.
They can work at any business they please; they can sell brand
new goods if they want to; they can keep drug-stores; they can
practice medicine among Christians; they can even shake hands
with Christians if they choose; they can associate with them,
just the same as one human being does with another human being;
they don't have to stay shut up in one corner of the towns;
they can live in any part of a town they like best; it is said
they even have the privilege of buying land and houses, and
owning them themselves, though I doubt that, myself; they never
have had to run races naked through the public streets, against
jackasses, to please the people in
carnival time; there they never have been driven by the soldiers
into a church every Sunday for hundreds of years to hear themselves
and their religion especially and particularly cursed; at this
very day, in that curious country, a Jew is allowed to vote,
hold office, yea, get up on a rostrum in the public street and
express his opinion of the government if the government don't
suit him! Ah, it is wonderful. The common people there know
a great deal; they even have the effrontery to complain if they
are not properly governed, and to take hold and help conduct
the government themselves; if they had laws like ours, which
give one dollar of every three a crop produces to the government
for taxes, they would have that law altered: instead of paying
thirty-three dollars in taxes, out of every one hundred they
receive, they complain if they have to pay seven. They are curious
people. They do not know when they are well off. Mendicant priests
do not prowl among them with baskets begging for the church
and eating up their substance. One hardly ever sees a minister
of the gospel going around there in his bare feet, with a basket,
begging for subsistence. In that country the preachers are not
like our mendicant orders of friars--they have two or three
suits of clothing, and they wash sometimes. In that land are
mountains far higher than the Alban mountains; the vast Roman
Campagna, a hundred miles long and full forty broad, is really
small compared to the United States of America; the Tiber, that
celebrated river of ours, which stretches its mighty course
almost two hundred miles, and which a lad can scarcely throw
a stone across at Rome, is not so long, nor yet so wide, as
the American Mississippi--nor yet the Ohio, nor even the Hudson.
In America the people are absolutely wiser and know much more
than their grandfathers did. They do not plow with a
sharpened stick, nor yet with a three-cornered block of wood
that merely scratches the top of the ground. We do that because
our fathers did, three thousand years ago, I suppose. But those
people have no holy reverence for their ancestors. They plow
with a plow that is a sharp, curved blade of iron, and it cuts
into the earth full five inches. And this is not all. They
cut their grain with a horrid machine that mows down whole fields
in a day. If I dared, I would say that sometimes they use a
blasphemous plow that works by fire and vapor and tears up an
acre of ground in a single hour--but--but--I see by your looks
that you do not believe the things I am telling you. Alas, my
character is ruined, and I am a branded speaker of untruths!"
Of course we have been to the monster Church of St. Peter,
frequently. I knew its dimensions. I knew it was a prodigious
structure. I knew it was just about the length of the capitol
at Washington--say seven hundred and thirty feet. I knew it
was three hundred and sixty-four feet wide, and consequently
wider than the capitol. I knew that the cross on the top of
the dome of the church was four hundred and thirty-eight feet
above the ground, and therefore about a hundred or may be a
hundred and twenty-five feet higher than the dome of the capitol.--Thus
I had one gauge. I wished to come as near forming a correct
idea of how it was going to look, as possible; I had a curiosity
to see how much I would err. I erred considerably. St. Peter's
did not look nearly so large as the capitol, and certainly not
a twentieth part as beautiful, from the outside.
When we reached the door, and stood fairly within the
church, it was impossible to comprehend that it was a very
large building. I had to cipher a comprehension of it.
I had to ransack my memory for some more similes. St. Peter's
is bulky. Its height and size would represent two of the Washington
capitol set one on top of the other--if the capitol were wider;
or two blocks or two blocks and a half of ordinary buildings
set one on top of the other. St. Peter's was that large,
but it could and would not look so. The trouble was that every
thing in it and about it was on such a scale of uniform vastness
that there were no contrasts to judge by--none but the people,
and I had not noticed them. They were insects. The statues of
children holding vases of holy water were immense, according
to the tables of figures, but so was every thing else around
them. The mosaic pictures in the dome were huge, and were made
of thousands and thousands of cubes of glass as large as
the end of my little finger, but those pictures looked smooth,
and gaudy of color, and in good proportion to the dome. Evidently
they would not answer to measure by. Away down toward the far
end of the church (I thought it was really clear at the far
end, but discovered afterward that it was in the centre, under
the dome,) stood the thing they call the baldacchino--a
great bronze pyramidal frame-work like that which upholds a
mosquito bar. It only looked like a considerably magnified bedstead--nothing
more. Yet I knew it was a good deal more than half as high as
Niagara Falls. It was overshadowed by a dome so mighty that
its own height was snubbed. The four great square piers or pillars
that stand equidistant from each other in the church, and support
the roof, I could not work up to their real dimensions by any
method of comparison. I knew that the faces of each were about
the width of a very large dwelling-house front, (fifty or sixty
feet,) and that they were twice as high as an ordinary three-story
dwelling, but still they looked small. I tried all the different
ways I could think of to compel myself to understand how large
St. Peter's was, but with small success. The mosaic portrait
of an Apostle who was writing with a pen six feet long seemed
only an ordinary Apostle.
But the people attracted my attention after a while. To
stand in the door of St. Peter's and look at men down toward
its further extremity, two blocks away, has a diminishing effect
on them; surrounded by the prodigious pictures and statues,
and lost in the vast spaces, they look very much smaller than
they would if they stood two blocks away in the open air. I
"averaged" a man as he passed me and watched him as he drifted
far down by the baldacchino and beyond--watched him dwindle
to an insignificant school-boy, and then, in the midst of the
silent throng of human pigmies gliding about him, I lost him.
The church had lately been decorated, on the occasion of a great
ceremony in honor of St. Peter, and men were engaged, now, in
removing the flowers and gilt paper from the walls and pillars.
As no ladders could reach the great heights, the men swung them-
selves down from balustrades and the capitals of pilasters by
ropes, to do this work. The upper gallery which encircles the
inner sweep of the dome is two hundred and forty feet above
the floor of the church--very few steeples in America could
reach up to it. Visitors always go up there to look down into
the church because one gets the best idea of some of the heights
and distances from that point. While we stood on the floor one
of the workmen swung loose from that gallery at the end of a
long rope. I had not supposed, before, that a man could
look so much like a spider. He was insignificant in size, and
his rope seemed only a thread. Seeing that he took up so little
space, I could believe the story, then, that ten thousand troops
went to St. Peter's, once, to hear mass, and their commanding
officer came afterward, and not finding them, supposed they
had not yet arrived. But they were in the church, nevertheless--they
were in one of the transepts. Nearly fifty thousand persons
assembled in St. Peter's to hear the publishing of the dogma
of the Immaculate Conception. It is estimated that the floor
of the church affords standing room for--for a large number
of people; I have forgotten the exact figures. But it is no
matter--it is near enough.
They have twelve small pillars, in St. Peter's, which
came from Solomon's Temple. They have, also--which was far more
interesting to me--a piece of the true cross, and some nails,
and a part of the crown of thorns.
Of course we ascended to the summit of the dome, and of
course we also went up into the gilt copper ball which is above
it.--There was room there for a dozen persons, with a little
crowding, and it was as close and hot as an oven. Some of those
people who are so fond of writing their names in prominent places
had been there before us--a million or two, I should think.
From the dome of St. Peter's one can see every notable object
in Rome, from the Castle of St. Angelo to the Coliseum. He can
discern the seven hills upon which Rome is built. He can see
the Tiber, and the locality of the bridge which Horatius kept
"in the brave days of old" when Lars Porsena attempted to cross
it with his invading host. He can
see the spot where the Horatii and the Curatii fought their famous
battle. He can see the broad green Campagna, stretching away
toward the mountains, with its scattered arches and broken aqueducts
of the olden time, so picturesque in their gray ruin, and so
daintily festooned with vines. He can see the Alban Mountains,
the Appenines, the Sabine Hills, and the blue Mediterranean.
He can see a panorama that is varied, extensive, beautiful to
the eye, and more illustrious in history than any other in Europe.--About
his feet is spread the remnant of a city that once had a population
of four million souls; and among its massed edifices stand the
ruins of temples, columns, and triumphal arches that knew the
Cæsars, and the noonday of Roman splendor; and close by
them, in unimpaired strength, is a drain of arched and heavy
masonry that belonged to that older city which stood here before
Romulus and Remus were born or Rome thought of. The Appian Way
is here yet, and looking much as it did, perhaps, when the triumphal
processions of the Emperors moved over it in other days bringing
fettered princes from the confines of the earth. We can not
see the long array of chariots and mail-clad men laden with
the spoils of conquest, but we can imagine the pageant, after
a fashion. We look out upon many objects of interest from the
dome of St. Peter's; and last of all, almost at our feet, our
eyes rest upon the building which was once the Inquisition.
How times changed, between the older ages and the new! Some
seventeen or eighteen centuries ago, the ignorant men of Rome
were wont to put Christians in the arena of the Coliseum yonder,
and turn the wild beasts in upon them for a show. It was for
a lesson as well. It was to teach the people to abhor and fear
the new doctrine the followers of Christ were teaching. The
beasts tore the victims limb from limb and made poor mangled
corpses of them in the twinkling of an eye. But when the Christians
came into power, when the holy Mother Church became mistress
of the barbarians, she taught them the error of their ways by
no such means. No, she put them in this pleasant Inquisition
and pointed to the Blessed Redeemer, who was so gentle
and so merciful toward all men, and they urged the barbarians
to love him; and they did all they could to persuade them to
love and honor him--first by twisting their thumbs out of joint
with a screw; then by nipping their flesh with pincers--red-hot
ones, because they are the most comfortable in cold weather;
then by skinning them alive a little, and finally by roasting
them in public. They always convinced those barbarians. The
true religion, properly administered, as the good Mother Church
used to administer it, is very, very soothing. It is wonderfully
persuasive, also. There is a great difference between feeding
parties to wild beasts and stirring up their finer feelings
in an Inquisition. One is the system of degraded barbarians,
the other of enlightened, civilized people. It is a great pity
the playful Inquisition is no more.
I prefer not to describe St. Peter's. It has been done
before. The ashes of Peter, the disciple of the Saviour, repose
in a crypt under the baldacchino. We stood reverently
in that place; so did we also in the Mamertine Prison, where
he was confined, where he converted the soldiers, and where
tradition says he caused a spring of water to flow in order
that he might baptize them. But when they showed us the print
of Peter's face in the hard stone of the prison wall and said
he made that by falling up against it, we doubted. And when,
also, the monk at the church of San Sebastian showed us a paving-stone
with two great footprints in it and said that Peter's feet made
those, we lacked confidence again. Such things do not impress
one. The monk said that angels came and liberated Peter from
prison by night, and he started away from Rome by the Appian
Way. The Saviour met him and told him to go back, which he did.
Peter left those footprints in the stone upon which he stood
at the time. It was not stated how it was ever discovered whose
footprints they were, seeing the interview occurred secretly
and at night. The print of the face in the prison was that of
a man of common size; the footprints were those of a man ten
or twelve feet high. The discrepancy confirmed our unbelief.
We necessarily visited the Forum, where Cæsar was
assassinated,
and also the Tarpeian Rock. We saw the Dying Gladiator
at the Capitol, and I think that even we appreciated that wonder
of art; as much, perhaps, as we did that fearful story wrought
in marble, in the Vatican--the Laocoon. And then the Coliseum.
Every body knows the picture of the Coliseum; every body
recognizes at once that "looped and windowed" bandbox with a
side bitten out. Being rather isolated, it shows to better
advantage than any other of the monuments of ancient Rome. Even
the beautiful Pantheon, whose pagan altars uphold the cross,
now, and whose Venus, tricked out in consecrated gimcracks,
does reluctant duty as a Virgin Mary to-day, is built about
with shabby houses and its stateliness sadly marred. But the
monarch of all European ruins, the Coliseum, maintains that
reserve and that royal seclusion which is proper to majesty.
Weeds and flowers spring from its massy arches and its circling
seats, and vines hang their fringes from its lofty
walls. An impressive silence broods over the monstrous structure
where such multitudes of men and women were wont to assemble
in other days. The butterflies have taken the places of the
queens of fashion and beauty of eighteen centuries ago, and
the lizards sun themselves in the sacred seat of the Emperor.
More vividly than all the written histories, the Coliseum tells
the story of Rome's grandeur and Rome's decay. It is the worthiest
type of both that exists. Moving about the Rome of to-day, we
might find it hard to believe in her old magnificence and her
millions of population; but with this stubborn evidence before
us that she was obliged to have a theatre with sitting room
for eighty thousand persons and standing room for twenty thousand
more, to accommodate such of her citizens as required amusement,
we find belief less difficult. The Coliseum is over one thousand
six hundred feet long, seven hundred and fifty wide, and one
hundred and sixty-five high. Its shape is oval.
In America we make convicts useful at the same time that
we punish them for their crimes. We farm them out and compel
them to earn money for the State by making barrels and building
roads. Thus we combine business with retribution, and all things
are lovely. But in ancient Rome they combined religious duty
with pleasure. Since it was necessary that the new sect called
Christians should be exterminated, the people judged it wise
to make this work profitable to the State at the same time,
and entertaining to the public. In addition to the gladiatorial
combats and other shows, they sometimes threw members of the
hated sect into the arena of the Coliseum and turned wild beasts
in upon them. It is estimated that seventy thousand Christians
suffered martyrdom in this place. This has made the Coliseum
holy ground, in the eyes of the followers of the Saviour. And
well it might; for if the chain that bound a saint, and the
footprints a saint has left upon a stone he chanced to stand
upon, be holy, surely the spot where a man gave up his life
for his faith is holy.
Seventeen or eighteen centuries ago this Coliseum was
the theatre of Rome, and Rome was mistress of the world.
Splen-
did pageants were exhibited here, in presence of the Emperor,
the great ministers of State, the nobles, and vast audiences
of citizens of smaller consequence. Gladiators fought with gladiators
and at times with warrior prisoners from many a distant land.
It was the theatre of Rome--of the world--and the man
of fashion who could not let fall in a casual and unintentional
manner something about "my private box at the Coliseum" could
not move in the first circles. When the clothing- store merchant
wished to consume the corner grocery man with envy, he bought
secured seats in the front row and let the thing be known. When
the irresistible dry goods clerk wished to blight and destroy,
according to his native instinct, he got himself up regardless
of expense and took some other fellow's young lady to the Coliseum,
and then accented the affront by cramming her with ice cream
between the acts, or by approaching the cage and stirring up
the martyrs with his whalebone cane for her edification. The
Roman swell was in his true element only when he stood up against
a pillar and fingered his moustache unconscious of the ladies;
when he viewed the bloody combats through an opera-glass two
inches long; when he excited the envy of provincials by criticisms
which showed that he had been to the Coliseum many and many
a time and was long ago over the novelty of it; when he turned
away with a yawn at last and said,
"He a star! handles his sword like an apprentice
brigand! he'll do for the country, may be, but he don't answer
for the metropolis!"
Glad was the contraband that had a seat in the pit at
the Saturday matinee, and happy the Roman street-boy who ate
his peanuts and guyed the gladiators from the dizzy gallery.
For me was reserved the high honor of discovering among
the rubbish of the ruined Coliseum the only playbill of that
establishment now extant. There was a suggestive smell of mint-
drops about it still, a corner of it had evidently been chewed,
and on the margin, in choice Latin, these words were written
in a delicate female hand:
CLAUDIA."
Ah, where is that lucky youth to-day, and where the little
hand that wrote those dainty lines? Dust and ashes these seventeen
hundred years!
Thus reads the bill:
ROMAN COLISEUM.
UNPARALLELED ATTRACTION!
NEW PROPERTIES! NEW LIONS! NEW GLADIATORS!
Engagement of the renowned
MARCUS MARCELLUS VALERIAN!
FOR SIX NIGHTS ONLY!
The management beg leave to offer to the public an entertainment
surpassing in magnificence any thing that has heretofore been
attempted on any stage. No expense has been spared to make the
opening season one which shall be worthy the generous patronage
which the management feel sure will crown their efforts. The
management beg leave to state that they have succeeded in securing
the services of a
GALAXY OF TALENT!
such as has not been beheld in Rome before.
The performance will commence this evening with a
GRAND BROADSWORD COMBAT!
between two young and promising amateurs
and a celebrated Parthian gladiator who has just arrived a prisoner
from the Camp of Verus.
This will be followed by a grand moral
BATTLE-AX ENGAGEMENT!
between the renowned Valerian (with one hand tied behind
him,) and two gigantic savages from Britain.
After which the renowned Valerian (if he survive,) will
fight with the broad-sword,
LEFT HANDED!
against six Sophomores and a Freshman from the Gladiatorial
College!
A long series of brilliant engagements will follow, in
which the finest talent of the Empire will take part
After which the celebrated Infant Prodigy known as
"THE YOUNG ACHILLES,"
will engage four tiger whelps in combat, armed with no
other weapon than his little spear!
The whole to conclude with a chaste and elegant
GENERAL SLAUGHTER!
In which thirteen African Lions and twenty-two Barbarian
Prisoners will war with each other until all are exterminated.
BOX OFFICE NOW OPEN.
Dress Circle One Dollar; Children and Servants half price.
An efficient police force will be on hand to preserve
order and keep the wild beasts from leaping the railings and
discommoding the audience.
Doors open at 7; performance begins at 8.
POSITIVELY NO FREE LIST.
Diodorus Job Press. It was as singular as it was gratifying that I was also
so fortunate as to find among the rubbish of the arena, a stained
and mutilated copy of the Roman Daily Battle-Ax, containing
a critique upon this very performance. It comes to hand too
late by many centuries to rank as news, and therefore I translate
and publish it simply to show how very little the general style
and phraseology of dramatic criticism has altered in the ages
that have dragged their slow length along since the carriers
laid this one damp and fresh before their Roman patrons:
"The late repairs and decorations add both to the comeliness
and the comfort of the Coliseum. The new cushions are a great
improvement upon the hard marble seats we have been so long
accustomed to. The present management deserve well of the public.
They have restored to the Coliseum the gilding, the rich upholstery
and the uniform magnificence which old Coliseum frequenters
tell us Rome was so proud of fifty years ago.
"The opening scene last night--the broadsword
combat between two young amateurs and a famous Parthian gladiator
who was sent here a prisoner--was very fine. The elder of the
two young gentlemen handled his weapon with a grace that marked
the possession of extraordinary talent. His feint of thrusting,
followed instantly by a happily delivered blow which unhelmeted
the Parthian, was received with hearty applause. He was not
thoroughly up in the backhanded stroke, but it was very gratifying
to his numerous friends to know that, in time, practice would
have overcome this defect. However, he was killed. His sisters,
who were present, expressed considerable regret. His mother
left the Coliseum. The other youth maintained the contest with
such spirit as to call forth enthusiastic bursts of applause.
When at last he fell a corpse, his aged mother ran screaming,
with hair disheveled and tears streaming from her eyes, and
swooned away just as her hands were clutching at the railings
of the arena. She was promptly removed by the police. Under
the circumstances the woman's conduct was pardonable, perhaps,
but we suggest that such exhibitions interfere with the decorum
which should be preserved during the performances, and are highly
improper in the presence of the Emperor. The Parthian prisoner
fought bravely and well; and well he might, for he was fighting
for both life and liberty. His wife and children were there
to nerve his arm with their love, and to remind him of the old
home he should see again if he conquered. When his second assailant
fell, the woman clasped her children to her breast and wept
for joy. But it was only a transient happiness. The captive
staggered toward her and she saw that the liberty he had earned
was earned too late. He was wounded unto death. Thus the first
act closed in a manner which was entirely satisfactory. The
manager was called before the curtain and returned his thanks
for the honor done him, in a speech which was replete with wit
and humor, and closed by hoping that his humble efforts to afford
cheerful and instructive entertainment would continue to meet
with the approbation of the Roman public
"The star now appeared, and was received with vociferous
applause and the simultaneous waving of sixty thousand handkerchiefs.
Marcus Marcellus Valerian (stage name--his real name is Smith,)
is a splendid specimen of physical development, and an artist
of rare merit. His management of the battle-ax is wonderful.
His gayety and his playfulness are irresistible, in his comic
parts, and yet they are inferior to his sublime conceptions
in the grave realm of tragedy. When his ax was describing fiery
circles about the heads of the bewildered barbarians, in exact
time with his springing body and his prancing legs, the audience
gave way to uncontrollable bursts of laughter; but when the
back of his weapon broke the skull of one and almost in the
same instant its edge clove the other's body in twain, the howl
of enthusiastic applause that shook the building, was the acknowledgment
of a critical assemblage that he was a master of the noblest
department of his profession. If he has a fault, (and we are
sorry to even intimate that he has,) it is that of glancing
at the audience, in the midst of the most exciting moments of
the performance, as if seeking admiration. The pausing in a
fight to bow when bouquets are thrown to him is also in bad
taste. In the great left-handed combat he appeared to be looking
at the audience half the time, instead of carving his adversaries;
and when he had slain all the sophomores and was dallying with
the freshman. he
stooped and snatched a bouquet as it fell, and
offered it to his adversary at a time when a blow was descending
which promised favorably to be his death-warrant. Such levity
is proper enough in the provinces, we make no doubt, but it
ill suits the dignity of the metropolis. We trust our young
friend will take these remarks in good part, for we mean them
solely for his benefit. All who know us are aware that although
we are at times justly severe upon tigers and martyrs, we never
intentionally offend gladiators.
"The Infant Prodigy performed wonders. He overcame his
four tiger whelps with ease, and with no other hurt than the
loss of a portion of his scalp. The General Slaughter was rendered
with a faithfulness to details which reflects the highest credit
upon the late participants in it.
"Upon the whole, last night's performances shed honor
not only upon the management but upon the city that encourages
and sustains such wholesome and instructive entertainments.
We would simply suggest that the practice of vulgar young boys
in the gallery of shying peanuts and paper pellets at the tigers,
and saying "Hi-yi!" and manifesting approbation or dissatisfaction
by such observations as "Bully for the lion!" "Go it, Gladdy!"
"Boots!" "Speech!" "Take a walk round the block!" and so on,
are extremely reprehensible, when the Emperor is present, and
ought to be stopped by the police. Several times last night,
when the supernumeraries entered the arena to drag out the bodies,
the young ruffians in the gallery shouted, "Supe! supe!" and
also, "Oh, what a coat!" and "Why don't you pad them shanks?"
and made use of various other remarks expressive of derision.
These things are very annoying to the audience.
"A matinee for the little folks is promised for this afternoon,
on which occasion several martyrs will be eaten by the tigers.
The regular performance will continue every night till further
notice. Material change of programme every evening. Benefit
of Valerian, Tuesday, 29th, if he lives."
I have been a dramatic critic myself, in my time, and
I was often surprised to notice how much more I knew about Hamlet
than Forrest did; and it gratifies me to observe, now, how much
better my brethren of ancient times knew how a broad sword battle
ought to be fought than the gladiators.
So far, good. If any man has a right to feel proud of himself,
and satisfied, surely it is
I. For I have written about the Coliseum, and the gladiators,
the
martyrs, and the lions, and yet
have never once used the phrase "butchered to make a Roman
holiday." I am the only free white
man of mature age, who has accomplished this since Byron originated
the expression.
Butchered to make a Roman holiday sounds well for the
first
seventeen or
eighteen hundred thousand times one sees it in print, but after
that it begins to grow tiresome.
I find it in all the books concerning Rome--and here latterly
it
reminds me of Judge Oliver.
Oliver was a young lawyer, fresh from the schools, who had gone
out
to the deserts of Nevada
to begin life. He found that country, and our ways of life, there,
in those early days, different
from life in New England or Paris. But he put on a woollen shirt
and strapped a navy revolver
to his person, took to the bacon and beans of the country, and
determined to do in Nevada as
Nevada did. Oliver accepted the situation so completely that
although he must have sorrowed
over many of his trials, he never complained--that is, he never
complained but once. He, two
others, and myself, started to the new silver mines in the Humboldt
mountains--he to be Probate
Judge of Humboldt county, and we to mine. The distance was two
hundred miles. It was dead
of winter. We bought a two-horse wagon and put eighteen hundred
pounds of bacon, flour,
beans, blasting-powder, picks and shovels in it; we bought two
sorry-looking
Mexican "plugs,"
with the hair turned the wrong way and more corners on their
bodies
than there are on the
mosque of Omar; we hitched up and started. It was a dreadful
trip.
But Oliver did not complain.
The horses dragged the wagon two miles from town and then gave
out.
Then we three pushed
the wagon seven miles, and Oliver moved ahead and pulled the
horses
after him by the bits. We
complained, but Oliver did not. The ground was frozen, and it
froze
our backs while we slept;
the wind swept across our faces and froze our noses. Oliver did
not
complain. Five days of
pushing the wagon by day and freezing by night brought us to
the
bad part of the journey--the
Forty Mile Desert, or the Great American Desert, if you please.
Still, this mildest-mannered
man that ever was, had not complained. We started across at eight
in the morning, pushing
through sand that had no bottom; toiling all day long by the
wrecks
of a thousand wagons, the
skeletons of ten thousand oxen; by wagon-tires enough to hoop
the
Washington Monument to
the top, and ox-chains enough to girdle Long Island; by human
graves; with our throats parched
always, with thirst; lips bleeding from the alkali dust; hungry,
perspiring, and very, very weary-
-so weary that when we dropped in the sand every fifty yards
to
rest the horses, we could hardly
keep from going to sleep--no complaints from Oliver: none the
next
morning at three o'clock,
when we got across, tired to death.
Awakened two or three nights afterward at midnight, in
a
narrow canon, by the
snow falling on our faces, and appalled at the imminent danger
of
being "snowed in," we
harnessed up and pushed on till eight in the morning, passed
the
"Divide" and knew we were
saved. No complaints. Fifteen days of hardship and fatigue brought
us to the end of the two
hundred miles, and the Judge had not complained. We wondered
if any
thing could
exasperate him. We built a Humboldt house. It is done in
this
way. You dig a square in
the steep base of the mountain, and set up two uprights and top
them with two joists. Then you
stretch a great sheet of "cotton domestic" from the point where
the
joists join the hill-side down
over the joists to the ground; this makes the roof and the front
of
the mansion; the sides and
back are the dirt walls your digging has left. A chimney is easily
made by turning up one corner
of the roof. Oliver was sitting alone in this dismal den, one
night, by a sage-brush fire, writing
poetry; he was very fond of digging poetry out of himself --
or
blasting it out when it came hard.
He heard an animal's footsteps close to the roof; a stone or
two
and some dirt came through and
fell by him. He grew uneasy and said "Hi! -- clear out from there,
can't you!" -- from time to time.
But by and by he fell asleep where he sat, and pretty soon a
mule
fell down the chimney! The
fire flew in every direction, and Oliver went over backwards.
About
ten nights after that, he
recovered confidence enough to go to writing poetry again. Again
he
dozed off to sleep, and
again a mule fell down the chimney. This time, about half of
that
side of the house came in with
the mule. Struggling to get up, the mule kicked the candle out
and
smashed most of the kitchen
furniture, and raised considerable dust. These violent awakenings
must have been annoying to
Oliver, but he never complained. He moved to a mansion on the
opposite side of the canon,
because he had noticed the mules did not go there. One night
about
eight o'clock he was
endeavoring to finish his poem, when a stone rolled in -- then
a hoof
appeared below the canvas --
then part of a cow -- the after part. He leaned back in dread,
and
shouted "Hooy! hooy! get out
of this!" and the cow struggled manfully -- lost ground
steadily -- dirt and dust streamed down, and
before Oliver could get well away, the entire cow crashed through
on to the table and made a
shapeless wreck of every thing!
Then, for the first time in his life, I think, Oliver
complained. He said,
"This thing is growing monotonous!"
Then he resigned his judgeship and left Humboldt county.
"Butchered to make
a Roman holiday" has grown monotonous to me.
In this connection I wish to say one word about Michael
Angelo Buonarotti. I
used to worship the mighty genius of Michael Angelo -- that man
who
was great in poetry,
painting, sculpture, architecture -- great in every thing he
undertook. But I do not want Michael
Angelo for breakfast -- for luncheon -- for dinner -- for tea
-- for
supper -- for between meals. I like a
change, occasionally. In Genoa, he designed every thing; in Milan
he or his pupils designed
every thing; he designed the Lake of Como; in Padua, Verona,
Venice, Bologna, who did we
ever hear of, from guides, but Michael Angelo? In Florence, he
painted every thing, designed
every thing, nearly, and what he did not design he used to sit
on
a favorite stone and look at,
and they showed us the stone. In Pisa he designed every thing
but
the old shot-tower, and they
would have at-
tributed that to him if it had not been so awfully out
of the perpendicular. He
designed the piers of Leghorn and the custom house regulations
of
Civita Vecchia. But, here --
here it is frightful. He designed St. Peter's; he designed the
Pope; he designed the Pantheon,
the uniform of the Pope's soldiers, the Tiber, the Vatican, the
Coliseum, the Capitol, the
Tarpeian Rock, the Barberini Palace, St. John Lateran, the
Campagna, the Appian Way, the
Seven Hills, the Baths of Caracalla, the Claudian Aqueduct, the
Cloaca Maxima -- the eternal bore
designed the Eternal City, and unless all men and books do lie,
he
painted every thing in it! Dan
said the other day to the guide, "Enough, enough, enough! Say
no
more! Lump the whole thing!
say that the Creator made Italy from designs by Michael Angelo!"
I never felt so fervently thankful, so soothed, so tranquil,
so filled with a blessed
peace, as I did yesterday when I learned that Michael Angelo
was
dead.
But we have taken it out of this guide. He has marched
us
through miles of
pictures and sculpture in the vast corridors of the Vatican;
and
through miles of pictures and
sculpture in twenty other palaces; he has shown us the great
picture in the Sistine Chapel, and
frescoes enough to frescoe the heavens--pretty much all done
by
Michael Angelo. So with him
we have played that game which has vanquished so many guides
for
us--imbecility and idiotic
questions. These creatures never suspect--they have no idea of
a
sarcasm.
He shows us a figure and says: "Statoo brunzo." (Bronze
statue.)
We look at it indifferently and the doctor asks: "By
Michael Angelo?"
"No -- not know who."
Then he shows us the ancient Roman Forum. The doctor asks:
"Michael
Angelo?"
A stare from the guide. "No -- thousan' year before he
is
born."
Then an Egyptian obelisk. Again: "Michael Angelo?"
"Oh, mon dieu, genteelmen! Zis is two thousan'
year before he is born!"
He grows so tired of that unceasing question sometimes,
that
he dreads to show us any thing at all. The wretch has tried all
the
ways he can think of to make us comprehend
that Michael Angelo is only responsible for the creation of a
part
of the world, but somehow he
has not succeeded yet. Relief for overtasked eyes and brain from
study and sightseeing is
necessary, or we shall become idiotic sure enough. Therefore
this
guide must continue to suffer.
If he does not enjoy it, so much the worse for him. We do.
In this place I may as well jot down a chapter concerning
those necessary
nuisances, European guides. Many a man has wished in his heart
he
could do without his guide;
but knowing he could not, has wished he could get some amusement
out of him as a
remuneration for the affliction of his society. We accomplished
this latter matter, and if our
experience can be made useful to others they are welcome to it.
Guides know about enough English to tangle every thing up so
that
a man can make neither
head or tail of it. They know their story by heart -- the history
of
every statue, painting, cathedral
or other wonder they show you. They know it and tell it as a
parrot
would -- and if you interrupt,
and throw them off the track, they have to go back and begin
over
again. All their lives long,
they are employed in showing strange things to foreigners and
listening to their bursts of
admiration. It is human nature to take delight in exciting
admiration. It is what prompts children
to say "smart" things, and do absurd ones, and in other ways
"showoff" when company is
present. It is what makes gossips turn out in rain and storm
to go
and be the first to tell a
startling bit of news. Think, then, what a passion it becomes
with
a guide, whose privilege it
is, every day, to show to strangers wonders that throw them into
perfect ecstasies of admiration!
He gets so that he could not by any possibility live in a soberer
atmosphere. After we discovered
this, we never went into ecstacies any more -- we never
admired any thing -- we never
showed any but impassible faces and stupid indifference in the
presence of the sublimest wonders
a guide had to display. We had found their weak point. We have
made
good use of it ever since.
We have made some of those people savage, at times, but we have
never lost our own serenity.
The doctor asks the questions, generally, because he can
keep his countenance,
and look more like an inspired idiot, and throw more imbecility
into the tone of his voice than
any man that lives. It comes natural to him.
The guides in Genoa are delighted to secure an American
party, because
Americans so much wonder, and deal so much in sentiment and emotion
before any relic of
Columbus. Our guide there fidgeted about as if he had swallowed
a
spring mattress. He was full
of animation -- full of impatience. He said:
"Come wis me, genteelmen! -- come! I show you ze letter
writing by Christopher
Colombo! -- write it himself! -- write it wis his own hand! --
come!"
He took us to the municipal palace. After much impressive
fumbling of keys and
opening of locks, the stained and aged document was spread before
us. The guide's eyes
sparkled. He danced about us and tapped the parchment with his
finger:
"What I tell you, genteelmen! Is it not so? See! handwriting
Christopher
Colombo! -- write it himself!"
We looked indifferent -- unconcerned. The doctor examined
the
document very
deliberately, during a painful pause. -- Then he said, without
any
show of interest:
"Ah -- Ferguson -- what -- what did you say was the name
of the
party who wrote
this?"
"Christopher Colombo! ze great Christopher Colombo!"
Another deliberate examination.
"Ah -- did he write it himself; or -- or how?"
"He write it himself!--Christopher Colombo! He's own
hand-writing, write by
himself!"
Then the doctor laid the document down and said:
"Why, I have seen boys in America only fourteen years
old
that could write better
than that."
"But zis is ze great Christo--"
"I don't care who it is! It's the worst writing I ever
saw.
Now you musn't think
you can impose on us because we are strangers. We are not fools,
by
a good deal. If you have
got any specimens of penmanship of real merit, trot them out!--and
if you haven't, drive on!"
We drove on. The guide was considerably shaken up, but
he
made one more
venture. He had something which he thought would overcome us.
He
said:
"Ah, genteelmen, you come wis me! I show you beautiful,
O,
magnificent bust
Christopher Colombo! -- splendid, grand, magnificent!"
He brought us before the beautiful bust -- for it was
beautiful -- and
sprang back and struck an attitude:
"Ah, look, genteelmen! -- beautiful, grand, -- bust Christopher
Colombo! -- beautiful
bust, beautiful pedestal!"
The doctor put up his eye-glass -- procured for such
occasions:
"Ah -- what did you say this gentleman's name was?"
"Christopher Colombo! -- ze great Christopher Colombo!"
"Christopher Colombo -- the great Christopher Colombo.
Well,
what did he
do?"
"Discover America! -- discover America, Oh, ze devil!"
"Discover America. No -- that statement will hardly wash.
We
are just from
America ourselves. We heard nothing about it. Christopher
Colombo -- pleasant name -- is -- is he
dead?"
"Oh, corpo di Baccho! -- three hundred year!"
"What did he die of?"
"I do not know!--I can not tell."
"Small-pox, think?"
"I do not know, genteelmen! -- I do not know what he
die of!"
"Measles, likely?"
"May be -- may be -- I do not know -- I think he die of
somethings."
"Parents living?"
"Im-poseeeble!"
"Ah -- which is the bust and which is the pedestal?"
"Santa Maria! -- zis ze bust! -- zis ze
pedestal!"
"Ah, I see, I see -- happy combination -- very happy
combination, indeed. Is -- is this
the first time this gentleman was ever on a bust?"
That joke was lost on the foreigner -- guides can not
master
the subtleties of the
American joke.
We have made it interesting for this Roman guide. Yesterday
we spent three or
four hours in the Vatican, again, that wonderful world of
curiosities. We came very near
expressing interest, sometimes -- even admiration -- it was very
hard
to keep from it. We succeeded
though. Nobody else ever did, in the Vatican museums. The guide
was
bewildered --
non-plussed. He walked his legs off, nearly, hunting up
extraordinary things, and exhausted all
his ingenuity on us, but
it was a failure; we never showed any
interest in any thing. He had
reserved what he considered to be his greatest wonder till the
last -- a royal Egyptian mummy,
the best preserved in the world, perhaps. He took us there. He
felt
so sure, this time, that some
of his old enthusiasm came back to him:
"See, genteelmen! -- Mummy! Mummy!"
The eye-glass came up as calmly, as deliberately as ever.
"Ah, -- Ferguson -- what did I understand you to say the
gentleman's name was?"
"Name? -- he got no name! -- Mummy! -- 'Gyptian mummy!"
" Yes, yes. Born here?"
" No! 'Gyptian mummy!"
"Ah, just so. Frenchman, I presume?"
"No! -- not Frenchman, not Roman! -- born in Egypta!"
"Born in Egypta. Never heard of Egypta before. Foreign
locality, likely.
Mummy -- mummy. How calm he is -- how self-possessed. Is, ah
-- is he
dead?"
"Oh, sacre bleu, been dead three thousan' year!"
The doctor turned on him savagely:
"Here, now, what do you mean by such conduct as this!
Playing us for Chinamen
because we are strangers and trying to learn! Trying to impose
your
vile second-hand carcasses
on us! -- thunder and lightning, I've a notion to -- to
-- if
you've got a nice fresh
corpse, fetch him out! -- or by George we'll brain you!"
We make it exceedingly interesting for this Frenchman.
However, he has paid
us back, partly, without knowing it. He came to the hotel this
morning to ask if we were up,
and he endeavored as well as he could to describe us, so that
the
landlord would know which
persons he meant. He finished with the casual remark that we
were
lunatics. The observation
was so innocent and so honest that it amounted to a very good
thing
for a guide to say.
There is one remark (already mentioned,) which never yet
has
failed to disgust
these guides. We use it always, when we can think of nothing
else
to say. After they have
exhausted
their enthusiasm pointing out to us and praising the
beauties of some ancient bronze
image or broken-legged statue, we look at it stupidly and in
silence for five, ten, fifteen minutes -- as long as we can hold
out, in fact--and then ask:
"Is -- is he dead?"
That conquers the serenest of them. It is not what they
are
looking for -- especially
a new guide. Our Roman Ferguson is the most patient, unsuspecting,
long-suffering subject we
have had yet. We shall be sorry to part with him. We have enjoyed
his society very much. We
trust he has enjoyed ours, but we are harassed with doubts.
We have been in the catacombs. It was like going down
into
a very deep cellar,
only it was a cellar which had no end to it. The narrow passages
are roughly hewn in the rock,
and on each hand as you pass along, the hollowed shelves are
carved
out, from three to fourteen
deep; each held a corpse once. There are names, and Christian
symbols, and prayers, or
sentences expressive of Christian hopes, carved upon nearly every
sarcophagus. The dates
belong away back in the dawn of the Christian era, of course.
Here,
in these holes in the
ground, the first Christians sometimes burrowed to escape
persecution. They crawled out at
night to get food, but remained under cover in the day time.
The
priest told us that St. Sebastian
lived under ground for some time while he was being hunted; he
went
out one day, and the
soldiery discovered and shot him to death with arrows. Five or
six
of the early Popes -- those who
reigned about sixteen hundred years ago -- held their papal courts
and advised with their clergy
in the bowels of the earth. During seventeen years -- from A.
D. 235
to A. D. 252 -- the Popes did
not appear above ground. Four were raised to the great office
during that period. Four years
apiece, or thereabouts. It is very suggestive of the unhealthiness
of underground graveyards as
places of residence. One Pope afterward spent his entire
pontificate in the catacombs -- eight
years. Another was discovered in them and murdered in the episcopal
chair. There was no
satisfaction
in being a Pope in those days. There were too many
annoyances. There are one
hundred and sixty catacombs under Rome, each with its maze of
narrow passages crossing and
recrossing each other and each passage walled to the top with
scooped graves its entire length.
A careful estimate makes the length of the passages of all the
catacombs combined foot up nine
hundred miles, and their graves number seven millions. We did
not
go through all the passages
of all the catacombs. We were very anxious to do it, and made
the
necessary arrangements, but
our too limited time obliged us to give up the idea. So we only
groped through the dismal
labyrinth of St. Callixtus, under the Church of St. Sebastian.
In
the various catacombs are small
chapels rudely hewn in the stones, and here the early Christians
often held their religious
services by dim, ghostly lights. Think of mass and a sermon away
down in those tangled caverns
under ground!
In the catacombs were buried St. Cecilia, St. Agnes, and
several other of the
most celebrated of the saints. In the catacomb of St. Callixtus,
St. Bridget used to remain long
hours in holy contemplation, and St. Charles Borromeo was wont
to
spend whole nights in
prayer there. It was also the scene of a very marvelous thing.
I find that grave statement in a book published in New
York
in 1808, and written
by "Rev. William H. Neligan, LL.D., M. A., Trinity College, Dublin;
Member of the
Archaeological Society of Great Britain." Therefore, I believe
it.
Otherwise, I could not. Under
other circumstances I should have felt a curiosity to know what
Philip had for dinner.
This author puts my credulity on its mettle every now
and
then. He tells of one
St. Joseph Calasanctius whose house in Rome he visited; he visited
only the house -- the priest
has been dead two hundred years. He says the Virgin Mary appeared
to this saint. Then he
continues:
To read that in a book written by a monk far back in the
Middle Ages, would
surprise no one; it would sound natural and proper; but when
it is
seriously stated in the middle
of the nineteenth century, by a man of finished education, an
LL.D., M. A., and an
Archaeological magnate, it sounds strangely enough. Still, I
would
gladly change my unbelief
for Neligan's faith, and let him make the conditions as hard
as he
pleased.
The old gentleman's undoubting, unquestioning simplicity
has
a rare freshness
about it in these matter-of-fact railroading and telegraphing
days.
Hear him, concerning the
church of Ara Coeli:
From the sanguinary sports of the Holy Inquisition; the slaughter
of the Coliseum; and the dismal tombs of the Catacombs, I naturally
pass to the picturesque horrors of the Capuchin Convent. We
stopped a moment in a small chapel in the church to admire a
picture of St. Michael vanquishing Satan--a picture which is
so beautiful that I can not but think it belongs to the reviled
"Renaissance," notwithstanding I believe they told us
one of the ancient old masters painted it--and then we descended
into the vast vault underneath.
Here was a spectacle for sensitive nerves! Evidently the
old masters had been at work in this place. There were six divisions
in the apartment, and each division was ornamented with a style
of decoration peculiar to itself--and these decorations were
in every instance formed of human bones! There were shapely
arches, built wholly of thigh bones; there were startling pyramids,
built wholly of grinning skulls; there were quaint architectural
structures of various kinds, built of shin bones and the bones
of the arm; on the wall were elaborate frescoes, whose curving
vines were made of knotted human vertebræ; whose delicate
tendrils were made of sinews and tendons; whose flowers were
formed of knee-caps and toe-nails. Every lasting portion of
the human frame was represented in these intricate designs (they
were by Michael Angelo, I think,) and there was a careful finish
about the work, and an attention to details that betrayed the
artist's love of his labors as well as his schooled ability.
I asked the good-natured monk who accompanied us, who did this?
And he said, "We did it"--meaning himself and his brethren
up stairs. I could see that
the old friar took a high pride in his curious show. We made
him talkative by exhibiting an interest we never betrayed to
guides.
"Who were these people?"
"We--up stairs--Monks of the Capuchin order--my brethren."
"How many departed monks were required to upholster these
six parlors?"
"These are the bones of four thousand."
"It took a long time to get enough?"
"Many, many centuries."
"Their different parts are well separated--skulls in one
room, legs in another, ribs in another--there would be stirring
times here for a while if the last trump should blow. Some of
the brethren might get hold of the wrong leg, in the confusion,
and the wrong skull, and find themselves limping, and looking
through eyes that were wider apart or closer together than they
were used to. You can not tell any of these parties apart, I
suppose?"
"Oh, yes, I know many of them."
He put his finger on a skull. "This was Brother Anselmo--dead
three hundred years--a good man."
He touched another. "This was Brother Alexander--dead
two hundred and eighty years. This was Brother Carlo--dead about
as long."
Then he took a skull and held it in his hand, and looked
reflectively upon it, after the manner of the grave-digger when
he discourses of Yorick.
"This," he said, "was Brother Thomas. He was a young prince,
the scion of a proud house that traced its lineage back to the
grand old days of Rome well nigh two thousand years ago. He
loved beneath his estate. His family persecuted him; persecuted
the girl, as well. They drove her from Rome; he followed; he
sought her far and wide; he found no trace of her. He came back
and offered his broken heart at our altar and his weary life
to the service of God. But look you. Shortly his father died,
and likewise his mother. The girl returned, rejoicing. She sought
every where for him whose eyes had used to look tenderly into
hers out of this poor skull, but she could not find him. At
last, in this coarse garb we wear, she recognized him in the
street. He knew her. It was too late. He fell where he stood.
They took him up and brought him here. He never spoke afterward.
Within the week he died. You can see the color of his hair--faded,
somewhat-- by this thin shred that clings still to the temple.
"This," [taking up a thigh bone,] "was his. The veins of this
leaf in the decorations over your head, were his finger-joints,
a hundred and fifty years ago."
This business-like way of illustrating a touching story
of the heart by laying the several fragments of the lover before
us and naming them, was as grotesque a performance, and as ghastly,
as any I ever witnessed. I hardly knew whether to smile or shudder.
There are nerves and muscles in our frames whose functions and
whose methods of working it seems a sort of sacrilege to describe
by cold physiological names and surgical technicalities, and
the monk's talk suggested to me something of this kind. Fancy
a surgeon, with his nippers lifting tendons, muscles and such
things into view, out of the complex machinery of a corpse,
and observing, "Now this little nerve quivers--the vibration
is imparted to this muscle--from here it is passed to this fibrous
substance; here its ingredients are separated by the chemical
action of the blood--one part goes to the heart and thrills
it with what is popularly termed emotion, another part follows
this nerve to the brain and communicates intelligence of a startling
character--the third part glides along this passage and touches
the spring connected with the fluid receptacles that lie in
the rear of the eye. Thus, by this simple and beautiful process,
the party is informed that his mother is dead, and he weeps."
Horrible!
I asked the monk if all the brethren up stairs expected
to be put in this place when they died. He answered quietly:
"We must all lie here at last."
See what one can accustom himself to.--The reflection
that he must some day be taken apart like an engine or a clock,
or like a house whose owner is gone, and worked up into arches
and pyramids and hideous frescoes, did not distress this monk
in the least. I thought he even looked as if he were thinking,
with complacent vanity, that his own skull would look well on
top of the heap and his own ribs add a charm to the frescoes
which possibly they lacked at present.
Here and there, in ornamental alcoves, stretched upon
beds of bones, lay dead and dried-up monks, with lank frames
dressed in the black robes one sees ordinarily upon priests.
We examined one closely. The skinny hands were clasped upon
the breast; two lustreless tufts of hair stuck to the skull;
the skin was brown and sunken; it stretched tightly over the
cheek bones and made them stand out sharply; the crisp dead
eyes were deep in the sockets; the nostrils were painfully prominent,
the end of the nose being gone; the lips had shriveled away
from the yellow teeth: and brought down to us through the circling
years, and petrified there, was a weird laugh a full century
old!
It was the jolliest laugh, but yet the most dreadful,
that one can imagine. Surely, I thought, it must have been a
most extraordinary joke this veteran produced with his latest
breath, that he has not got done laughing at it yet. At this
moment I saw that the old instinct was strong upon the boys,
and I said we had better hurry to St. Peter's. They were trying
to keep from asking, "Is--is he dead?"
It makes me dizzy, to think of the Vatican--of its wilderness
of statues, paintings, and curiosities of every description
and every age. The "old masters" (especially in sculpture,)
fairly swarm, there. I can not write about the Vatican. I think
I shall never remember any thing I saw there distinctly but
the mummies, and the Transfiguration, by Raphael, and some other
things it is not necessary to mention now. I shall remember
the Transfiguration partly because it was placed in a room almost
by itself; partly because it is acknowledged by
all to be the first oil painting in the world; and partly because
it was wonderfully beautiful. The colors are fresh and rich,
the "expression," I am told, is fine, the "feeling" is lively,
the "tone" is good, the "depth" is profound, and the width is
about four and a half feet, I should judge. It is a picture
that really holds one's attention; its beauty is fascinating.
It is fine enough to be a Renaissance. A remark I made
a while ago suggests a thought--and a hope. Is it not possible
that the reason I find such charms in this picture is because
it is out of the crazy chaos of the galleries? If some of the
others were set apart, might not they be beautiful? If this
were set in the midst of the tempest of pictures one finds in
the vast galleries of the Roman palaces, would I think it so
handsome? If, up to this time, I had seen only one "old master"
in each palace, instead of acres and acres of walls and ceilings
fairly papered with them, might I not have a more civilized
opinion of the old masters than I have now? I think so. When
I was a school-boy and was to have a new knife, I could not
make up my mind as to which was the prettiest in the show-case,
and I did not think any of them were particularly pretty; and
so I chose with a heavy heart. But when I looked at my purchase,
at home, where no glittering blades came into competition with
it, I was astonished to see how handsome it was. To this day
my new hats look better out of the shop than they did in it
with other new hats. It begins to dawn upon me, now, that possibly,
what I have been taking for uniform ugliness in the galleries
may be uniform beauty after all. I honestly hope it is, to others,
but certainly it is not to me. Perhaps the reason I used to
enjoy going to the Academy
of Fine Arts in New York was because there were but a few hundred
paintings in it, and it did not surfeit me to go through the
list. I suppose the Academy was bacon and beans in the Forty-Mile
Desert, and a European gallery is a state dinner of thirteen
courses. One leaves no sign after him of the one dish, but the
thirteen frighten away his appetite and give him no satisfaction.
There is one thing I am certain of, though. With all the
Michael Angelos, the Raphaels, the Guidos and the other old
masters, the sublime history of Rome remains unpainted! They
painted Virgins enough, and popes enough and saintly scarecrows
enough, to people Paradise, almost, and these things are all
they did paint. "Nero fiddling o'er burning Rome," the assassination
of Cæsar, the stirring spectacle of a hundred thousand
people bending forward with rapt interest, in the coliseum,
to see two skillful gladiators hacking away each others' lives,
a tiger springing upon a kneeling martyr--these and a thousand
other matters which we read of with a living interest, must
be sought for only in books--not among the rubbish left by the
old masters--who are no more, I have the satisfaction of informing
the public.
They did paint, and they did carve in marble, one historical
scene, and one only, (of any great historical consequence.)
And what was it and why did they choose it, particularly? It
was the Rape of the Sabines, and they chose it for the legs
and busts.
I like to look at statues, however, and I like to look
at pictures, also--even of monks looking up in sacred ecstacy,
and monks looking down in meditation, and monks skirmishing
for
something to eat--and therefore I drop ill nature to thank the
papal government for so jealously guarding and so industriously
gathering up these things; and for permitting me, a stranger
and not an entirely friendly one, to roam at will and unmolested
among them, charging me nothing, and only requiring that I shall
behave myself simply as well as I ought to behave in any other
man's house. I thank the Holy Father right heartily, and I wish
him long life and plenty of happiness.
The Popes have long been the patrons and preservers of
art, just as our new, practical Republic is the encourager and
upholder of mechanics. In their Vatican is stored up all that
is curious and beautiful in art; in our Patent Office is hoarded
all that is curious or useful in mechanics. When a man invents
a new style of horse-collar or discovers a new and superior
method of telegraphing, our government issues a patent to him
that is worth a fortune; when a man digs up an ancient statue
in the Campagna, the Pope gives him a fortune in gold coin.
We can make something of a guess at a man's character by the
style of nose he carries on his face. The Vatican and the Patent
Office are governmental noses, and they bear a deal of character
about them.
The guide showed us a colossal statue of Jupiter, in the
Vatican, which he said looked so damaged and rusty--so like
the God of the Vagabonds--because it had but recently been dug
up in the Campagna. He asked how much we supposed this Jupiter
was worth? I replied, with intelligent promptness, that he was
probably worth about four dollars--may be four and a half. "A
hundred thousand dollars!" Ferguson said. Ferguson said, further,
that the Pope permits no ancient work of this kind to leave
his dominions. He appoints a commission to examine discoveries
like this and report upon the value; then the Pope pays the
discoverer one-half of that assessed value and takes the statue.
He said this Jupiter was dug from a field which had just been
bought for thirty-six thousand dollars, so the first crop was
a good one for the new farmer. I do not know whether Ferguson
always tells the truth or not, but I suppose he does. I know
that an exorbitant export duty is
exacted upon all pictures painted by the old masters, in order
to discourage the sale of those in the private collections.
I am satisfied, also, that genuine old masters hardly exist
at all, in America, because the cheapest and most insignificant
of them are valued at the price of a fine farm. I proposed to
buy a small trifle of a Raphael, myself, but the price of it
was eighty thousand dollars, the export duty would have made
it considerably over a hundred, and so I studied on it awhile
and concluded not to take it.
I wish here to mention an inscription I have seen, before
I forget it:
"Glory to God in the highest, peace on earth TO
MEN OF GOOD WILL!" It is not good scripture, but it is
sound Catholic and human nature.
This is in letters of gold around the apsis of a mosaic
group at the side of the scala santa, church of St. John
Lateran, the Mother and Mistress of all the Catholic churches
of the world. The group represents the Saviour, St. Peter, Pope
Leo, St. Silvester, Constantine and Charlemagne. Peter is giving
the pallium to the Pope, and a standard to Charlemagne.
The Saviour is giving the keys to St. Silvester, and a standard
to Constantine. No prayer is offered to the Saviour, who seems
to be of little importance any where in Rome; but an inscription
below says, "Blessed Peter, give life to Pope Leo and victory
to king Charles." It does not say, "Intercede for us,
through the Saviour, with the Father, for this
boon," but "Blessed Peter, give it us."
In all seriousness--without meaning to be frivolous--without
meaning to be irreverent, and more than all, without meaning
to be blasphemous,--I state as my simple deduction from the
things I have seen and the things I have heard, that the Holy
Personages rank thus in Rome:
First--"The Mother of God"--otherwise the Virgin
Mary.
Second--The Deity.
Third--Peter.
Fourth--Some twelve or fifteen canonized Popes
and martyrs.
Fifth--Jesus Christ the Saviour--(but always as
an infant in arms.)
I may be wrong in this--my judgment errs often, just as
is the case with other men's--but it is my judgment,
be it good or bad.
Just here I will mention something that seems curious
to me. There are no "Christ's Churches" in Rome, and no "Churches
of the Holy Ghost," that I can discover. There are some four
hundred churches, but about a fourth of them seem to be named
for the Madonna and St. Peter. There are so many named for Mary
that they have to be distinguished by all sorts of affixes,
if I understand the matter rightly. Then we have churches of
St. Louis; St. Augustine; St. Agnes; St. Calixtus; St. Lorenzo
in Lucina; St. Lorenzo in Damaso; St. Cecilia; St. Athanasius;
St. Philip Neri; St. Catherine, St. Dominico, and a multitude
of lesser saints whose names are not familiar in the world--and
away down, clear out of the list of the churches, comes a couple
of hospitals: one of them is named for the Saviour and the other
for the Holy Ghost!
Day after day and night after night we have wandered among
the crumbling wonders of Rome; day after day and night after
night we have fed upon the dust and decay of five-and-twenty
centuries--have brooded over them by day and dreampt of them
by night till sometimes we seemed moldering away ourselves,
and growing defaced and cornerless, and liable at any moment
to fall a prey to some antiquary and be patched in the legs,
and "restored" with an unseemly nose, and labeled wrong and
dated wrong, and set up in the Vatican for poets to drivel about
and vandals to scribble their names on forever and forevermore.
But the surest way to stop writing about Rome is to stop.
I wished to write a real "guide-book" chapter on this fascinating
city, but I could not do it, because I have felt all the time
like a boy in a candy-shop--there was every thing to choose
from, and yet no choice. I have drifted along hopelessly for
a hundred pages of manuscript without knowing where to commence.
I will not commence at all. Our passports have been examined.
We will go to Naples.
The ship is lying here in the harbor of Naples--quarantined.
She has
been here several days and will remain several more. We that
came by rail
from Rome have escaped this misfortune. Of course no one is allowed
to go
on board the ship, or come ashore from her. She is a prison,
now. The
passengers probably spend the long, blazing days looking out
from under
the awnings at Vesuvius and the beautiful city--and in swearing.
Think of
ten days of this sort of pastime!--We go out every day in a boat
and
request them to come ashore. It soothes them. We lie ten steps
from the
ship and tell them how splendid the city is; and how much better
the hotel
fare is here than any where else in Europe; and how cool it is;
and what
frozen continents of ice cream there are; and what a time we
are having
cavorting about the country and sailing to the islands in the
Bay. This
tranquilizes them.
I shall remember our trip to Vesuvius for many a day--partly
because of its sight-seeing experiences, but chiefly on account
of the
fatigue of the journey. Two or three of us had been resting ourselves
among the tranquil and beautiful scenery of the island of Ischia,
eighteen miles out in the harbor, for two days; we called it
"resting,"
but I do not remember now what the resting consisted of, for
when we got
back to Naples we had not slept for forty-eight hours. We were
just about
to go to bed early in the evening, and catch up on
some of the sleep we had lost, when we heard of this Vesuvius
expedition.
There was to be eight of us in the party, and we were to leave
Naples at
midnight. We laid in some provisions for the trip, engaged carriages
to
take us to Annunciation, and then moved about the city, to keep
awake,
till twelve. We got away punctually, and in the course of an
hour and a
half arrived at the town of Annunciation. Annunciation is the
very last
place under the sun. In other towns in Italy the people lie around
quietly and wait for you to ask them a question or do some overt
act that
can be charged for--but in Annunciation they have lost even that
fragment
of delicacy; they seize a lady's shawl from a chair and hand
it to her and
charge a penny; they open a carriage door, and charge for it--shut
it when
you get out, and charge for it; they help you to take off a duster--two
cents; brush your clothes and make them worse than they were
before--two
cents; smile upon you--two cents; bow, with a lick-spittle smirk,
hat in
hand--two cents; they volunteer all information, such as that
the mules
will arrive presently--two cents--warm day, sir--two cents--take
you four
hours to make the ascent--two cents. And so they go. They crowd
you--infest you--swarm about you, and sweat and smell offensively,
and
look sneaking and mean, and obsequious. There is no office too
degrading
for them to perform, for money. I have had no op-
portunity to find out any thing about the upper classes by my
own
observation, but from what I hear said about them I judge that
what they
lack in one or two of the bad traits the canaille have,
they make
up in one or two others that are worse. How the people beg!--many
of them
very well dressed, too.
I said I knew nothing against the upper classes by personal
observation. I must recall it! I had forgotten. What I saw their
bravest
and their fairest do last night, the lowest multitude that could
be
scraped up out of the purlieus of Christendom would blush to
do, I think.
They assembled by hundreds, and even thousands, in the great
Theatre of
San Carlo, to do--what? Why, simply, to make fun of an old woman--to
deride, to hiss, to jeer at an actress they once worshipped,
but whose
beauty is faded now and whose voice has lost its former richness.
Every
body spoke of the rare sport there was to be. They said the theatre
would
be crammed, because Frezzolini was going to sing. It was said
she could
not sing well, now, but then the people liked to see her, anyhow.
And so
we went. And every time the woman sang they hissed and laughed--the
whole
magnificent house--and as soon as she left the stage they called
her on
again with applause. Once or twice she was encored five and six
times in
succession, and received with hisses when she appeared, and discharged
with hisses and laughter when she had finished--then instantly
encored and
insulted again! And how the high-born knaves enjoyed it! White-kidded
gentlemen and ladies laughed till the tears came, and clapped
their hands
in very ecstacy when that unhappy old woman would come meekly
out for the
sixth time, with uncomplaining patience, to meet a storm of hisses!
It was
the cruelest exhibition--the most wanton, the most unfeeling.
The singer
would have conquered an audience of American rowdies by her brave,
unflinching tranquillity (for she answered encore after encore,
and smiled
and bowed pleasantly, and sang the best she possibly could, and
went
bowing off, through all the jeers and hisses, without ever losing
countenance or temper:) and surely in any other land than Italy
her sex
and her helplessness must have been an ample protec-
tion to her--she could have needed no other. Think what a multitude
of
small souls were crowded into that theatre last night. If the
manager
could have filled his theatre with Neapolitan souls alone, without
the
bodies, he could not have cleared less than ninety millions of
dollars.
What traits of character must a man have to enable him to help
three
thousand miscreants to hiss, and jeer, and laugh at one friendless
old
woman, and shamefully humiliate her? He must have all
the vile,
mean traits there are. My observation persuades me (I do not
like to
venture beyond my own personal observation,) that the upper classes
of
Naples possess those traits of character. Otherwise they may
be very good
people; I can not say.
In this city of Naples, they believe in and support one
of the
wretchedest of all the religious impostures one can find in Italy--the
miraculous liquefaction of the blood of St. Januarius. Twice
a year the
priests assemble all the people at the Cathedral, and get out
this vial
of clotted blood and let them see it slowly dissolve and become
liquid--and every day for eight days, this dismal farce is repeated,
while
the priests go among the crowd and collect money for the exhibition.
The
first day, the blood liquefies in forty-seven minutes--the church
is
crammed, then, and time must be allowed the collectors to get
around:
after that it liquefies a little quicker and a little quicker,
every day,
as the houses grow smaller, till on the eighth day, with only
a few
dozens present to see the miracle, it liquefies in four minutes.
And here, also, they used to have a grand procession,
of priests,
citizens, soldiers, sailors, and the high dignitaries of the
City
Government, once a year, to shave the head of a made-up Madonna--a
stuffed
and painted image, like a milliner's dummy--whose hair miraculously
grew
and restored itself every twelve months. They still kept up this
shaving
procession as late as four or five years ago. It was a source
of great
profit to the church that possessed the remarkable effigy, and
the ceremony of the public barbering of her was always carried
out with
the greatest possible eclat and display--the more the better,
because the
more excitement there was about it the larger the crowds it drew
and the
heavier the revenues it produced--but at last a day came when
the Pope
and his servants were unpopular in Naples, and the City Government
stopped
the Madonna's annual show.
There we have two specimens of these Neapolitans--two
of the
silliest possible frauds, which half the population religiously
and
faithfully believed, and the other half either believed also
or else said
nothing about, and thus lent themselves to the support of the
imposture.
I am very well satisfied to think the whole population believed
in those
poor, cheap miracles--a people who want two cents every time
they bow to
you, and who abuse a woman, are capable of it, I think.
These Neapolitans always ask four times as much money
as they
intend to take, but if you give them what they first demand,
they feel
ashamed of themselves for aiming so low, and immediately ask
more. When
money is to be paid and received, there is always some vehement
jawing and
gesticulating about it. One can not buy and pay for two cents'
worth of
clams without trouble and a quarrel. One "course," in a two-horse
carriage, costs a franc--that is law--but the hackman always
demands
more, on some pretence or other, and if he gets it he makes a
new demand.
It is said that a stranger took a one-horse carriage for a course--tariff,
half a franc. He gave the man five francs, by way of experiment.
He
demanded more, and received another franc. Again he demanded
more, and got
a franc--demanded more, and it was refused. He grew vehement--was
again
refused, and became noisy. The stranger said, "Well, give me
the seven
francs again, and I will see what I can do"--and when he got
them, he
handed the hackman half a franc, and he immediately asked for
two cents
to buy a drink with. It may be thought that I am prejudiced.
Perhaps I am. I would be ashamed of myself if I were not.
Well, as I was saying, we got our mules and horses, after
an hour
and a half of bargaining with the population of Annunciation,
and started
sleepily up the mountain, with a vagrant at each mule's tail
who pretended
to be driving the brute along, but was really holding on and
getting
himself dragged up instead. I made slow headway at first, but
I began to
get dissatisfied at the idea of paying my minion five francs
to hold my
mule back by the tail and keep him from going up the hill, and
so I
discharged him. I got along faster then.
We had one magnificent picture of Naples from a high point
on the
mountain side. We saw nothing but the gas lamps, of course--two-thirds
of
a circle, skirting the great Bay--a necklace of diamonds glinting
up
through the darkness from the remote distance--less brilliant
than the
stars overhead, but more softly, richly beautiful--and over all
the great
city the lights crossed and recrossed each other in many and
many a
sparkling line and curve. And back of the town, far around and
abroad over
the miles of level campagna, were scattered rows, and circles,
and
clusters of lights, all glowing like so many gems, and marking
where a
score of villages were sleeping. About this time, the fellow
who was
hanging on to the tail of the horse in front of me and practicing
all
sorts of unnecessary cruelty upon the animal, got kicked some
fourteen
rods, and this incident, together with the fairy spectacle of
the lights
far in the distance, made me serenely happy, and I was glad I
started to
Vesuvius.
This subject will be excellent matter for a chapter, and
tomorrow
or next day I will write it.
"See Naples and die." Well, I do not know that one
would necessarily die after merely seeing it, but to attempt
to
live
there might turn out a little differently. To see Naples as we
saw
it in the early dawn from far up on the side of Vesuvius, is
to see
a picture of wonderful beauty. At that distance its dingy buildings
looked white -- and so, rank on rank of balconies, windows and
roofs, they piled themselves up from the blue ocean till the
colossal castle of St. Elmo topped the grand white pyramid and
gave the picture symmetry, emphasis and completeness. And when
its lilies turned to roses -- when it blushed under the sun's
first
kiss -- it was beautiful beyond all description. One might well
say,
then, "See Naples and die." The frame of the picture was
charming, itself. In front, the smooth sea -- a vast mosaic of
many
colors; the lofty islands swimming in a dreamy haze in the
distance; at our end of the city the stately double peak of
Vesuvius, and its strong black ribs and seams of lava stretching
down to the limitless level campagna -- a green carpet that
enchants the eye and leads it on and on, past clusters of trees,
and
isolated houses, and snowy villages, until it shreds out in a
fringe
of mist and general vagueness far away. It is from the Hermitage,
there on the side of Vesuvius, that one should " see Naples and
die."
But do not go within the walls and look at it in
detail. That takes away some of the romance of the thing. The
people are filthy in their habits, and this makes filthy streets
and
breeds disagreeable sights and smells. There never was a
community so prejudiced against the cholera as these Neapolitans
are. But they have good reason to be. The cholera generally
vanquishes a Neapolitan when it seizes him, because, you
understand, before the doctor can dig through the dirt and get
at
the disease the man dies. The upper classes take a sea-bath
every
day, and are pretty decent.
The streets are generally about wide enough for one
wagon, and how they do swarm with people! It is Broadway
repeated in every street, in every court, in every alley! Such
masses, such throngs, such multitudes of hurrying, bustling,
struggling humanity! We never saw the like of it, hardly even
in
New York, I think. There are seldom any sidewalks, and when
there are, they are not often wide enough to pass a man on
without caroming on him. So everybody walks in the street --
and
where the street is wide enough, carriages are forever dashing
along. Why a thousand people are not run over and crippled every
day is a mystery that no man can solve.
But if there is an eighth wonder in the world, it must be the
dwelling-houses of Naples. I honestly believe a good majority
of
them are a hundred feet high! And the solid brick walls are
seven
feet through. You go up nine flights of stairs before you get
to
the
"first" floor. No, not nine, but there or thereabouts. There
is a
little bird-cage of an iron railing in front of every window
clear
away up, up, up, among the eternal clouds, where the roof is,
and
there is always somebody looking out of every window -- people
of ordinary size looking out from the first floor, people a
shade
smaller from the second, people that look a little smaller yet
from
the third -- and from thence upward they grow smaller and smaller
by a regularly graduated diminution, till the folks in the topmost
windows seem more like birds in an uncommonly tall martin-box
than any thing else. The perspective of one of these narrow
cracks
of streets, with its rows of tall houses stretching away till
they
come together in the distance like railway tracks; its
clothes-lines
crossing over at all altitudes and waving their bannered raggedness
over the swarms of people below; and the white-dressed women
perched in balcony railings all the way from the pavement up
to
the heavens -- a perspective like that is really worth going
into
Neapolitan details to see.
Naples, with its immediate suburbs, contains six
hundred and twenty-five thousand inhabitants, but I am satisfied
it
covers no more ground than an American city of one hundred and
fifty thousand. It reaches up into the air infinitely higher
than
three
American cities, though, and there is where the secret of it
lies.
I
will observe here, in passing, that the contrasts between opulence
and poverty, and magnificence and misery, are more frequent and
more striking in Naples than in Paris even. One must go to the
Bois de Boulogne to see fashionable dressing, splendid equipages
and stunning liveries, and to the Faubourg St. Antoine to see
vice,
misery, hunger, rags, dirt -- but in the thoroughfares of Naples
these things are all mixed together. Naked boys of nine years
and
the fancy-dressed children of luxury; shreds and tatters, and
brilliant
uniforms; jackass-carts and state-carriages; beggars,
Princes and Bishops, jostle each other in every street. At six
o'clock every evening, all Naples turns out to drive on the
Riviere di Chiaja, (whatever that may mean;) and for
two hours one may stand there and see the motliest and the worst
mixed procession go by that ever eyes beheld. Princes (there
are
more Princes than policemen in Naples -- the city is infested
with
them) -- Princes who live up seven flights of stairs and don't
own
any principalities, will keep a carriage and go hungry; and clerks,
mechanics, milliners and strumpets will go without their dinners
and squander the money on a hack-ride in the Chiaja; the rag-tag
and rubbish of the city stack themselves up, to the number of
twenty or thirty, on a rickety little go-cart hauled by a donkey
not
much bigger than a cat, and they drive in the Chiaja; Dukes and
bankers, in sumptuous carriages and with gorgeous drivers and
footmen, turn out, also, and so the furious procession goes.
For
two hours rank and wealth, and obscurity and poverty clatter
along
side by side in the wild procession, and then go home serene,
happy, covered with glory!
I was looking at a magnificent marble staircase in
the King's palace, the other day, which, it was said, cost five
million francs, and I suppose it did cost half a million, may
be.
I
felt as if it must be a fine thing to live in a country where
there
was such comfort and such luxury as this. And then I stepped
out
musing, and almost walked over a vagabond who was eating his
dinner on the curbstone -- a piece of bread and a bunch of grapes.
When I found that this mustang was clerking in a fruit
establishment (he had the establishment along with him in a
basket,) at two cents a day, and that he had no palace at home
where he lived, I lost some of my enthusiasm concerning the
happiness of living in Italy.
This naturally suggests to me a thought about wages
here. Lieutenants in the army get about a dollar a day, and
common soldiers a couple of cents. I only know one clerk -- he
gets four dollars a month. Printers get six dollars and a half
a
month, but I have heard of a foreman who gets thirteen.
To be
growing suddenly and violently rich, as this man is, naturally
makes him a bloated aristocrat. The airs he puts on are
insufferable.
And, speaking of wages, reminds me of prices of
merchandise. In Paris you pay twelve dollars a dozen for Jouvin's
best kid gloves; gloves of about as good quality sell here at
three
or four dollars a dozen. You pay five and six dollars apiece
for
fine linen shirts in Paris; here and in Leghorn you pay two and
a
half. In Marseilles you pay forty dollars for a first-class dress
coat
made by a good tailor, but in Leghorn you can get a full dress
suit
for the same money. Here you get handsome business suits at from
ten to twenty dollars, and in Leghorn you can get an overcoat
for
fifteen dollars that would cost you seventy in New York. Fine
kid
boots are worth eight dollars in Marseilles and four dollars
here.
Lyons velvets rank higher in America than those of Genoa. Yet
the
bulk of Lyons velvets you buy in the States are made in Genoa
and
imported into Lyons, where they receive the Lyons stamp and are
then exported to America. You can buy enough velvet in Genoa
for twenty-five dollars to make a five hundred dollar cloak in
New
York -- so the ladies tell me. Of course these things bring me
back, by a natural and easy transition, to the
And thus the wonderful Blue Grotto is suggested to
me. It is situated on the Island of Capri, twenty-two miles from
Naples. We chartered a little steamer and went out there. Of
course, the police boarded us and put us through a health
examination, and inquired into our politics, before they would
let
us land. The airs these little insect Governments put on are
in the
last degree ridiculous. They even put a policeman on board of
our
boat to keep an eye on us as long as we were in the Capri
dominions. They thought we wanted to steal the grotto, I suppose.
It was worth stealing. The entrance to the cave is four feet
high
and four feet wide, and is in the face of a lofty perpendicular
cliff
-- the sea-wall. You enter in
small boats -- and a tight squeeze it
is, too. You can not go in at all when the tide is up. Once within,
you find yourself in an arched cavern about one hundred and sixty
feet long, one hundred and twenty wide, and about seventy high.
How deep it is no man knows. It goes down to the bottom of the
ocean. The waters of this placid subterranean lake are the
brightest, loveliest blue that can be imagined. They are as
transparent as plate glass, and their coloring would shame the
richest sky that ever bent over Italy. No tint could be more
ravishing, no lustre more superb. Throw a stone into the water,
and the myriad of tiny bubbles that are created flash out a
brilliant
glare like blue theatrical fires. Dip an oar, and its blade turns
to
splendid frosted silver, tinted with blue. Let a man jump in,
and
instantly he is cased in an armor more gorgeous than ever kingly
Crusader wore.
Then we went to Ischia, but I had already been to
that
island and tired myself to death "resting" a couple of days
and studying human villainy, with the landlord of the Grande
Sentinelle for a model. So we went to Procida, and from thence
to
Pozzuoli, where St. Paul landed after he sailed from Samos. I
landed at precisely the same spot where St. Paul landed, and
so
did Dan and the others. It was a remarkable coincidence. St.
Paul
preached to these people seven days before he started to Rome.
Nero's Baths, the ruins of Baiæ, the Temple of
Serapis; Cumæ, where the Cumæn Sybil interpreted
the
oracles,
the Lake Agnano, with its ancient submerged city still visible
far
down in its depths -- these and a hundred other points of interest
we examined with critical imbecility, but the Grotto
of the Dog
claimed our chief attention, because we had heard and read so
much about it. Every body has written about the Grotto del Cane
and its poisonous vapors, from Pliny down to Smith, and every
tourist has held a dog over its floor by the legs to test the
capabilities of the place. The dog dies in a minute and a half
--
a
chicken instantly. As a general thing, strangers who crawl in
there
to sleep do not get up until they are called. And then they don't
either. The stranger that ventures to sleep there takes a permanent
contract. I longed to see this grotto. I resolved to take a dog
and
hold him myself'; suffocate him a little, and time him; suffocate
him some more and then finish him. We reached the grotto at
about three in the afternoon, and proceeded at once to make the
experiments. But now, an important difficulty presented itself.
We
had no dog.
At the Hermitage we were about fifteen or eighteen
hundred feet above the sea, and thus far a portion of the ascent
had been pretty abrupt. For the next two miles the road was a
mixture -- sometimes the ascent was abrupt and sometimes it was
not: but one characteristic it possessed all the time, without
failure
-- without modification -- it was all uncompromis-
ingly and
unspeakably infamous. It was a rough, narrow trail, and led over
an old lava flow -- a black ocean which was tumbled into a
thousand fantastic shapes -- a wild chaos of ruin, desolation,
and
barrenness -- a wilderness of billowy upheavals, of furious
whirlpools, of miniature mountains rent asunder -- of gnarled
and
knotted, wrinkled and twisted masses of blackness that mimicked
branching roots, great vines, trunks of trees, all interlaced
and
mingled together: and all these weird shapes, all this turbulent
panorama, all this stormy, far-stretching waste of blackness,
with
its thrilling suggestiveness of life, of action, of boiling,
surging,
furious motion, was petrified! -- all stricken dead and cold
in the
instant of its maddest rioting! -- fettered, paralyzed, and left
to
glower at heaven in impotent rage for evermore!
Finally we stood in a level, narrow valley (a valley
that had been created by the terrific march of some old time
irruption) and on either hand towered the two steep peaks of
Vesuvius. The one we had to climb -- the one that contains the
active volcano -- seemed about eight hundred or one thousand
feet
high, and looked almost too straight-up-and-down for any man
to
climb, and certainly no mule could climb it with a man on his
back. Four of these native pirates will carry you to the top
in a
sedan chair, if you wish it, but suppose they were to slip and
let
you fall, -- is it likely that you would ever stop rolling? Not
this
side of eternity, perhaps. We left the mules, sharpened our
finger-nails, and began the ascent I have been writing about
so
long, at twenty minutes to six in the morning. The path led
straight
up a rugged sweep of loose chunks of pumice-stone, and for about
every two steps forward we took, we slid back one. It was so
excessively steep that we had to stop, every fifty or sixty steps,
and rest a moment. To see our comrades, we had to look very
nearly straight up at those above us, and very nearly straight
down
at those below. We stood on the summit at last -- it had taken
an
hour and fifteen minutes to make the trip.
What we saw there was simply a circular crater --
a circular ditch, if you please -- about two hundred feet deep,
and
four
or five hundred feet wide, whose inner wall was about half a
mile in circumference. In the centre of the great circus ring
thus
formed, was a torn and ragged upheaval a hundred feet high, all
snowed over with a sulphur crust of many and many a brilliant
and
beautiful color, and the ditch inclosed this like the moat of
a
castle, or surrounded it as a little river does a little island,
if
the
simile is better. The sulphur coating of that island was gaudy
in
the extreme -- all mingled together in the richest confusion
were
red, blue, brown, black, yellow, white -- I do not know that
there
was a color, or shade of a color, or combination of colors,
unrepresented -- and when the sun burst through the morning mists
and fired this tinted magnificence, it topped imperial Vesuvius
like
a jeweled crown!
The crater itself -- the ditch -- was not so variegated
in coloring, but yet, in its softness, richness, and unpretentious
elegance, it was more charming, more fascinating to the eye.
There was nothing "loud" about its well-bred and well-creased
look. Beautiful? One could stand and look down upon it for a
week
without getting tired of it. It had the semblance of a pleasant
meadow, whose slender grasses and whose velvety mosses were
frosted with a shining dust, and tinted with palest green that
deepened gradually to the darkest hue of the orange leaf, and
deepened yet again into gravest brown, then faded into orange,
then into brightest gold, and culminated in the delicate pink
of a
new-blown rose. Where portions of the meadow had sunk, and
where other portions had been broken up like an ice-floe, the
cavernous openings of the one, and the ragged upturned edges
exposed by the other, were hung with a lace-work of soft-tinted
crystals of sulphur that changed their deformities into quaint
shapes
and figures that were full of grace and beauty.
The walls of the ditch were brilliant with yellow
banks of sulphur and with lava and pumice-stone of many colors.
No fire was visible any where, but gusts of sulphurous steam
issued silently and invisibly from a thousand little cracks and
fissures in the crater, and were wafted to our noses with every
breeze. But so long as we kept our nostrils buried in our
handkerchiefs, there was small danger of suffocation.
Some of the boys thrust long slips of paper down
into holes and set them on fire, and so achieved the glory of
lighting their cigars by the flames of Vesuvius, and others cooked
eggs over fissures in the rocks and were happy.
The view from the summit would have been superb
but for the fact that the sun could only pierce the mists at
long
intervals. Thus the glimpses we had of the grand panorama below
were only fitful and unsatisfactory.
The descent of the mountain was a labor of only
four minutes. Instead of stalking down the rugged path we
ascended, we chose one which was bedded knee-deep in loose
ashes, and ploughed our way with prodigious strides that would
almost have shamed the performance of him of the seven-league
boots.
The Vesuvius of today is a very poor affair
compared to the mighty volcano of Kilauea, in the Sandwich
Islands, but I am glad I visited it. It was well worth it.
It is said that during one of the grand eruptions of
Vesuvius it discharged massy rocks weighing many tons a
thousand feet into the air, its vast jets of smoke and
steam
ascended thirty miles toward the firmament, and clouds of its
ashes
were wafted abroad and fell upon the decks of ships seven hundred
and fifty miles at sea! I will take the ashes at a moderate
discount,
if any one will take the thirty miles of smoke, but I do not
feel
able to take a commanding interest in the whole story by myself.
They pronounce it Pom-pay-e. I always had an idea that
you went
down into Pompeii with torches, by the way of damp, dark stairways,
just
as you do in silver mines, and traversed gloomy tunnels with
lava
overhead and something on either hand like dilapidated prisons
gouged
out of the solid earth, that faintly resembled houses. But you
do nothing
the kind. Fully one-half of the buried city, perhaps, is completely
exhumed
and thrown open freely to the light of day; and there stand the
long rows
of solidly-built brick houses (roofless) just as they stood eighteen
hundred
years ago, hot with the flaming sun; and there lie their floors,
clean-
wept,
and not a bright fragment tarnished or waiting of the labored
mosaics
that
pictured them with the beasts, and birds, and flowers which we
copy in
perishable carpets to-day; and here are the Venuses, and Bacchuses,
and
Adonises, making love and getting drunk in many-hued frescoes
on the
walls of saloon and bed-chamber; and there are the narrow streets
and
narrower sidewalks, pa,ed with flags of good bard lava, the ne
deeply
rutted with the chariot-wheels, and the other with the passing
feet of the
Pompeiians of by-gone centuries; and there are the bake-shops,
the
temples, the halls of justice, the bath,s, the theatres--all
clean-scraped
and
neat, and suggesting nothing of the nature of a silver mine away
down in
the bowels of the earth. The broken pillars lying about, the
doorless
doorways and the crumbled tops of the wilderness of walls,
were wonderfully suggestive of the "burnt district" in one of
our cities,
and
if there had been any charred timbers, shattered windows, heaps
of debris,
and general blackness and smokiness about the place, the resemblance
would have been perfect. But no--the sun shines as brightly
down on old
Pompeii to-day as it did when Christ was born in Bethlehem,
and its
streets are cleaner a hundred times than ever Pompeiian saw them
in her
prime. I know whereof I speak--for in the great, chief thoroughfares
(Merchant street and the Street of Fortune) have I not seen with
my own
eyes how for two hundred years at least the pavements were not
repaired!--bow ruts five and even ten inches deep were worn into
the
thick flagstones by the chariot-wheels of generations of swindled
tax-
payers? And do I not know by these signs that Street Commissioners
of
Pompeii never attended to their business, and that if they never
mended
the pavements they never cleaned them? And, besides, is it not
the inborn
nature of Street Commis-
sioners to avoid their duty whenever they get a chance? I wish
I knew the
name of the last one that held office in Pompeii so that I could
give him a
blast. I speak with feeling on this subject, because I caught
my foot in one
of those ruts, and the sadness that came over me when I saw the
first
poor
skeleton, with ashes and lava sticking to it, was tempered by
the
reflection
that may be that party was the Street Commissioner.
No--Pompeii is no longer a buried city. It is a city of
hundreds and
hundreds of roofless houses, and a tangled maze of streets where
one
could
easily get lost, without a guide, and have to sleep in some ghostly
palace
that had known no living tenant since that awful November night
of
eighteen centuries ago.
We passed through the gate which faces the Mediterranean,
(called
the "Marine Gate,") and by the rusty, broken image of Minerva,
still
keeping tireless watch and ward over the possessions it was powerless
to
save, and went up a long street and stood in the broad court
of the Forum
of Justice. The floor was level and clean, and up and down either
side was
a noble colonnade of broken pillars, with their beautiful Ionic
and
Corinthian columns scattered about them. At the upper end were
the
vacant seats of the Judges, and behind them we descended into
a dungeon
where the ashes and cinders had found two prisoners chained on
that
memorable November night, and tortured them to death. How they
must
have tugged at the pitiless fetters as the fierce fires surged
around them!
Then we lounged through many and many a sumptuous private
mansion which we could not have entered without a formal invitation
in
incomprehensible Latin, in the olden time, when the owners lived
there--
and we probably wouldn't have got it. These people built their
houses a
good deal alike. The floors were laid in fanciful figures wrought
in
mosaics
of many-colored marbles. At the threshold your eyes fall upon
a Latin
sentence of welcome, sometimes, or a picture of a dog, with the
legend
"Beware of the Dog," and sometimes a pic-
ture of a bear or a faun with no inscription at all. Then you
enter a sort of
vestibule, where they used to keep the hat-rack, I suppose; next
a room
with a large marble basin in the midst and the pipes of a fountain;
on
either side are bedrooms; beyond the fountain is a reception-room,
then a
little garden, dining-room, and so forth and so on. The floors
were all
mosaic, the walls were stuccoed, or frescoed, or ornamented
with bas-
reliefs, and here and there were statues, large and small, and
little fish-
pools, and cascades of sparkling water that sprang from secret
places in
the colonnade of handsome pillars that surrounded the court,
and kept the
flower-beds fresh and the air cool. Those Pompeiians were very
luxurious
in their tastes and habits. The most exquisite bronzes we have
seen in
Europe, came from the exhumed cities of Herculaneum and Pompeii,
and
also the finest cameos and the most delicate engravings on precious
stones; their pictures, eighteen or nineteen centuries old, are
often much
more pleasing than the cel-
ebrated rubbish of the old masters of three centuries ago. They
were well
up in art. From the creation of these works of the first, clear
up to the
eleventh century, art seems hardly to have existed at all--at
least no
remnants of it are left--and it was curious to see how far
(in some
things,
at any rate,) these old time pagans excelled the remote generations
of
masters that came after them. The pride of the world in sculptures
seem
to
be the Laocoon and the Dying Gladiator, in Rome. They are as
old as
Pompeii, were dug from the earth like Pompeii; but their exact
age or who
made them can only be conjectured. But worn, and cracked, without
a
history, and with the blemishing stains of numberless centuries
upon
them, they still mutely mock at all efforts to rival their perfections.
It was a quaint and curious pastime, wandering through
this old
silent city of the dead--lounging through utterly deserted streets
where
thousands and thousands of human beings once bought and sold,
and
walked and rode, and made the place resound with the noise and
confusion
of traffic and pleasure. They were not lazy. They hurried in
those days. We
had evidence of that. There was a temple on one corner, and it
was a
shorter cut to go between the columns of that temple from one
street to
the other than to go around--and behold that pathway had been
worn
deep into the heavy flagstone floor of the building by generations
of time-
saving feet! They would not go around when it was quicker to
go through.
We do that way in our cities.
Every where, you see things that make you wonder how old
these
old houses were before the night of destruction came--things,
too, which
bring back those long dead inhabitants and place the living before
your
eyes. For instance: The steps (two feet thick--lava blocks) that
lead up
out
of the school, and the same kind of steps that lead up into the
dress circle
of the principal theatre, are almost worn through! For ages the
boys
hurried out of that school, and for ages their parents hurried
into that
theatre, and the nervous feet that have been dust and ashes for
eighteen
centuries have left their record for
us to read to-day. I imagined I could see crowds of gentlemen
and ladies
thronging into the theatre, with tickets for secured seats in
their hands,
and on the wall, I read the imaginary placard, in infamous grammar,
"POSITIVELY NO FREE
LIST, EXCEPT MEMBERS OF THE PRESS!" Hanging about the
doorway (I fancied,) were slouchy Pompeiian street-boys uttering
slang
and profanity, and keeping a wary eye out for checks. I entered
the
theatre, and sat down in one of the long rows of stone benches
in the dress
circle, and looked at the place for the orchestra, and the ruined
stage, and
around at the wide sweep of empty boxes, and thought to myself,
"This
house won't pay." I tried to imagine the music in full blast,
the leader of
the orchestra beating time, and the "versatile" So-and-So (who
had "just
returned from a most successful tour in the provinces to play
his last and
farewell engagement of positively six nights only, in Pompeii,
previous to
his departure for Herculaneum,") charging around the stage and
piling the
agony mountains high--but I could not do it with such a "house"
as that;
those empty benches tied my fancy down to dull reality. I said,
these
people that ought to be here have been dead, and still, and moldering
to
dust for ages and ages, and will never care for the trifles and
follies of
life
any more for ever--"Owing to circumstances, etc., etc., there
will not be
any performance to-night." Close down the curtain. Put out the
lights.
And so I turned away and went through shop after shop
and store
after store, far down the long street of the merchants, and called
for the
wares of Rome and the East, but the tradesmen were gone, the
marts were
silent, and nothing was left but the broken jars all set in cement
of
cinders
and ashes: the wine and the oil that once had filled them were
gone with
their owners.
In a bake-shop was a mill for grinding the grain, and
the furnaces
for baking the bread: and they say that here, in the same furnaces,
the
exhumers of Pompeii found nice, well baked loaves which the baker
had
not found time to remove from the ovens the last time he left
his shop,
because circumstances compelled him to leave in such a hurry.
In one house (the only building in Pompeii which no woman
is now
allowed to enter,) were the small rooms and short beds of
solid
masonry,
just as they were in the old times, and on the walls were pictures
which
looked almost as fresh as if they were painted yesterday, but
which no
pen could have the hardihood to describe; and here and there
were Latin
inscriptions--obscene scintillations of wit, scratched by hands
that
possibly were uplifted to Heaven for succor in the midst of
a driving
storm of fire before the night was done.
In one of the principal streets was a ponderous stone
tank, and a
water-spout that supplied it, and where the tired, heated toilers
from
the
Campagna used to rest their right hands when they bent over
to put their
lips to the spout, the thick stone was worn down to a broad
groove an
inch or two deep. Think of the countless thousands of hands
that had
pressed that spot in the ages that are gone, to so reduce a stone
that is
as
hard as iron!
They had a great public bulletin board in Pompeii--a place
where
announcements for gladiatorial combats, elections, and such
things, were
posted--not on perishable paper, but carved in enduring stone.
One lady,
who, I take it, was rich and well brought up, advertised a dwelling
or so to
rent, with baths and all the modern improvements, and several
hundred
shops, stipulating that the dwellings should not be put to immoral
purposes. You can find out who lived in many a house in Pompeii
by the
carved stone door-plates affixed to them: and in the same way
you can tell
who they were that occupy the tombs. Every where around are things
that
reveal to you something of the customs and history of this forgotten
people. But what would a volcano leave of an American city,
if it once
rained its cinders on it? Hardly a sign or a symbol to tell its
story.
In one of these long Pompeiian halls the skeleton of a
man was
found, with ten pieces of gold in one hand and a large key in
the other. He
had seized his money and started toward the door, but the fiery
tempest
caught him at the very threshold, and he sank down and died.
One more
minute of precious
time would have saved him. I saw the skeletons of a man, a
woman, and
two young girls. The woman had her hands spread wide apart,
as if in
mortal terror, and I imagined I could still trace upon her shapeless
face
something of the expression of wild despair that distorted it
when the
heavens rained fire in these streets, so many ages ago. The girls
and the
man lay with their faces upon their arms, as if they had tried
to shield
them from the enveloping cinders. In one apartment eighteen
skeletons
were found, all in sitting postures, and blackened places
on the walls
still
mark their shapes and show their attitudes, like shadows. One
of them, a
woman, still wore upon her skeleton throat a necklace, with
her name
engraved upon it--JULIE DI DIOMEDE.
But perhaps the most poetical thing Pompeii has yielded to
modern
research, was that grand figure of a Roman soldier, clad in complete
armor;
who, true to his duty, true to his proud name of a soldier of
Rome, and full
of the stern courage which had given to that name its glory,
stood to his
post by the city gate, erect and unflinching, till the hell that
raged around
him burned out the dauntless spirit it could not conquer.
We never read of Pompeii but we think of that soldier;
we can not
write of Pompeii without the natural impulse to grant to him
the mention
he so well deserves. Let us remember that he was a soldier--not
a
policeman--and so, praise him. Being a soldier, he staid,--because
the
warrior instinct forbade him to fly. Had he been a policeman
he would
have staid, also--because he would have been asleep.
There are not half a dozen flights of stairs in Pompeii,
and no other
evidences that the houses were more than one story high. The
people did
not live in the clouds, as do the Venetians, the Genoese and
Neapolitans of
to-day.
We came out from under the solemn mysteries of this city
of the
Venerable Past--this city which perished, with all its old ways
and its
quaint old fashions about it, remote centuries ago, when the
Disciples
were
preaching the new religion, which is as old as the hills to us
now--and
went dreaming among the trees that grow over acres and acres
of its still
buried streets and squares, till a shrill whistle and the cry
of "All
aboard--last train for Naples!" woke me up and reminded me
that I
belonged in the nineteenth century, and was not a dusty mummy,
caked
with ashes and cinders, eighteen hundred years old. The transition
was
startling. The idea of a railroad train actually running to old
dead Pompeii,
and whistling irreverently, and calling for passengers in the
most bustling
and business-like way, was as strange a thing as one could imagine,
and as
unpoetical and disagreeable as it was strange.
Compare the cheerful life and the sunshine of this day
with the
horrors the younger Pliny saw here, the 9th of November, A.D.
79, when
he was so bravely striving to remove his
mother out of reach of harm, while she begged him, with all a
mother's
unselfishness, to leave her to perish and save himself.
"Some implored the gods to succor them, and some believed
that
this night was the last, the eternal night which should engulf
the universe!
"Even so it seemed to me--and I consoled myself for the
coming
death with the reflection: BEHOLD, THE WORLD IS PASSING AWAY!"
After browsing among the stately ruins of Rome, of Baiæ,
of
Pompeii, and after glancing down the long marble ranks of battered
and
nameless imperial heads that stretch down the corridors of the
Vatican,
one thing strikes me with a force it never had before: the unsubstantial,
unlasting character of fame. Men lived long lives, in the olden
time, and
struggled feverishly through them, toiling like slaves, in oratory,
in
generalship, or in literature, and then laid them down and died,
happy in
the possession of an enduring history and a deathless
name. Well, twenty little centuries flutter away, and what is
left of
these things? A crazy inscription on a block of stone, which
snuffy
antiquaries bother over and tangle up and make nothing out of
but a bare
name (which they spell wrong)--no history, no tradition, no poetry--
nothing that can give it even a passing interest. What may be
left of
General Grant's great name forty centuries hence? This--in
the
Encyclopedia for A. D. 5868, possibly:
These thoughts sadden me. I will to bed.
Home, again! For the first time, in many weeks, the ship's
entire family met and shook hands on the quarter-deck. They
had gathered from many points of the compass and from many lands,
but not one was missing; there was no tale of sickness or death
among the flock to dampen the pleasure of the reunion. Once
more there was a full audience on deck to listen to the sailors'
chorus as they got the anchor up, and to wave an adieu to the
land as we sped away from Naples. The seats were full at dinner
again, the domino parties were complete, and the life and bustle
on the upper deck in the fine moonlight at night was like old
times--old times that had been gone weeks only, but yet they
were weeks so crowded with incident, adventure and excitement,
that they seemed almost like years. There was no lack of cheerfulness
on board the Quaker City. For once, her title was a misnomer.
At seven in the evening, with the western horizon all
golden from the sunken sun, and specked with distant ships,
the full moon sailing high over head, the dark blue of the sea
under foot, and a strange sort of twilight affected by all these
different lights and colors around us and about us, we sighted
superb Stromboli. With what majesty the monarch held his lonely
state above the level sea! Distance clothed him in a purple
gloom, and added a veil of shimmering mist that so softened
his rugged features that we seemed to see him through a a web
of silver gauze. His torch was out; his fires were smoldering;
a tall column of smoke that rose up and lost
itself in the growing moonlight was all the sign he gave that
he was a living Autocrat of the Sea and not the spectre of a
dead one.
At two in the morning we swept through the Straits of
Messina, and so bright was the moonlight that Italy on the one
hand and Sicily on the other seemed almost as distinctly visible
as though we looked at them from the middle of a street we were
traversing. The city of Messina, milk-white, and starred and
spangled all over with gaslights, was a fairy spectacle. A great
party of us were on deck smoking and making a noise, and waiting
to see famous Scylla and Charybdis. And presently the Oracle
stepped out with his eternal spy-glass and squared himself on
the deck like another Colossus of Rhodes. It was a surprise
to see him abroad at such an hour. Nobody supposed he cared
anything about an old fable like that of Scylla and Charybdis.
One of the boys said:
" Hello, doctor, what are you doing up here at this time
of night?--What do you want to see this place for?"
" What do I want to see this place for? Young man,
little do you know me, or you wouldn't ask such a question.
I wish to see all the places that's mentioned in the
Bible."
"Stuff--this place isn't mentioned in the Bible."
"It ain't mentioned in the Bible!--this place ain't--well
now, what place is this, since you know so much about
it?"
"Why it's Scylla and Charybdis."
"Scylla and Cha--confound it, I thought it was Sodom and
Gomorrah!"
And he closed up his glass and went below. The above is
the ship story. Its plausibility is marred a little by the fact
that the Oracle was not a biblical student, and did not spend
much of his time instructing himself about Scriptural localities.--They
say the Oracle complains, in this hot weather, lately, that
the only beverage in the ship that is passable, is the butter.
He did not mean butter, of course, but inasmuch as that article
remains in a melted state now since we are out of ice, it is
fair to give him the credit of getting one long word in the
right place, anyhow, for once in his life. He said, in Rome,
that the Pope was a noble-looking old man, but he never did
think much of his Iliad.
We spent one pleasant day skirting along the Isles of
Greece. They are very mountainous. Their prevailing tints are
gray and brown, approaching to red. Little white villages surrounded
by trees, nestle in the valleys or roost upon the lofty perpendicular
sea-walls.
We had one fine sunset--a rich carmine flush that suffused
the western sky and cast a ruddy glow far over the sea.--Fine
sunsets seem to be rare in this part of the world--or at least,
striking ones. They are soft, sensuous, lovely--they are exquisite
refined, effeminate, but we have seen no sunsets here yet like
the gorgeous conflagrations that flame in the track of the sinking
sun in our high northern latitudes.
But what were sunsets to us, with the wild excitement
upon us of approaching the most renowned of cities! What cared
we for outward visions, when Agamemnon, Achilles, and a thousand
other heroes of the great Past were marching in ghostly procession
through our fancies? What were sunsets to us, who were about
to live and breathe and walk in actual Athens; yea, and go far
down into the dead centuries and bid in person for the slaves,
Diogenes and Plato, in the public market-place, or gossip with
the neighbors about the siege of Troy or the splendid deeds
of Marathon? We scorned to consider sunsets.
We arrived, and entered the ancient harbor of the Piræus
at last. We dropped anchor within half a mile of the village.
Away off, across the undulating Plain of Attica, could be seen
a little square-topped hill with a something on it, which our
glasses soon discovered to be the ruined edifices of the citadel
of the Athenians, and most prominent among them loomed the venerable
Parthenon. So exquisitely clear and pure is this wonderful atmosphere
that every column of the noble structure was discernible through
the telescope, and even the smaller ruins about it assumed some
semblance of shape. This at a distance of five or six miles.
In the valley, near the Acropolis, (the square-topped hill before
spoken of,) Athens itself could be vaguely made out with an
ordinary lorgnette. Every body was anxious to get ashore and
visit these classic localities as quickly as possible. No land
we had yet seen had aroused such universal interest among the
passengers.
But bad news came. The commandant of the Piræus
came in his boat, and said we must either depart or else get
outside the harbor and remain imprisoned in our ship, under
rigid quarantine, for eleven days! So we took up the anchor
and moved outside, to lie a dozen hours or so, taking in supplies,
and then sail for Constantinople. It was the bitterest disappointment
we had yet experienced. To lie a whole day in sight of the Acropolis,
and yet be obliged to go away without visiting Athens! Disappointment
was hardly a strong enough word to describe the circumstances.
All hands were on deck, all the afternoon, with books
and maps and glasses, trying to determine which "narrow rocky
ridge" was the Areopagus, which sloping hill the Pnyx, which
elevation the Museum Hill, and so on. And we got things confused.
Discussion became heated, and party spirit ran high. Church
members were gazing with emotion upon a hill which they said
was the one St. Paul preached from, and another faction claimed
that that hill was Hymettus, and another that it was Pentelicon!
After all the trouble, we could be certain of only one thing--the
square-topped hill was the Acropolis, and the grand ruin that
crowned it was the Parthenon, whose picture we knew in infancy
in the school books.
We inquired of every body who came near the ship, whether
there were guards in the Piræus, whether they were strict,
what the chances were of capture should any of us slip ashore,
and in case any of us made the venture and were caught, what
would be probably done to us? The answers were discouraging:
There was a strong guard or police force; the Piræus was
a small town, and any stranger seen in it would surely attract
attention--capture would be certain. The commandant said the
punishment would be "heavy;" when asked "how heavy?" he said
it would be "very severe"--that was all we could get out of
him.
At eleven o'clock at night, when most of the ship's company
were abed, four of us stole softly ashore in a small boat, a
clouded moon favoring the enterprise, and started two and two,
and far apart, over a low hill, intending to go clear around
the
Piræus, out of the range of its police. Picking our way
so stealthily over that rocky, nettle-grown eminence, made me
feel a good deal as if I were on my way somewhere to steal something.
My immediate comrade and I talked in an undertone about quarantine
laws and their penalties, but we found nothing cheering in the
subject. I was posted. Only a few days before, I was talking
with our captain, and he mentioned the case of a man who swam
ashore from a quarantined ship somewhere, and got imprisoned
six months for it; and when he was in Genoa a few years ago,
a captain of a quarantined ship went in his boat to a departing
ship, which was already outside of the harbor, and put a letter
on board to be taken to his family, and the authorities imprisoned
him three months for it, and then conducted him and his ship
fairly to sea, and warned him never to show himself in that
port again while he lived. This kind of conversation did no
good, further than to give a sort of dismal interest to our
quarantine-breaking expedition, and so we dropped it. We made
the entire circuit of the town without seeing any body but one
man, who stared at us curiously, but said nothing, and a dozen
persons asleep on the ground before their doors, whom we walked
among and never woke--but we woke up dogs enough, in all conscience--we
always had one or two barking at our heels, and several times
we had as many as ten and twelve at once. They made such a preposterous
din that persons aboard our ship said they could tell how we
were progressing for a long time, and where we were, by the
barking of the dogs. The clouded moon still favored us. When
we had made the whole circuit, and were passing among the houses
on the further side of the town, the moon came out splendidly,
but we no longer feared the light. As we approached a well,
near a house, to get a drink, the owner merely glanced at us
and went within. He left the quiet, slumbering town at our mercy.
I record it here proudly, that we didn't do any thing to it.
Seeing no road, we took a tall hill to the left of the
distant Acropolis for a mark, and steered straight for it over
all obstructions, and over a little rougher piece of country
than
exists any where else outside of the State of Nevada, perhaps.
Part of the way it was covered with small, loose stones--we
trod on six at a time, and they all rolled. Another part of
it was dry, loose, newly-ploughed ground. Still another part
of it was a long stretch of low grape-vines, which were tanglesome
and troublesome, and which we took to be brambles. The Attic
Plain, barring the grape-vines, was a barren, desolate, unpoetical
waste--I wonder what it was in Greece's Age of Glory, five hundred
years before Christ?
In the neighborhood of one o'clock in the morning, when
we were heated with fast walking and parched with thirst, Denny
exclaimed, "Why, these weeds are grape-vines!" and in five minutes
we had a score of bunches of large, white, delicious grapes,
and were reaching down for more when a dark shape rose mysteriously
up out of the shadows beside us and said "Ho!" And so we left.
In ten minutes more we struck into a beautiful road, and
unlike some others we had stumbled upon at intervals, it led
in the right direction. We followed it. It was broad, and smooth,
and white--handsome and in perfect repair, and shaded on both
sides for a mile or so with single ranks of trees, and also
with luxuriant vineyards. Twice we entered
and stole grapes, and the second time somebody shouted at us
from some invisible place. Whereupon we left again. We speculated
in grapes no more on that side of Athens.
Shortly we came upon an ancient stone aqueduct, built
upon arches, and from that time forth we had ruins all about
us--we were approaching our journey's end. We could not see
the Acropolis now or the high hill, either, and I wanted to
follow the road till we were abreast of them, but the others
overruled me, and we toiled laboriously up the stony hill immediately
in our front--and from its summit saw another-- climbed it and
saw another! It was an hour of exhausting work. Soon we came
upon a row of open graves, cut in the solid rock--(for a while
one of them served Socrates for a prison)--we passed around
the shoulder of the hill, and the citadel, in all its ruined
magnificence, burst upon us! We hurried across the ravine and
up a winding road, and stood on the old Acropolis, with the
prodigious walls of the citadel towering above our heads. We
did not stop to inspect their massive blocks of marble, or measure
their height, or guess at their extraordinary thickness, but
passed at once through a great arched passage like a railway
tunnel, and went straight to the gate that leads to the ancient
temples. It was locked! So, after all, it seemed that we were
not to see the great Parthenon face to face. We sat down and
held a council of war. Result: the gate was only a flimsy structure
of wood--we would break it down. It seemed like desecration,
but then we had traveled far, and our necessities were urgent.
We could not hunt up guides and keepers--we must be on the ship
before daylight. So we argued. This was all very fine, but when
we came to break the gate, we could not do it. We moved around
an angle of the wall and found a low bastion--eight feet high
without--ten or twelve within. Denny prepared to scale it, and
we got ready to follow. By dint of hard scrambling he finally
straddled the top, but some loose stones crumbled away and fell
with a crash into the court within. There was instantly a banging
of doors and a shout. Denny dropped from the wall in a twinkling,
and we retreated in disorder to the gate. Xerxes took that mighty
citadel four hundred and eighty years before Christ, when his
five millions of soldiers and camp-followers followed him to
Greece, and if we four Americans could have remained unmolested
five minutes longer, we would have taken it too.
The garrison had turned out--four Greeks. We clamored
at the gate, and they admitted us. [Bribery and corruption.]
We crossed a large court, entered a great door, and stood
upon a pavement of purest white marble, deeply worn by footprints.
Before us, in the flooding moonlight, rose the noblest ruins
we had ever looked upon--the Propylæ; a small Temple of
Minerva; the Temple of Hercules, and the grand Parthenon. [We
got these names from the Greek guide, who didn't seem to know
more than seven men ought to know.] These edifices were all
built of the whitest Pentelic marble, but have a pinkish stain
upon them now. Where any part is broken, however, the fracture
looks like fine loaf sugar. Six caryatides, or marble women,
clad in flowing robes, support the portico of the Temple of
Hercules, but the porticos and colonnades of the other structures
are formed of massive Doric and Ionic pillars, whose flutings
and capitals are still measurably perfect, notwithstanding the
centuries that have gone over them and the sieges they have
suffered. The Parthenon, originally, was two hundred and twenty-six
feet long, one hun
dred wide, and seventy high, and had two rows of great columns,
eight in each, at either end, and single rows of seventeen each
down the sides, and was one of the most graceful and beautiful
edifices ever erected.
Most of the Parthenon's imposing columns are still standing,
but the roof is gone. It was a perfect building two hundred
and fifty years ago, when a shell dropped into the Venetian
magazine stored here, and the explosion which followed wrecked
and unroofed it. I remember but little about the Parthenon,
and I have put in one or two facts and figures for the use of
other people with short memories. Got them from the guide-book.
As we wandered thoughtfully down the marble-paved length
of this stately temple, the scene about us was strangely impressive.
Here and there, in lavish profusion, were gleaming white statues
of men and women, propped against blocks of
marble, some of them armless, some without legs, others headless--but
all looking mournful in the moonlight, and startlingly human!
They rose up and confronted the midnight intruder on every side--they
stared at him with stony eyes from unlooked-for nooks and recesses;
they peered at him over fragmentary heaps far down the desolate
corridors; they barred his way in the midst of the broad forum,
and solemnly pointed with handless arms the way from the sacred
fane; and through the roofless temple the moon looked down,
and banded the floor and darkened the scattered fragments and
broken statues with the slanting shadows of the columns.
What a world of ruined sculpture was about us! Set up
in rows--stacked up in piles--scattered broadcast over the wide
area of the Acropolis--were hundreds of crippled statues of
all sizes and of the most exquisite workmanship; and vast fragments
of marble that once belonged to the entablatures, covered with
bas-reliefs representing battles and sieges, ships of war with
three and four tiers of oars, pageants and processions--every
thing one could think of. History says that the temples of the
Acropolis were filled with the noblest works of Praxiteles and
Phidias, and of many a great master in sculpture besides--and
surely these elegant fragments attest it.
We walked out into the grass-grown, fragment-strewn court
beyond the Parthenon. It startled us, every now and then, to
see a stony white face stare suddenly up at us out of the grass
with its dead eyes. The place seemed alive with ghosts. I half
expected to see the Athenian heroes of twenty centuries ago
glide out of the shadows and steal into the old temple they
knew so well and regarded with such boundless pride.
The full moon wag riding high in the cloudless heavens,
now. We sauntered carelessly and unthinkingly to the edge of
the lofty battlements of the citadel, and looked down--a vision!
And such a vision! Athens by moonlight! The prophet that thought
the splendors of the New Jerusalem were revealed to him, surely
saw this instead! It lay in the level plain right under our
feet--all spread abroad like a picture--and we looked down upon
it as we might have looked
from a balloon. We saw no semblance of a street, but every house,
every window, every clinging vine, every projection was as distinct
and sharply marked as if the time were noon-day; and yet there
was no glare, no glitter, nothing harsh or repulsive--the noiseless
city was flooded with the mellowest light that ever streamed
from the moon, and seemed like some living creature wrapped
in peaceful slumber. On its further side was a little temple,
whose delicate pillars and ornate front glowed with a rich lustre
that chained the eye like a spell; and nearer by, the palace
of the king reared its creamy walls out of the midst of a great
garden of shrubbery that was flecked all over with a random
shower of amber lights--a spray of golden sparks that lost their
brightness in the glory of the moon, and glinted softly upon
the sea of dark foliage like the pallid stars of the milky-way.
Overhead the stately columns, majestic still in their ruin--under
foot the dreaming city--in the distance the silver sea--not
on the broad earth is there an other picture half so beautiful!
As we turned and moved again through the temple, I wished
that the illustrious men who had sat in it in the remote ages
could visit it again and reveal themselves to our curious eyes--Plato,
Aristotle, Demosthenes, Socrates, Phocion, Pythagoras, Euclid,
Pindar, Xenophon, Herodotus, Praxiteles and Phidias, Zeuxis
the painter. What a constellation of celebrated names! But more
than all, I wished that old Diogenes, groping so patiently with
his lantern, searching so zealously for one solitary honest
man in all the world, might meander along and stumble on our
party. I ought not to say it, may be, but still I suppose he
would have put out his light.
We left the Parthenon to keep its watch over old Athens,
as it had kept it for twenty-three hundred years, and went and
stood outside the walls of the citadel. In the distance was
the ancient, but still almost perfect Temple of Theseus, and
close by, looking to the west, was the Bema, from whence Demosthenes
thundered his philippics and fired the wavering patriotism of
his countrymen. To the right was Mars Hill, where the Areopagus
sat in ancient times. and where St. Paul defined
his position, and below was the market-place where he "disputed
daily" with the gossip-loving Athenians. We climbed the stone
steps St. Paul ascended, and stood in the square-cut place he
stood in, and tried to recollect the Bible account of tbe matter--but
for certain reasons, I could not recall the words. I have found
them since:
"Now while Paul waited for them at Athens, his spirit
was stirred in him, when he saw the city wholly given up to
idolatry.
"Therefore disputed he in the synagogue with the Jews,
and with the devout persons, and in the market daily with them
that met with him.
"And they took him and brought him unto Areopagus, saying,
May we know what this new doctrine whereof thou speakest is?
"Then Paul stood in the midst of Mars hill, and said,
Ye men of Athens, I perceive that in all things ye are too superstitious;
"For as I passed by and beheld your devotions, I found
an altar with this inscription: To THE UNKNOWN GOD. Whom, therefore,
ye ignorantly worship, him declare I unto you."--Acts,
ch. xvii."
It occurred to us, after a while, that if we wanted to get
home before daylight betrayed us, we had better be moving. So
we hurried away. When far on our road, we had a parting view
of the Parthenon, with the moonlight streaming through its open
colonnades and touching its capitals with silver. As it looked
then, solemn, grand, and beautiful it will always remain in
our memories.
As we marched along, we began to get over our fears, and
ceased to care much about quarantine scouts or any body else.
We grew bold and reckless; and once, in a sudden burst of courage,
I even threw a stone at a dog. It was a pleasant reflection,
though, that I did not hit him, because his master might just
possibly have been a policeman. Inspired by this happy failure,
my valor became utterly uncontrollable, and at intervals I absolutely
whistled, though on a moderate key. But boldness breeds boldness,
and shortly I plunged into a Vineyard, in the full light of
the moon, and captured a gallon of superb grapes, not even minding
the presence of a peasant who rode by on a mule. Denny and Birch
followed my example.
Now I had grapes enough for a dozen, but then Jackson
was all swollen up with courage, too, and he was obliged to
enter a vineyard presently. The first bunch he seized brought
trouble. A frowsy, bearded brigand sprang into the road with
a shout, and flourished a musket in the light of the moon! We
sidled toward the Piræus--not running you understand,
but only advancing with celerity. The brigand shouted again,
but still we advanced. It was getting late, and we had no time
to fool away on every ass that wanted to drivel Greek platitudes
to us. We would just as soon have talked with him as not if
we had not been in a hurry. Presently Denny said, "Those fellows
are following us!"
We turned, and, sure enough, there they were--three fantastic
pirates armed with guns. We slackened our pace to let them come
up, and in the meantime I got out my cargo of grapes and dropped
them firmly but reluctantly into the shadows by the wayside.
But I was not afraid. I only felt that it was not right to steal
grapes. And all the more so when the owner was around--and not
only around, but with his friends around also. The villains
came up and searched a bundle Dr.
Birch had in his hand, and scowled upon him when they found it
had nothing in it but some holy rocks from Mars Hill, and these
were not contraband. They evidently suspected him of playing
some wretched fraud upon them, and seemed half inclined to scalp
the party. But finally they dismissed us with a warning, couched
in excellent Greek, I suppose, and dropped tranquilly in our
wake. When they had gone three hundred yards they stopped, and
we went on rejoiced. But behold, another armed rascal came out
of the shadows and took their place, and followed us two hundred
yards. Then he delivered us over to another miscreant, who emerged
from some mysterious place, and he in turn to another! For a
mile and a half our rear was guarded all the while by armed
men. I never traveled in so much state before in all my life.
It was a good while after that before we ventured to steal
any more grapes, and when we did we stirred up another troublesome
brigand, and then we ceased all further speculation in that
line. I suppose that fellow that rode by on the mule posted
all the sentinels, from Athens to the Piræus, about us.
Every field on that long route was watched by an armed
sentinel, some of whom had fallen asleep, no doubt, but were
on hand, nevertheless. This shows what sort of a country modern
Attica is--a community of questionable characters. These men
were not there to guard their possessions against strangers,
but against each other; for strangers seldom visit Athens and
the Piræus, and when they do, they go in daylight, and
can buy all the grapes they want for a trifle. The modern inhabitants
are confiscators and falsifiers of high repute, if gossip speaks
truly concerning them, and I freely believe it does.
Just as the earliest tinges of the dawn flushed the eastern
sky and turned the pillared Parthenon to a broken harp hung
in the pearly horizon, we closed our thirteenth mile of weary,
round-about marching, and emerged upon the sea-shore abreast
the ships, with our usual escort of fifteen hundred Piræan
dogs howling at our heels. We hailed a boat that was two or
three
hundred yards from shore, and discovered in a moment that it
was a police-boat on the lookout for any quarantine-breakers
that might chance to be abroad. So we dodged--we were used to
that by this time--and when the scouts reached the spot we had
so lately occupied, we were absent. They cruised along the shore,
but in the wrong direction, and shortly our own boat issued
from the gloom and took us aboard. They had heard our signal
on the ship. We rowed noiselessly away, and before the police-boat
came in sight again, we were safe at home once more.
Four more of our passengers were anxious to visit Athens,
and started half an hour after we returned; but they had not
been ashore five minutes till the police discovered and chased
them so hotly that they barely escaped to their boat again,
and that was all. They pursued the enterprise no further.
We set sail for Constantinople to-day, but some of us
little care for that. We have seen all there was to see in the
old city that had its birth sixteen hundred years before Christ
was born, and was an old town before the foundations of Troy
were laid--and saw it in its most attractive aspect. Wherefore,
why should we worry?
Two other passengers ran the blockade successfully last
night. So we learned this morning. They slipped away so quietly
that they were not missed from the ship for several hours. They
had the hardihood to march into the Piræus in the early
dusk and hire a carriage. They ran some danger of adding two
or three months' imprisonment to the other novelties of their
Holy Land Pleasure Excursion. I admire "cheek."* But they went
and came safely, and never walked a step.
From Athens all through the islands of the Grecian
Archipelago, we saw little but forbidding sea-walls and barren
hills, sometimes surmounted by three or four graceful columns
of
some ancient temple, lonely and deserted -- a fitting symbol
of the
desolation that has come upon all Greece in these latter ages.
We
saw no ploughed fields, very few villages, no trees or grass
or
vegetation of any kind, scarcely, and hardly ever an isolated
house. Greece is a bleak, unsmiling desert, without agriculture,
manufactures or commerce, apparently. What supports its
poverty-stricken people or its Government, is a mystery.
I suppose that ancient Greece and modern Greece
compared, furnish the most extravagant contrast to be found in
history. George I., an infant of eighteen, and a scraggy nest
of
foreign office holders, sit in the places of Themistocles,
Pericles,
and the illustrious scholars and generals of the Golden Age of
Greece. The fleets that were the wonder of the world when the
Parthenon was new, are a beggarly handful of fishing-smacks now,
and the manly people that performed such miracles of valor at
Marathon are only a tribe of unconsidered slaves to-day. The
classic Illyssus has gone dry, and so have all the sources of
Grecian wealth and greatness. The nation numbers only eight
hundred thousand souls, and there is poverty and misery and
mendacity enough among them to furnish forty millions and be
liberal about it. Under King Otho the revenues of the State were
five millions of dollars -- raised from a tax of one-tenth
of all the agricultural products
of the land (which tenth the
farmer had to bring to the royal granaries on pack-mules any
distance not exceeding six leagues) and from extravagant taxes
on
trade and commerce. Out of that five millions the small tyrant
tried to keep an army of ten thousand men, pay all the hundreds
of useless Grand Equerries in Waiting, First Grooms of the
Bedchamber, Lord High Chancellors of the Exploded Exchequer,
and all the other absurdities which these puppy-kingdoms indulge
in, in imitation of the great monarchies; and in addition he
set
about building a white marble palace to cost about five millions
itself. The result was, simply: ten into five goes no times and
none
over. All these things could not be done with five millions,
and
Otho fell into trouble.
The Greek throne, with its unpromising adjuncts of a ragged
population of ingenious rascals who were out of employment eight
months in the year because there was little for them to borrow
and
less to confiscate, and a waste of barren hills and weed-grown
deserts, went begging for a good while. It was offered to one
of
Victoria's sons, and afterwards to various other younger sons
of
royalty who had no thrones and were out of business, but they
all
had the charity to decline the dreary honor, and veneration enough
for Greece's ancient greatness to refuse to mock her sorrowful
rags and dirt with a tinsel throne in this day of her humiliation
--
till they came to this young Danish George, and he took it. He
has
finished
the splendid palace I saw in the radiant moonlight the
other night, and is doing many other things for the salvation
of
Greece, they say.
We sailed through the barren Archipelago, and into
the narrow channel they sometimes call the Dardanelles and
sometimes the Hellespont. This part of the country is rich in
historic reminiscences, and poor as Sahara in every thing else.
For
instance, as we approached the Dardanelles, we coasted along
the
Plains of Troy and past the mouth of the Scamander; we saw
where Troy had stood (in the distance,) and where it does not
stand now -- a city that perished when the world was young. The
poor Trojans are all dead, now. They were born too late to see
Noah's ark, and died too soon to see our menagerie. We saw
where Agamemnon's fleets rendezvoused, and away inland a
mountain which the map said was Mount Ida. Within the
Hellespont we saw where the original first shoddy contract
mentioned in history was carried out, and the "parties of the
second part " gently rebuked by Xerxes. I speak of the famous
bridge of boats which Xerxes ordered to be built over the
narrowest part of the Hellespont (where it is only two or three
miles wide.) A moderate gale destroyed the flimsy structure,
and
the King, thinking that to publicly rebuke the contractors might
have a good effect on the next set, called them out before the
army
and had them beheaded. In the next ten minutes he let a new
contract for the bridge. It has been observed by ancient writers
that the second bridge was a very good bridge. Xerxes crossed
his
host of five millions of men on it, and if it had not been
purposely
destroyed, it would probably have been there yet. If our
Government would rebuke some of our shoddy contractors
occasionally, it might work much good. In the Hellespont we saw
where Leander and Lord Byron swam across, the one to see her
upon whom his soul's affections were fixed with a devotion that
only death could impair, and the other merely for a flyer, as
Jack
says. We had two noted tombs near us, too. On one shore slept
Ajax, and on the other Hecuba.
We had water batteries and forts on both sides of the Hellespont,
flying the crimson flag of Turkey, with its white crescent, and
occasionally a village, and sometimes a train of camels; we had
all
these to look at till we entered the broad sea of Marmora, and
then
the land soon fading from view, we resumed euchre and whist
once more.
We dropped anchor in the mouth of the Golden Horn at daylight
in the morning. Only three or four of us were up to see the great
Ottoman capital. The passengers do not turn out at unseasonable
hours, as they used to, to get the earliest possible glimpse
of
strange foreign cities. They are well over that. If we were lying
in
sight of the Pyramids of Egypt, they would not come on deck until
after breakfast, now-a-days.
The Golden Horn is a narrow arm of the sea, which branches
from the Bosporus (a sort of broad river which connects the
Marmora and Black Seas,) and, curving around, divides the
city
in the middle. Galata and Pera are on one side of the Bosporus,
and the Golden Horn; Stamboul (ancient Byzantium) is upon the
other. On the other bank of the Bosporus is Scutari and other
suburbs of Constantinople. This great city contains a million
inhabitants, but so narrow are its streets, and so crowded together
are its houses, that it does not cover much more than half as
much
ground as New York City. Seen from the anchorage or from a
mile or so up the Bosporus, it is by far the handsomest city
we
have seen. Its dense array of houses swells upward from the
water's edge, and spreads over the domes of many hills; and the
gardens that peep out here and there, the great globes of the
mosques, and the countless minarets that meet the eye every
where, invest the metropolis with the quaint Oriental aspect
one
dreams of when he reads books of eastern travel. Constantinople
makes a noble picture.
But its attractiveness begins and ends with its
picturesqueness. From the time one starts ashore till he gets
back
again, he execrates it. The boat he goes in is admirably
miscalculated for the service it is built for. It is handsomely
and
neatly fitted up, but no man could handle it well in the turbulent
currents that sweep down the Bosporus from the Black Sea, and
few men could row it satisfactorily even in still water. It is
a
long,
light canoe (caique,) large at one end and tapering to a knife
blade
at the other. They make that long sharp end the bow, and you
can
imagine how these boiling currents spin it about. It has two
oars,
and sometimes four, and no rudder. You start to go to a given
point and you run in fifty different directions before you get
there.
First one oar is backing water, and then the other; it is seldom
that
both are going ahead at once. This kind of boating is calculated
to
drive an impatient man mad in a week. The boatmen are the
awkwardest, the stupidest, and the most unscientific
on earth,
without question.
Ashore, it was -- well, it was an eternal circus. People were
thicker than bees, in those narrow streets, and the men were
dressed in all the outrageous, outlandish, idolatrous, extrava-
gant,
thunder-and-lightning costumes that ever a tailor with the delirium
tremens and seven devils could conceive of. There was no freak
in dress too crazy to be indulged in; no absurdity too absurd
to be
tolerated; no frenzy in ragged diabolism too fantastic to be
attempted. No two men were dressed alike. It was a wild
masquerade of all imaginable costumes -- every struggling throng
in every street was a dissolving view of stunning contrasts.
Some
patriarchs wore awful turbans, but the grand mass of the infidel
horde wore the fiery red skull-cap they call a fez. All the
remainder of the raiment they indulged in was utterly
indescribable.
The shops here are mere coops, mere boxes,
bath-rooms, closets -- any thing you please to call them -- on
the
first floor. The Turks sit cross-legged in them, and work and
trade
and smoke long pipes, and smell like -- like Turks. That covers
the ground. Crowding the narrow streets in front of them are
beggars, who beg forever, yet never collect any thing; and
wonderful cripples, distorted out of all semblance of humanity,
almost; vagabonds driving laden asses; porters carrying drygoods
boxes as large as cottages on their backs; peddlers of grapes,
hot
corn, pumpkin seeds, and a hundred other things, yelling like
fiends; and sleeping happily, comfortably, serenely, among the
hurrying feet, are the famed dogs of Constantinople; drifting
noiselessly about are squads of Turkish women, draped from chin
to feet in flowing robes, and with snowy veils bound about their
heads, that disclose only the eyes and a vague, shadowy notion
of
their features. Seen moving about, far away in the dim, arched
aisles of the Great Bazaar, they look as the shrouded dead must
have looked when they walked forth from their graves amid the
storms and thunders and earthquakes that burst upon Calvary that
awful night of the Crucifixion. A street in Constantinople is
a
picture which one ought to see once -- not oftener.
And then there was the goose-rancher -- a fellow
who drove a hundred geese before him about the city, and tried
to
sell them. He had a pole ten feet long, with a crook in the end
of
it, and occasionally a goose would branch out from the flock
and
make a lively break around the corner, with wings half lifted
and
neck stretched to its utmost. Did the goose-merchant get excited?
No. He took his pole and reached after that goose with
unspeakable sang froid -- took a hitch round his neck,
and "yanked" him back to his place in the flock without an
effort. He steered his geese with that stick as easily as another
man
would steer a yawl. A few hours afterward we saw him sitting
on
a stone at a corner, in the midst of the turmoil, sound asleep
in
the
sun, with his geese squatting around him, or dodging out of the
way of asses and men. We came
by again, within the hour, and he
was taking account of stock, to see whether any of his flock
had
strayed or been stolen. The way he did it was unique. He put
the
end of his stick within six or eight inches of a stone wall,
and
made the geese march in single file between it and the wall.
He
counted them as they went by. There was no dodging that
arrangement.
If you want dwarfs -- I mean just a few dwarfs for a curiosity
--
go to Genoa. If you wish to buy them by the gross, for retail,
go
to Milan. There are plenty of dwarfs all over Italy, but it did
seem
to me that in Milan the crop was luxuriant. If you would see
a fair
average style of assorted cripples, go to Naples, or travel through
the Roman States. But if you would see the very heart and home
of cripples and human monsters, both, go straight to
Constantinople. A beggar in Naples who can show a foot which
has all run into one horrible toe, with one shapeless nail on
it,
has
a fortune -- but such an exhibition as that would not provoke
any
notice in Constantinople. The man would starve. Who would pay
any attention to attractions like his among the rare monsters
that
throng the bridges of the Golden Horn and display their
deformities in the gutters of Stamboul? O, wretched impostor!
How could he stand against the three-legged woman, and the man
with his eye in his cheek? How would he blush in presence of
the
man with fingers on his elbow? Where would he hide himself
when the dwarf with seven fingers on each hand, no upper lip,
and
his under-jaw gone, came down in his majesty? Bismillah! The
cripples of Europe are a delusion and a fraud. The truly gifted
flourish only in the by-ways of Pera and Stamboul.
That three-legged woman lay on the bridge, with her stock ln
trade so disposed as to command the most striking effect --
one
natural leg, and two long, slender, twisted ones with feet on
them
like somebody else's fore-arm. Then there was a man further along
who had no eyes, and whose face was the color of a fly-blown
beefsteak, and wrinkled and twisted like a lava-flow -- and verily
so tumbled and distorted were his fea-
tures that no man could tell
the wart that served him for a nose from his cheek-bones. In
Stamboul was a man with a prodigious head, an uncommonly long
body, legs eight inches long and feet like snow-shoes. He traveled
on those feet and his hands, and was as sway-backed as if the
Colossus of Rhodes had been riding him. Ah, a beggar has to have
exceedingly good points to make a living in Constantinople. A
blue-faced man, who had nothing to offer except that he had been
blown up in a mine, would be regarded as a rank impostor, and
a
mere damaged soldier on crutches would never make a cent. It
would pay him to get a piece of his head taken off, and cultivate
a wen like a carpet sack.
The Mosque of St. Sophia is the chief lion of
Constantinople. You must get a firman and hurry there the first
thing. We did that. We did not get a firman, but we took along
four or five francs apiece, which is much the same thing.
I do not think much of the Mosque of St. Sophia. I suppose I
lack appreciation. We will let it go at that. It is the rustiest
old
barn in heathendom. I believe all the interest that attaches
to it
comes from the fact that it was built for a Christian church
and
then turned into a mosque, without much alteration, by the
Mohammedan conquerors of the land. They made me take off my
boots and walk into the place in my stocking-feet. I caught cold,
and got myself so stuck up with a complication of gums, slime
and
general corruption, that I wore out more than two thousand pair
of
boot-jacks getting my boots off that night, and even then some
Christian hide peeled off with them. I abate not a single
boot-jack.
St. Sophia is a colossal church, thirteen or fourteen hundred
years old, and unsightly enough to be very, very much older.
Its
immense dome is said to be more wonderful than St. Peter's, but
its dirt is much more wonderful than its dome, though they never
mention it. The church has a hundred and seventy pillars in it,
each a single piece, and all of costly marbles of various kinds,
but
they came from ancient temples at Baalbec, Heliopolis, Athens
and
Ephesus, and are battered, ugly and repulsive. They were a
thousand years old when this
church was new, and then the
contrast must have been ghastly -- if Justinian's architects
did
not
trim them any. The inside of the dome is figured all over with
a
monstrous inscription in Turkish characters, wrought in gold
mosaic, that looks as glaring as a circus bill; the pavements
and
the marble balustrades are all battered and dirty; the perspective
is marred every where by a web of ropes that depend from the
dizzy height of the dome, and suspend countless dingy, coarse
oil
lamps, and ostrich-eggs, six or seven feet above the floor.
Squatting and sitting in groups, here and there and far and near,
were ragged Turks reading books, hearing sermons, or receiving
lessons like children. and in fifty places were more
of the same
sort bowing and straightening up, bowing again and getting down
to kiss the earth, muttering prayers the while, and keeping up
their
gymnastics till they ought to have been tired, if they were not.
Every where was dirt, and dust, and dinginess, and
gloom; every where were signs of a hoary antiquity, but with
nothing touching or beautiful about it; every where were those
groups of fantastic pagans; overhead the gaudy mosaics and the
web of lamp-ropes -- nowhere was there any thing
to win one's
love or challenge his admiration.
The people who go into ecstacies over St. Sophia
must surely get them out of the guide-book (where every church
is spoken of as being "considered by good judges to be the most
marvelous structure, in many respects, that the world has ever
seen.") Or else they are those old connoisseurs from the wilds
of
New Jersey who laboriously learn the difference between a fresco
and a fire-plug and from that day forward feel privileged to
void
their critical bathos on painting, sculpture and architecture
forever
more.
We visited the Dancing Dervishes. There were
twenty-one of them. They wore a long, light-colored loose robe
that hung to their heels. Each in his turn went up to the priest
(they were all within a large circular railing) and bowed
profoundly and then went spinning away deliriously and took his
appointed place in the circle, and continued to spin. When all
had
spun themselves to their places, they were about five or six
feet
apart -- and so situated, the entire circle of spinning pagans
spun
itself three separate times around the room. It took twenty-five
minutes to do it. They spun on the left foot, and kept themselves
going by passing the right rapidly before it and digging it against
the waxed floor. Some of them made incredible " time." Most of
them spun around forty times in a minute, and one artist averaged
about sixty-one times a minute, and kept it up during the whole
twenty-five. His robe filled with air and stood out all around
him
like a balloon.
They made no noise of any kind, and most of them
tilted their heads back and closed their eyes, entranced with
a
sort
of
devotional ecstacy. There was a rude kind of music, part of the
time, but the musicians were not visible. None but spinners were
allowed within the circle. A man had to either spin or stay
outside.
It was about as barbarous an exhibition as we have witnessed
yet.
Then sick persons came and lay down, and beside them women
laid their sick children (one a babe at the breast,) and the
patriarch
of the Dervishes walked upon their bodies. He was supposed to
cure their diseases by trampling upon their breasts or backs
or
standing on the back of their necks. This is well enough for
a
people who think all their affairs are made or marred by viewless
spirits of the air -- by giants, gnomes, and genii -- and who
still
believe, to this day, all the wild tales in the Arabian Nights.
Even
so an intelligent missionary tells me.
We visited the Thousand and One Columns. I do
not know what it was originally intended for, but they said it
was
built for a reservoir. It is situated in the centre of
Constantinople.
You go down a flight of stone steps in the middle of a barren
place, and there you are. You are forty feet under ground, and
in
the midst of a perfect wilderness of tall, slender, granite
columns,
of Byzantine architecture. Stand where you would, or change your
position as often as you pleased, you were always a centre from
which radiated a dozen long archways and colonnades that lost
themselves in distance and the sombre twilight of the place.
This
old dried-up reservoir is occupied by a few ghostly silk-spinners
now, and one of them showed me a cross cut high up in one of
the
pillars. I suppose he meant me to understand that the institution
was there before the Turkish occupation, and I thought he made
a
remark to that effect; but he must have had an impediment in
his
speech, for I did not understand him.
We took off our shoes and went into the marble mausoleum of
the Sultan Mahmoud, the neatest piece of architecture, inside,
that
I have seen lately. Mahmoud's tomb was covered with a black
velvet pall, which was elaborately embroidered with silver; it
stood
within a fancy silver railing; at the sides and corners were
silver
candlesticks that would weigh more
than a hundred pounds, and
they supported candles as large as a man's leg; on the top of
the
sarcophagus was a fez, with a handsome diamond ornament upon
it, which an attendant said cost a hundred thousand pounds, and
lied like a Turk when he said it. Mahmoud's whole family were
comfortably planted around him.
We went to the great Bazaar in Stamboul, of
course, and I shall not describe it further than to say it is
a
monstrous hive of little shops -- thousands, I should say --
all
under one roof, and cut up into innumerable little blocks by
narrow streets which are arched overhead. One street is devoted
to a particular kind of merchandise, another to another, and
so on.
When you wish to buy a pair of shoes you have the swing of the
whole street -- you do not have to walk yourself down hunting
stores in different localities. It is the same with silks,
antiquities,
shawls, etc. The place is crowded with people all the time, and
as
the gay-colored Eastern fabrics are lavishly displayed before
every
shop, the great Bazaar of Stamboul is one of the sights that
are
worth seeing. It is full of life, and stir, and business, dirt,
beggars,
asses, yelling peddlers, porters, dervishes, high-born Turkish
female shoppers, Greeks, and weird-looking and weirdly dressed
Mohammedans from the mountains and the far provinces -- and the
only solitary thing one does not smell when he is in the Great
Bazaar, is something which smells good.
Mosques are plenty, churches are plenty, graveyards are plenty,
but morals and whiskey are scarce. The Koran does not permit
Mohammedans to drink. Their natural instincts do not permit
them to be moral. They say the Sultan has eight hundred wives.
This almost amounts to bigamy. It makes our cheeks burn with
shame to see such a thing permitted here in Turkey. We do not
mind it so much in Salt Lake, however.
Circassian and Georgian girls are still sold in Constantinople
by their parents, but not publicly. The great slave marts we
have all read so much about--where tender young girls were stripped
for inspection, and criticised and discussed just as if they
were horses at an agricultural fair--no longer exist. The exhibition
and the sales are private now. Stocks are up, just at present,
partly because of a brisk demand created by the recent return
of the Sultan's suite from the courts of Europe; partly on account
of an unusual abundance of bread-stuffs, which leaves holders
untortured by hunger and enables them to hold back for high
prices; and partly because buyers are too weak to bear the market,
while sellers are amply prepared to bull it. Under these circumstances,
if the American metropolitan newspapers were published here
in Constantinople, their next commercial report would read about
as follows, I suppose:
SLAVE GIRL MARKET REPORT. "Best brands Circassians, crop of 1850, £200; 1852,
£250; 1854, £300. Best
brands Georgian, none in market; second quality, 1851, £180.
Nineteen fair to
middling Wallachian girls offered at £130 @ 150,
but no takers; sixteen prime A 1 sold in small lots to close
out--terms private.
"Sales of one lot Circassians, prime to good, 1852 to
1854, at £240 @ 242 1/2, buyer 30; one forty-niner--damaged--at
£23, seller ten, no deposit. Several Georgians, fancy
brands, 1852, changed hands to fill orders. The Georgians now
on hand are mostly last year's crop, which was unusually poor.
The new crop is a little backward, but will be coming in shortly.
As regards its quantity and quality, the accounts are most encouraging.
In this connection we can safely say, also, that the new crop
of Circassians is looking extremely well. His Majesty the Sultan
has already sent in large orders for his new harem, which will
be finished within a fortnight, and this has naturally strengthened
the market and given Circassian stock a strong upward tendency.
Taking advantage of the inflated market, many of our shrewdest
operators are selling short. There are hints of a "corner" on
Wallachians.
"There is nothing new in Nubians. Slow sale.
"Eunuchs--None offering; however, large cargoes are expected
from Egypt today."
I think the above would be about the style of the commercial
report. Prices are pretty high now, and holders firm; but, two
or three years ago, parents in a starving condition brought
their young daughters down here and sold them for even twenty
and thirty dollars, when they could do no better, simply to
save themselves and the girls from dying of want. It is sad
to think of so distressing a thing as this, and I for one am
sincerely glad the prices are up again.
Commercial morals, especially, are bad. There is no gainsaying
that. Greek, Turkish and Armenian morals consist only in attending
church regularly on the appointed Sabbaths, and in breaking
the ten commandments all the balance of the week. It comes natural
to them to lie and cheat in the first place, and then they go
on and improve on nature until they arrive at perfection. In
recommending his son to a merchant as a valuable salesman, a
father does not say he is a nice, moral, upright boy, and goes
to Sunday School and is honest, but he says, "This boy is worth
his weight in broad pieces of a hundred--for behold, he will
cheat whomsoever hath dealings with him, and from the Euxine
to the waters of Marmora there abideth not so gifted a liar!"
How is that for a recommendation? The Missionaries tell me that
they hear encomiums like that passed upon people every day.
They say of a person they
admire, "Ah, he is a charming swindler, and a most exquisite
liar!"
Every body lies and cheats--every body who is in business,
at any rate. Even foreigners soon have to come down to the custom
of the country, and they do not buy and sell long in Constantinople
till they lie and cheat like a Greek. I say like a Greek, because
the Greeks are called the worst transgressors in this line.
Several Americans long resident in Constantinople contend that
most Turks are pretty trustworthy, but few claim that the Greeks
have any virtues that a man can discover--at least without a
fire assay.
I am half willing to believe that the celebrated dogs
of Constantinople have been misrepresented--slandered. I have
always been led to suppose that they were so thick in the streets
that they blocked the way; that they moved about in organized
companies, platoons and regiments, and took what they wanted
by determined and ferocious assault; and that at night they
drowned all other sounds with their terrible howlings. The dogs
I see here can not be those I have read of.
I find them every where, but not in strong force. The
most I have found together has been about ten or twenty. And
night or day a fair proportion of them were sound asleep. Those
that were not asleep always looked as if they wanted to be.
I never saw such utterly wretched, starving, sad-visaged, broken-hearted
looking curs in my life. It seemed a grim satire to accuse such
brutes as these of taking things by force of arms. They hardly
seemed to have strength enough or ambition enough to walk across
the street--I do not know that I have seen one walk that far
yet. They are mangy and bruised and mutilated, and often you
see one with the hair singed off him in such wide and well defined
tracts that he looks like a map of the new Territories. They
are the sorriest beasts that breathe--the most abject--the most
pitiful. In their faces is a settled expression of melancholy,
an air of hopeless despondency. The hairless patches on a scalded
dog are preferred by the fleas of Constantinople to a wider
range on a healthier dog; and the exposed places suit the fleas
exactly. I
saw a dog of this kind start to nibble at a flea--a fly attracted
his attention, and he made a snatch at him; the flea called
for him once more, and that forever unsettled him; he looked
sadly at his flea-pasture, then sadly looked at his bald spot.
Then he heaved a sigh and dropped his head resignedly upon his
paws. He was not equal to the situation.
The dogs sleep in the streets, all over the city. From
one end of the street to the other, I suppose they will average
about eight or ten to a block. Sometimes, of course, there are
fifteen or twenty to a block. They do not belong to any body,
and they seem to have no close personal friendships among each
other. But they district the city themselves, and the dogs of
each district, whether it be half a block in extent, or ten
blocks, have to remain within its bounds. Woe to a dog if he
crosses the line! His neighbors would snatch the balance of
his hair off in a second. So it is said. But they don't look
it.
They sleep in the streets these days. They are my compass--my
guide. When I see the dogs sleep placidly on, while men, sheep,
geese, and all moving things turn out and go around them, I
know I am not in the great street where the hotel is, and must
go further. In the Grand Rue the dogs have a sort of air of
being on the lookout--an air born of being
obliged to get out of the way of many carriages every day--and
that expression one recognizes in a moment. It does not exist
upon the face of any dog without the confines of that street.
All others sleep placidly and keep no watch. They would not
move, though the Sultan himself passed by.
In one narrow street (but none of them are wide) I saw
three dogs lying coiled up, about a foot or two apart. End to
end they lay, and so they just bridged the street neatly, from
gutter to gutter. A drove of a hundred sheep came along. They
stepped right over the dogs, the rear crowding the front, impatient
to get on. The dogs looked lazily up, flinched a little when
the impatient feet of the sheep touched their raw backs--sighed,
and lay peacefully down again. No talk could be plainer than
that. So some of the sheep jumped over them and others scrambled
between, occasionally chipping a leg with their sharp hoofs,
and when the whole flock had made the trip, the dogs sneezed
a little, in the cloud of dust, but never budged their bodies
an inch. I thought I was lazy, but I am a steam-engine compared
to a Constantinople dog. But was not that a singular scene for
a city of a million inhabitants?
These dogs are the scavengers of the city. That is their
official position, and a hard one it is. However, it is their
protection. But for their usefulness in partially cleansing
these terrible streets, they would not be tolerated long. They
eat any thing and every thing that comes in their way, from
melon rinds and spoiled grapes up through all the grades and
species of dirt and refuse to their own dead friends and relatives--and
yet they are always lean, always hungry, always despondent.
The people are loath to kill them--do not kill them, in fact.
The Turks have an innate antipathy to taking the life of any
dumb animal, it is said. But they do worse. They hang and kick
and stone and scald these wretched creatures to the very verge
of death, and then leave them to live and suffer.
Once a Sultan proposed to kill off all the dogs here,
and did begin the work--but the populace raised such a howl
of horror about it that the massacre was stayed. After a while,
he proposed to remove them all to an island in the Sea of Marmora.
No objection was offered, and a ship-load or so was taken away.
But when it came to be known that somehow or other the dogs
never got to the island, but always fell overboard in the night
and perished, another howl was raised and the transportation
scheme was dropped.
So the dogs remain in peaceable possession of the streets.
I do not say that they do not howl at night, nor that they do
not attack people who have not a red fez on their heads. I only
say that it would be mean for me to accuse them of these
unseemly things who have not seen them do them with my own eyes
or heard them with my own ears.
I was a little surprised to see Turks and Greeks playing
newsboy right here in the mysterious land where the giants and
genii of the Arabian Nights once dwelt--where winged horses
and hydra-headed dragons guarded enchanted castles--where Princes
and Princesses flew through the air on carpets that obeyed a
mystic talisman--where cities whose houses were made of precious
stones sprang up in a night under the hand of the magician,
and where busy marts were suddenly stricken with a spell and
each citizen lay or sat, or stood with weapon raised or foot
advanced, just as he was, speechless and motionless, till time
had told a hundred years!
It was curious to see newsboys selling papers in so dreamy
a land as that. And, to say truly, it is comparatively a new
thing here. The selling of newspapers had its birth in Constantinople
about a year ago, and was a child of the Prussian and Austrian
war.
There is one paper published here in the English language--The
Levant Herald--and there are generally a number of Greek
and a few French papers rising and falling, struggling up and
falling again. Newspapers are not popular with the Sultan's
Government. They do not understand journalism. The proverb
says, "The unknown is always great." To the court, the newspaper
is a mysterious and rascally institution. They know what a
pestilence is, because they have one occasionally that thins
the people out at the rate of two
thousand a day, and they regard a newspaper as a mild form of
pestilence. When it goes astray, they suppress it--pounce upon
it without warning, and throttle it. When it don't go astray
for a long time, they get suspicious and throttle it anyhow,
because they think it is hatching deviltry. Imagine the Grand
Vizier in solemn council with the magnates of the realm, spelling
his way through the hated newspaper, and finally delivering
his profound decision: "This thing means mischief--it is too
darkly, too suspiciously inoffensive--suppress it! Warn the
publisher that we can not have this sort of thing: put the editor
in prison!"
The newspaper business has its inconveniences in Constantinople.
Two Greek papers and one French one were suppressed here within
a few days of each other. No victories of the Cretans are allowed
to be printed. From time to time the Grand Vizier sends a notice
to the various editors that the Cretan insurrection is entirely
suppressed, and although that
editor knows better, he still has to print the notice. The Levant
Herald is too fond of speaking praisefully of Americans
to be popular with the Sultan, who does not relish our sympathy
with the Cretans, and therefore that paper has to be particularly
circumspect in order to keep out of trouble. Once the editor,
forgetting the official notice in his paper that the Cretans
were crushed out, printed a letter of a very different tenor,
from the American Consul in Crete, and was fined two hundred
and fifty dollars for it. Shortly he printed another from the
same source and was imprisoned three months for his pains. I
think I could get the assistant editorship of the Levant
Herald, but I am going to try to worry along without it.
To suppress a paper here involves the ruin of the publisher,
almost. But in Naples I think they speculate on misfortunes
of that kind. Papers are suppressed there every day, and spring
up the next day under a new name. During the ten days or a
fortnight we staid there one paper was murdered and resurrected
twice. The newsboys are smart there, just as they are elsewhere.
They take advantage of popular weaknesses. When they find they
are not likely to sell out, they approach a citizen mysteriously,
and say in a low voice--"Last copy, sir: double price; paper
just been suppressed!" The man buys it, of course, and finds
nothing in it. They do say--I do not vouch for it--but they
do say that men sometimes print a vast edition of a paper, with
a ferociously seditious article in it, distribute it quickly
among the newsboys, and clear out till the Government's indignation
cools. It pays well. Confiscation don't amount to any thing.
The type and presses are not worth taking care of.
There is only one English newspaper in Naples. It has
seventy subscribers. The publisher is getting rich very deliberately--very
deliberately indeed.
I never shall want another Turkish lunch. The cooking
apparatus was in the little lunch room, near the bazaar, and
it was all open to the street. The cook was slovenly, and so
was the table, and it had no cloth on it. The fellow took a
mass of sausage meat and coated it round a wire and laid it
on a
charcoal fire to cook. When it was done, he laid it aside and
a dog walked sadly in and nipped it. He smelt it first, and
probably recognized the remains of a friend. The cook took it
away from him and laid it before us. Jack said, "I pass"--he
plays euchre sometimes--and we all passed in turn. Then the
cook baked a broad, flat, wheaten cake, greased it well with
the sausage, and started towards us with it. It dropped in the
dirt, and he picked it up and polished it on his breeches, and
laid it before us. Jack said, "I pass." We all passed. He put
some eggs in a frying pan, and stood pensively prying slabs
of meat from between his teeth with a fork. Then he used the
fork to turn the eggs with--and brought them along. Jack said
"Pass again." All followed suit. We did not know what to do,
and so we ordered a new ration of sausage. The cook got out
his wire, apportioned a proper amount of sausage-meat, spat
it on his hands and fell to work! This time, with one accord,
we all passed out. We paid and left. That is all I learned
about Turkish lunches. A Turkish lunch is good, no doubt, but
it has its little drawbacks.
When I think how I have been swindled by books of Oriental
travel, I want a tourist for breakfast. For years and years
I have dreamed of the wonders of the Turkish bath; for years
and years I have promised myself that I would yet enjoy one.
Many and many a time, in fancy, I have lain in the marble bath,
and breathed the slumbrous fragrance of Eastern spices that
filled the air; then passed through a weird and complicated
system of pulling and hauling, and drenching and scrubbing,
by a gang of naked savages who loomed vast and vaguely through
the steaming mists, like demons; then rested for a while on
a divan fit for a king; then passed through another complex
ordeal, and one more fearful than the first; and, finally, swathed
in soft fabrics, been conveyed to a princely saloon and laid
on a bed of eider down, where eunuchs, gorgeous of costume,
fanned me while I drowsed and dreamed, or contentedly gazed
at the rich hangings of the apartment, the soft carpets, the
sumptuous furniture, the pictures, and drank deli-
cious coffee, smoked the soothing narghili, and dropped, at the
last, into tranquil repose, lulled by sensuous odors from unseen
censers, by the gentle influence of the narghili's Persian tobacco,
and by the music of fountains that counterfeited the pattering
of summer rain.
That was the picture, just as I got it from incendiary
books of travel. It was a poor, miserable imposture. The reality
is no more like it than the Five Points are like the Garden
of Eden. They received me in a great court, paved with marble
slabs; around it were broad galleries, one above another, carpeted
with seedy matting, railed with unpainted balustrades, and furnished
with huge rickety chairs, cushioned with rusty old mattresses,
indented with impressions left by the forms of nine successive
generations of men who had reposed upon them. The place was
vast, naked, dreary; its court a barn, its galleries stalls
for human horses. The cadaverous, half nude varlets that served
in the establishment had nothing of poetry in their appearance,
nothing of romance, nothing of Oriental splendor. They shed
no entrancing odors--just the contrary. Their hungry eyes and
their lank forms continually suggested one glaring, unsentimental
fact--they wanted what they term in California "a square meal."
I went into one of the racks and undressed. An unclean
starveling wrapped a gaudy table-cloth about his loins, and
hung a white rag over my shoulders. If I had had a tub then,
it would have come natural to me to take in washing. I was
then conducted down stairs into the wet, slippery court, and
the first things that attracted my attention were my heels.
My fall excited no comment. They expected it, no doubt. It belonged
in the list of softening, sensuous influences peculiar to this
home of Eastern luxury. It was softening enough, certainly,
but its application was not happy. They now gave me a pair of
wooden clogs--benches in miniature, with leather straps over
them to confine my feet (which they would have done, only I
do not wear No. 13s.) These things dangled uncomfortably by
the straps when I lifted up my feet, and came down in awkward
and unexpected places when I put them on
the floor again, and sometimes turned sideways and wrenched my
ankles out of joint. However, it was all Oriental luxury, and
I did what I could to enjoy it.
They put me in another part of the barn and laid me on
a stuffy sort of pallet, which was not made of cloth of gold,
or Persian shawls, but was merely the unpretending sort of thing
I have seen in the negro quarters of Arkansas. There was nothing
whatever in this dim marble prison but five more of these biers.
It was a very solemn place. I expected that the spiced odors
of Araby were going to steal over my senses now, but they did
not. A copper-colored skeleton, with a rag
around him, brought me a glass decanter of water, with a lighted
tobacco pipe in the top of it, and a pliant stem a yard long,
with a brass mouth-piece to it.
It was the famous "narghili" of the East--the thing the
Grand Turk smokes in the pictures. This began to look like luxury.
I took one blast at it, and it was sufficient; the smoke went
in a great volume down into my stomach, my lungs, even into
the uttermost parts of my frame. I exploded one mighty cough,
and it was as if Vesuvius had let go. For the next five minutes
I smoked at every pore, like a frame house that is on fire on
the inside. Not any more narghili for me. The smoke had a vile
taste, and the taste of a thousand infidel tongues that remained
on that brass mouthpiece was viler still. I was getting discouraged.
Whenever, hereafter, I see the cross-legged Grand Turk smoking
his narghili, in pretended bliss, on the outside of a paper
of Connecticut tobacco, I shall know him for the shameless humbug
he is.
This prison was filled with hot air. When I had got warmed
up sufficiently to prepare me for a still warmer temperature,
they took me where it was--into a marble room, wet, slippery
and steamy, and laid me out on a raised platform in the centre.
It was very warm. Presently my man sat me down by a tank of
hot water, drenched me well, gloved his hand with a coarse mitten,
and began to polish me all over with it. I began to smell disgreeably.
The more he polished the worse I smelt. It was alarming. I said
to him:
"I perceive that I am pretty far gone. It is plain that
I ought to be buried without any unnecessary delay. Perhaps
you had better go after my friends at once, because the weather
is warm, and I can not 'keep' long."'
He went on scrubbing, and paid no attention. I soon saw
that he was reducing my size. He bore hard on his mitten, and
from under it rolled little cylinders, like maccaroni. It could
not be dirt, for it was too white. He pared me down in this
way for a long time. Finally I said:
"It is a tedious process. It will take hours to trim me
to the size you want me; I will wait; go and borrow a jack-plane."
He paid no attention at all.
After a while he brought a basin, some soap, and something
that seemed to be the tail of a horse. He made up a prodigious
quantity of soap-suds, deluged me with them from head to foot,
without warning me to shut my eyes, and then swabbed me viciously
with the horse-tail. Then he left me there, a snowy statue of
lather, and went away. When I got tired of waiting I went and
hunted him up. He was propped against the wall, in another room,
asleep. I woke him. He was not disconcerted. He took me back
and flooded me with hot water, then turbaned my head, swathed
me with dry table-cloths, and conducted me to a latticed chicken-coop
in one of the galleries, and pointed to one of those Arkansas
beds. I mounted it, and vaguely expected the odors of Araby
again. They did not come.
The blank, unornamented coop had nothing about it of that
oriental voluptuousness one reads of so much. It was more suggestive
of the county hospital than any thing else. The skinny servitor
brought a narghili, and I got him to take it out again without
wasting any time about it. Then he brought the world-renowned
Turkish coffee that poets have sung so rapturously for many
generations, and I seized upon it as the last hope that was
left of my old dreams of Eastern luxury. It was another fraud.
Of all the unchristian beverages that ever passed my lips,
Turkish coffee is the worst. The cup is small, it is smeared
with grounds; the coffee is black, thick, unsavory of smell,
and execrable in taste. The bottom of the cup has a muddy sediment
in it half an inch deep. This goes down your throat, and portions
of it lodge by the way, and produce a tickling aggravation that
keeps you barking and coughing for an hour.
Here endeth my experience of the celebrated Turkish bath,
and here also endeth my dream of the bliss the mortal revels
in who passes through it. It is a malignant swindle. The man
who enjoys it is qualified to enjoy any thing that is repulsive
to sight or sense, and he that can invest it with a charm of
poetry is able to do the same with any thing else in the world
that is tedious, and wretched, and dismal, and nasty.
We left a dozen passengers in Constantinople, and sailed through
the
beautiful Bosporus and far up into the Black Sea. We left them
in the
clutches of the celebrated Turkish guide, "FAR-AWAY MOSES," who
will
seduce them into buying a ship-load of ottar of roses, splendid
Turkish
vestments, and ail manner of curious things they can never have
any use
for. Murray's invaluable guide-books have mentioned Far-away
Moses'
name, and he is a made man. He rejoices daily in the fact that
he is a
recognized celebrity. However, we can not alter our established
customs
to
please the whims of guides; we can not show partialities this
late in the
day. Therefore, ignoring this fellow's brilliant fame, and ignoring
the
fanciful name he takes such pride in, we called him Ferguson,
just as we
had done with all other guides. It has kept him in a state of
smothered
exasperation all the time. Yet we meant him no harm. After he
has gotten
himself up regardless of expense, in showy, baggy trowsers, yellow,
pointed slippers, fiery fez, silken jacket of blue, voluminous
waist-sash
of
fancy Persian stuff filled with a battery of silver-mounted horse-pistols,
and has strapped on his terrible scimitar, he considers it an
unspeakable
humiliation to be called Ferguson. It can not be helped. All
guides are
Fergusons to us. We can not master their dreadful foreign names.
Sebastopol is probably the worst battered town in Russia
or any
where else. But we ought to be pleased with it, nevertheless,
for we have
been in no country yet where we have been so kindly received,
and where
we felt that to be Americans
was a sufficient visé for our passports. The moment
the
anchor was down, the Governor of the town immediately dispatched
an officer on board to inquire if he could be of any assistance
to us, and to
invite us to make ourselves at home in Sebastopol! If you know
Russia, you
know that this was a wild stretch of hospitality. They are usually
so
suspicious of strangers that they worry them excessively with
the delays
and aggravations incident to a complicated passport system. Had
we come
from any other country we could not have had permission to enter
Sebastopol and leave again under three days--but as it was, we
were at
liberty to go and come when and where we pleased. Every body
in
Constantinople warned us to be very careful about our passports,
see that
they were strictly en regle, and never to mislay them
for a moment:
and they told us of numerous instances of Englishmen and others
who
were delayed days, weeks, and even months, in Sebastopol, on
account of
trifling informalities in their passports, and for which they
were not to
blame. I had lost my passport, and was traveling under my room-mate's,
who stayed behind in Constantinople to await our return. To read
the
description of him in that passport and then look at me, any
man could see
that I was no more like him than I am like Hercules. So I went
into the
harbor of Sebastopol with fear and trembling--full of a vague,
horrible
apprehension that I was going to be found out and hanged. But
all that
time my true passport
had been floating gallantly overhead--and behold it was only
our flag.
They never asked us for any other.
We have had a great many Russian and English gentlemen
and
ladies on board to-day, and the time has passed cheerfully away.
They
were all happy-spirited people, and I never heard our mother
tongue
sound so pleasantly as it did when it fell from those English
lips in this
far-off land. I talked to the Russians a good deal, just to be
friendly, and
they talked to me from the same motive; I am sure that both enjoyed
the
conversation, but never a word of it either of us understood.
I did most of
my talking to those English people though, and I am sorry we
can not carry
some of them along with us.
We have gone whithersoever we chose, to-day, and have
met with
nothing but the kindest attentions. Nobody inquired whether we
had any
passports or not.
Several of the officers of the Government have suggested
that we
take the ship to a little watering-place thirty miles from here,
and pay
the
Emperor of Russia a visit. He is rusticating there. These officers
said they
would take it upon themselves to insure us a cordial reception.
They said
if
we would go, they would not only telegraph the Emperor, but send
a
special courier overland to announce our coming. Our time is
so short,
though, and more especially our coal is so nearly out, that we
judged it
best to forego the rare pleasure of holding social intercourse
with an
Emperor.
Ruined Pompeii is in good condition compared to Sebastopol.
Here,
you may look in whatsoever direction you please, and your eye
encounters
scarcely any thing but ruin, ruin, ruin!--fragments of houses,
crumbled
walls, torn and ragged hills, devastation every where! It is
as if a mighty
earthquake had spent all its terrible forces upon this one little
spot. For
eighteen long months the storms of war beat upon the helpless
town, and
left it at last the saddest wreck that ever the sun has looked
upon. Not one
solitary house escaped unscathed--not one remained habitable,
even. Such
utter and complete ruin one could hardly conceive of. The houses
had all
been solid, dressed stone structures; most of them were ploughed
through and through by cannon balls--unroofed and sliced down
from
eaves to foundation--and now a row of them, half a mile long,
looks
merely
like an endless procession of battered chimneys. No semblance
of a house
remains in such as these. Some of the larger buildings had corners
knocked
off; pillars cut in two; cornices smashed; holes driven straight
through
the
walls. Many of these holes are as round and as cleanly cut as
if they had
been made with an auger. Others are half pierced through, and
the clean
impression is there in the rock, as smooth and as shapely as
if it were
done
in putty. Here and there a ball still sticks in a wall, and from
it iron tears
trickle down and discolor the stone.
The battle-fields were pretty close together. The Malakoff
tower
is
on a hill which is right in the edge of the town. The Redan was
within
rifle-shot of the Malakoff; Inkerman was a mile away; and Balaklava
removed but an hour's ride. The French trenches, by which they
approached and invested the Malakoff were carried so close under
its
sloping sides that one might have stood by the Russian guns and
tossed a
stone into them. Repeatedly, during three terrible days, they
swarmed up
the little Malakoff hill, and were beaten back with terrible
slaughter.
Finally, they captured the place, and drove the Russians out,
who then
tried to retreat into the town, but the English had taken the
Redan, and
shut them off with a wall of flame; there was nothing for them
to do but
go
back and retake the Malakoff or die under its guns. They did
go back; they
took the Malakoff and retook it two or three times, but their
desperate
valor could not avail, and they had to give up at last.
These fearful fields, where such tempests of death used
to rage,
are
peaceful enough now; no sound is heard, hardly a living thing
moves about
them, they are lonely and silent--their desolation is complete.
There was nothing else to do, and so every body went to
hunting
relics. They have stocked the ship with them. They brought them
from the
Malakoff, from the Redan, Inkerman, Balaklava--every where. They
have
brought cannon balls,
broken ramrods, fragments of shell--iron enough to freight a
sloop. Some
have even brought bones--brought them laboriously from great
distances,
and were grieved to hear the surgeon pronounce them only bones
of mules
and oxen. I knew Blucher would not lose an opportunity like this.
He
brought a sack full on board and was going for another. I prevailed
upon
him not to go. He has already turned his state-room into a museum
of
worthless trumpery, which he has gathered up in his travels.
He is labeling
his trophies, now. I picked up one a while ago, and found it
marked
"Fragment of a Russian General." I carried it out to get a better
light upon
it--it was nothing but a couple of teeth and part of the jaw-bone
of a
horse.
I said with some asperity:
"Fragment of a Russian General! This is absurd. Are you
never going
to learn any sense?"
He only said: "Go slow--the old woman won't know any different."
[His aunt.]
This person gathers mementoes with a perfect recklessness,
now-a-days; mixes them all up together, and then serenely labels
them
without any regard to truth, propriety, or even plausibility.
I have found
him breaking a stone in two, and labeling half of it "Chunk busted
from the
pulpit of Demosthenes," and the other half "Darnick from the
Tomb of
Abelard and Heloise." I have known him to gather up a handful
of pebbles
by the roadside, and bring them on board ship and label them
as coming
from twenty celebrated localities five hundred miles apart. I
remonstrate
against these outrages upon reason and truth, of course, but
it does no
good. I get the same tranquil, unanswerable reply every time:
"It don't signify--the old woman won't know any different."
Ever since we three or four fortunate ones made the midnight
trip
to Athens, it has afforded him genuine satisfaction to give every
body in
the ship a pebble from the Mars-hill where St. Paul preached.
He got all
those pebbles on the sea shore, abreast the ship, but professes
to have
gathered them
from one of our party. However, it is not of any use for me to
expose the
deception--it affords him pleasure, and does no harm to any body.
He says
he never expects to run out of mementoes of St. Paul as long
as he is in
reach of a sand-bank. Well, he is no worse than others. I notice
that all
travelers supply deficiencies in their collections in the same
way. I shall
never have any confidence in such things again while I live.
We have got so far east, now--a hundred and fifty-five degrees
of longitude from San Francisco--that my watch can not "keep
the hang" of the time any more. It has grown discouraged, and
stopped. I think it did a wise thing. The difference in time
between Sebastopol and the Pacific coast is enormous. When it
is six o'clock in the morning here, it is somewhere about week
before last in California. We are excusable for getting a little
tangled as to time. These distractions and distresses about
the time have worried me so much that I was afraid my mind was
so much affected that I never would have any appreciation of
time again; but when I noticed how handy I was yet about comprehending
when it was dinner-time, a blessed tranquillity settled down
upon me, and I am tortured with doubts and fears no more.
Odessa is about twenty hours' run from Sebastopol, and
is the most northerly port in the Black Sea. We came here to
get coal, principally. The city has a population of one hundred
and thirty-three thousand, and is growing faster than any other
small city out of America. It is a free port, and is the great
grain mart of this particular part of the world. Its roadstead
is full of ships. Engineers are at work, now, turning the open
roadstead into a spacious artificial harbor. It is to be almost
inclosed by massive stone piers, one of which will extend into
the sea over three thousand feet in a straight line.
I have not felt so much at home for a long time as I did
when I ''raised the hill" and stood in Odessa for the first
time. It looked just like an American city; fine, broad streets,
and
straight as well; low houses, (two or three stories,) wide, neat,
and free from any quaintness of architectural ornamentation;
locust trees bordering the sidewalks (they call them acacias;)
a stirring, business-look about the streets and the stores;
fast walkers; a familiar new look about the houses and
every thing; yea, and a driving and smothering cloud of dust
that was so like a message from our own dear native land that
we could hardly refrain from shedding a few grateful tears and
execrations in the old time-honored American way. Look up the
street or down the street, this way or that way, we saw only
America! There was not one thing to remind us that we were
in Russia. We walked for some little distance, reveling in
this home vision, and then we came upon a church and a hack-driver,
and presto! the illusion vanished! The church had a slender-spired
dome that rounded inward at its base, and looked like a turnip
turned upside down, and the hackman seemed to be dressed in
a long petticoat without any hoops. These things were essentially
foreign, and so were the carriages--but every body knows about
these things, and there is no occasion for my describing them.
We were only to stay here a day and a night and take in
coal; we consulted the guide-books and were rejoiced to know
that there were no sights in Odessa to see; and so we had one
good, untrammeled holyday on our hands, with nothing to do
but idle about the city and enjoy ourselves. We sauntered through
the markets and criticised the fearful and wonderful costumes
from the back country; examined the populace as far as eyes
could do it; and closed the entertainment with an ice-cream
debauch. We do not get ice-cream every where, and so, when we
do, we are apt to dissipate to excess. We never cared any thing
about ice-cream at home, but we look upon it with a sort of
idolatry now that it is so scarce in these red-hot climates
of the East.
We only found two pieces of statuary, and this was another
blessing. One was a bronze image of the Duc de Richelieu, grand-nephew
of the splendid Cardinal. It stood in a spacious, handsome promenade,
overlooking the sea, and from its base a
vast flight of stone steps led down to the harbor--two hundred
of them, fifty feet long, and a wide landing at the bottom of
every twenty. It is a noble staircase, and from a distance the
people toiling up it looked like insects. I mention this statue
and this stairway because they have their story. Richelieu founded
Odessa--watched over it with paternal care--labored with a fertile
brain and a wise understanding for its best interests--spent
his fortune freely to the same end--endowed it with a sound
prosperity, and one which will yet make it one of the great
cities of the Old World--built this noble stairway with money
from his own private purse--and--. Well, the people for whom
he had done so much, let him walk down these same steps, one
day, unattended, old, poor, without a second coat to his back;
and when, years afterwards, he died in Sebastopol in poverty
and neglect, they called a meeting, subscribed liberally, and
immediately erected this tasteful monument to his memory, and
named a great street after him. It reminds me of what Robert
Burns' mother said when they erected a stately monument to his
memory: "Ah, Robbie, ye asked them for bread and they hae gi'en
ye a stane."
The people of Odessa have warmly recommended us to go
and call on the Emperor, as did the Sebastopolians. They have
telegraphed his Majesty, and he has signified his willingness
to grant us an audience. So we are getting up the anchors and
preparing to sail to his watering-place. What a scratching around
there will be, now! what a holding of important meetings and
appointing of solemn committees!--and what a furbishing up of
claw-hammer coats and white silk neck-ties! As this fearful
ordeal we are about to pass through pictures itself to my fancy
in all its dread sublimity, I begin to feel my fierce desire
to converse with a genuine Emperor cooling down and passing
away. What am I to do with my hands? What am I to do with my
feet? What in the world am I to do with myself?
We anchored here at Yalta, Russia, two or three days ago.
To me the
place was a vision of the Sierras. The tall, gray mountains
that back
it, their sides bristling with pines--cloven with ravines--here
and there a hoary rock towering into view--long, straight streaks
sweeping down from the summit to the sea, marking the passage
of some
avalanche of former times--all these were as like what one sees
in
the Sierras as if the one were a portrait of the other. The little
village of Yalta nestles at the foot of an amphitheatre which
slopes
backward and upward to the wall of hills, and looks as if it
might have
sunk quietly down to its present position from a higher elevation.
This
depression is covered with the great parks and gardens of noblemen,
and
through the mass of green foliage the bright colors of their
palaces bud
out here and there like flowers. It is a beautiful spot.
We had the United States Consul on board--the Odessa Consul.
We assembled in the cabin and commanded him to tell us what we
must do to
be saved, and tell us quickly. He made a speech. The first thing
he said
fell like a blight on every hopeful spirit: he had never seen
a court
reception. (Three groans for the Consul.) But he said he had
seen
receptions at the Governor-General's in Odessa, and had often
listened to
people's experiences of receptions at the Russian and other courts,
and
believed he knew very well what sort of ordeal we were about
to essay.
(Hope budded again.) He said we were many; the summer-palace
was
small--a mere
mansion; doubtless we should be received in summer fashion --in
the
garden; we would stand in a row, all the gentlemen in swallow-tail
coats,
white kids, and white neck-ties, and the ladies in light-colored
silks,
or something of that kind; at the proper moment--12
meridian--the Emperor, attended by his suite arrayed in splendid
uniforms, would appear and walk slowly along the line, bowing
to some,
and saying two or three words to others. At the moment his Majesty
appeared, a universal, delighted, enthusiastic smile ought to
break out
like a rash among the passengers--a smile of love, of gratification,
of admiration--and with one accord, the party must begin to
bow--not obsequiously, but respectfully, and with dignity; at
the
end of fifteen minutes the Emperor would go in the house, and
we could
run along home again. We felt immensely relieved. It seemed,
in a manner,
easy. There was not a man in the party but believed that with
a little
practice he could stand in a row, especially if there were others
along;
there was not a man but believed he could bow without tripping
on his
coat tail and breaking his neck; in a word, we came to believe
we were
equal to any item in the performance except that complicated
smile. The
Consul also said we ought to draft a little address to the Emperor,
and
present it to one of his aides-de-camp, who would forward it
to him at
the proper time. Therefore, five gentlemen were appointed to
prepare the
document, and the fifty others went sadly smiling about the
ship--practicing. During the next twelve hours we had the general
appearance, somehow, of being at a funeral, where every body
was sorry
the death had occurred, but glad it was over--where every body
was
smiling, and yet broken-hearted.
A committee went ashore to wait on his Excellency the
Governor-General, and learn our fate. At the end of three hours
of boding
suspense, they came back and said the Emperor would receive us
at noon
the next day--would send carriages for us--would hear the
address in person. The Grand Duke Michael had sent to invite
us to his
palace also. Any man could see that there was an intention here
to show
that Russia's
friendship for America was so genuine as to render even her private
citizens objects worthy of kindly attentions.
At the appointed hour we drove out three miles, and assembled
in
the handsome garden in front of the Emperor's palace.
We formed a circle under the trees before the door, for
there was
no one room in the house able to accommodate our three. score
persons
comfortably, and in a few minutes the imperial family came out
bowing and
smiling, and stood in our midst. A number of great dignitaries
of the
Empire, in undress unit forms, came with them. With every bow,
his
Majesty said a word of welcome. I copy these speeches. There
is character
in them--Russian character--which is politeness itself, and the
genuine article. The French are polite, but it is often mere
ceremonious
politeness. A Russian imbues his polite things with a heartiness,
both of
phrase and expression, that compels
belief in their sincerity. As I was saying, the Czar punctuated
his
speeches with bows:
"Good morning--I am glad to see you--I am
gratified--I am delighted--I am happy to receive you!"
All took off their hats, and the Consul inflicted the
address on
him. He bore it with unflinching fortitude; then took the rusty-looking
document and handed it to some great officer or other, to be
filed away
among the archives of Russia--in the stove. He thanked us for
the
address, and said he was very much pleased to see us, especially
as such
friendly relations existed between Russia and the United States.
The
Empress said the Americans were favorites in Russia, and she
hoped the
Russians were similarly regarded in America. These were all the
speeches
that were made, and I recommend them to parties who present policemen
with gold watches, as models of brevity and point. After this
the Empress
went and talked sociably (for an Empress) with various ladies
around the
circle; several gentlemen entered into a disjointed general conversation
with the Emperor; the Dukes and Princes, Admirals and Maids of
Honor
dropped into free-and-easy chat with first one and then another
of our
party, and whoever chose stepped forward and spoke with the modest
little
Grand Duchess Marie, the Czar's daughter. She is fourteen years
old,
light-haired, blue-eyed, unassuming and pretty. Every body talks
English.
The Emperor wore a cap, frock coat and pantaloons, all
of some
kind of plain white drilling--cotton or linen~and sported
no jewelry or any insignia whatever of rank. No costume could
be less
ostentatious. He is very tall and spare, and a determined-looking
man,
though a very pleasant-looking one nevertheless. It is easy to
see that
he is kind and affectionate There is something very noble in
his
expression when his cap is off. There is none of that cunning
in his eye
that all of us noticed in Louis Napoleon's.
The Empress and the little Grand Duchess wore simple suits
of
foulard (or foulard silk, I don't know which is proper,) with
a small
blue spot in it; the dresses were trimmed with blue; both ladies
wore
broad blue sashes about their waists; linen collars and clerical
ties of
muslin; low-crowned straw-hats trimmed with blue velvet; parasols
and
flesh-colored gloves The Grand Duchess had no heels on her shoes.
I do
not know this of my own knowledge, but one of our ladies told
me so. I
was not looking at her shoes. I was glad to observe that she
wore her own
hair, plaited in thick braids against the back of her head, instead
of
the uncomely thing they call a waterfall, which is about as much
like a
waterfall as a canvas-covered ham is Like a cataract. Taking
the kind
expression that is in the Emperor's face and the gentleness that
is in
his young daughter's into consideration, I wondered if it would
not tax
the Czar's firmness to the utmost to condemn a supplicating wretch
to
misery in the wastes of Siberia if she pleaded for him. Every
time their
eyes met, I saw more and more what a tremendous power that weak,
diffident school-girl could wield if she chose to do it. Many
and many a
time she might rule the Autocrat of Russia, whose lightest word
is law to
seventy millions of human beings She was only a girl, and she
looked
like a thousand others I have seen, but never a girl provoked
such a
novel and peculiar interest in me before. A strange, new sensation
is a
rare thing in this hum-drum life, and I had it here. There was
nothing
stale or worn out about the thoughts and feelings the situation
and the
circumstances created. It seemed strange--stranger than I can
tell--to think that the central figure in the cluster of men
and
women, chatting here under the trees like the most ordinary individual
in the land, was a man who could open his lips and ships would
fly
through the waves, locomotives would speed over the plains, couriers
would hurry from village to village, a hundred telegraphs would
flash the
word to the four corners of an Empire that stretches its vast
proportions
over a seventh part of the habitable globe, and a countless multitude
of
men would spring to do his bidding. I had a sort of vague desire
to
examine his hands and see if they were of flesh and blood, like
other
men's. Here was a man who could do this wonderful thing, and
yet if I
chose I could knock him down. The case was plain, but it seemed
preposterous, nevertheless--as preposterous as trying to knock
down
a mountain or wipe out a continent. If this man sprained his
ankle, a
million miles of telegraph would carry the news over
mountains--valleys-- uninhabited deserts--under the
trackless sea--and ten thousand newspapers would prate of it;
if he
were grievously ill, all the nations would know it before the
sun rose
again; if he dropped lifeless where he stood, his fall might
shake the
thrones of half a world! If I could have stolen his coat, I
would have
done it. When I meet a man like that, I want something to remember
him
by.
As a general thing, we have been shown through palaces
by some
plush-legged filagreed flunkey or other, who charged a franc
for it; but
after talking with the company half an hour, the Emperor of Russia
and
his family conducted us all through their mansion themselves.
They made
no charge. They seemed to take a real pleasure in it.
We spent half an hour idling through the palace, admiring
the cosy
apartments and the rich but eminently home-like appointments
of the
place, and then the Imperial family bade our party a kind good-bye,
and
proceeded to count the spoons.
An invitation was extended to us to visit the palace of
the eldest
son, the Crown Prince of Russia, which was near at hand. The
young man
was absent, but the Dukes and Countesses and Princes went over
the
premises with us as leisurely as was the case at the Emperor's,
and
conversation continued as lively as ever.
It was a little after one o'clock, now. We drove to the Grand
Duke
Michael's, a mile away, in response to his invitation, previously
given.
We arrived in twenty minutes from the Emperor's. It is
a lovely
place. The beautiful palace nestles among the grand old groves
of the
park, the park sits in the lap of the picturesque crags and hills,
and
both look out upon the breezy ocean. In the park are rustic seats,
here
and there, in secluded nooks that are dark with shade; there
are rivulets
of crystal water; there are lakelets, with inviting, grassy banks;there
are glimpses of sparkling cascades through openings in the wilderness
of
foliage; there are streams of clear water gushing from mimic
knots on the
trunks of forest trees; there are miniature marble temples perched
upon
gray old crags; there are airy lookouts whence one may gaze upon
a broad
expanse of landscape and ocean. The palace is modeled after the
choicest
forms of Grecian architecture, and its wide colonnades surround
a central
court that is banked with rare flowers that fill the place with
their
fragrance, and in their midst springs a fountain that cools the
summer
air, and may possibly breed mosquitoes, but I do not think it
does.
The Grand Duke and his Duchess came out, and the presentation
ceremonies were as simple as they had been at the Emperor's.
In a few
minutes, conversation was under way, as before. The Empress appeared
in
the verandah, and the little Grand Duchess came out into the
crowd. They
had beaten us there. In a few minutes, the Emperor came himself
on
horseback. It was very pleasant. You can appreciate it if you
have ever
visited royalty and felt occasionally that possibly you might
be wearing
out your welcome--though as a general thing, I believe, royalty
is
not scrupulous about discharging you when it is done with you.
The Grand Duke is the third brother of the Emperor, is
about
thirty-seven years old, perhaps, and is the princeliest figure
in Russia.
He is even taller than the Czar, as straight as an Indian, and
bears
himself like one of those gorgeous knights we read about in romances
of
the Crusades. He looks
like a great-hearted fellow who would pitch an enemy into the
river in a
moment, and then jump in and risk his life fishing him out again.
The
stories they tell of him show him to be of a brave and generous
nature.
He must have been desirous of proving that Americans were welcome
guests
in the imperial palaces of Russia, because he rode all the way
to Yalta
and escorted our procession to the Emperor's himself, and kept
his aids
scurrying about, clearing the road and offering assistance wherever
it
could be needed. We were rather familiar with him then, because
we did
not know who he was. We recognized him now, and appreciated the
friendly
spirit that prompted him to do us a favor that any other Grand
Duke in
the world would have doubtless declined to do. He had plenty
of servitors
whom he could have sent, but he chose to attend to the matter
himself.
The Grand Duke was dressed in the handsome and showy uniform
of a
Cossack officer. The Grand Duchess had on a white alpaca robe,
with the
seams and gores trimmed with black barb lace, and a little gray
hat with
a feather of the same color. She is young, rather pretty modest
and
unpretending, and full of winning politeness.
Our party walked all through the house, and then the nobility
escorted them all over the grounds, and finally brought them
back to the
palace about half-past two o'clock to breakfast. They called
it
breakfast, but we would have called it luncheon. It consisted
of two
kinds of wine; tea, bread, cheese, and cold meats, and was served
on the
centre-tables in the reception room and the verandahs--anywhere
that
was convenient; there was no ceremony. It was a sort of picnic.
I had
heard before that we were to breakfast there, but Blucher said
he
believed Baker's boy had suggested it to his Imperial Highness.
I think
not--though it would be like him. Baker's boy is the famine-breeder
of the ship. He is always hungry. They say he goes about the
state-rooms
when the passengers are out, and eats up all the soap. And they
say he
eats oakum. They say he will eat any thing he can get between
meals, but
he prefers oakum. He does not like oakum for
dinner, but he likes it for a lunch, at odd hours, or any thing
that way.
It makes him very disagreeable, because it makes his breath bad,
and
keeps his teeth all stuck up with tar. Baker's boy may have suggested
the
breakfast, but I hope he did not. It went off well, anyhow. The
illustrious host moved about from place to place, and helped
to destroy
the provisions and keep the conversation lively, and the Grand
Duchess
talked with the verandah parties and such as had satisfied their
appetites and straggled out from the reception room.
The Grand Duke's tea was delicious. They give one a lemon
to
squeeze into it, or iced milk, if he prefers it. The former is
best. This
tea is brought overland from China. It injures the article to
transport
it by sea.
When it was time to go, we bade our distinguished hosts
good-bye,
and they retired happy and contented to their apartments to count
their
spoons.
We had spent the best part of half a day in the home of
royalty,
and had been as cheerful and comfortable all the time as we could
have
been in the ship. I would as soon have thought of being cheerful
in
Abraham's bosom as in the palace of an Emperor. I supposed that
Emperors
were terrible people. I thought they never did any thing but
wear
magnificent crowns and red velvet dressing-gowns with dabs of
wool sewed
on them in spots, and sit on thrones and scowl at the flunkies
and the
people in the parquette, and order Dukes and Duchesses off to
execution.
I find, however, that when one is so fortunate as to get behind
the
scenes and see them at home and in the privacy of their firesides,
they
are strangely like common mortals. They are pleasanter to look
upon then
than they are in their theatrical aspect. It seems to come as
natural to
them to dress and act like other people as it is to put a friend's
cedar
pencil in your pocket when you are done using it. But I can never
have
any confidence in the tinsel kings of the theatre after this.
It will be
a great loss. I used to take such a thrilling pleasure in them.
But,
hereafter, I will turn me sadly away and say;
"This does not answer--this isn't the style of king that I
am acquainted with."
When they swagger around the stage in jeweled crowns and
splendid
robes, I shall feel bound to observe that all the Emperors that
ever I
was personally acquainted with wore the commonest sort of clothes,
and
did not swagger. And when they come on the stage attended by
a vast
body-guard of supes in helmets and tin breastplates, it will
be my duty
as well as my pleasure to inform the ignorant that no crowned
head of my
acquaintance has a soldier any where about his house or his person.
Possibly it may be thought that our party tarried too
long, or did
other improper things, but such was not the case. The company
felt that
they were occupying an unusually responsible position--they were
representing the people of America, not the Government--and
therefore they were careful to do their best to perform their
high
mission with credit.
On the other hand, the Imperial families, no doubt, considered
that in entertaining us they were more especially entertaining
the people
of America than they could by showering attentions on a whole
platoon of
ministers plenipotentiary and therefore they gave to the event
its
fullest significance, as an expression of good will and friendly
feeling
toward the entire country. We took the kindnesses we received
as
attentions thus directed, of course, and not to ourselves as
a party.
That we felt a personal pride in being received as the representatives
of
a nation, we do not deny; that we felt a national pride in the
warm
cordiality of that reception, can not be doubted.
Our poet has been rigidly suppressed, from the time we
let go the
anchor. When it was announced that we were going to visit the
Emperor of
Russia, the fountains of his great deep were broken up, and he
rained
ineffable bosh for four-and-twenty hours. Our original anxiety
as to what
we were going to do with ourselves, was suddenly transformed
into anxiety
about what we were going to do with our poet. The problem was
solved at
last. Two alternatives were offered him--he must either swear
a
dreadful oath that he would not issue a line of his poetry while
he was
in the Czar's dominions, or else remain under guard on board
the ship
until we were safe at Constantinople again. He fought the dilemma
long,
but yielded at last. It was a great deliverance. Perhaps the
savage
reader would like a specimen of his style. I do not mean this
term to be
offensive. I only use it because "the gentle reader" has been
used so
often that any change from it can not but be refreshing:
The sea has been unusually rough all day. However, we
have had a
lively time of it, anyhow. We have had quite a run of visitors.
The
Governor-General came, and we received him with a salute of nine
guns. He
brought his family with him. I observed that carpets were spread
from the
pier-head
to his carriage for him to walk on, though I have seen him walk
there
without any carpet when he was not on business. I thought may
be he had
what the accidental insurance people might call an extra-hazardous
polish
("policy" joke, but not above mediocrity,) on his boots, and
wished to
protect them, but I examined and could not see that they were
blacked any
better than usual. It may have been that he had forgotten his
carpet,
before, but he did not have it with him, anyhow. He was an exceedingly
pleasant old gentleman; we all liked him, especially Blucher.
When he
went away, Blucher invited him to come again and fetch his carpet
along.
Prince Dolgorouki and a Grand Admiral or two, whom we
had seen
yesterday at the reception, came on board also. I was a little
distant
with these parties, at first, because when I have been visiting
Emperors
I do not like to be too familiar with people I only know by reputation,
and whose moral characters and standing in society I can not
be
thoroughly acquainted with. I judged it best to be a little offish,
at
first. I said to myself, Princes and Counts and Grand Admirals
are very
well, but they are not Emperors, and one can not be too particular
about
who he associates with.
Baron Wrangel came, also. He used to be Russian Ambassador
at
Washington. I told him I had an uncle who fell down a shaft and
broke
himself in two, as much as a year before that. That was a falsehood,
but
then I was not going to let any man eclipse me on surprising
adventures,
merely for the want of a little invention. The Baron is a fine
man, and
is said to stand high in the Emperor's confidence and esteem.
Baron Ungern-Sternberg, a boisterous, whole-souled old
nobleman,
came with the rest. He is a man of progress and enterprise--a
representative man of the age. He is the Chief Director of the
railway
system of Russia--a sort of railroad king. In his line he is
making
things move along in this country He has traveled extensively
in America.
He says he has tried convict labor on his railroads, and with
perfect
success. He says the convict" work well, and are quiet and peaceable.
He
observed that he employs nearly ten thousand of them now.
This appeared to be another call on my resources. I was equal
to the
emergency. I said we had eighty thousand convicts employed on
the
railways in America--all of them under sentence of death for
murder
in the first degree. That closed him out.
We had General Todtleben (the famous defender of Sebastopol,
during the siege,) and many inferior army and also navy officers,
and a
number of unofficial Russian ladies and gentlemen. Naturally,
a champagne
luncheon was in order, and was accomplished without loss of life.
Toasts
and jokes were discharged freely, but no speeches were made save
one
thanking the Emperor and the Grand Duke, through the Governor-General,
for our hospitable reception, and one by the Governor-General
in reply,
in which he returned the Emperor's thanks for the speech, etc.,
etc.
We returned to Constantinople, and after a day or two spent
in exhausting marches about the city and voyages up the Golden
Horn in caiques, we steamed away again. We passed through
the Sea of Marmora and the Dardanelles, and steered for a new
land--a new one to us, at least--Asia. We had as yet only acquired
a bowing acquaintance with it, through pleasure excursions to
Scutari and the regions round about.
We passed between Lemnos and Mytilene, and saw them as
we had seen Elba and the Balearic Isles--mere bulky shapes,
with the softening mists of distance upon them--whales in a
fog, as it were. Then we held our course southward, and began
to "read up" celebrated Smyrna.
At all hours of the day and night the sailors in the forecastle
amused themselves and aggravated us by burlesquing our visit
to royalty. The opening paragraph of our Address to the Emperor
was framed as follows:
"We are a handful of private citizens of America, traveling
simply for recreation--and unostentatiously, as becomes our
unofficial state--and, therefore, we have no excuse to tender
for presenting ourselves before your Majesty, save the desire
of offering our grateful acknowledgments to the lord of a realm,
which, through good and through evil report, has been the steadfast
friend of the land we love so well."
The third cook, crowned with a resplendent tin basin and
wrapped royally in a table-cloth mottled with grease-spots and
coffee stains, and bearing a sceptre that looked strangely like
a belaying-pin, walked upon a dilapidated carpet and perched
himself on the capstan, careless of the flying spray; his tarred
and weather-beaten Chamberlains, Dukes and Lord High Admirals
surrounded him, arrayed in all the pomp that spare tarpaulins
and remnants of old sails could furnish. Then the visiting "watch
below," transformed into graceless ladies and uncouth pilgrims,
by rude travesties upon waterfalls, hoopskirts, white kid gloves
and swallow-tail coats, moved solemnly up the companion way,
and bowing low, began a system of complicated and extraordinary
smiling which few monarchs could look upon and live. Then the
mock consul, a slush-plastered deck-sweep, drew out a soiled
fragment of paper and proceeded to read, laboriously
"To His Imperial Majesty, Alexander II., Emperor of Russia:
"We are a handful of private citizens of America, traveling
simply for recreation,--and unostentatiously, as becomes our
unofficial state--and therefore, we have no excuse to tender
for presenting ourselves before your Majesty--"
The Emperor--"Then what the devil did you come
for?"
--"Save the desire of offering our grateful acknowledgments
to the lord of a realm which--"
The Emperor--" Oh, d--n the Address!--read it to
the
police. Chamberlain, take these people over to my brother, the
Grand Duke's, and give them a square meal. Adieu! I am happy--I
am gratified--I am delighted--I am bored. Adieu, adieu--vamos
the ranch! The First Groom of the Palace will proceed to count
the portable articles of value belonging to the premises."
The farce then closed, to be repeated again with every
change of the watches, and embellished with new and still more
extravagant inventions of pomp and conversation.
At all times of the day and night the phraseology of that
tiresome address fell upon our ears. Grimy sailors came down
out of the foretop placidly announcing themselves as "a handful
of private citizens of America, traveling simply for recreation
and unostentatiously," etc.; the coal passers moved to their
duties in the profound depths of the ship, explaining the blackness
of their faces and their uncouthness of dress, with the reminder
that they were "a handful of private citizens, traveling
simply for recreation," etc., and when the cry rang through
the vessel at midnight: "EIGHT BELLS!--LARBOARD WATCH, TURN OUT!" the larboard watch
came gaping and stretching out of their den, with the everlasting
formula: "Aye-aye,
sir! We are a handful of private citizens of America, traveling
simply for recreation, and unostentatiously, as becomes our
unofficial state!"
As I was a member of the committee, and helped to frame
the Address, these sarcasms came home to me. I never heard a
sailor proclaiming himself as a handful of American citizens
traveling for recreation, but I wished he might trip and fall
overboard, and so reduce his handful by one individual, at least.
I never was so tired of any one phrase as the sailors made me
of the opening sentence of the Address to the Emperor
of Russia.
This seaport of Smyrna, our first notable acquaintance
in Asia, is a closely packed city of one hundred and thirty
thousand inhabitants, and, like Constantinople, it has no outskirts.
It is as closely packed at its outer edges as it is in the centre,
and then the habitations leave suddenly off and the plain beyond
seems houseless. It is just like any other Oriental city. That
is to say, its Moslem houses are heavy and dark, and as comfortless
as so many tombs; its streets are crooked, rude]y and roughly
paved, and as narrow as an ordinary staircase; the streets uniformly
carry a man to any other place than the one he wants to go to,
and surprise him by landing him in the most unexpected localities;
business is chiefly carried on in great covered bazaars, celled
like a honeycomb with innumerable shops no larger than a common
closet, and the whole hive cut up into a maze of alleys about
wide enough to accommodate a laden camel, and well calculated
to confuse a stranger and eventually lose him; every where there
is dirt, every where there are fleas, every where there are
lean, broken-hearted dogs; every alley is thronged with people;
wherever you look, your eye rests upon a wild masquerade of
extravagant costumes; the workshops are all open to the streets,
and the workmen visible; all manner of sounds assail the ear,
and over them all rings out the muezzin's cry from some tall
minaret, calling the faithful vagabonds to prayer; and superior
to the call to prayer, the noises in the streets, the interest
of the costumes--superior to every thing, and claiming the bulk
of at-
tention first, last, and all the time--is a combination of Mohammedan
stenches, to which the smell of even a Chinese quarter would
be as pleasant as the roasting odors of the fatted calf to the
nostrils of the returning Prodigal. Such is Oriental luxury--such
is Oriental splendor! We read about it all our days, but we
comprehend it not until we see it. Smyrna is a very old city.
Its name occurs several times in the Bible, one or two of the
disciples of Christ visited it, and here was located one of
the original seven apocalyptic churches spoken of in Revelations.
These churches were symbolized in the Scriptures as candlesticks,
and on certain conditions there was a sort of implied promise
that Smyrna should be endowed with a "crown of life." She was
to "be faithful unto death"--those were the terms. She has not
kept up her faith straight along, but the pilgrims that wander
hither consider that she has come near enough to it to save
her, and so they point to the fact that Smyrna to-day wears
her crown of life, and is a great city, with a great commerce
and full of energy, while the cities wherein were located the
other six churches, and to which no crown of life was promised,
have vanished from the earth. So Smyrna really still possesses
her crown of life, in a business point of view. Her career,
for eighteen centuries, has been a chequered one, and she has
been under the rule of princes of many creeds, yet there has
been no season during all that time, as far as we know, (and
during such seasons as she was inhabited at all,) that she has
been without her little community of Christians "faithful unto
death." Hers was the only church against which no threats were
implied in the Revelations, and the only one which survived.
With Ephesus, forty miles from here, where was located
another of the seven churches, the case was different. The "candlestick"
has been removed from Ephesus. Her light has been put out. Pilgrims,
always prone to find prophecies in the Bible, and often where
none exist, speak cheerfully and complacently of poor, ruined
Ephesus as the victim of prophecy. And yet there is no sentence
that promises, without due qualification, the destruction of
the city. The words are:
That is all; the other verses are singularly complimentary
to Ephesus. The threat is qualified. There is no history to
show that she did not repent. But the cruelest habit the modern
prophecy-savans have, is that one of coolly and arbitrarily
fitting the prophetic shirt on to the wrong man. They do it
without regard to rhyme or reason. Both the cases I have just
mentioned are instances in point. Those "prophecies" are distinctly
leveled at the "churches of Ephesus, Smyrna," etc., and
yet the pilgrims invariably make them refer to the cities
instead. No crown of life is promised to the town of Smyrna
and its commerce, but to the handful of Christians who formed
its "church." If they were "faithful unto death," they
have their crown now--but no amount of faithfulness and legal
shrewdness combined could legitimately drag the city
into a participation in the promises of the prophecy. The stately
language of the Bible refers to a crown of life whose lustre
will reflect the day-beams of the endless ages of eternity,
not the butterfly existence of a city built by men's hands,
which must pass to dust with the builders and be forgotten even
in the mere handful of centuries vouchsafed to the solid world
itself between its cradle and its grave.
The fashion of delving out fulfillments of prophecy where
that prophecy consists of mere "ifs," trenches upon the absurd.
Suppose, a thousand years from now, a malarious swamp builds
itself up in the shallow harbor of Smyrna, or something else
kills the town; and suppose, also, that within that time the
swamp that has filled the renowned harbor of Ephesus and rendered
her ancient site deadly and uninhabitable to-day, becomes hard
and healthy ground; suppose the natural consequence ensues,
to wit: that Smyrna becomes a melancholy ruin, and Ephesus is
rebuilt. What would the prophecy-savans say? They would coolly
skip over our age of the world, and say: " Smyrna was not faithful
unto death, and so her crown of life was denied her; Ephesus
repented, and lo! her candle-
stick was not removed. Behold these evidences! How wonderful
is prophecy!"
Smyrna has been utterly destroyed six times. If her crown
of life had been an insurance policy, she would have had an
opportunity to collect on it the first time she fell. But she
holds it on sufferance and by a complimentary construction of
language which does not refer to her. Six different times, however,
I suppose some infatuated prophecy-enthusiast blundered along
and said, to the infinite disgust of Smyrna and the Smyrniotes:
"In sooth, here is astounding fulfillment of prophecy! Smyrna
hath not been faithful unto death, and behold her crown of life
is vanished from her head. Verily, these things be astonishing!"
Such things have a bad influence. They provoke worldly
men into using light conversation concerning sacred subjects.
Thick-headed commentators upon the Bible, and stupid preachers
and teachers, work more damage to religion than sensible, cool-brained
clergymen can fight away again, toil as they may. It is not
good judgment to fit a crown of life upon a city which has been
destroyed six times. That other class of wiseacres who twist
prophecy in such a manner as to make it promise the destruction
and desolation of the same city, use judgment just as bad, since
the city is in a very flourishing condition now, unhappily for
them. These things put arguments into the mouth of infidelity.
A portion of the city is pretty exclusively Turkish; the
Jews have a quarter to themselves; the Franks another quarter;
so, also, with the Armenians. The Armenians, of course, are
Christians. Their houses are large, clean, airy, handsomely
paved with black and white squares of marble, and in the centre
of many of them is a square court, which has in it a luxuriant
flower-garden and a sparkling fountain; the doors of all the
rooms open on this. A very wide hall leads to the street door,
and in this the women sit, the most of the day. In the cool
of the evening they dress up in their best raiment and show
themselves at the door. They are all comely of countenance,
and exceedingly neat and cleanly; they look as if they
were just out of a band-box. Some of the young ladies--many of
them, I may say--are even very beautiful; they average a shade
better than American girls--which treasonable words I pray may
be forgiven me. They are very sociable, and will smile back
when a stranger smiles at them, bow back when he bows, and talk
back if he speaks to them. No introduction is required. An hour's
chat at the door with a pretty girl one never saw before, is
easily obtained, and is very pleasant. I have tried it. I could
not talk anything but English, and the girl knew nothing but
Greek, or Armenian, or some such barbarous tongue, but we got
along very well. I find that in cases like these, the fact that
you can not comprehend each other isn't much of a drawback.
In that Russian town of Yalta I danced an astonishing sort of
dance an hour long, and one I had not heard of before, with
a very pretty girl, and we talked incessantly, and laughed exhaustingly,
and neither one ever knew what the other was driving at. But
it was splendid. There were twenty people in the set, and the
dance was very lively and complicated. It was complicated enough
without me--with me it was more so. I threw in a figure now
and then that surprised those Russians. But I have never ceased
to think of that girl. I have written to her, but I can not
direct the epistle because her name is one of those nine-jointed
Russian affairs, and there are not letters enough in our alphabet
to hold out. I am not reckless enough to try to pronounce it
when I am awake, but I make a stagger at it in my dreams, and
get up with the lockjaw in the morning. I am fading. I do not
take my meals now, with any sort of regularity. Her dear name
haunts me still in my dreams. It is awful on teeth. It never
comes out of my mouth but it fetches an old snag along with
it. And then the lockjaw closes down and nips off a couple of
the last syllables--but they taste good.
Coming through the Dardanelles, we saw camel trains on
shore with the glasses, but we were never close to one till
we got to Smyrna. These camels are very much larger than the
scrawny specimens one sees in the menagerie. They stride along
these streets, in single file, a dozen in a train, with
heavy loads on their backs, and a fancy-looking negro in Turkish
costume, or an Arab, preceding them on a little donkey and completely
overshadowed and rendered insignificant by the huge beasts.
To see a camel train laden with the spices of Arabia and the
rare fabrics of Persia come marching through the narrow alleys
of the bazaar, among porters with their burdens, money-changers,
lamp-merchants, Al-naschars in the glassware business, portly
cross-legged Turks smoking the famous narghili; and the crowds
drifting to and fro in the fanciful costumes of the East, is
a genuine revelation of the Orient. The picture lacks nothing.
It casts you back at once into your forgotten boyhood, and again
you dream over the wonders of the Arabian Nights; again your
companions are princes, your lord is the Caliph Haroun Al Raschid,
and your servants are terrific giants and genii that come with
smoke and lightning and thunder, and go as a storm goes when
they depart!
We inquired, and learned that the lions of Smyrna consisted
of the ruins
of the ancient citadel, whose broken and prodigious battlements
frown
upon the city from a lofty hill just in the edge of the town--the
Mount
Pagus of Scripture, they call it; the site of that one of the
Seven Apocalyptic
Churches of Asia which was located here in the first century
of the
Christian era; and the grave and the place of martyrdom of the
venerable
Polycarp, who suffered in Smyrna for his religion some eighteen
hundred
years ago.
We took little donkeys and started. We saw Polycarp's
tomb, and
then hurried on.
The "Seven Churches"--thus they abbreviate it--came next
on the
list. We rode there--about a mile and a half in the sweltering
sun--and
visited a little Greek church which they said was built upon
the ancient
site; and we paid a small fee, and the holy attendant gave each
of us a little
wax candle as a remembrancer of the place, and I put mine in
my hat and
the sun melted it and the grease all ran down the back of my
neck; and so
now I have not any thing left but the wick, and it is a sorry
and a wilted-
looking wick at that.
Several of us argued as well as we could that the "church"
mentioned in the Bible meant a party of Christians, and not a
building; that
the Bible spoke of them as being very poor--so poor, I thought,
and so
subject to persecution (as per Polycarp's martyrdom) that in
the first place
they probably could
not have afforded a church edifice, and in the second would not
have
dared to build it in the open light of day if they could; and
finally, that if
they had had the privilege of building it, common judgment would
have
suggested that they build it somewhere near the town. But the
elders of
the ship's family ruled us down and scouted our evidences. However,
retribution came to them afterward. They found that they had
been led
astray and had gone to the wrong place; they discovered that
the accepted
site is in the city.
Riding through the town, we could see marks of the six
Smyrnas
that have existed here and been burned up by fire or knocked
down by
earthquakes. The hills and the rocks are rent asunder in places,
excavations expose great blocks of building-stone that have lain
buried for
ages, and all the mean houses and walls of modern Smyrna along
the way
are spotted white with broken pillars, capitals and fragments
of sculptured
marble that once adorned the lordly palaces that were the glory
of the city
in the olden time.
The ascent of the hill of the citadel is very steep, and
we proceeded
rather slowly. But there were matters of interest about us. In
one place,
five hundred feet above the sea, the perpendicular bank on the
upper side
of the road was ten or fifteen feet high, and the cut exposed
three veins of
oyster shells, just as we have seen quartz veins exposed in the
cutting of a
road in Nevada or Montana. The veins were about eighteen inches
thick
and two or three feet apart, and they slanted along downward
for a
distance of thirty feet or more, and then disappeared where the
cut joined
the road. Heaven only knows how far a man might trace them by
"stripping." They were clean, nice oyster shells, large, and
just like any
other oyster shells. They were thickly massed together, and none
were
scattered above or below the veins. Each one was a well-defined
lead by
itself, and without a spur. My first instinct was to set up the
usual--
"We, the undersigned, claim five claims of two hundred
feet each,
(and one for discovery,) on this ledge or lode of oyster-shells,
with all its
dips, spurs, angles, variations and sinuosities, and fifty feet
on each side of
the same, to work it, etc., etc., according to the mining laws
of Smyrna."
They were such perfectly natural-looking leads that I could
hardly keep
from "taking them up." Among the oyster-shells were mixed many
fragments of ancient, broken crockery ware. Now how did those
masses of
oyster-shells get there? I can not determine. Broken crockery
and oyster-shells are suggestive of restaurants--but then they could have
had no such
places away up there on that mountain side in our time, because
nobody
has lived up there. A restaurant would not pay in such a stony,
forbidding,
desolate place. And besides, there were no champagne corks among
the
shells. If there ever was a restaurant there, it must have been
in Smyrna's
palmy days, when the hills were covered with palaces. I could
believe in
one restaurant, on those terms; but then how about the three?
Did they
have restaurants there at three different periods of the world?--because
there are two or three feet of solid earth
between the oyster leads. Evidently, the restaurant solution
will not
answer.
The hill might have been the bottom of the sea, once,
and been
lifted up, with its oyster-beds, by an earthquake--but, then,
how about the
crockery? And moreover, how about three oyster beds, one
above
another, and thick strata of good honest earth between?
That theory will not do. It is just possible that this
hill is Mount
Ararat, and that Noah's Ark rested here, and he ate oysters and
threw the
shells overboard. But that will not do, either. There are the
three layers
again and the solid earth between--and, besides, there were only
eight in
Noah's family, and they could not have eaten all these oysters
in the two or
three months they staid on top of that mountain. The beasts--however,
it is
simply absurd to suppose he did not know any more than to feed
the
beasts on oyster suppers.
It is painful--it is even humiliating--but I am reduced
at last to one
slender theory: that the oysters climbed up there of their own
accord. But
what object could they have had in view?--what did they want
up there?
What could any oyster want to climb a hill for? To climb a hill
must
necessarily be fatiguing and annoying exercise for an oyster.
The most
natural conclusion would be that the oysters climbed up there
to look at
the scenery. Yet when one comes to reflect upon the nature of
an oyster, it
seems plain that he does not care for scenery. An oyster has
no taste for
such things; he cares nothing for the beautiful. An oyster is
of a retiring
disposition, and not lively--not even cheerful above the average,
and never
enterprising. But above all, an oyster does not take any interest
in
scenery--he scorns it. What have I arrived at now? Simply at
the point I
started from, namely, those oyster shells are there, in
regular layers, five
hundred feet above the sea, and no man knows how they got there.
I have
hunted up the guide-books, and the gist of what they say is this:
"They are
there, but how they got there is a mystery."
Twenty-five years ago, a multitude of people in America
put on
their ascension robes, took a tearful leave of their
friends, and made ready to fly up into heaven at the first blast
of the
trumpet. But the angel did not blow it. Miller's resurrection
day was a
failure. The Millerites were disgusted. I did not suspect that
there were
Millers in Asia Minor, but a gentleman tells me that they had
it all set for
the world to come to an end in Smyrna one day about three years
ago.
There was much buzzing and preparation for a long time previously,
and it
culminated in a wild excitement at the appointed time. A vast
number of
the populace ascended the citadel hill early in the morning,
to get out of
the way of the general destruction, and many of the infatuated
closed up
their shops and retired from all earthly business. But the strange
part of it
was that about three in the afternoon, while this gentleman and
his friends
were at dinner in the hotel, a terrific storm of rain, accompanied
by
thunder and lightning, broke forth and continued with dire fury
for two or
three hours. It was a thing unprecedented in Smyrna at that time
of the
year, and scared some of the most skeptical. The
streets ran rivers and the hotel floor was flooded with water.
The dinner
had to be suspended. When the storm finished and left every body
drenched through and through, and melancholy and half-drowned,
the
ascensionists came down from the mountain as dry as so many charity-
sermons! They had been looking down upon the fearful storm going
on
below, and really believed that their proposed destruction of
the world
was proving a grand success.
A railway here in Asia--in the dreamy realm of the Orient--in
the
fabled land of the Arabian Nights--is a strange thing to think
of. And yet
they have one already, and are building another. The present
one is well
built and well conducted, by an English Company, but is not doing
an
immense amount of business. The first year it carried a good
many
passengers, but its freight list only comprised eight hundred
pounds of
figs!
It runs almost to the very gates of Ephesus--a town great
in all ages
of the world--a city familiar to readers of the Bible, and one
which was as
old as the very hills when the disciples of Christ preached in
its streets. It
dates back to the shadowy ages of tradition, and was the birthplace
of gods
renowned in Grecian mythology. The idea of a locomotive tearing
through
such a place as this, and waking the phantoms of its old days
of romance
out of their dreams of dead and gone centuries, is curious enough.
We journey thither tomorrow to see the celebrated ruins.
This has been a stirring day. The Superintendent of the
railway put a train at our disposal, and did us the further kindness
of
accompanying us to Ephesus and giving to us his watchful care.
We
brought sixty scarcely perceptible donkeys in the freight cars,
for we
had much ground to go over. We have seen some of the most
grotesque costumes, along the line of the railroad, that can
be
imagined. I am glad that no possible combination of words could
describe them, for I might then be foolish enough to attempt
it.
At ancient Ayassalook, in the midst of a forbidding desert,
we
came upon long lines of ruined aqueducts, and other remnants
of
architectural grandeur, that told us plainly enough we were nearing
what had been a metropolis, once. We left the train and mounted
the
donkeys, along with our invited guests--pleasant young gentlemen
from the officers' list of an American man-of-war.
The little donkeys had saddles upon them which were made very
high in order that the rider's feet might not drag the ground.
The
preventative did not work well in the cases of our tallest pilgrims,
however. There were no bridles--nothing but a single rope, tied
to the
bit. It was purely ornamental, for the donkey cared nothing for
it. If he
were drifting to starboard, you might put your helm down hard
the
other way, if it were any satisfaction to you to do it, but he
would
continue to drift to starboard all the same. There was only one
process
which could be depended on, and it was to
get down and lift his rear around until his head pointed in the
right
direction, or take him under your arm and carry him to a part
of the
road which he could not get out of without climbing. The sun
flamed
down as hot as a furnace, and neckscarfs, veils and umbrellas
seemed
hardly any protection; they served only to make the long procession
look more than ever fantastic--for be it known the ladies were
all
riding astride because they could not stay on the shapeless saddles
sidewise, the men were perspiring and out of temper, their
feet were banging against the rocks, the donkeys were capering
in
every direction but the right one and being belabored
with clubs for it, and every Dow and then a broad umbrella
would suddenly go down out of the cavalcade, announcing to
all that one more pilgrim had bitten the dust. It was a wilder
picture than those solitudes had seen for many a day. No
donkeys ever existed that were as hard to navigate as these,
I
think, or that had so many vile, exasperating instincts. Occasionally
signally we grew so tired and breathless with fighting them that
we had to
desist,--and immediately the donkey would come down to a deliberate
walk.
This, with the fatigue, and the sun, would put a man asleep;
and soon as the
man was asleep, the donkey would lie down. My donkey shall
never see his
boyhood's home again. He has lain down once too
often. We all stood in the
vast theatre of ancient Epllesus,--the stone-benched amphitheatre
I mean --and
had our picture taken. We looked as
proper there as we would look any where, I suppose. We do
not embellish the general desolation of a desert much. We
add what dignity we can to a stately ruin with our green umbrellas
and jackasses, but it is little.
However, we mean
well.
I wish to say a brief word of the aspect of Ephesus.
On a high, steep hill, toward the sea, is a gray ruin of ponderous
blocks of
marble, wherein, tradition says, St. Paul was imprisoned eighteen
centuries
ago. From these old walls you have the finest view of the desolate
scene where
once stood Ephesus, the proudest city of ancient times, and whose
Temple of
Diana was so noble in design, and so exquisite of workmanship,
that it ranked
high in the list of the Seven Wonders of the World.
Behind you is the sea; in front is a level green valley, (a
marsh, in fact,)
extending far away among the mountains; to the right of the front
view is the
old citadel of Ayassalook, on a high hill; the ruined Mosque
of the Sultan Selim
stands near it in the plain, (this is built over the grave of
St. John,
and was formerly Christian Church ;) further toward you is the
hill of
Pion, around whose front is clustered all that remains of the
ruins of
Ephesus that still stand; divided from it by a narrow valley
is the long,
rocky, rugged mountain of Coressus. The scene is a pretty one,
and yet
desolate--for in that wide plain no man can live, and in it is
no human
habitation. But for the crumbling arches and monstrous piers
and
broken walls that rise from the foot of the hill of Pion, one
could not
believe that in this place once stood a city whose renown is
older than
tradition itself. It is incredible to reflect that things as
familiar all over
the world to-day as household words, belong in the history and
in the
shadowy legends of this silent, mournful solitude. We speak of
Apollo
and of Diana--they were born here; of the metamorphosis of Syrinx
into
a reed--it was done here; of the great god Pan--he dwelt in the
caves of
this hill of Coressus; of the Amazons-- this was their best prized
home;
of Bacchus and Hercules
both fought the warlike women here; of the Cyclops--they laid
the
ponderous marble blocks of some of the ruins yonder; of Homer--this
was one of his many birthplaces; of Cirmon of Athens; of Alcibiades,
Lysander, Agesilaus--they visited here; so did Alexander the
Great; so
did Hannibal and Antiochus, Scipio, Lucullus and Sylla; Brutus,
Cassius, Pompey, Cicero, and Augustus; Antony was a judge in
this
place, and left his seat in the open court, while the advocates
were
speaking, to run after Cleopatra, who passed the door; from this
city
these two sailed on pleasure excursions, in galleys with silver
oars and
perfumed sails, and with companies of beautiful girls to serve
them, and
actors and musicians to amuse them; in days that seem almost
modern,
so remote are they from the early history of this city, Paul
the Apostle
preached the new religion here, and so did John, and here it
is supposed
the former was pitted against wild beasts, for in 1 Corinthians,
xv. 32
he says:
It was a wonderful city, this Ephesus. Go where you will about
these
broad plains, you find the most exquisitely eculptured marble
fragments
scattered thick among the dust and weeds; and protruding from
the ground,
or lying prone upon it, are beautiful fluted columns of porphyry
and
all precious
marbles; and at every step you find elegantly carved capitals
and massive
bases, and polished tablets engraved with Greek inscriptions.
It is a world
of precious relics, a wilderness of marred and mutilated gems.
And yet what
are these things to the wonders that lie buried here under the
ground? At
Constantinople, at Pisa, in the cities of Spain, are great mosques
and
cathedrals, whose grandest columns came from the temples and
palaces of
Ephesus, and yet one has only to scratch the ground here to match
them. We
shall never know what magnificence is, until this imperial city
is laid bare
to the sun.
The finest piece of sculpture we have yet seen and the one
that
impressed us most, (for we do not know much about art and can
not easily
work up ourselves into ecstacies over it,) is one that lies in
this old theatre
of Ephesus which St. Paul's riot has made so celebrated. It is
only the
headless body of a man, clad in a coat of mail, with a Medusahead
upon the breast-plate, but we
feel persuaded that such dignity and
such majesty were never thrown into a form of stone before.
What builders they were, these men of antiquity! The
massive
arches of some of these ruins rest upon piers that are
fifteen feet square and built entirely of solid blocks of marble,
some
of which are as large as a Saratoga trunk, and some the size
of a
boarding-house sofa. They are not shells or shafts of stone filled
inside with rubbish, but the whole pier is a mass of solid masonry.
Vast arches, that may have been the gates of the city, are built
in the
same way. They have braved the storms and sieges of three thousand
years, and have been shaken by many an earthquake, but still
they
stand. When they
dig alongside of them, they find ranges of ponderous masonry
that are
as perfect in every detail as they were the day those old Cyclopian
giants finished them. An English Company is going to excavate
Ephesus--and then!
And now am I reminded of--
In the Mount of Pion, yonder, is the Cave of the Seven Sleepers.
Once
upon a time, about fifteen hundred years ago, seven young men
lived
near each other in Ephesus, who belonged to the despised sect
of the
Christians. It came to pass that the good King Maximilianus,
(I am
telling this story for nice little boys and girls,) it came to
pass, I say,
that the good King Maximilianus fell to persecuting the Christians,
and as time rolled on he made it very warm for them. So the seven
young men said one to the other, let us get up and travel. And
they got
up and traveled. They tarried not to bid their fathers and mothers
good-bye, or any friend they
knew. They only took certain moneys which
their parents had, and garments
that belonged unto their friends, whereby they might remember
them
when far away; and they took also the dog Ketmehr, which was
the
property of their neighbor Malchus, because the beast did run
his head
into a noose which one of the young men was carrying carelessly,
and
they had not time to release him; and they took also certain
chickens
that
seemed lonely in the neighboring coops, and likewise some bottles
of
curious liquors that stood near the grocer's window; and then
they
departed from the city. By-and-by they came to a marvelous cave
in the
Hill of Pion and entered into it and feasted, and presently they
hurried
on again. But they forgot the bottles of curious liquors, and
left them
behind. They traveled in many lands, and had many strange adventures.
They were virtuous young men, and lost no opportunity that fell
in
their way to make their livelihood. Their motto was in these
words,
namely, " Procrastination is the thief of time." And so, whenever
they
did come upon a man who was alone, they said, Behold, this person
hath the wherewithal--let us go through him. And they went through
him. At the end of five years they had waxed tired of travel
and
adventure, and longed to revisit their old home again and hear
the
voices and see the faces that were dear unto their youth. Therefore
they
went through such parties as fell in their way where they sojourned
at
that time, and journeyed -back toward Ephesus again. For the
good
King Maximilianus was become converted unto the new faith, and
the
Christians rejoiced because they were no longer persecuted. One
day
as the sun went down, they came to the cave in the Mount of Pion,
and
they said, each to his fellow, Let us sleep here, and go and
feast and
make merry with our friends when the morning cometh. And each
of
the seven lifted up his voice and said, It is a whiz. So they
went in, and
lo, where they had put them, there lay the bottles of strange
liquors,
and they judged that age had not impaired their excellence.
Wherein
the wanderers were right, and the heads of the same were level.
So
each of the young men drank six bottles, and behold they felt
very
tired, then, and lay down and slept soundly.
When they awoke, one of them, Johannes--surnamed
Smithianus--said, We are naked. And it was so. Their raiment
was all
gone, and the money which they had gotten from a stranger whom
they
had proceeded through as they approached the city, was lying
upon the
ground, corroded and rusted and defaced. Likewise the dog Ketmehr
was gone, and nothing save the brass that was upon his collar
remained. They wondered
much at these things. But they took the money, and they wrapped
about their bodies some leaves, and came up to the top of the
hill. Then
were they perplexed. The wonderful temple of Diana was gone;
many
grand edifices they had never seen before stood in the city;
men in
strange garbs moved about the streets, and every thing was
changed.
Johannes said, It hardly seems like Ephesus. Yet here is the
great
gymnasium; here is the mighty theatre, wherein I have seen seventy
thousand men assembled; here is the Agora; there is the font
where the
sainted John the Baptist immersed the converts; yonder is the
prison of
the good St. Paul, where we all did use to go to touch the ancient
chains
that bound him and be cured of our distempers; I see the tomb
of the
disciple Luke, and afar off is the church wherein repose the
ashes of the
holy John, where the Christians of Ephesus go twice a year to
gather the
dust from the tomb, which is able to make bodies whole again
that are
corrupted by disease, and cleanse the soul from sin; but see
how the
wharves encroach upon the sea, and what multitudes of ships are
anchored in the bay; see, also, how the city hath stretched abroad,
far
over the valley behind Pion, and even unto the walls of Ayassalook;
and
lo, all the hills are white with palaces and ribbed with colonnades
of
marble. How mighty is Ephesus become!
And wondering at what their eyes had seen, they went down
into
the city and purchased garments and clothed themselves. And when
they would have passed on, the merchant bit the coins which
they had
given him, with his teeth, and turned them about and looked curiously
upon them, and cast them upon his counter, and listened if they
rang;
and then he said, These be bogus. And they said, Depart thou
to
Hades, and went their way. When they were come to their houses,
they
recognized them, albeit they seemed old and mean; and they rejoiced,
and were glad. They ran to the doors, and knocked, and strangers
opened, and looked inquringly upon them. And they said, with
great
excitement, while their hearts beat high, and the color in their
faces
came and went, Where is my father? Where is my mother? Where
are
Dionysius and
Serapion, and Pericles, and Decius? And the strangers that opened
said, We know not these. The Seven said, How, you know them
not? How long have ye dwelt here, and whither are they gone that
dwelt here before ye? And the strangers said, Ye play upon us
with
a jest, young men; we and our fathers have sojourned under these
roofs these six generations; the names ye utter rot upon the
tombs,
and they that bore them have run their brief race, have laughed
and
sung, have borne the sorrows and the weariness that were allotted
them, and are at rest; for nine-score years the summers have
come
and gone, and the autumn leaves have fallen, since the roses
faded
out of their cheeks and they laid them to sleep with the dead.
Then the seven young men turned them away from their homes,
and the strangers shut the doors upon them. The wanderers marveled
greatly, and looked into the faces of all they met, as hoping
to find
one that they knew; but all were strange, and passed them by
and
spake no friendly word. They were sore distressed and sad. Presently
they spake unto a citizen and said, Who is King in Ephesus?
And the
citizen answered and said, Whence come ye that ye know not that
great Laertius reigns in Ephesus? They looked one at the other,
greatly perplexed, and presently asked again, Where, then, is
the
good King Maximilianus? The citizen moved him apart, as one
who
is afraid, and said, Verily these men be mad, and dream dreams,
else
would they know that the King whereof they speak is dead above
two hundred years agone.
Then the scales fell from the eyes of the Seven, and one said,
Alas, that we drank of the curious liquors. They have made us
weary,
and in dreamless sleep these two long centuries have we lain.
Our
homes are desolate, our friends are dead. Behold, the jig is
up--let us
die. And that same day went they forth and laid them down and
died.
And in that self-same day, likewise, the Seven-up did cease in
Ephesus, for that the Seven that were up were down again, and
departed and dead withal. And the names that be upon their tombs,
even unto this time, are Johannes Smithianus, Trumps, Gift, High,
and
Low, Jack, and The Game. And with the sleepers lie also the bottles
wherin
were once the curious liquors: and upon them
is writ, in ancient letters, such
words as
these-- Dames of heathen gods of olden time, perchance: Rumpunch,
Jinsling, Egnog.
Such is the story
of the Seven Sleepers, (with slight variations,) and I know it
is true, because I have seen the cave myself.
Really, so firm a faith had the ancients
this legend, that as late as eight or nine hundred years ago,
learned travelers
held it in superstitious fear. Two of them record that they
ventured into it,
but ran quickly out again, not daring to tarry lest they should
fall asleep and
outlive their great grand-children a century or so. Even at
this day the
ignorant denizens of the neighboring country prefer not to sleep
in it.
We sailed from Smyrna, in the wildest
spirit of expectancy,
for the chief feature, the grand goal of the expedition, was
near
at hand--we were approaching the Holy Land! Such a
burrowing into the hold for trunks that had lain buried for
weeks, yes for months; such a hurrying to and fro above
decks and below; such a riotous system of packing and
unpacking; such a littering up of the cabins with shirts and
skirts, and indescribable and unclassable odds and ends; such
a making up of bundles, and setting apart of umbrellas, green
spectacles and thick veils; such a critical inspection of saddles
and bridles that had never yet touched horses; such a cleaning
and loading of revolvers and examining of bowie-knives; such
a half-soling of the seats of pantaloons with serviceable
buckskin; then such a poring over ancient maps; such a
reading up of Bibles and Palestine travels; such a marking out
of routes; such exasperating efforts to divide up the company
into little bands of congenial spirits who might make the long
and arduous Journey without quarreling; and morning, noon
and night, such mass-meetings in the cabins, such speech-making,
such sage suggesting, such
worrying and quarreling,
and such a general raising of the very mischief, was never seen
in the ship before!
But it is all over now. We are cut up into
parties of six or
eight, and by this time are scattered far and wide. Ours is the
only one, however, that is venturing on what is called " the
long trip " --that is, out into Syria, by Baalbec to Damascus,
and thence down through the full length of Palestine. It would
be a tedious, and also a too risky journey, at this hot
season of the year, for any but strong, healthy men, accustomed
somewhat to fatigue and rough
life in the open air. The
other parties will take shorter journeys.
For the last two months we have been in
a worry about
one portion of this Holy Land pilgrimage. I refer to
transportation service. We knew very well that Palestine was
a country which did not do a large passenger business, and
every man we came across who knew any thing about it gave
us to understand that not half of our party would be able to
get
dragomen and animals. At Constantinople every body fell to
telegraphing the American Consuls at Alexandria and
Beirout to give notice that we wanted dragomen and
transportation. We were desperate --would take horses,
jackasses, cameleopards, kangaroos --any thing. At Smyrna,
more telegraphing was done, to the same end. Alsa fearing
for the worst, we telegraphed for a large number of seats in
the diligence for Damascus, and horses for the ruins of
Baalbec.
As might have been expected, a notion
got abroad in Syria
and Egypt that the whole population of the Province of
America (the Turks consider us a trifling little province in
some unvisited corner of the world,) were coming to the Holy
Land-- and so, when we got to Beirout yesterday, we found
the place full of dragomen and their outfits. We had all
intended to go by diligence to Damascus, and switch off to
Baalbec as we went along --because we expected to rejoin the
ship, go to Monnt Carmel, and take to the woods from there.
However, when our own private party of eight found that it
was possible, and proper enough, to make the "long trip," we
adopted that programme. We have never been much trouble
to a Consul before, but we have been a fearful nuisance to our
Consul at Beirout. I mention this because I can not help
admiring his patience, his industry, and his accommodating
spirit. I mention it also, because I think some of our ship's
company did not give him as full credit for his excellent
services as he deserved.
Well, out of our eight, three were selected
to attend to all
business connected with the expedition. The rest of us had
nothing to do but look at the beautiful city of Beirout, with
its bright,
new houses nestled among a wilderness of green shrubbery spread
abroad over an upland that sloped gently down to the sea; and
also
at the mountains of Lebanon that environ it; and likewise to
bathe
in the transparent blue water that rolled its billows about the
ship
(we did not know there were sharks there.) We had also to range
up
and down through the town and look at the costumes. These are
picturesque and fanciful, but not so varied as at Constantinople
and
Smyrna; the women of Beirout add an agony --in the two former
cities the sex wear a thin veil which one can see through (and
they
often expose their ancles,) but at Beirout they cover their entire
faces with dark-colored or black veils, so that they look like
mummies, and then expose their breasts to the public. A young
gentleman (I believe he was a Greek,) volunteered to show us
around the city, and said it would afford him great pleasure,
because
he was studying English and wanted practice in that language.
When we had finished the rounds, however, he called for
remuneration --said he hoped the gentlemen would give him a trifle
in the way of a few piastres (equivalent to a few five cent pieces.)
We did so. The Consu1 was surprised when he heard it, and said
he
knew the young fellow's family very well, and that they were
an old
and highly respectable f'amily and worth a hundred and fifty
thousand dollars! Some people, so situated, would have been
ashamed of the berth he had with us and his manner of crawling
into
it.
At the appointed time our businees committee reported, and
said
all things were in readdress-- that we were to start to-day,
with
horses, pack animals, and tents, and go to Baalbec, Damascus,
the
Sea of Tiberias, and thence southward by the way of the scene
of
Jacob's Dream and other notable Bible localities to
Jerusalem --from thence probably to the Dead Sea, but possibly
not-- and then strike for the ocean and rejoin the ship three
or four
weeks hence at Joppa; terms, five dollars a day apiece, in gold,
and
every thing to be furnished by the dragoman. They said we would
lie as well as at a hotel. I had read something like that before,
and
did not shame my judgment
by believing a word of it. I said nothing, however, but packed
up a blanket and a shawl to sleep in, pipes and tobacco, two
or
three woollen shirts, a portfolio, a guide-book, and a Bible.
I also
took along a towel and a cake of soap, to inspire respect in
the
Arabs, who would take me for a king in disguise.
We were to select our horses at 3 P.M. At that
hour Abraham, the dragoman, marshaled them before us. With
all solemnity I set it down here, that those horses were the
hardest lot I ever did come across, and their accoutrements
were
in exquisite keeping with
their style.
One brute had an eye out; another had his tail sawed off close,
like a rabbit, and was proud of it; another had a bony ridge
running from his neck to his tail, like one of those ruined
aqueducts one sees about Rome, and had a neck on him like
a bowsprit; they all limped, and had sore backs, and likewise
raw places and old scales scattered about their persons like
brass nails in a hair trunk; their gaits were marvelous to
contemplate, and replete with variety under way the procession
looked like a fleet in a storm. It was fearful. Blucher
shook his head and said:
"That dragon is going to get himself into trouble fetching
these old crates out of the hospital the way they are, unless
he
has got a permit."
I said nothing. The display was exactly according
to the
guide-book, and were we not traveling by the guide-book? I
selected a certain horse because I thought I saw him shy, and
I thought that a horse that had spirit enough to shy was not
to
be despised.
At 6 o'clock P.M., we came to a halt here
on the breezy
summit of a shapely mountain overlooking the sea, and
the handsome valley where dwelt some of those
enterprising Phoenicians of ancient times we read so much
about; all around us are what were once the dominions of
Hiram, King of Tyre, who furnished timber from the cedars of
these Lebanon hills to build portions of Eing Solomon's
Temple with.
Shortly after six, our pack train arrived. I
had not seen it
before, and a good right I had to be astonished. We had
nineteen serving men and twenty-six pack mules! It was a
perfect caravan. It looked like one, too, as it wound among the
rocks. I wondered what in the very mischief we wanted with
such a vast turn-out as that, for eight men. I wondered awhile,
but soon I began to long for a tin plate, and some bacon and
beans. I had camped out many and many a time before, and
knew just what was coming. I went off, without waiting for
serving men, and unsaddled my horse, and washed such
portions of his ribs and his spine as projected through his
hide, and when I came back, behold five stately circus tents
were up --tents that were brilliant, within, with blue, and
gold, and crimson, and all manner of splendid adornment! I
was speechless. Then they brought eight little iron bedsteads,
and set them up in the tents; they put a soft mattress and
pillows and good blankets and two snow-white sheets on each
bed. Next, they rigged a table about the centre-pole, and on
it
placed pewter pitchers, basins, soap, and the whitest of
towels-- one set for each man; they pointed to pockets in the
tent, and said we could put our small trifles in them for
convenience, and if we needed pins or such things, they were
sticking every
where. Then came the finishing touch --they spread carpets on
the floor! I simply said, " If you call this camping out, all
right--but it isn't the style I am used to; my little baggage
that I
brought along is at a discount."
It grew dark, and they put candles on
the tables --candles
set in bright, new, brazen candlesticks. And soon the bell--
a
genuine, simon-pure bell-- rang, and we were invited to " the
saloon." I had thought before that we had a tent or so too many,
but now here was one, at least, provided for; it was to be used
for
nothing but an eating-saloon. Like the others, it was high enough
for a family of giraffes to live in, and was very handsome and
clean and bright-colored within. It was a gem of a place. A table
for eight, and eight canvas chairs; a table-cloth and napkins
whose
whiteness and whose fineness laughed to scorn the things we were
used to in the great excursion steamer; knives and forks, soup-plates,
dinner-plates --every thing,
in the handsomest kind of
style. It was wonderful! And they call this camping out.
Those
stately fellows in baggy trowsers and turbaned fezzes brought
in
a dinner which consisted of roast mutton, roast chicken, roast
goose,
potatoes, bread, tea, pudding, apples, and delicious grapes;
the
viands were better cooked than any we had eaten for weeks,
and the table made a finer appearance, with its large German
silver candlesticks and other finery, than any table we had sat
down to for a good while, and yet that polite dragoman,
Abraham, came bowing in and apologizing for the whole
affair, on account of the unavoidable confusion of getting
under way for a very long trip, and promising to do a great
deal better in future!
It is midnight, now, and we break camp at
six in the morning.
They call this camping out. At this rate it is
a glorious
privilege to be a pilgrim to the Holy Land.
We are camped near Temnin-el-Foka--a name which the
boys have
simplified a good deal, for the sake of convenience in spelling.
They call
it Jacksonville. It sounds a little strangely, here in the Valley
of
Lebanon, but it has the merit of being easier to remember than
the Arabic
name.
"The night shall be filled with music, I slept very soundly last night, yet when the dragoman's bell
rang at
half-past five this morning and the cry went abroad of "Ten minutes
to
dress for breakfast!" I heard both. It surprised me, because
I have not
heard the breakfast gong in the ship for a month, and whenever
we have had
occasion to fire a salute at daylight, I have only found it out
in the
course of conversation afterward. However, camping out, even
though it be
in a gorgeous tent, makes one fresh and lively in the morning--especially
if the air you are breathing is the cool, fresh air of the mountains.
I was dressed within the ten minutes, and came out. The
saloon
tent had been stripped of its sides, and had nothing left but
its
roof; so when we sat down to table we could look out over a noble
panorama of mountain, sea and hazy valley. And sitting thus,
the sun
rose slowly up and suffused the picture with a world of rich
coloring.
Hot mutton chops, fried chicken, omelettes, fried potatoes
and
coffee--all excellent. This was the bill of fare. It was sauced
with a
savage appetite purchased by hard riding the day before, and
refreshing
sleep in a pure atmosphere. As I called for a second cup of coffee,
I
glanced over my shoulder, and behold our white village was gone--the
splendid tents had vanished like magic! It was wonderful how
quickly those
Arabs had "folded their tents;" and it was wonderful, also, how
quickly
they had gathered the thousand odds and ends of the camp together
and
disappeared with them.
By half-past six we were under way, and all the Syrian
world seemed
to be under way also. The road was filled with mule trains and
long
processions of camels. This reminds me that we have been trying
for some
time to think what a camel looks like, and now we have made it
out. When
he is down on all his knees, flat on his breast to receive his
load, he
looks something like a goose swimming; and when he is upright
he looks
like an ostrich with an extra set of legs. Camels are not beautiful,
and
their long under lip gives them an exceedingly "gallus"* expression.
They
have immense, flat, forked cushions of feet, that make a track
in the dust
like a pie with a slice cut out of it. They are not particular
about their
diet. They would eat a tombstone if they could bite it. A thistle
grows
about here which has needles on it that would pierce through
leather, I
think; if one touches you, you can find relief in nothing but
profanity.
The camels eat these. They show by their actions that they enjoy
them. I
suppose it would be a real treat to a camel to have a keg of
nails for
supper.
While I am speaking of animals, I will mention that I
have a horse
now by the name of "Jericho." He is a mare. I have seen remarkable
horses
before, but none so remarkable as this. I wanted a horse that
could shy,
and this one fills the bill. I
had an idea that shying indicated spirit. If I was correct, I
have got the
most spirited horse on earth. He shies at every thing he comes
across,
with the utmost impartiality. He appears to have a mortal dread
of
telegraph poles, especially; and it is fortunate that these are
on both
sides of the road, because as it is now, I never fall off twice
in
succession on the same side. If I fell on the same side always,
it would
get to be monotonous after a while. This creature has scared
at every
thing he has seen to-day, except a haystack. He walked up to
that with an
intrepidity and a recklessness that were astonishing. And it
would fill
any one with admiration to see how he preserves his self-possession
in the
presence of a barley sack. This dare-devil bravery will be the
death of
this horse some day.
He is not particularly fast, but I think he will get me
through the
Holy Land. He has only one fault. His tail has been chopped off
or else he
has sat down on it too hard, some time or other, and he has to
fight the
flies with his heels. This is all very well, but when he tries
to kick a
fly off the top of his head with his hind foot, it is too much
variety. He
is going to get himself into trouble that way some day. He reaches
around
and bites my legs too. I do not care particularly about that,
only I do
not like to see a horse too sociable.
I think the owner of this prize had a wrong opinion about
him. He
had an idea that he was one of those fiery, untamed steeds, but
he is not
of that character. I know the Arab had
this idea, because when he brought the horse out for inspection
in Beirout,
he kept jerking at the bridle and shouting in Arabic, "Ho! will
you? Do
you want to run away, you ferocious beast, and break your neck?"
when all
the time the horse was not doing anything in the world, and only
looked
like he wanted to lean up against something and think. Whenever
he is not
shying at things, or reaching after a fly, he wants to do that
yet. How it
would surprise his owner to know this.
We have been in a historical section of country all day.
At noon we
camped three hours and took luncheon at Mekseh, near the junction
of the
Lebanon Mountains and the Jebel el Kuneiyiseh, and looked down
into the
immense, level, garden-like Valley of Lebanon. To-night we are
camping
near the same valley, and have a very wide sweep of it in view.
We can see
the long, whale-backed ridge of Mount Hermon projecting above
the eastern
hills. The "dews of Hermon" are falling upon us now, and the
tents are
almost soaked with them.
Over the way from us, and higher up the valley, we can
discern,
through the glasses, the faint outlines of the wonderful ruins
of Baalbec,
the supposed Baal-Gad of Scripture. Joshua, and another person,
were the
two spies who were sent into this land of Canaan by the children
of Israel
to report upon its character--I mean they were the spies who
reported
favorably. They took back with them some specimens of the grapes
of
this country, and in the children's picture-books they are always
represented as bearing one monstrous bunch swung to a pole between
them, a
respectable load for a pack-train. The Sunday-school books exaggerated
it
a little. The grapes are most excellent to this day, but the
bunches are
not as large as those in the pictures. I was surprised and hurt
when I saw
them, because those colossal bunches of grapes were one of my
most
cherished juvenile traditions.
Joshua reported favorably, and the children of Israel
journeyed on,
with Moses at the head of the general government, and Joshua
in command of
the army of six hundred thousand fighting men. Of women and children
and
civilians there was
a countless swarm. Of all that mighty host, none but the two
faithful
spies ever lived to set their feet in the Promised Land. They
and their
descendants wandered forty years in the desert, and then Moses,
the gifted
warrior, poet, statesman and philosopher, went up into Pisgah
and met his
mysterious fate. Where he was buried no man knows--for
Then Joshua began his terrible raid, and from Jericho
clear to this
Baal-Gad, he swept the land like the Genius of Destruction. He
slaughtered
the people, laid waste their soil, and razed their cities to
the ground.
He wasted thirty-one kings also. One may call it that, though
really it
can hardly be called wasting them, because there were always
plenty of
kings in those days, and to spare. At any rate, he destroyed
thirty-one
kings, and divided up their realms among his Israelites. He divided
up
this valley stretched out here before us, and so it was once
Jewish
territory. The Jews have long since disappeared from it, however.
Back yonder, an hour's journey from here, we passed through
an Arab
village of stone dry-goods boxes (they look like that,) where
Noah's tomb
lies under lock and key. [Noah built the ark.] Over these old
hills and
valleys the ark that contained all that was left of a vanished
world once
floated.
I make no apology for detailing the above information.
It will be
news to some of my readers, at any rate.
Noah's tomb is built of stone, and is covered with a long
stone
building. Bucksheesh let us in. The building had to be long,
because the
grave of the honored old navigator is two hundred and ten feet
long itself!
It is only about four feet high, though. He must have cast a
shadow like
a lightning-rod. The proof that this is the genuine spot where
Noah was
buried can only be doubted by uncommonly incredulous people.
The evidence
is pretty straight. Shem, the son of Noah, was present at the
burial, and
showed the place to his descendants, who transmitted the knowledge
to
their descendants, and the lineal descendants of these introduced
themselves to us to-day. It was pleasant to make the acquaintance
of
members of so respectable a family. It was a thing to be proud
of. It was
the next thing to being acquainted with Noah himself.
Noah's memorable voyage will always possess a living interest
for
me, henceforward.
If ever an oppressed race existed, it is this one we see
fettered
around us under the inhuman tyranny of the Ottoman Empire. I
wish Europe
would let Russia annihilate Turkey a little--not much, but enough
to make
it difficult to find the place again without a divining-rod or
a
diving-bell. The Syrians are very poor, and yet they are ground
down by a
system of taxation that would drive any other nation frantic.
Last year
their taxes were heavy enough, in all conscience--but this year
they have
been increased by the addition of taxes that were forgiven them
in times
of famine in former years. On top of this the Government has
levied a tax
of one-tenth of the whole proceeds of the land. This is only
half the
story. The Pacha of a Pachalic does not trouble himself with
appointing
tax-collectors. He figures up what all these taxes ought to
amount to in a certain district. Then he farms the collection
out. He
calls the rich men together, the highest bidder gets the speculation,
pays
the Pacha on the spot, and then sells out to smaller fry, who
sell in turn
to a piratical horde of still smaller fry. These latter compel
the peasant
to bring his little trifle of grain to the village, at his own
cost. It
must be weighed, the various taxes set apart, and the remainder
returned
to the producer. But the collector delays this duty day after
day, while
the producer's family are perishing for bread; at last the poor
wretch,
who can not but understand the game, says, "Take a quarter--take
half--take two-thirds if you will, and let me go!" It is a most
outrageous state of things.
These people are naturally good-hearted and intelligent,
and with
education and liberty, would be a happy and contented race. They
often
appeal to the stranger to know if the great world will not some
day come
to their relief and save them. The Sultan has been lavishing
money like
water in England and Paris, but his subjects are suffering for
it now.
This fashion of camping out bewilders me. We have bootjacks
and a
bath-tub, now, and yet all the mysteries the pack-mules carry
are not
revealed. What next?
We had a tedious ride of about five hours, in the sun, across
the
Valley of Lebanon. It proved to be not quite so much of a garden
as it
had seemed from the hill-sides. It was a desert, weed-grown waste,
littered thickly with stones the size of a man's fist. Here
and there
the natives had scratched the ground and reared a sickly crop
of grain,
but for the most part the valley was given up to a handful of
shepherds,
whose flocks were doing what they honestly could to get a living,
but
the chances were against them. We saw rude piles of stones standing
near
the roadside, at intervals, and recognized the custom of marking
boundaries which obtained in Jacob's time. There were no walls,
no
fences, no hedges--nothing to secure a man's possessions but
these
random heaps of stones. The Israelites held them sacred in the
old
patriarchal times, and these other Arabs, their lineal descendants,
do
so likewise. An American, of ordinary intelligence, would soon
widely
extend his property, at an outlay of mere manual labor, performed
at
night, under so loose a system of fencing as this.
The plows these people use are simply a sharpened stick,
such as
Abraham plowed with, and they still winnow their wheat as he
did--they
pile it on the house-top, and then toss it by shovel-fulls into
the air
until the wind has
blown all the chaff away.
They never invent any thing, never learn any thing.
We had a fine race, of a mile, with an Arab perched on
a camel.
Some of the horses were fast, and made very good time, but the
camel
scampered by them without any very great effort. The yelling
and shouting,
and whipping and galloping, of all parties interested, made it
an
exhilarating, exciting, and particularly boisterous race.
At eleven o'clock, our eyes fell upon the walls and columns
of
Baalbec, a noble ruin whose history is a sealed book. It has
stood there
for thousands of years, the wonder and admiration of travelers;
but who
built it, or when it was built, are questions that may never
be answered.
One thing is very sure, though. Such grandeur of design, and
such grace of
execution, as one sees in the temples of Baalbec, have not
been equaled or even approached in any work of men's hands that
has been
built within twenty centuries past.
The great Temple of the Sun, the Temple of Jupiter, and
several
smaller temples, are clustered together in the midst of one of
these
miserable Syrian villages, and look strangely enough in such
plebeian
company. These temples are built upon massive substructions
that might
support a world, almost; the materials used are blocks of stone
as large
as an omnibus--very few, if any of them, are smaller than a carpenter's
tool chest--and these substructions are traversed by tunnels
of masonry
through which a train of cars might pass. With such foundations
as these,
it is little wonder that Baalbec has lasted so long. The Temple
of the Sun
is nearly three hundred feet long and one hundred and sixty feet
wide. It
had fifty-four columns around it, but only six are standing now--the
others lie broken at its base, a confused and picturesque heap.
The six
columns are their bases, Corinthian capitals and entablature--and
six
more shapely columns do not exist. The columns and the entablature
together are ninety feet high--a prodigious altitude for shafts
of stone
to reach, truly--and yet one only thinks of their beauty and
symmetry when
looking at them; the pillars
look slender and delicate, the entablature, with its elaborate
sculpture,
looks like rich stucco-work. But when you have gazed aloft till
your
eyes are weary, you glance at the great fragments of pillars
among
which you are standing, and find that they are eight feet through;
and
with them lie beautiful capitals apparently as large as a small
cottage;
and also single slabs of stone, superbly sculptured, that are
four or five
feet thick, and would completely cover the floor of any ordinary
parlor.
You wonder where these monstrous things came from, and it takes
some little time to satisfy yourself that the airy and graceful
fabric that
towers above your head is made up of their mates. It seems too
preposterous.
The Temple of Jupiter is a smaller ruin than the one I
have been
speaking of, and yet is immense. It is in a tolerable state of
preservation. One row of nine columns stands almost uninjured.
They
are sixty-five feet high and support a sort of porch or roof,
which
connects them with the roof of the building. This porch-roof
is
composed of tremendous slabs of stone, which are so finely sculptured
on the under side that the work looks like a fresco from below.
One or
two of these slabs had fallen, and again I wondered if the gigantic
masses of carved stone that lay about me were no larger than
those
above my head. Within the temple, the ornamentation was elaborate
and colossal. What a wonder of architectural beauty and grandeur
this
edifice must have been when it was new! And what a noble picture
it
and its statelier companion, with the chaos of mighty fragments
scattered about them, yet makes in the moonlight!
I can not conceive how those immense blocks of stone were
ever
hauled from the quarries, or how they were ever raised to the
dizzy
heights they occupy in the temples. And yet these sculptured
blocks are
trifles in size compared with the rough-hewn blocks that form
the wide
verandah or platform which surrounds the Great Temple. One stretch
of that platform, two hundred feet long, is composed of blocks
of stone
as large, and some of them larger, than a street-car. They surmount
a
wall about ten or twelve feet high. I thought those were
large rocks, but they sank into insignificance
compared with those which formed another section of the platform.
These
were three in number, and I thought that each of them was about
as long as
three street cars placed end to end, though of course they are
a third
wider and a third higher than a street car. Perhaps two railway
freight
cars of the largest pattern, placed end to end, might better
represent
their size. In combined length these three stones stretch nearly
two
hundred feet; they are thirteen feet square; two of them are
sixty-four
feet long each, and the third is sixty-nine. They are built into
the
massive wall some twenty feet above the ground. They are there,
but how
they got there is the question. I have seen the hull of a steamboat
that
was smaller than one of those stones. All these great walls are
as exact
and shapely as the flimsy things we build of bricks in these
days. A race
of gods or of giants must have inhabited Baalbec many a century
ago. Men like the men of our day could hardly rear such temples
as
these.
We went to the quarry from whence the stones of Baalbec
were
taken. It was about a quarter of a mile off, and down hill.
In a great pit
lay the mate of the largest stone in the ruins. It lay there
just as the
giants of that old forgotten time had left it when they were
called
hence--just as they had left it, to remain for thousands of
years, an
eloquent rebuke unto such as are prone to think slightingly
of the men
who lived before them. This enormous block lies there, squared
and
ready for the builders' hands--a solid mass fourteen feet by
seventeen, and but a few inches less than seventy feet long!
Two
buggies could be driven abreast of each other, on its sur-
face, from one end of it to the other, and leave room enough
for a man
or two to walk on either side.
One might swear that all the John Smiths and George Wilkinsons,
and all the other pitiful nobodies between Kingdom Come and
Baalbec
would inscribe their poor little names upon the walls of Baalbec's
magnificent ruins, and would add the town, the county and the
State
they came from--and swearing thus, be infallibly correct. It
is a pity
some great ruin does not fall in and flatten out some of these
reptiles,
and scare their kind out of ever giving their names to fame
upon any
walls or monuments again, forever.
Properly, with the sorry relics we bestrode, it was a
three days'
journey to Damascus. It was necessary that we should do it in
less than
two. It was necessary because our three pilgrims would not travel
on the
Sabbath day. We were all perfectly willing to keep the Sabbath
day, but
there are times when to keep the letter of a sacred law
whose
spirit is righteous, becomes a sin, and this was a case in point.
We
pleaded for the tired, ill-treated horses, and tried to show
that their
faithful service deserved kindness in return, and their hard
lot
compassion. But when did ever self-righteousness know the sentiment
of
pity? What were a few long hours added to the hardships of some
over-taxed
brutes when weighed against the peril of those human souls? It
was not the
most promising party to travel with and hope to gain a higher
veneration
for religion through the example of its devotees. We said the
Saviour who
pitied dumb beasts and taught that the ox must be rescued from
the mire
even on the Sabbath day, would not have counseled a forced march
like
this. We said the "long trip" was exhausting and therefore dangerous
in
the blistering heats of summer, even when the ordinary days'
stages were
traversed, and if we persisted in this hard march, some of us
might be
stricken down with the fevers of the country in consequence of
it. Nothing
could move the pilgrims. They must press on. Men might
die, horses
might die, but they must enter upon holy soil next week, with
no
Sabbath-breaking stain upon them. Thus they were willing to commit
a sin
against the spirit of religious law, in order
that they might preserve the letter of it. It was not worth while
to
tell them "the letter kills." I am talking now about personal
friends;
men whom I like; men who are good citizens; who are honorable,
upright,
conscientious; but whose idea of the Saviour's religion seems
to me
distorted. They lecture our shortcomings unsparingly, and every
night
they call us together and read to us chapters from the Testament
that
are full of gentleness, of charity, and of tender mercy; and
then all
the next day they stick to their saddles clear up to the summits
of
these rugged mountains, and clear down again. Apply the Testament's
gentleness, and charity, and tender mercy to a toiling, worn
and weary
horse?--Nonsense--these are for God's human creatures, not His
dumb
ones. What the pilgrims choose to do, respect for their almost
sacred
character demands that I should allow to pass--but I would so
like to
catch any other member of the party riding his horse up one of
these
exhausting hills once!
We have given the pilgrims a good many examples that might
benefit them, but it is virtue thrown away. They have
never heard a cross word out of our lips toward each other--but
they have quarreled once or twice. We love to hear them
at it,
after they have been lecturing us. The very first thing they
did, coming
ashore at Beirout, was to quarrel in the boat. I have said I
like them,
and I do like them--but every time they read me a scorcher of
a lecture I
mean to talk back in print.
Not content with doubling the legitimate stages, they
switched
off the main road and went away out of the way to visit an absurd
fountain called Figia, because Baalam's ass had drank there once.
So we
journeyed on, through the terrible hills and deserts and the
roasting
sun, and then far into the night, seeking the honored pool of
Baalam's
ass, the patron saint of all pilgrims like us. I find no entry
but this
in my note-book:
Twelve or thirteen hours in the saddle, even in a Christian
land
and a Christian climate, and on a good horse, is a tiresome journey;
but in an oven like Syria, in a ragged spoon of a saddle that
slips
fore-and-aft, and "thort-ships," and every way, and on a horse
that is
tired and lame, and yet must be whipped and spurred with hardly
a
moment's cessation all day long, till the blood comes from his
side, and
your conscience hurts you every time you strike if you are half
a
man,--it is a journey to be remembered in bitterness of spirit
and
execrated with emphasis for a liberal division of a man's lifetime.
The next day was an outrage upon men and horses both. It was
another thirteen-hour stretch (including an hour's "nooning.")
It was over the barrenest chalk-hills and through the baldest
canons that even Syria can show. The heat quivered in the air
every where. In the canons we almost smothered in the baking
atmosphere. On high ground, the reflection from the chalk-hills
was blinding. It was cruel to urge the crippled horses, but
it had to be done in order to make Damascus Saturday night.
We saw ancient tombs and temples of fanciful architecture carved
out of the solid rock high up in the face of precipices above
our heads, but we had neither time nor strength to climb up
there and examine them. The terse language of my note-book will
answer for the rest of this day's experiences:
As the glare of day mellowed into twilight, we looked
down upon a picture which is celebrated all over the world.
I think I have read about four hundred times that when Mahomet
was a simple camel-driver he reached this point and looked down
upon Damascus for the first time, and then made a certain renowned
remark. He said man could enter only one paradise; he preferred
to go to the one above. So he sat down there and feasted his
eyes upon the earthly paradise of Damascus, and then went away
without entering its gates. They have erected a tower on the
hill to mark the spot where he stood.
Damascus is beautiful from the mountain. It is
beautiful even to foreigners accustomed to luxuriant vegetation,
and I can easily understand how unspeakably beautiful it must
be to eyes that are only used to the God-forsaken barrenness
and desolation of Syria. I should think a Syrian would go wild
with ecstacy when such a picture bursts upon him for the first
time.
From his high perch, one sees before him and below him,
a wall of dreary mountains, shorn of vegetation, glaring fiercely
in the sun; it fences in a level desert of yellow sand, smooth
as velvet and threaded far away with fine lines that stand for
roads, and dotted with creeping mites we know are camel-trains
and journeying men; right in the midst of the desert is spread
a billowy expanse of green foliage; and nestling in its heart
sits the great white city, like an island of pearls and opals
gleaming out of a sea of emeralds. This is the picture you see
spread far below you, with distance to soften it, the sun to
glorify it, strong contrasts to heighten the effects, and over
it and about it a drowsing air of repose to spiritualize it
and make it seem rather a beautiful estray from the mysterious
worlds we visit in dreams than a substantial tenant of our coarse,
dull globe. And when you think of the leagues of blighted, blasted,
sandy, rocky, sun-burnt, ugly, dreary, infamous country you
have ridden over to get here, you think it is the most beautiful,
beautiful picture that ever human eyes rested upon in all the
broad universe! If I were to go to Damascus again, I would camp
on Mahomet's hill about a week, and then go away. There is no
need to go inside the walls. The Prophet was wise without knowing
it when he decided not to go down into the paradise of Damascus.
There is an honored old tradition that the immense garden
which Damascus stands in was the Garden of Eden, and modern
writers have gathered up many chapters of evidence tending to
show that it really was the Garden of Eden, and that the rivers
Pharpar and Abana are the "two rivers" that watered Adam's Paradise.
It may be so, but it is not paradise now, and one would be as
happy outside of it as he would be likely to be within. It is
so crooked and cramped and dirty that one can not realize that
he is in the splendid city he saw from the hill-top. The gardens
are hidden by high mud-walls, and the paradise is become a very
sink of pollution and uncomeliness. Damascus has plenty of clear,
pure water in it, though, and this is enough, of itself, to
make an Arab think it beautiful and blessed. Water is scarce
in blistered Syria. We run railways by our large cities in America;
in Syria they curve the roads so as to make them run by the
meagre little
puddles they call "fountains," and which are not found oftener
on a journey than every four hours. But the "rivers" of Pharpar
and Abana of Scripture (mere creeks,) run through Damascus,
and so every house and every garden have their sparkling fountains
and rivulets of water. With her forest of foliage and her abundance
of water, Damascus must be a wonder of wonders to the Bedouin
from the deserts. Damascus is simply an oasis--that is what
it is. For four thousand years its waters have not gone dry
or its fertility failed. Now we can understand why the city
has existed so long. It could not die. So long as its waters
remain to it away out there in the midst of that howling desert,
so long will Damascus live to bless the sight of the tired and
thirsty wayfarer.
Damascus dates back anterior to the days of Abraham, and
is the oldest city in the world. It was founded by Uz, the grandson
of Noah. "The early history of Damascus is shrouded in the mists
of a hoary antiquity." Leave the matters written of in the first
eleven chapters of the Old Testament out, and no recorded event
has occurred in the world but Damascus was in existence to receive
the news of it. Go back as far as you will into the vague past,
there was always a Damascus. In the writings of every century
for more than four thousand years, its name has been mentioned
and its praises sung. To Damascus, years are only moments, decades
are only flitting trifles of time. She measures time, not by
days and months and years, but by the empires she has seen rise,
and prosper and crumble to ruin. She is a type of immortality.
She saw the foundations of Baalbec, and Thebes, and Ephesus
laid; she saw these villages grow into mighty cities, and amaze
the world with their grandeur--and she has lived to see them
desolate, deserted, and given over to the owls and the bats.
She saw the Israelitish empire exalted, and she saw it annihilated.
She saw Greece rise, and flourish
two thousand years, and die. In her old age she saw Rome built;
she saw it overshadow the world with its power; she saw it perish.
The few hundreds of years of Genoese and Venetian might and
splendor were, to grave old Damascus, only a trifling scintillation
hardly worth remembering. Damascus has seen all that has ever
occurred on earth, and still she lives. She has looked upon
the dry bones of a thousand empires, and will see the tombs
of a thousand more before she dies. Though another claims the
name, old Damascus is by right the Eternal City.
We reached the city gates just at sundown. They do say
that one can get into any walled city of Syria, after night,
for bucksheesh, except Damascus. But Damascus, with its four
thousand years of respectability in the world, has many old
fogy notions. There are no street lamps there, and the law compels
all who go abroad at night to carry lanterns, just as was the
case in old days, when heroes and heroines of the Arabian Nights
walked the streets of Damascus, or flew away toward Bagdad on
enchanted carpets.
It was fairly dark a few minutes after we got within the
wall, and we rode long distances through wonderfully crooked
streets, eight to ten feet wide, and shut in on either aide
by the high mud-walls of the gardens. At last we got to where
lanterns could be seen flitting about here and there, and knew
we were in the midst of the curious old city. In a little narrow
street, crowded with our pack-mules and with a swarm of uncouth
Arabs, we alighted, and through a kind of a hole in the wall
entered the hotel. We stood in a great flagged court, with flowers
and citron trees about us, and a huge tank in the centre that
was receiving the waters of many pipes. We crossed the court
and entered the rooms prepared to receive four of us. In a large
marble-paved recess between the two rooms was a tank of clear,
cool water, which was kept running over all the time by the
streams that were pouring into it from half a dozen pipes. Nothing,
in this scorching, desolate land could look so refreshing as
this pure water flashing in the lamp-light; nothing could look
so beautiful, nothing could sound so deli-
cious as this mimic rain to ears long unaccustomed to sounds
of such a nature. Our rooms were large, comfortably furnished,
and even had their floors clothed with soft, cheerful-tinted
carpets. It was a pleasant thing to see a carpet again, for
if there is any thing drearier than the tomb-like, stone-paved
parlors and bed-rooms of Europe and Asia, I do not know what
it is. They make one think of the grave all the time. A very
broad, gaily caparisoned divan, some twelve or fourteen feet
long, extended across one side of each room, and opposite were
single beds with spring mattresses. There were great looking-glasses
and marble-top tables. All this luxury was as grateful to systems
and senses worn out with an exhausting day's travel, as it was
unexpected--for one can not tell what to expect in a Turkish
city of even a quarter of a million inhabitants.
I do not know, but I think they used that tank between
the rooms to draw drinking water from; that did not occur to
me, however, until I had dipped my baking head far down into
its cool depths. I thought of it then, and superb as the bath
was, I was sorry I had taken it, and was about to go and explain
to the landlord. But a finely curled and scented poodle dog
frisked up and nipped the calf of my leg just then, and before
I had time to think, I had soused him to the bottom of the tank,
and when I saw a servant coming with a pitcher I went off and
left the pup trying to climb out and not succeeding very well.
Satisfied revenge was all I needed to make me perfectly happy,
and when I walked in to supper that first night in Damascus
I was in that condition. We lay on those divans a long time,
after supper, smoking narghilies and long-stemmed chibouks,
and talking about the dreadful ride of the day, and I knew then
what I had sometimes known before--that it is worth while to
get tired out, because one so enjoys resting afterward.
In the morning we sent for donkeys. It is worthy of note
that we had to send for these things. I said Damascus
was an old fossil, and she is. Any where else we would have
been assailed by a clamorous army of donkey-drivers, guides,
peddlers and beggars--but in Damascus they so hate the very sight
of a foreign Christian that they want no intercourse whatever
with him; only a year or two ago, his person was not always
safe in Damascus streets. It is the most fanatical Mohammedan
purgatory out of Arabia. Where you see one green turban of a
Hadji elsewhere (the honored sign that my lord has made the
pilgrimage to Mecca,) I think you will see a dozen in Damascus.
The Damascenes are the ugliest, wickedest looking villains we
have seen. All the veiled women we had seen yet, nearly, left
their eyes exposed, but numbers of these in Damascus completely
hid the face under a close-drawn black veil that made the woman
look like a mummy. If ever we caught an eye exposed it was quickly
hidden from our contaminating Christian vision; the beggars
actually passed us by without demanding bucksheesh; the merchants
in the bazaars did not hold up their goods and cry out eagerly,
"Hey, John!" or " Look this, Howajji!" On the contrary, they
only scowled at us and said never a word.
The narrow streets swarmed like a hive with men and women
in strange Oriental costumes, and our small donkeys knocked
them right and left as we plowed through them, urged on by the
merciless donkey-boys. These persecutors run after the animals,
shouting and goading them for hours together; they keep the
donkey in a gallop always, yet never get tired themselves or
fall behind. The donkeys fell down and spilt us over their heads
occasionally, but there was nothing for it but to mount and
hurry on again. We were banged against sharp corners, loaded
porters, camels, and citizens generally; and we were so taken
up with looking out for collisions and casualties that we had
no chance to look about us at all. We rode half through the
city and through the famous "street which is called Straight"
without seeing any thing, hardly. Our bones were nearly knocked
out of joint, we were wild with excitement, and our sides ached
with the jolting we had suffered. I do not like riding in the
Damascus street-cars.
We were on our way to the reputed houses of Judas and
Ananias. About eighteen or nineteen hundred years ago, Saul,
a native of Tarsus, was particularly bitter against the new
sect called Christians, and he left Jerusalem and started across
the country on a furious crusade against them. He went forth
"breathing threatenings and slaughter against the disciples
of the Lord."
"And he fell to the earth and heard a voice saying unto
him, 'Saul, Saul, why persecutest thou me?'
"And when he knew that it was Jesus that spoke to him
he trembled, and was astonished, and said, 'Lord, what wilt
thou have me to do?"' He was told to arise and go into the ancient city and
one would tell him what to do. In the meantime his soldiers
stood speechless and awe-stricken, for they heard the mysterious
voice but saw no man. Saul rose up and found that that fierce
supernatural light had destroyed his sight, and he was blind,
so "they led him by the hand and brought him to Damascus." He
was converted.
Paul lay three days, blind, in the house of Judas, and
during that time he neither ate nor drank.
There came a voice to a citizen of Damascus, named Ananias,
saying, "Arise, and go into the street which is called Straight,
and inquire at the house of Judas, for one called Saul, of Tarsus;
for behold, he prayeth."
Ananias did not wish to go at first, for he had heard
of Saul before, and he had his doubts about that style of a
"chosen vessel" to preach the gospel of peace. However, in obedience
to orders, he went into the "street called Straight" (how he
found his way into it, and after he did, how he ever found his
way out of it again, are mysteries only to be accounted for
by the fact that he was acting under Divine inspiration.) He
found Paul and restored him, and ordained him a preacher; and
from this old house we had hunted up in the street which is
miscalled Straight, he had started out on that bold missionary
career which he prosecuted till his death. It was not the house
of the disciple who sold the Master for thirty pieces of silver.
I make this explanation in justice to Judas, who was a far different
sort of man from the person just referred to. A very different
style of man, and lived in a very good house. It is a pity we
do not know more about him.
I have given, in the above paragraphs, some more information
for people who will not read Bible history until they are defrauded
into it by some such method as this. I hope that no friend of
progress and education will obstruct or interfere with my peculiar
mission.
The street called Straight is straighter than a corkscrew,
but not as straight as a rainbow. St. Luke is careful not to
commit himself; he does not say it is the street which is
straight, but the "street which is called Straight."
It is a fine piece of irony; it is the only facetious remark
in the Bible, I believe. We traversed the street called Straight
a good way, and then turned off and called at the reputed house
of Ananias. There is small question that a part of the original
house is there still; it is an old room twelve or fifteen feet
under ground, and its masonry is evidently ancient. If Ananias
did not live there in St. Paul's time, somebody else did, which
is just as well. I took a drink out of Ananias' well, and singularly
enough, the water was just as fresh as if the well had been
dug yesterday.
We went out toward the north end of the city to see the
place where the disciples let Paul down over the Damascus wall
at dead of night--for he preached Christ so fearlessly
in Damascus that the people sought to kill him, just as they
would to-day for the same offense, and he had to escape and
flee to Jerusalem.
Then we called at the tomb of Mahomet's children and at
a tomb which purported to be that of St. George who killed the
dragon, and so on out to the hollow place under a rock where
Paul hid during his flight till his pursuers gave him up; and
to the mausoleum of the five thousand Christians who were massacred
in Damascus in 1861 by the Turks. They say those narrow streets
ran blood for several days, and that men, women and children
were butchered indiscriminately and left to rot by hundreds
all through the Christian quarter; they say, further, that the
stench was dreadful. All the Christians who could get away fled
from the city, and the Mohammedans would not defile their hands
by burying the "infidel dogs." The thirst for blood extended
to the high lands of Hermon and Anti-Lebanon, and in a short
time twenty-five thousand more Christians were massacred and
their possessions laid waste. How they hate a Christian in Damascus!--and
pretty much all over Turkeydom as well. And how they will pay
for it when Russia turns her guns upon them again!
It is soothing to the heart to abuse England and France
for interposing to save the Ottoman Empire from the destruction
it has so richly deserved for a thousand years. It hurts my
vanity to see these pagans refuse to eat of food that has been
cooked for us; or to eat from a dish we have eaten from; or
to drink from a goatskin which we have polluted with our Christian
lips, except by filtering the water through a rag which they
put over the mouth of it or through a sponge! I never disliked
a Chinaman as I do these degraded Turks and Arabs, and when
Russia is ready to war with them again, I hope England and France
will not find it good breeding or good judgment to interfere.
In Damascus they think there are no such rivers in all
the world as their little Abana and Pharpar. The Damascenes
have always thought that way. In 2 Kings, chapter v., Naaman
boasts extravagantly about them. That was three thou-
sand years ago. He says: "Are not Abana and Pharpar rivers of
Damascus, better than all the waters of Israel? May I not wash
in them and be clean?" But some of my readers have forgotten
who Naaman was, long ago. Naaman was the commander of the Syrian
armies. He was the favorite of the king and lived in great state.
"He was a mighty man of valor, but he was a leper." Strangely
enough, the house they point out to you now as his, has been
turned into a leper hospital, and the inmates expose their horrid
deformities and hold up their hands and beg for bucksheesh when
a stranger enters.
One can not appreciate the horror of this disease until
he looks upon it in all its ghastliness, in Naaman's ancient
dwelling in Damascus. Bones all twisted out of shape, great
knots protruding from face and body, joints decaying and dropping
away--horrible!
The last twenty-four hours we staid in Damascus I lay prostrate
with a
violent attack of cholera, or cholera morbus, and therefore had
a good
chance and a good excuse to lie there on that wide divan and
take an
honest rest. I had nothing to do but listen to the pattering
of the
fountains and take medicine and throw it up again. It was dangerous
recreation, but it was pleasanter than traveling in Syria. I
had plenty
of snow from Mount Hermon, and as it would not stay on my stomach,
there
was nothing to interfere with my eating it--there was always
room for
more. I enjoyed myself very well. Syrian travel has its interesting
features, like travel in any other part of the world, and yet
to break
your leg or have the cholera adds a welcome variety to it.
We left Damascus at noon and rode across the plain a couple
of
hours, and then the party stopped a while in the shade of some
fig-trees to give me a chance to rest. It was the hottest day
we had seen
yet--the sun-flames shot down like the shafts of fire that stream
out
before a blow-pipe--the rays seemed to fall in a steady deluge
on the
head and pass downward like rain from a roof. I imagined I could
distinguish between the floods of rays--I thought I could tell
when each
flood struck my head, when it reached my shoulders, and when
the
next one came. It was terrible. All the desert glared so fiercely
that my
eyes were swimming in tears all the time. The boys had white
umbrellas heavily lined with dark green. They were a priceless
blessing. I thanked fortune that I had one, too, notwithstanding
it was
packed up with
the baggage and was ten miles ahead. It is madness to travel
in Syria
without an umbrella. They told me in Beirout (these people who
always
gorge you with advice) that it was madness to travel in Syria
without an
umbrella. It was on this account that I got one.
But, honestly, I think an umbrella is a nuisance any where
when its
business is to keep the sun off. No Arab wears a brim to his
fez, or uses
an umbrella, or any thing to shade his eyes or his face, and
he always
looks comfortable and proper in the sun. But of all the ridiculous
sights
I ever have seen, our party of eight is the most so--they do
cut such an
outlandish figure. They travel single file; they all wear the
endless
white rag of Constantinople wrapped round and round their hats
and
dangling down their backs; they all wear thick green spectacles,
with
side-glasses to them; they all hold white umbrellas, lined with
green,
over their heads; without exception their stirrups are too short--they
are
the very worst gang of horsemen on earth, their animals to a
horse trot
fearfully hard--and when they get strung out one after the other;
glaring
straight ahead and breathless; bouncing high and out of turn,
all along
the
line; knees well up and stiff, elbows flapping like a rooster's
that is
going to crow, and the long file of umbrellas popping convulsively
up
and down--when one sees this outrageous picture exposed to the
light of
day, he is amazed that the gods don't get out their thunderbolts
and
destroy them off the face of the earth! I do--I wonder at it.
I wouldn't let
any such caravan go through a country of mine.
And when the sun drops below the horizon and the boys
close their
umbrellas and put them under their arms, it is only a variation
of the
picture, not a modification of its absurdity.
But may be you can not see the wild extravagance of my
panorama.
You could if you were here. Here, you feel all the time just
as if you were
living about the year 1200 before Christ--or back to the patriarchs--or
forward to the New Era. The scenery of the Bible is about you--the
customs of the patriarchs are around you--the same people, in
the same
flowing robes, and in sandals, cross your path--the same long
trains of
stately camels go and come--the same impressive religious solemnity
and
silence rest upon the desert and the mountains that were upon
them in the
remote ages of antiquity, and behold, intruding upon a scene
like this,
comes this fantastic mob of green-spectacled Yanks, with their
flapping
elbows and bobbing umbrellas! It is Daniel in the lion's den
with a green
cotton umbrella under his arm, all over again.
My umbrella is with the baggage, and so are my green
spectacles--and there they shall stay. I will not use them. I
will show
some respect for the eternal fitness of things. It will be bad
enough to
get sun-struck, without looking ridiculous into the bargain.
If I fall,
let me fall bearing about me the semblance of a Christina, at least.
Three or four hours out from Damascus we passed the spot
where Saul
was so abruptly converted, and from this place we looked back
over the
scorching desert, and had our last glimpse of beautiful Damascus,
decked
in its robes of shining green. After nightfall we reached our
tents, just
outside of the nasty Arab village of Jonesborough. Of course
the real name
of the place is El something or other, but the boys still refuse
to
recognize the Arab names or try to pronounce them. When I say
that
that village is of the usual style, I mean to insinuate that
all Syrian
villages within fifty miles of Damascus are alike--so much alike
that it
would require more than human intelligence to tell wherein one
differed
from another. A Syrian village is a hive of huts one story high
(the
height of a man,) and as square as a dry-goods box; it is mud-plastered
all over, flat roof and all, and generally whitewashed after
a fashion.
The same roof often extends over half the town, covering many
of the
streets, which are generally about a yard wide. When you
ride
through
one of these villages at noon-day, you first meet a melancholy
dog, that
looks up at you and silently begs that you won't run over him,
but he
does not offer to get out of the way; next you meet a young boy
without any clothes on, and he holds out his hand and says
"Bucksheesh!"--he don't really expect a cent, but then he learned
to say that
before he learned to say mother, and now he can not break himself
of
it; next you meet a woman with a black veil drawn closely over
her
face, and her bust exposed; finally, you come to several sore-eyed
children and children in all stages of mutilation and decay;
and sitting
humbly in the dust, and all fringed with filthy rags, is a poor
devil
whose arms and legs are gnarled and twisted like grape-vines.
These
are all the people you are likely to see. The balance of the
population
are asleep within doors, or abroad tending goats in the plains
and on
the hill-sides. The village is built on some consumptive little
water-course, and about it is a little fresh-looking vegetation.
Beyond
this charmed circle, for miles on every side, stretches a weary
desert of
sand and gravel, which produces a gray bunchy shrub like sage-brush.
A Syrian village is the sorriest sight in the world, and its
surroundings
are eminently in keeping with it.
I would not have gone into this dissertation upon Syrian
villages
but for the fact that Nimrod, the Mighty Hunter of Scriptural
notoriety,
is buried in Jonesborough, and I wished the public to know about
how he is
located. Like Homer, he is said to be buried in many other places,
but
this is the only true and genuine place his ashes inhabit.
When the original tribes were dispersed, more than four
thousand
years ago, Nimrod and a large party traveled three or four hundred
miles, and settled where the great city of Babylon afterwards
stood.
Nimrod built that city. He also began to build the famous Tower
of
Babel, but circumstances over which he had no control put it
out of his
power to finish it. He ran it up eight stories high, however,
and two of
them still stand, at this day--a colossal mass of brickwork,
rent down
the centre by earthquakes, and seared and vitrified by the lightnings
of
an angry God. But the vast ruin will still stand for ages, to
shame the
puny labors of these modern generations of men. Its huge
compartments are tenanted by owls and lions, and old Nimrod lies
neglected in this wretched village, far from the scene of his
grand
enterprise.
We left Jonesborough very early in the morning, and rode
forever
and forever and forever, it seemed to me, over parched deserts
and
rocky hills, hungry, and with no water to drink. We had drained
the
goat-skins dry in a little while. At noon we halted before the
wretched
Arab town of El Yuba Dam, perched on the side of a mountain,
but the
dragoman said if we applied there for water we would be attacked
by
the whole tribe, for they did not love Christians. We had to
journey on.
Two hours later we reached the foot of a tall isolated mountain,
which
is crowned by the crumbling castle of Banias, the stateliest
ruin of that
kind on earth, no doubt. It is a thousand feet long and two hundred
wide, all of the most symmetrical, and at the same time the most
ponderous masonry. The massive towers and bastions are more than
thirty feet high, and have been sixty. From the mountain's peak
its
broken turrets rise above the groves of ancient oaks and olives,
and
look wonderfully picturesque. It is of such high antiquity that
no man
knows who built it or when it was built. It is utterly inaccessible,
except
in one place, where a bridle-path winds upward among the solid
rocks
to the old portcullis. The horses' hoofs have bored holes in
these rocks
to the depth of six inches during the hundreds and hundreds of
years
that the castle was garrisoned. We wandered for three hours
among the chambers and crypts and dungeons of the fortress, and
trod
where the mailed heels of many a knightly Crusader had rang,
and
where Phenician heroes had walked ages before them.
We wondered how such a solid mass of masonry could be
affected
even by an earthquake, and could not understand what agency had
made
Banias a ruin; but we found the destroyer, after a while, and
then our
wonder was increased tenfold. Seeds had fallen in crevices in
the vast
walls; the seeds had sprouted; the tender, insignificant sprouts
had
hardened; they grew larger and larger, and by a steady, imperceptible
pressure forced the great stones apart, and now are bringing
sure
destruction upon a giant work that has even mocked the earthquakes
to
scorn! Gnarled and twisted trees spring from the old walls every
where,
and beautify and overshadow the gray battlements with a wild
luxuriance of foliage.
From these old towers we looked down upon a broad, far-reaching
green plain, glittering with the pools and rivulets which are
the sources
of the sacred river Jordan. It was a grateful vision, after so
much desert.
And as the evening drew near, we clambered down the mountain,
through groves of the Biblical oaks of Bashan, (for we were just
stepping over the border and entering the long-sought Holy Land,)
and
at its extreme foot, toward the wide valley, we entered this
little
execrable village of Banias and camped in a great grove of olive
trees
near a torrent of sparkling water whose banks are arrayed in
fig-trees,
pomegranates and oleanders in full leaf. Barring the proximity
of the
village, it is a sort of paradise.
The very first thing one feels like doing when he gets
into camp,
all burning up and dusty, is to hunt up a bath. We followed the
stream up
to where it gushes out of the mountain side, three hundred yards
from the
tents, and took a bath that was so icy that if I did not know
this was the
main source of the sacred river, I would expect harm to come
of it. It
was bathing at noonday in the chilly source of the Abana, "River
of
Damascus," that gave me the cholera, so Dr. B. said. However,
it
generally does give me the cholera to take a bath.
The incorrigible pilgrims have come in with their pockets
full of
specimens broken from the ruins. I wish this vandalism could
be
stopped. They broke off fragments from Noah's tomb; from the
exquisite sculptures of the temples of Baalbec; from the houses
of
Judas and Ananias, in Damascus; from the tomb of Nimrod the Mighty
Hunter in Jonesborough; from the worn Greek and Roman inscriptions
set in the hoary walls of the Castle of Banias; and now they
have been
hacking and chipping these old arches here that Jesus looked
upon in
the flesh. Heaven protect the Sepulchre when this tribe invades
Jerusalem!
The ruins here are not very interesting. There are the
massive
walls of a great square building that was once the citadel; there
are
many ponderous old arches that are so smothered with debris that
they
barely project above the ground; there are heavy-walled sewers
through
which the crystal brook of which Jordan is born still runs; in
the
hill-side are the substructions of a costly marble temple that
Herod the
Great built here--patches of its handsome mosaic floors still
remain;
there is a quaint old stone bridge that was here before Herod's
time, may
be; scattered every where, in the paths and in the woods, are
Corinthian
capitals, broken porphyry pillars, and little fragments of sculpture;
and
up yonder in the precipice where the fountain gushes out, are
well-worn
Greek inscriptions over niches in the rock where in ancient times
the
Greeks, and after them the Romans, worshipped the sylvan god
Pan. But
trees and bushes grow above many of these ruins now; the miserable
huts
of a little crew of filthy Arabs are perched upon the broken
masonry of
antiquity, the whole place has a sleepy, stupid, rural look about
it, and
one can hardly bring himself to believe that a busy, substantially
built
city once existed here, even two thousand years ago. The place
was
nevertheless the scene of an event whose effects have added page
after
page and volume after volume to the world's history. For in
this place
Christ stood when he said to Peter:
On those little sentences have been built up the mighty
edifice of
the Church of Rome; in them lie the authority for the imperial
power of
the Popes over temporal affairs, and their godlike power to curse
a soul
or wash it white from sin. To sustain the position of "the only
true
Church," which Rome claims was thus conferred upon her, she has
fought and
labored and struggled for many a century, and will continue to
keep
herself busy in the same work to the end of time. The memorable
words I
have quoted give to this ruined city about all the interest it
possesses
to people of the present day.
It seems curious enough to us to be standing on ground
that was
once actually pressed by the feet of the Saviour. The situation
is
suggestive of a reality and a tangibility that seem at variance
with the
vagueness and mystery and ghostliness that one naturally attaches
to
the character of a god. I can not comprehend yet that I am sitting
where a god has stood, and looking upon the brook and the mountains
which that god looked upon, and am surrounded by dusky men and
women whose ancestors saw him, and even talked with him, face
to
face, and carelessly, just as they would have done with any other
stranger. I can not comprehend this; the gods of my understanding
have been always hidden in clouds and very far away.
This morning, during breakfast, the usual assemblage of
squalid
humanity sat patiently without the charmed circle of the camp
and
waited for such crumbs as pity might bestow upon their misery.
There
were old and young, brown-skinned and yellow. Some of the men
were
tall and stalwart, (for one hardly sees any where such splendid-looking
men as here in the East,) but all the women and children looked
worn
and sad, and distressed with hunger. They reminded me much of
Indians, did these people. They had but little clothing, but
such as they
had was fanciful in character and fantastic in its arrangement.
Any
little absurd gewgaw or gimcrack they had they disposed in such
a way
as to make it attract attention
most readily. They sat in silence, and with tireless patience
watched
our every motion with that vile, uncomplaining impoliteness which
is
so truly Indian, and which makes a white man so nervous and
uncomfortable and savage that he wants to exterminate the whole
tribe.
These people about us had other peculiarities, which I
have noticed
in the noble red man, too: they were infested with vermin, and
the dirt
had caked on them till it amounted to bark.
The little children were in a pitiable condition--they
all had sore
eyes, and were otherwise afflicted in various ways. They say
that
hardly a native child in all the East is free from sore eyes,
and that
thousands of them go blind of one eye or both every year. I think
this
must be so, for I see plenty of blind people every day, and I
do not
remember seeing any children that hadn't sore eyes. And, would
you
suppose that an American mother could sit for an hour, with her
child
in her arms, and let a hundred flies roost upon its eyes all
that time
undisturbed? I see that every day. It makes my flesh creep. Yesterday
we met a woman riding on a little jackass, and she had a little
child in
her arms--honestly, I thought the child had goggles on as we
approached, and I wondered how its mother could afford so much
style. But when we drew near, we saw that the goggles were nothing
but a camp meeting of flies assembled around each of the child's
eyes,
and at the same time there was a detachment prospecting its nose.
The
flies were happy, the child was contented, and so the mother
did not
interfere.
As soon as the tribe found out that we had a doctor in
our party,
they began to flock in from all quarters. Dr. B., in the charity
of his
nature, had taken a child from a woman who sat near by, and put
some
sort of a wash upon its diseased eyes. That woman went off and
started the whole nation, and it was a sight to see them swarm!
The
lame, the halt, the blind, the leprous--all the distempers that
are bred
of indolence, dirt, and iniquity--were represented in the Congress
in
ten minutes, and still they came! Every woman that had a
sick baby brought it along, and every woman that hadn't, borrowed
one.
What reverent and what worshiping looks they bent upon that dread,
mysterious power, the Doctor! They watched him take his phials
out; they
watched him measure the particles of white powder; they watched
him add
drops of one precious liquid, and drops of another; they lost
not the
slightest movement; their eyes were riveted upon him with a fascination
that nothing could distract. I believe they thought he was gifted
like a
god. When each individual got his portion of medicine, his eyes
were
radiant with joy--notwithstanding by nature they are a thankless
and
impassive race--and upon his face was written the unquestioning
faith
that nothing on earth could prevent the patient from getting
well now.
Christ knew how to preach to these simple, superstitious,
disease-tortured creatures: He healed the sick. They flocked
to our poor
human doctor this morning when the fame of what he had done to
the
sick child went abroad in the land, and they worshiped him with
their
eyes while they did not know
as yet whether there was virtue in his simples or not. The ancestors
of
these--people precisely like them in color, dress, manners, customs,
simplicity--flocked in vast multitudes after Christ, and when
they saw Him
make the afflicted whole with a word, it is no wonder they worshiped
Him.
No wonder His deeds were the talk of the nation. No wonder the
multitude
that followed Him was so great that at one time--thirty miles
from
here--they had to let a sick man down through the roof because
no approach
could be made to the door; no wonder His audiences were so great
at
Galilee that He had to preach from a ship removed a little distance
from
the shore; no wonder that even in the desert places about Bethsaida,
five
thousand invaded His solitude, and He had to feed them by a miracle
or
else see them suffer for their confiding faith and devotion;
no wonder
when there was a great commotion in a city in those days, one
neighbor
explained it to another in words to this effect: "They say that
Jesus of
Nazareth is come!"
Well, as I was saying, the doctor distributed medicine
as long as
he had any to distribute, and his reputation is mighty in Galilee
this
day. Among his patients was the child of the Shiek's daughter--for
even
this poor, ragged handful of sores and sin has its royal Shiek--a
poor old
mummy that looked as if he would be more at home in a poor-house
than in
the Chief Magistracy of this tribe of hopeless, shirtless savages.
The
princess--I mean the Shiek's daughter--was only thirteen or fourteen
years
old, and had a very sweet face and a pretty one. She was the
only Syrian
female we have seen yet who was not so sinfully ugly that she
couldn't
smile after ten o'clock Saturday night without breaking the Sabbath.
Her
child was a hard specimen, though--there wasn't enough of it
to make a
pie, and the poor little thing looked so pleadingly up at all
who came
near it (as if it had an idea that now was its chance or never,)
that we
were filled with compassion which was genuine and not put on.
But this last new horse I have got is trying to break
his neck over
the tent-ropes, and I shall have to go out and anchor
him. Jericho and I have parted company. The new horse is not
much to boast
of, I think. One of his hind legs bends the wrong way, and the
other one
is as straight and stiff as a tent-pole. Most of his teeth are
gone, and
he is as blind as bat. His nose has been broken at some time
or other, and
is arched
like a culvert now. His under lip hangs down like a camel's,
and his ears
are
chopped off close to his head. I had some trouble at first to
find a name
for him, but I finally concluded to call him Baalbec, because
he is such a
magnificent ruin. I can not keep from talking about my horses,
because I
have a very long and tedious journey before me, and they naturally
occupy
my thoughts about as much as matters of apparently much greater
importance.
We satisfied our pilgrims by making those hard rides from
Baalbec
to Damascus, but Dan's horse and Jack's were so crippled we had
to leave
them behind and get fresh animals for them. The dragoman says
Jack's horse
died. I swapped horses with Mohammed, the kingly-looking Egyptian
who is
our Ferguson's lieutenant. By Ferguson I mean our dragoman Abraham,
of
course. I did not take this horse on account of his personal
appearance,
but because I have not seen his back. I do not wish to see it.
I have seen
the backs of all the other horses, and found most of them covered
with
dreadful saddle-boils which I know have not been washed or doctored
for
years. The idea of riding all day long over such ghastly in-
quisitions of torture is sickening. My horse must be like the
others, but
I have at least the consolation of not knowing it to be so.
I hope that in future I may be spared any more sentimental
praises
of the Arab's idolatry of his horse. In boyhood I longed to be
an Arab of
the desert and have a beautiful mare, and call her Selim or Benjamin
or
Mohammed, and feed her with my own hands, and let her come into
the tent,
and teach her to caress me and look fondly upon me with her great
tender
eyes; and I wished that a stranger might come at such a time
and offer me
a hundred thousand dollars for her, so that I could do like the
other
Arabs--hesitate, yearn for the money, but overcome by my love
for my mare,
at last say, "Part with thee, my beautiful one! Never with my
life! Away,
tempter, I scorn thy gold!" and then bound into the saddle and
speed over
the desert like the wind!
But I recall those aspirations. If these Arabs be like
the other
Arabs, their love for their beautiful mares is a fraud. These
of my
acquaintance have no love for their horses, no sentiment of pity
for them,
and no knowledge of how to treat them or care for them. The Syrian
saddle-blanket is a quilted mattress two or three inches thick.
It is
never removed from the horse, day or night. It gets full of dirt
and hair,
and becomes soaked with sweat. It is bound to breed sores. These
pirates
never think of washing a horse's back. They do not shelter the
horses in
the tents, either--they must stay out and take the weather as
it comes.
Look at poor cropped and dilapidated "Baalbec," and weep for
the
sentiment that has been wasted upon the Selims of romance!
From a little mound here in the plain issues a broad
stream of limpid water and forms a large shallow pool, and then
rushes furiously onward, augmented in volume. This puddle is
an
important source of the Jordan. Its banks, and those of the brook
are respectably adorned with blooming oleanders, but the
unutterable beauty of the spot will not throw a well-balanced
man
into convulsions, as the Syrian books of travel would lead one
to
suppose.
From the spot I am speaking of, a cannon-ball would carry
beyond the confines of Holy Land and light upon profane ground
three miles away. We were only one little hour's travel within
the
borders of Holy Land -- we had hardly begun to appreciate yet
that
we were standing upon any different sort of earth than that we
had
always been used to, and see how the historic names began already
to cluster! Dan -- Bashan -- Lake Huleh -- the Sources of Jordan
-- the Sea of Galilee. They were all in sight but the last,
and it was
not far away. The little township of Bashan was once the kingdom
so famous in Scripture for its bulls and its oaks. Lake Huleh
is the
Biblical "Waters of Merom." Dan was the northern and Beersheba
the southern limit of Palestine -- hence the expression "from
Dan
to Beersheba." It is equivalent to our phrases "from Maine to
Texas" -- "from Baltimore to San Francisco." Our expression and
that of the Israelites both
mean the same -- great distance. With
their slow camels and asses, it was about a seven days' journey
from Dan to Beersheba -- -say a hundred and fifty or sixty miles
-- it was the entire length of their country, and was not to
be
undertaken without great preparation and much ceremony. When
the Prodigal traveled to " a far country," it is not likely that
he
went more than eighty or ninety miles. Palestine is only from
forty
to sixty miles wide. The State of Missouri could be split into
three
Palestines, and there would then be enough material left for
part
of another -- possibly a whole one. From Baltimore to San
Francisco is several thousand miles, but it will be only a seven
days' journey in the cars when I am two or three years older.*
If
I live I shall necessarily have to go across the continent every
now
and then in those cars, but one journey from Dan to Beersheba
will be sufficient, no doubt. It must be the most trying of the
two.
Therefore, if we chance to discover that from Dan to Beersheba
seemed a mighty stretch of country to the Israelites, let us
not be
airy with them, but reflect that it was and
is a mighty stretch when one can not traverse it by rail.
The small mound I have mentioned a while ago was once
occupied by the Phenician city of Laish. A party of filibusters
from Zorah and Eschol captured the place, and lived there
in a free and easy way, worshiping gods of their
own manufacture and stealing idols from their neighbors
whenever they wore their own out. Jeroboam set up a golden
calf here to fascinate his people and keep them from making
dangerous trips to Jerusalem to worship, which might result in
a
return to their rightful allegiance. With all respect for those
ancient Israelites, I can not overlook the fact that they were
not
always virtuous enough to withstand the seductions of a golden
calf. Human nature has not changed much since then.
Some forty centuries ago the city of Sodom was
pillaged by the Arab princes of Mesopotamia, and among other
prisoners they seized upon the patriarch Lot and brought him
here on their way to their own possessions. They brought him
to
Dan, and father Abraham, who was pursuing them, crept softly
in at dead of night, among the whispering oleanders and under
the shadows of the stately oaks, and fell upon the slumbering
victors and startled them from their dreams with the clash of
steel. He recaptured Lot and all the other plunder.
We moved on. We were now in a green valley, five or six miles
wide and fifteen long. The streams which are called the sources
of
the Jordan flow through it to Lake Huleh, a shallow pond three
miles in diameter, and from the southern extremity of the Lake
the
concentrated Jordan flows out. The Lake is surrounded by a broad
marsh, grown with reeds. Between the marsh and the mountains
which wall the valley is a respectable strip of fertile land;
at the
end of the valley, toward Dan, as much as half
the land is solid
and fertile, and watered by Jordan's sources. There is enough
of
it to make a farm. It almost warrants the enthusiasm of the spies
of that rabble of adventurers who captured Dan. They said: "We
have seen the land, and behold it is very good. A place
where there is no want of any thing that is in the earth."
Their enthusiasm was at least warranted by the fact
that they had never seen a country as good as this. There was
enough of it for the ample support of their six hundred men and
their families, too.
When we got fairly down on the level part of the
Danite farm, we came to places where we could actually run our
horses. It was a notable circumstance.
We had been painfully clambering over interminable hills and
rocks for days together, and when we suddenly came upon this
astonishing piece of rockless plain, every man drove the spurs
into
his horse and sped away with a velocity he could surely enjoy
to
the utmost, but could never hope to comprehend in Syria.
Here were evidences of cultivation -- a rare sight in this country
-- an acre or two of rich soil studded with last season's dead
corn-stalks of the thickness of your thumb and very wide apart.
But in such a land it was a thrilling spectacle. Close to it
was a
stream, and on its banks a great herd of curious-looking Syrian
goats and sheep were gratefully eating gravel. I do not state
this
as a petrified fact -- I only suppose they were eating
gravel, because there did not appear to be any thing else for
them
to eat. The shepherds that tended them were the very pictures
of
Joseph and his brethren I have no doubt in the world. They were
tall, muscular, and very dark-skinned Bedouins, with inky black
beards. They had firm lips, unquailing eyes, and a kingly
stateliness of bearing. They wore the parti-colored half bonnet,
half hood, with fringed ends falling upon their shoulders, and
the
full, flowing robe barred with broad black stripes -- the dress
one
sees in all pictures of the swarthy sons of the desert. These
chaps
would sell their younger brothers if they had a chance, I think.
They have the manners, the customs, the dress, the occupation
and
the loose principles of the ancient stock. [They attacked our
camp
last night, and I bear them no good will.] They had with them
the
pigmy jackasses one sees all over Syria and remembers in all
pictures of the " Flight into Egypt," where Mary and the Young
Child are riding and Joseph is walking alongside, towering high
above the little donkey's shoulders.
But really, here the man rides and carries the child,
as a
general thing, and the woman walks. The customs have not
changed since Joseph's time. We would not have in our houses
a
picture representing Joseph riding and Mary walking; we would
see profanation in it, but a Syrian Christian would not. I know
that
hereafter the picture I first spoke of will look odd to me.
We could not stop to rest two or three hours out
from our camp, of course, albeit the brook was beside us. So
we
went on an hour longer. We saw water, then, but nowhere in all
the waste around was there a foot of shade, and we were scorching
to death. "Like unto the shadow of a great rock in a weary land."
Nothing in the Bible is more beautiful than that, and surely
there
is no place we have wandered to that is able to give it such
touching expression as this blistering, naked, treeless land.
Here you do not stop just when you please, but when you can.
We
found water, but no shade. We traveled on and found a tree at
last, but no water. We rested and lunched, and came on to this
place, Ain Mellahah (the boys call it Baldwinsville.) It was
a very
short day's run, but the dragoman does not want to go further,
and
has invented a plausible lie about the country beyond this being
infested by ferocious Arabs, who would make sleeping in their
midst a dangerous pastime. Well, they ought to be dangerous.
They carry a rusty old weather-beaten flint-lock gun, with a
barrel
that is longer than themselves; it has no sights on it, it will
not
carry farther than a brickbat, and is not half so certain. And
the
great sash they wear in many a fold around their waists has two
or
three absurd old horse-pistols in it that are rusty
from eternal
disuse -- weapons that would hang fire just about long enough
for
you to walk out of range, and then burst and blow the Arab's
head
off. Exceedingly dangerous these sons of the desert are.
It used to make my blood run cold to read Wm. C.
Grimes' hairbreadth escapes from Bedouins, but I think I could
read them now without a tremor. He never said he was attacked
by
Bedouins, I believe, or was ever treated uncivilly, but then
in
about every other chapter he discovered them approaching, any
how, and he had a blood-curdling fashion of working up the peril;
and of wondering how his relations far away would feel could
they
see their poor wandering boy, with his weary feet and his dim
eyes, in such fearful danger; and of thinking for the last time
of
the old homestead, and the dear old church, and the cow, and
those things; and of finally straightening his form to its utmost
height in the saddle, drawing his trusty revolver, and then dashing
the spurs into "Mohammed" and sweeping down upon the
ferocious enemy determined to sell his life as dearly as possible.
True the Bedouins never did any thing to him when he arrived,
and never had any intention of doing any thing to him in the
first
place, and wondered
what in the mischief he was making all that
to-do about; but still I could not divest myself of the idea,
somehow, that a frightful peril had been escaped through that
man's dare-devil bravery, and so I never could read about Wm.
C.
Grimes' Bedouins and sleep comfortably afterward. But I believe
the Bedouins to be a fraud, now. I have seen the monster, and
I
can outrun him. I shall never be afraid of his daring to stand
behind his own gun and discharge it.
About fifteen hundred years before Christ, this
camp-ground of ours by the Waters of Merom was the scene of
one of Joshua's exterminating battles. Jabin, King of Hazor,
(up
yonder above Dan,) called all the sheiks about him together,
with
their hosts, to make ready for Israel's terrible General who
was
approaching.
"And they went out, they and all their hosts with
them, much people, even as the sand that is upon the sea-shore
for
multitude," etc.
But Joshua fell upon them and utterly destroyed them, root and
branch. That was his usual policy in war. He never left any chance
for newspaper controversies about who won the battle. He made
this valley, so quiet now, a reeking slaughter-pen.
Somewhere in this part of the country -- I do not
know exactly where -- Israel fought another bloody battle a
hundred years later. Deborah, the prophetess, told Barak to take
ten thousand men and sally forth against another King Jabin who
had been doing something. Barak came down from Mount Tabor,
twenty or twenty-five miles from here, and gave battle to Jabin's
forces, who were in command of Sisera. Barak won the fight, and
while he was making the victory complete by the usual method
of
exterminating the remnant of the defeated host, Sisera fled away
on foot, and when he was nearly exhausted by fatigue and thirst,
one Jael, a woman he seems to have been acquainted with, invited
him to come into her tent and rest himself. The weary soldier
acceded readily enough,
and Jael put him to bed. He said he was
very thirsty, and asked his generous preserver to get him a cup
of
water. She brought him some milk, and he drank of it gratefully
and lay down again, to forget in pleasant dreams his lost battle
and
his humbled pride. Presently when he was asleep she came softly
in with a hammer and drove a hideous tent-pen down through his
brain!
"For he was fast asleep and weary. So he died."
Such is the touching language of the Bible. "The Song of Deborah
and Barak" praises Jael for the memorable service she had
rendered, in an exultant strain:
"He asked for water, and she gave him milk; she brought forth
butter in a lordly dish.
"She put her hand to the nail, and her right hand to the
workman's hammer; and with the hammer she smote Sisera, she
smote off his head when she had pierced and stricken through
his
temples.
"At her feet he bowed, he fell, he lay down: at her feet he
bowed, he fell: where he bowed, there he fell down dead."
Stirring scenes like these occur in this valley no more. There
is
not a solitary village throughout its whole extent -- not for
thirty
miles in either direction. There are two or three small clusters
of
Bedouin tents, but not a single permanent habitation. One may
ride
ten miles, hereabouts, and not see ten human beings.
To this region one of the prophecies is applied:
No man can stand here by deserted Ain Mellahah
and say the prophecy has not been fulfilled.
In a verse from the Bible which I have quoted
above, occurs the phrase "all these kings." It attracted my attention
in a moment, because it carries to my mind such a vastly different
significance from what it always did at home. I can see easily
enough that if I wish to profit by this tour and come to a correct
understanding of the matters of interest connected with it, I
must
studiously and faithfully unlearn a great many things I have
somehow absorbed concerning Palestine. I must begin a system
of
reduction. Like my grapes which the spies bore out of the
Promised Land, I have got every thing in Palestine on too large
a
scale. Some of my ideas were wild enough. The word Palestine
always brought to my mind a vague suggestion of a country as
large as the United States. I do not know why, but such was the
case. I suppose it was because I could not conceive of a small
country having so large a history. I think I was a little surprised
to find that the grand Sultan of Turkey was a man of only ordinary
size. I must try to reduce my ideas of Palestine to a more
reasonable shape. One gets large impressions in boyhood,
sometimes, which he has to fight against all his life. "All these
kings." When I used to read that in Sunday School, it suggested
to
me the several kings of such countries as England, France, Spain,
Germany, Russia, etc., arrayed in splendid robes ablaze with
jewels, marching in grave procession, with sceptres of gold in
their hands and flashing crowns upon their heads. But here in
Ain
Mellahah, after coming through Syria, and after giving serious
study to the character and customs of the country, the phrase
"all
these kings" loses its grandeur. It suggests only a parcel of
petty
chiefs -- ill-clad and ill-conditioned savages much like our
Indians,
who lived in full sight of each other and whose "kingdoms" were
large when they were five miles square and contained two
thousand souls. The combined monarchies of the thirty "kings"
destroyed by Joshua on one of his famous campaigns, only covered
an area about equal to four of our counties of ordinary size.
The
poor old sheik we saw at Cesarea Philippi with his ragged band
of
a hundred followers, would have been called a "king " in those
ancient times.
It is seven in the morning, and as we are in the country, the
grass ought to be sparkling with dew, the flowers enrich-
ing the air
with their fragrance, and the birds singing in the trees. But
alas,
there is no dew here, nor flowers, nor birds, nor trees. There
is
a plain and an unshaded lake, and beyond them some barren
mountains. The tents are tumbling, the Arabs are quarreling like
dogs and cats, as usual, the campground is strewn with packages
and bundles, the labor of packing them upon the backs of the
mules is progressing with great activity, the horses are saddled,
the
umbrellas are out, and in ten minutes we shall mount and the
long
procession will move again. The white city of the Mellahah,
resurrected for a moment out of the dead centuries, will have
disappeared again and left no sign.
In their pipes lingered no echo of the wonderful
music the shepherd forefathers heard in the Plains of Bethlehem
what time the angels sang "Peace on earth, good will to men."
Part of the ground we came over was not ground at
all, but rocks -- cream-colored rocks, worn smooth, as if by
water;
with seldom an edge or a corner on them, but scooped out,
honey-combed, bored out with eye-holes, and thus wrought into
all
manner of quaint shapes, among which the uncouth imitation of
skulls was frequent. Over this part of the route were occasional
remains of an old Roman road like the Appian Way, whose
paving-stones still clung to their places with Roman tenacity.
Gray lizards, those heirs of ruin, of sepulchres and
desolation, glided in and out among the rocks or lay still and
sunned themselves. Where prosperity has reigned, and fallen;
where glory has flamed, and gone out; where beauty has dwelt,
and passed away; where gladness was, and sorrow is; where the
pomp of life has been, and silence and death brood in its high
places, there this reptile makes his home, and mocks at human
vanity. His coat is the color of ashes: and ashes are the symbol
of
hopes that have perished, of aspirations that came to nought,
of
loves that are buried. If he could speak, he would say, Build
temples: I will lord it in their ruins; build palaces: I will
inhabit
them; erect empires: I will inherit them; bury your beautiful:
I will
watch the worms at their work; and you, who stand here and
moralize over me: I will crawl over your corpse at the
last.
A few ants were in this desert place, but merely to
spend the summer. They brought their provisions from Ain
Mellahah -- eleven miles.
Jack is not very well to-day, it is easy to see; but
boy as he is, he is too much of a man to speak of it. He exposed
himself to the sun too much yesterday, but since it came of his
earnest desire to learn, and to make this journey as useful as
the
opportunities will allow, no one seeks to discourage him by
fault-finding. We missed him an hour from the camp, and then
found him some distance away, by the edge of a brook,
and with
no umbrella to protect him from the fierce sun. If he had been
used to going without his umbrella, it would have been well
enough, of course; but he was not. He was just in the act of
throwing a clod at a mud-turtle which was sunning itself on a
small log in the brook. We said:
"Don't do that, Jack. What do you want to harm
him for? What has he done?"
"Well, then, I won't kill him, but I ought to,
because he is a fraud."
We asked him why, but he said it was no matter.
We asked him why, once or twice, as we walked back to the camp
but he still said it was no matter. But late at night, when he
was
sitting in a thoughtful mood on the bed, we asked him again and
he said:
"Well, it don't matter; I don't mind it now, but I
did not like it to-day, you know, because I don't tell
any thing that isn't so, and I don't think the Colonel ought
to,
either. But he did; he told us at prayers in the Pilgrims' tent,
last
night, and he seemed as if he was reading it out of the Bible,
too,
about this country flowing with milk and honey, and about the
voice of the turtle being heard in the land. I thought that was
drawing it a little strong, about the turtles, any how, but I
asked
Mr. Church if it was so, and he said it was, and what Mr. Church
tells me, I believe. But I sat there and watched that turtle
nearly
an hour to-day, and I almost burned up in the sun; but I never
heard him sing. I believe I sweated a double handful of sweat-
--
I know I did -- because it got in my eyes, and it was
running down over my nose all the time; and
you know my pants
are tighter than any body else's -- Paris foolishness -- and
the
buckskin seat of them got wet with sweat, and then got dry again
and began to draw up and pinch and tear loose -- it was awful
--
but I never heard him sing. Finally I said, This is a fraud --
that
is what it is, it is a fraud -- and if I had had any sense I
might
have known a cursed mud-turtle couldn't sing. And then I said,
I
don't wish to be hard on this fellow, and I will just give him
ten
minutes to commence; ten minutes -- and then if he don't, down
goes his building. But he didn't commence, you know.
I had staid there all that time, thinking may be he might, pretty
soon, because he kept on raising his head up and letting it down,
and drawing the skin over his eyes for a minute and then opening
them out again, as if he was trying to study up something to
sing,
but just as the ten minutes were up and I was all beat out and
blistered, he laid his blamed head down on a knot and went fast
asleep."
"It was a little hard, after you had
waited so long."
"I should think so. I said, Well, if you won't sing,
you shan't sleep, any way; and if you fellows had let me alone
I
would have made him shin out of Galilee quicker than any turtle
ever did yet. But it isn't any matter now -- let it go. The
skin is
all off the back of my neck."
About ten in the morning we halted at Joseph's Pit.
This is a ruined Khan of the Middle Ages, in one of whose side
courts is a great walled and arched pit with water in it, and
this
pit, one tradition says, is the one Joseph's brethren cast him
into.
A more authentic tradition, aided by the geography of the
country, places the pit in Dothan, some two days' journey from
here. However, since there are many who believe in this present
pit as the true one, it has its interest.
It is hard to make a choice of the most beautiful
passage in a book which is so gemmed with beautiful passages
as
the Bible; but it is certain that not many things within its
lids may
take rank above the exquisite story of Joseph. Who taught those
ancient writers their simplicity of language, their felicity
of
expression, their pathos, and above all, their faculty of sinking
themselves entirely out of sight of the reader and making the
narrative stand out alone and seem to tell itself? Shakspeare
is
always present when one reads his book; Macaulay is present
when we follow the march of his stately sentences; but the Old
Testament writers are hidden from view.
If the pit I have been speaking of is the right one,
a scene transpired there, long ages ago, which is familiar to
us all
in pictures. The sons of Jacob had been pasturing their flocks
near
there. Their father grew uneasy at their long absence, and sent
Joseph, his favorite, to see if any thing had gone wrong with
them.
He traveled six or seven days' journey; he was only seventeen
years old, and, boy like, he toiled through that long stretch
of the
vilest, rockiest, dustiest country in Asia, arrayed in the pride
of his
heart, his beautiful clawhammer coat of many colors. Joseph was
the favorite, and that was one crime in the eyes of his brethren;
he had dreamed dreams, and interpreted them to foreshadow his
elevation far above all his family in the far future, and that
was
another; he was dressed well and had doubtless displayed the
harmless vanity of youth in keeping the fact prominently before
his
brothers. These were crimes his elders fretted over among
themselves and proposed to punish when the opportunity should
offer. When they saw him coming up from the Sea of Galilee, they
recognized him and were glad. They said, "Lo, here is this
dreamer -- let us kill him." But Reuben pleaded for his life,
and
they spared it. But they seized the boy, and stripped the hated
coat
from his back and pushed him into the pit. They
intended to let him die there, but Reuben intended to liberate
him secretly. However, while Reuben was away for a little while,
the brethren sold Joseph to some Ishmaelitish merchants who were
journeying towards Egypt. Such is the history of the pit. And
the
self-same pit is there in that place, even to this day; and there
it
will remain until the next detachment of image-breakers and
tomb
desecraters arrives from the Quaker City excursion,
and they will infallibly dig it up and carry it away with them.
For
behold in them is no reverence for the solemn monuments of the
past, and whithersoever they go they destroy and spare not.
Joseph became rich, distinguished, powerful -- as
the Bible expresses it, "lord over all the land of Egypt." Joseph
was the real king, the strength, the brain of the monarchy, though
Pharaoh held the title. Joseph is one of the truly great men
of the
Old Testament. And he was the noblest and the manliest, save
Esau. Why shall we not say a good word for the princely
Bedouin? The only crime that can be brought against him is that
he was unfortunate. Why must every body praise Joseph's
great-hearted generosity to his cruel brethren, without stint
of
fervent language, and fling only a reluctant bone of praise to
Esau
for his still sublimer generosity to the brother who had wronged
him? Jacob took advantage of Esau's consuming hunger to rob him
of his birthright and the great honor and consideration that
belonged to the position; by treachery and falsehood he robbed
him
of his father's blessing; he made of him a stranger in his home,
and a wanderer. Yet after twenty years had passed away and Jacob
met Esau
and fell at his feet quaking with fear and begging
piteously to be spared the punishment he knew he deserved, what
did that magnificent savage do? He fell upon his neck and
embraced him! When Jacob -- who was incapable of
comprehending nobility of character -- still doubting, still
fearing,
insisted upon "finding grace with my lord" by the bribe of a
present of cattle, what did the gorgeous son of the desert say?
"Nay, I have enough, my brother; keep that thou
hast unto thyself!"
Esau found Jacob rich, beloved by wives and
children, and traveling in state, with servants, herds of cattle
and
trains of camels -- but he himself was still the uncourted outcast
this brother had made him. After thirteen years of romantic
mystery, the brethren who had wronged Joseph, came, strangers
in a strange land, hungry and humble, to buy "a little food";
and
being summoned to a palace, charged with crime, they beheld in
its owner their wronged brother; they were trembling beggars
--
he, the lord of a mighty empire! What Joseph that ever lived
would have thrown away such a chance to "show off?" Who stands
first -- outcast Esau forgiving Jacob in prosperity, or Joseph
on a
king's throne forgiving the ragged tremblers whose happy rascality
placed him there?
Just before we came to Joseph's Pit, we had
"raised" a hill, and there, a few miles before us, with not a
tree or
a shrub to interrupt the view, lay a vision which millions of
worshipers in the far lands of the earth would give half their
possessions to see -- the sacred Sea of Galilee!
Therefore we tarried only a short time at the pit.
We rested the horses and ourselves, and felt for a few minutes
the
blessed shade of the ancient buildings. We were out of water,
but
the two or three scowling Arabs, with their long guns, who were
idling about the place, said they had none and that there was
none
in the vicinity. They knew there was a little brackish water
in the
pit, but they venerated a place made sacred by their ancestor's
imprisonment too much to be willing to see Christian dogs drink
from it. But Ferguson tied rags and handkerchiefs together till
he
made a rope long enough to
lower a vessel to the bottom, and we
drank and then rode on; and in a short time we dismounted on
those shores which the feet of the Saviour have made holy ground.
At noon we took a swim in the Sea of Galilee -- a
blessed privilege in this roasting climate -- and then lunched
under
a neglected old fig-tree at the fountain they call Ain-et-Tin,
a
hundred yards from ruined Capernaum. Every rivulet that gurgles
out of the rocks and sands of this part of the world is dubbed
with
the title of "fountain," and people familiar with the Hudson,
the
great lakes and the Mississippi fall into transports of admiration
over them, and exhaust their powers of composition in writing
their praises. If all the poetry and nonsense that have been
discharged upon the fountains and the bland scenery of this region
were collected in a book, it would make a most valuable volume
to burn.
During luncheon, the pilgrim enthusiasts of our
party, who had been so light-hearted and so happy ever since
they
touched holy ground that they did little but mutter incoherent
rhapsodies, could scarcely eat, so anxious were they to "take
shipping" and sail in very person
upon the waters that had borne
the vessels of the Apostles. Their anxiety grew and their
excitement augmented with every fleeting moment, until my fears
were aroused and I began to have misgivings that in their present
condition they might break recklessly loose from all considerations
of prudence and buy a whole fleet of ships to sail in instead
of
hiring a single one for an hour, as quiet folk are wont to do.
I
trembled to think of the ruined purses this day's performances
might result in. I could not help reflecting bodingly upon the
intemperate zeal with which middle-aged men are apt to surfeit
themselves upon a seductive folly which they have tasted for
the
first time. And yet I did not feel that I had a right to be surprised
at the state of things which was giving me so much concern. These
men had been taught from infancy to revere, almost to worship,
the holy places whereon their happy eyes were resting now. For
many and many a year this very picture had visited their thoughts
by day and floated through their dreams by night. To stand before
it in the flesh -- to see it as they saw it now -- to sail upon
the
hallowed sea, and kiss the holy soil that compassed it about:
these
were aspirations they had cherished while a generation dragged
its
lagging seasons by and left its furrows in their faces and its
frosts
upon their hair. To look upon this picture, and sail upon this
sea,
they had forsaken home and its idols and journeyed thousands
and
thousands of miles, in weariness and tribulation. What wonder
that
the sordid lights of work-day prudence should pale before the
glory of a hope like theirs in the full splendor of its fruition?
Let
them squander millions! I said -- who speaks of money at a time
like this?
In this frame of mind I followed, as fast as I could,
the eager footsteps of the pilgrims, and stood upon the shore
of the
lake, and swelled, with hat and voice, the frantic hail they
sent
after the "ship" that was speeding by. It was a success. The
toilers
of the sea ran in and beached their barque. Joy sat upon every
countenance.
"How much? -- ask him how much, Ferguson! --
how much to take us all -- eight of us, and you -- to Bethsaida,
yonder,
and to the mouth of Jordan, and to the place where the
swine ran down into the sea -- quick! -- and we want to coast
around every where -- every where! -- all day long! -- I could
sail
a year in these waters! -- and tell him we'll stop at Magdala
and
finish at Tiberias! -- ask him how much? -- any thing -- any
thing
whatever! -- tell him we don't care what the expense is!" [I
said
to myself, I knew how it would be.]
Ferguson -- (interpreting) -- "He says
two Napoleons -- eight dollars."
One or two countenances fell. Then a pause.
"Too much! -- we'll give him one!"
I never shall know how it was -- I shudder yet
when I think how the place is given to miracles -- but in a single
instant of time, as it seemed to me, that ship was twenty paces
from the shore, and speeding away like a frightened thing! Eight
crestfallen creatures stood upon the shore, and O, to think of
it!
this -- this -- after all that overmastering ecstacy! Oh, shameful,
shameful ending, after such unseemly boasting! It was
too much
like "Ho! let me at him!" followed by a prudent "Two of you hold
him -- one can hold me!"
Instantly there was wailing and gnashing of teeth in
the camp. The two Napoleons were offered -- more if necessary
-
- and pilgrims and dragoman shouted themselves hoarse with
pleadings to the retreating boatmen to come back. But they sailed
serenely away and paid no further heed to pilgrims who had
dreamed all their lives of some day skimming over the sacred
waters of Galilee and listening to its hallowed story in the
whisperings of its waves, and had journeyed countless leagues
to
do it, and -- and then concluded that the fare was too high.
Impertinent Mohammedan Arabs, to think such things of
gentlemen of another faith!
Well, there was nothing to do but just submit and
forego the privilege of voyaging on Genessaret, after coming
half
around the globe to taste that pleasure. There was a time, when
the
Saviour taught here, that boats were plenty among the fishermen
of the coasts -- but boats and fishermen both are gone, now;
and
old Josephus had a fleet of men-of-war in these waters eighteen
centuries ago -- a hundred and thirty bold canoes -- but they,
also,
have passed away and left no sign. They battle here no more by
sea, and the commercial marine of Galilee numbers only two small
ships, just of a pattern with the little skiffs the disciples
knew. One
was lost to us for good -- the other was miles away and far out
of
hail. So we mounted the horses and rode grimly on toward
Magdala, cantering along in the edge of the water for want of
the
means of passing over it
How the pilgrims abused each other! Each said it
was the other's fault, and each in turn denied it. No word was
spoken by the sinners -- even the mildest sarcasm might have
been
dangerous at such a time. Sinners that have been kept down and
had examples held up to them, and suffered frequent lectures,
and
been so put upon in a moral way and in the matter of going slow
and being serious and bottling up slang, and so crowded in regard
to the matter of being proper and always and forever behaving,
that their lives have become a burden
to them, would not lag
behind pilgrims at such a time as this, and wink furtively, and
be
joyful, and commit other such crimes -- because it would not
occur
to them to do it. Otherwise they would. But they did do it, though
-- and it did them a world of good to hear the pilgrims abuse
each
other, too. We took an unworthy satisfaction in seeing them fall
out, now and then, because it showed that they were only poor
human people like us, after all.
So we all rode down to Magdala, while the
gnashing of teeth waxed and waned by turns, and harsh words
troubled the holy calm of Galilee.
Lest any man think I mean to be ill-natured when
I talk about our pilgrims as I have been talking, I wish to say
in
all sincerity that I do not. I would not listen to lectures from
men
I did not like and could not respect; and none of these can say
I
ever took their lectures unkindly, or was restive under the
infliction, or failed to try to profit by what they said to me.
They
are better men than I am; I can say that honestly; they are good
friends of mine, too -- and besides, if they did not wish to
be
stirred up occasionally in print, why in the mischief did they
travel
with me? They knew me. They knew my liberal way -- that I like
to give and take -- when it is for me to give and other people
to
take. When one of them threatened to leave me in Damascus when
I had the cholera, he had no real idea of doing it -- I know
his
passionate nature and the good impulses that underlie it. And
did
I not overhear Church, another pilgrim, say he did not care who
went or who staid, he would stand by me till I walked
out of Damascus on my own feet or was carried out in a coffin,
if
it was a year? And do I not include Church every time I abuse
the
pilgrims -- and would I be likely to speak ill-naturedly of him
? I
wish to stir them up and make them healthy; that is all.
We had left Capernaum behind us. It was only a
shapeless ruin. lt bore no semblance to a town, and had nothing
about it to suggest that it had ever been a town. But all desolate
and unpeopled as it was, it was illustrious ground. From it
sprang
that tree of Christianity whose broad arms overshadow so many
distant lands to-day. After Christ was tempted of the devil in
the
desert, he came here and began his teachings; and during the
three
or four years he lived afterward, this place was his home almost
altogether. He began to heal the sick, and his fame soon spread
so
widely that sufferers came from Syria and beyond Jordan, and
even from Jerusalem, several days' journey away, to be cured
of
their diseases. Here he healed the centurion's servant and Peter's
mother-in-law, and multitudes of the lame and the blind and
persons possessed of devils; and here, also, he raised Jairus's
daughter from the dead. He went into a ship with his disciples,
and
when they roused him from sleep in the midst of a storm, he
quieted the winds and lulled the troubled sea to rest with his
voice.
He passed over to the other side, a few miles away and relieved
two men of devils, which passed into some swine. After his return
he called Matthew from the receipt of customs, performed some
cures, and created scandal by eating with publicans and sinners.
Then he went healing and teaching through Galilee, and even
journeyed to Tyre and Sidon. He chose the twelve disciples, and
sent them abroad to preach the new gospel. He worked miracles
in Bethsaida and Chorazin -- villages two or three miles from
Capernaum. It was near one of them that the miraculous draft
of
fishes is supposed to have been taken, and it was in the desert
places near the other that he fed the thousands by the miracles
of
the loaves and fishes. He cursed them both, and Capernaum also,
for not repenting, after all the great works he had done in their
midst, and prophesied against them. They are all in ruins, now
--
which is gratifying to the pilgrims, for, as usual, they fit
the
eternal words of gods to the evanescent things of this earth;
Christ,
it is more probable, referred to the people, not their
shabby villages of wigwams: he said it would be sad for them
at
"the day of judgment" -- and what business have mud-hovels at
the
Day of Judgment? It would not affect the prophecy in the least
--
it would neither prove it or disprove it -- if these towns were
splendid cities now instead of the almost
vanished ruins they are.
Christ visited Magdala, which is near by Capernaum, and he also
visited Cesarea Philippi. He went up to his old home at Nazareth,
and saw his brothers Joses, and Judas, and James, and Simon --
those persons who, being own brothers to Jesus Christ, one would
expect to hear mentioned sometimes, yet who ever saw their
names in a newspaper or heard them from a pulpit? Who ever
inquires what manner of youths they were; and whether they slept
with Jesus, played with him and romped about him; quarreled with
him concerning toys and trifles; struck him in anger, not
suspecting what he was? Who ever wonders what they thought
when they saw him come back to Nazareth a celebrity, and looked
long at his unfamiliar face to make sure, and then said, "It
is Jesus?" Who wonders what passed in their minds
when they saw this brother, (who was only a brother
to them, however much he might be to others a mysterious
stranger who was a god and had stood face to face with God above
the clouds,) doing strange miracles with crowds of astonished
people for witnesses? Who wonders if the brothers of Jesus asked
him to come home with them, and said his mother and his sisters
were grieved at his long absence, and would be wild with delight
to see his face again? Who ever gives a thought to the sisters
of
Jesus at all? -- yet he had sisters; and memories of them must
have stolen into his mind often when he was ill-treated among
strangers; when he was homeless and said he had not where to
lay
his head; when all deserted him, even Peter, and he stood alone
among his enemies.
Christ did few miracles in Nazareth, and staid but
a little while. The people said, "This the Son of God!
Why, his father is nothing but a carpenter. We know the family.
We see them every day. Are not his brothers named so and so,
and his sisters so and so, and is not his mother the person they
call
Mary? This is absurd." He did not curse his home, but he shook
its dust from his feet and went away.
Capernaum lies close to the edge of the little sea,
in a small plain some five miles long and a mile or two wide,
which is mildly adorned with oleanders which look all the better
con-
trasted with the bald hills and the howling deserts which
surround them, but they are not as deliriously beautiful as the
books paint them. If one be calm and resolute he can look upon
their comeliness and live.
One of the most astonishing things that have yet
fallen under our observation is the exceedingly small portion
of the
earth from which sprang the now flourishing plant of Christianity.
The longest journey our Saviour ever performed was from here
to
Jerusalem -- about one hundred to one hundred and twenty miles.
The next longest was from here to Sidon -- say about sixty or
seventy miles. Instead of being wide apart -- as American
appreciation of distances would naturally suggest -- the places
made most particularly celebrated by the presence of Christ are
nearly all right here in full view, and within cannon-shot of
Capernaum. Leaving out two or three short journeys of the
Saviour, he spent his life, preached his gospel, and performed
his
miracles within a compass no larger than an ordinary county in
the
United States. It is as much as I can do to comprehend this
stupefying fact. How it wears a man out to have to read up a
hundred pages of history every two or three miles -- for verily
the
celebrated localities of Palestine occur that close together.
How
wearily, how bewilderingly they swarm about your path!
In due time we reached the ancient village of
Magdala.
Magdala is not a beautiful place. It is thoroughly Syrian,
and that is to say that it is thoroughly ugly, and cramped,
squalid, uncomfortable, and filthy--just the style of cities
that have adorned the country since Adam's time, as all writers
have labored hard to prove, and have succeeded. The streets
of Magdala are any where from three to six feet wide, and reeking
with uncleanliness. The houses are from five to seven feet high,
and all built upon one arbitrary plan--the ungraceful form of
a dry-goods box. The sides are daubed with a smooth white plaster,
and tastefully frescoed aloft and alow with disks of camel-dung
placed there to dry. This gives the edifice the romantic appearance
of having been riddled with cannon-balls, and imparts to it
a very warlike aspect. When the artist has arranged his materials
with an eye to just proportion--the small and the large flakes
in alternate rows, and separated by carefully-considered intervals--I
know of nothing more cheerful to look upon than a spirited Syrian
fresco. The flat, plastered roof is garnished by picturesque
stacks of fresco materials, which, having become thoroughly
dried and cured, are placed there where it will be convenient.
It is used for fuel. There is no timber of any consequence in
Palestine--none at all to waste upon fires--and neither are
there any mines of coal. If my description has been intelligible,
you will perceive, now, that a square, flat-roofed hovel, neatly
frescoed, with its wall-tops gallantly bastioned and turreted
with dried camel-refuse, gives to a landscape a feature that
is exceedingly festive and picturesque, especially if one is
careful to remember to stick in a cat wherever, about the premises,
there is room for a cat to sit. There are no windows to a Syrian
hut, and no chimneys. When I used to read that they let a bed-ridden
man down through the roof of a house in Capernaum to get him
into the presence of the Saviour, I generally had a three-story
brick in my mind, and marveled that they did not break his neck
with the strange experiment. I perceive now, however, that they
might have taken him by the heels and thrown him clear over
the house without discommoding him very much. Palestine is not
changed any since those days, in manners, customs, architecture,
or people.
As we rode into Magdala not a soul was visible. But the
ring of the horses' hoofs roused the stupid population, and
they all came trooping out--old men and old women, boys and
girls, the blind, the crazy, and the crippled, all in ragged,
soiled and scanty raiment, and all abject beggars by nature,
instinct and education. How the vermin-tortured vagabonds did
swarm! How they showed their scars and sores, and piteously
pointed to their maimed and crooked limbs, and begged with their
pleading eyes for charity! We had invoked a spirit we could
not lay. They hung to the horses's tails, clung to their manes
and the stirrups, closed in on every aide in scorn of dangerous
hoofs--and out of their infidel throats, with one accord, burst
an agonizing and most infernal chorus: "How-
ajji, bucksheesh! howajji, bucksheesh! howajji, bucksheesh! bucksheesh!
bucksheesh!" I never was in a storm like that before.
As we paid the bucksheesh out to sore-eyed children and
brown, buxom girls with repulsively tattooed lips and chins,
we filed through the town and by many an exquisite fresco, till
we came to a bramble-infested inclosure and a Roman-looking
ruin which had been the veritable dwelling of St. Mary Magdalene,
the friend and follower of Jesus. The guide believed it, and
so did I. I could not well do otherwise, with the house right
there before my eyes as plain as day. The pilgrims took down
portions of the front wall for specimens, as is their honored
custom, and then we departed.
We are camped in this place, now, just within the city
walls of Tiberias. We went into the town before nightfall and
looked at its people--we cared nothing about its houses. Its
people are best examined at a distance. They are particularly
uncomely Jews, Arabs, and negroes. Squalor and poverty are the
pride of Tiberias. The young women wear their dower strung upon
a strong wire that curves downward from the top of the head
to the jaw--Turkish silver coins which they have raked together
or inherited. Most of these maidens were not wealthy, but some
few had been very kindly dealt with by fortune. I saw heiresses
there worth, in their own right--worth, well, I suppose I might
venture to say, as much as nine dollars and a half. But such
cases are rare. When you come across one of these, she naturally
puts on airs. She will not ask for bucksheesh. She will not
even permit of undue familiarity. She assumes a crushing dignity
and goes on serenely practicing with her fine-tooth comb and
quoting poetry just the same as if you were not present at all.
Some people can not stand prosperity.
They say that the long-nosed, lanky, dyspeptic-looking
body-snatchers, with the indescribable hats on, and a long curl
dangling down in front of each ear, are the old, familiar, self-righteous
Pharisees we read of in the Scriptures. Verily, they look it.
Judging merely by their general style, and without
other evidence, one might easily suspect that self-righteousness
was their specialty.
From various authorities I have culled information concerning
Tiberias. It was built by Herod Antipas, the murderer of John
the Baptist, and named after the Emperor Tiberius. It is believed
that it stands upon the site of what must have been, ages ago,
a city of considerable architectural pretensions, judging by
the fine porphyry pillars that are scattered through Tiberias
and down the lake shore southward. These were fluted, once,
and yet, although the stone is about as hard as iron, the flutings
are almost worn away. These pillars are small, and doubtless
the edifices they adorned were distinguished more for elegance
than grandeur. This modern town--TIberias--is only mentioned
in the New Testament; never in the Old.
The Sanhedrim met here last, and for three hundred years
Tiberias was the metropolis of the Jews in Palestine. It is one
of the four holy cities of the Israelites, and is to them what
Mecca is to the Mohammedan and Jerusalem to the Christian. It
has been the abiding place of many learned and famous Jewish
rabbins. They lie buried here, and near them lie also twenty-five
thousand of their faith who traveled far to be near them while
they lived and lie with them when they died. The great Rabbi
Ben Israel spent three years here in the early part of the third
century. He is dead, now.
The celebrated Sea of Galilee is not so large a sea as
Lake Tahoe* by a good deal--it is just about two-thirds as large.
And when we come to speak of beauty, this sea is no more to
be compared to Tahoe than a meridian of longitude is to a rainbow.
The dim waters of this pool can not suggest the limpid brilliancy
of Tahoe; these low, shaven, yellow hillocks of rocks and sand,
so devoid of perspective, can not suggest the grand peaks that
compass Tahoe like a wall, and whose ribbed and chasmed fronts
are clad with stately pines that seem to grow small and smaller
as they climb, till one might fancy them reduced to weeds and
shrubs far upward, where they join the everlasting snows. Silence
and solitude brood over Tahoe; and silence and solitude brood
also over this lake of Genessaret. But the solitude of the one
is as cheerful and fascinating as the solitude of the other
is dismal and repellant.
In the early morning one watches the silent battle of
dawn and darkness upon the waters of Tahoe with a placid interest;
but when the shadows sulk away and one by one the hidden beauties
of the shore unfold themselves in the full splendor of noon;
when the still surface is belted like a rainbow with broad bars
of blue and green and white, half the distance from circumference
to centre; when, in the lazy summer afternoon, he lies in a
boat, far out to where the dead blue of the deep water begins,
and smokes the pipe of peace and idly winks at the
distant crags and patches of snow from under his cap-brim; when
the boat drifts shoreward to the white water, and he lolls over
the gunwale and gazes by the hour down through the crystal depths
and notes the colors of the pebbles and reviews the finny armies
gliding in procession a hundred feet below; when at night he
sees moon and stars, mountain ridges feathered with pines, jutting
white capes, bold promontories, grand sweeps of rugged scenery
topped with bald, glimmering peaks, all magnificently pictured
in the polished mirror of the lake, in richest, softest detail,
the tranquil interest that was born with the morning deepens
and deepens, by sure degrees, till it culminates at last in
resistless fascination!
It is solitude, for birds and squirrels on the shore and
fishes in the water are all the creatures that are near to make
it otherwise, but it is not the sort of solitude to make one
dreary. Come to Galilee for that. If these unpeopled deserts,
these rusty mounds of barrenness, that never, never, never do
shake the glare from their harsh outlines, and fade and faint
into vague perspective; that melancholy ruin of Capernaum; this
stupid village of Tiberias, slumbering under its six funereal
plumes of palms; yonder desolate declivity where the swine of
the miracle ran down into the sea, and doubtless thought it
was better to swallow a devil or two and get drowned into the
bargain than have to live longer in such a place; this cloudless,
blistering sky; this solemn, sailless, tintless lake, reposing
within its rim of yellow hills and low, steep banks, and looking
just as expressionless and unpoetical (when we leave its sublime
history out of the question,) as any metropolitan reservoir
in Christendom--if these things are not food for rock me to
sleep, mother, none exist, I think.
But I should not offer the evidence for the prosecution
and leave the defense unheard. Wm. C. Grimes deposes as follows:--
It is an ingeniously written description, and well calculated
to deceive. But if the paint and the ribbons and the flowers
be stripped from it, a skeleton will be found beneath.
So stripped, there remains a lake six miles wide and neutral
in color; with steep green banks, unrelieved by shrubbery; at
one end bare, unsightly rocks, with (almost invisible) holes
in them of no consequence to the picture; eastward, " wild and
desolate mountains;" (low, desolate hills, he should have said;)
in the north, a mountain called Hermon, with snow on it; peculiarity
of the picture, "calmness;" its prominent feature, one tree.
No ingenuity could make such a picture beautiful--to one's
actual vision.
I claim the right to correct misstatements, and have so
corrected the color of the water in the above recapitulation.
The waters of Genessaret are of an exceedingly mild blue, even
from a high elevation and a distance of five miles. Close at
hand (the witness was sailing on the lake,) it is hardly proper
to call them blue at all, much less "deep" blue. I wish to state,
also, not as a correction, but as matter of opinion, that Mount
Hermon is not a striking or picturesque mountain by any means,
being too near the height of its immediate neigh-
bors to be so. That is all. I do not object to the witness dragging
a mountain forty-five miles to help the scenery under consideration,
because it is entirely proper to do it, and besides, the picture
needs it.
"C. W. E.," (of " Life in the Holy Land,") deposes as
follows:--
This is not an ingenious picture. It is the worst I ever
saw. It describes in elaborate detail what it terms a "terrestrial
paradise," and closes with the startling information that this
paradise is "a scene of desolation and misery."
I have given two fair, average specimens of the character
of the testimony offered by the majority of the writers who
visit this region. One says, "Of the beauty of the scene I can
not say enough," and then proceeds to cover up with a woof of
glittering sentences a thing which, when stripped for inspection,
proves to be only an unobtrusive basin of water, some mountainous
desolation, and one tree. The other, after a conscientious effort
to build a terrestrial paradise out of the same materials, with
the addition of a "grave and stately stork," spoils it all by
blundering upon the ghastly truth at the last.
Nearly every book concerning Galilee and its lake describes
the scenery as beautiful. No--not always so straightforward
as that. Sometimes the impression intentionally conveyed
is that it is beautiful, at the same time that the author is
careful
not to say that it is, in plain Saxon. But a careful analysis
of these descriptions will show that the materials of which
they are formed are not individually beautiful and can not be
wrought into combinations that are beautiful. The veneration
and the affection which some of these men felt for the scenes
they were speaking of, heated their fancies and biased their
judgment; but the pleasant falsities they wrote were full of
honest sincerity, at any rate. Others wrote as they did, because
they feared it would be unpopular to write otherwise. Others
were hypocrites and deliberately meant to deceive. Any of them
would say in a moment, if asked, that it was always right
and always best to tell the truth. They would say that,
at any rate, if they did not perceive the drift of the question.
But why should not the truth be spoken of this region?
Is the truth harmful? Has it ever needed to hide its face? God
made the Sea of Galilee and its surroundings as they are. Is
it the province of Mr. Grimes to improve upon the work?
I am sure, from the tenor of books I have read, that many
who have visited this land in years gone by, were Presbyterians,
and came seeking evidences in support of their particular creed;
they found a Presbyterian Palestine, and they had already made
up their minds to find no other, though possibly they did not
know it, being blinded by their zeal. Others were Baptists,
seeking Baptist evidences and a Baptist Palestine. Others were
Catholics, Methodists, Episcopalians, seeking evidences indorsing
their several creeds, and a Catholic, a Methodist, an Episcopalian
Palestine. Honest as these men's intentions may have been, they
were full of partialities and prejudices, they entered the country
with their verdicts already prepared, and they could no more
write dispassionately and impartially about it than they could
about their own wives and children. Our pilgrims have brought
their verdicts with them. They have shown it in their
conversation ever since we left Beirout. I can almost tell,
in set phrase, what they will say when they see Tabor, Nazareth,
Jericho and Jerusalem--because I have the books they will
"smouch" their ideas from. These authors write pictures
and frame rhapsodies, and
lesser men follow and see with the author's eyes instead of their
own, and speak with his tongue. What the pilgrims said at Cesarea
Philippi surprised me with its wisdom. I found it afterwards
in Robinson. What they said when Genessaret burst upon their
vision, charmed me with its grace. I find it in Mr. Thompson's
"Land and the Book." They have spoken often, in happily worded
language which never varied, of how they mean to lay their weary
heads upon a stone at Bethel, as Jacob did, and close their
dim eyes, and dream, perchance, of angels descending out of
heaven on a ladder. It was very pretty. But I have recognized
the weary head and the dim eyes, finally. They borrowed the
idea--and the words--and the construction--and the punctuation--from
Grimes. The pilgrims will tell of Palestine, when they get home,
not as it appeared to them, but as it appeared to Thompson
and Robinson and Grimes--with the tints varied to suit each
pilgrim's creed.
Pilgrims, sinners and Arabs are all abed, now, and the
camp is still. Labor in loneliness is irksome. Since I made
my last few notes, I have been sitting outside the tent for
half an hour. Night is the time to see Galilee. Genessaret under
these lustrous stars has nothing repulsive about it. Genessaret
with the glittering reflections of the constellations flecking
its surface, almost makes me regret that I ever saw the rude
glare of the day upon it. Its history and its associations are
its chiefest charm, in any eyes, and the spells they weave are
feeble in the searching light of the sun. Then, we scarcely
feel the fetters. Our thoughts wander constantly to the practical
concerns of life, and refuse to dwell upon things that seem
vague and unreal. But when the day is done, even the most unimpressible
must yield to the dreamy influences of this tranquil starlight.
The old traditions of the place steal upon his memory and haunt
his reveries, and then his fancy clothes all sights and sounds
with the supernatural. In the lapping of the waves upon the
beach, he hears the dip of ghostly oars; in the secret noises
of the night he hears spirit voices; in the soft sweep of the
breeze, the rush of invisible wings. Phan-
tom ships are on the sea, the dead of twenty centuries come forth
from the tombs, and in the dirges of the night wind the songs
of old forgotten ages find utterance again.
In the starlight, Galilee has no boundaries but the broad
compass of the heavens, and is a theatre meet for great events;
meet for the birth of a religion able to save a world; and meet
for the stately Figure appointed to stand upon its stage and
proclaim its high decrees. But in the sunlight, one says: Is
it for the deeds which were done and the words which were spoken
in this little acre of rocks and sand eighteen centuries gone,
that the bells are ringing to-day in the remote islands of the
sea and far and wide over continents that clasp the circumference
of the huge globe?
One can comprehend it only when night has hidden all incongruities
and created a theatre proper for so grand a drama.
We took another swim in the Sea of Galilee at twilight
yesterday, and another at sunrise this morning. We
have not sailed, but three swims are equal to a sail, are
they
not? There were plenty of fish visible in the water, but
we
have no outside aids in this pilgrimage but "Tent Life in
the
Holy Land," "The Land and the Book," and other literature
of like description--no fishing-tackle. There were no fish
to
be had in the village of Tiberias. True, we saw two or three
vagabonds mending their nets, but never trying to catch any
thing with them.
We did not go to the ancient warm baths two miles below
Tiberias. I had no desire in the world to go there. This
seemed a little strange, and prompted me to try to discover
what the cause of this unreasonable indifference was. It
turned
out to be simply because Pliny mentions them. I have conceived
a sort of unwarrantable
unfriendliness toward Pliny
and St. Paul, because it seems as if I can never ferret out
a
place that I can have to myself. It always and eternally
transpires that St. Paul has been to that place, and Pliny
has
"mentioned" it.
In the early morning we mounted and started. And then
a
weird apparition marched forth at the head of the procession-
a pirate, I thought, if ever a pirate dwelt upon land. It
was
a tall Arab, as swarthy as an Indian; young-say thirty years
of age. On his head he had closely bound a gorgeous yellow
and red striped silk scarf, whose ends, lavishly fringed
with
tassels, hung down between his shoulders and dallied with
the
wind. From his neck to his knees, in ample folds, a robe
swept down that was a very star-spangled banner of curved
and sinuous bars of black and white. Out of his back, somewhere,
apparently, the long stem of
a chibouk projected, and
reached far above his right shoulder. Athwart his back, diagonally,
and extending high above
his left shoulder, was an
Arab gum of Saladin's time, that was splendid with silver
plating from stock clear up to the end of its measureless
stretch
of barrel. About his waist was bound many and many a yard
of elaborately figured but sadly tarnished stuff that came
from
sumptuous Persia, and among the baggy folds in front the
sunbeams glinted from a formidable
battery of old brass-mounted
horse-pistols and the gilded hilts of blood-thirsty knives.
There were holsters for more pistols appended to the wonderful
stack of long-haired goat-skins
and Persian carpets, which
the man had been taught to regard in the light of a saddle;
and down among the pendulous rank of vast tassels that
swung from that saddle, and clanging against the iron shovel
of a stirrup that propped the warrior's knees up toward his
chin, was a crooked, silver-clad scimitar of such awful dimensions
and such implacable
expression that no man might hope
to look upon it and not shudder. The fringed and bedizened
prince whose privilege it is to ride the pony and lead the
elephant into a country village is poor and naked compared
to
this chaos of paraphernalia, and the happy vanity of the
one
is the very poverty of satisfaction compared to the magestic
serenity, the overwhelming complacency of the other.
"Who is this? What is this?" That was the trembling
inquiry all down the line.
"Our guard! From Galilee to the birthplace of the Savior,
the country is infested with fierce Bedouins, whose sole
happiness it is, in this life, to cut and stab and mangle and
murder
unoffending Christians. Allah be with us!"
"Then hire a regiment! Would you send us out among
these desperate hordes, with no salvation in our utmost need
but this old turret?"
The dragoman laughed-not at the facetiousness of the simile,
for verily, that guide or that courier or that dragoman
never yet lived upon earth who had in him the faintest
appreciation of a joke, even though that joke were so broad and
so
ponderous that if it fell on him it would flatten him out
like a
postage stamp-the dragoman laughed, and then, emboldened
by some thought that was in his brain, no doubt, proceeded
to
extremities and winked.
In straits like these, when a man laughs, it is encouraging
when he winks, it is positively reassuring. He finally inti-
mated that one guard would be sufflcient to protect us, but
that
that one was an absolute necessity. It was because of the
moral weight his awful panoply would have with the Bedouins.
Then I said we didn't want any guard at all. If one fantastic
vagabond could protect eight armed Christians and a pack
of
Arab servants from all harm, surely that detachment could
protect themselves. He shook his head doubtfully. Then I
said, just think of how it looks-think cf now it would read,
to self-reliant Americans, that we went sneaking through
this
deserted wilderness under the protection of this masquerading
Arab, who would break his neck getting out of the country
if a man that was a man ever started after him. It
was a
mean, low, degrading position. Why were we ever told to
bring navy revolvers with us if we had to be protected at
last
by this infamous star-spangled scum of the desert? These
appeals were vain-the dragoman only
smiled and shook his
head.
I rode to the front and struck up an acquaintance with
King
Solomon-in-all-his-glory, and got him to show me his lingering
eternity of a gun. It had a rusty dint lock; it was ringed
and barred and plated with silver from end to end, but it
was
as desperately out of the perpendicular as are the billiard
cues
of '49 that one finds yet in service in the ancient mining
camps of California. The muzzle was eaten by the rust of
centuries into a ragged filigree-work, like the end of a
burntout stove-pipe. I shut one eye and
peered within--it was
flaked with iron rust like an old steamboat boiler. I borrowed
the ponderous pistols and snapped them. They were rusty in-
side, too-had not been loaded for a generation. I went back,
full of encouragement, and reported to the guide, and asked
him to discharge this dismantled fortress. It came out, then.
This fellow was a retainer of the Sheik of Tiberias. He was
a source of Government revenue. He was to the Empire of
Tiberias what the customs are to America. The Sheik imposed guards
upon travelers and charged
them for it. It is a
lucrative source of emolument, and sometimes brings into
the
national treasury as much as thirty-five or forty dollars
a year.
I knew the warrior's secret now; I knew the hollow vanity
of his rusty trumpery, and despised his asinine complacency.
I told on him, and with reckless daring the cavalcade
straight ahead into the perilous solitudes of the desert,
and
scorned his frantic warnings of the mutilation and death
that
hovered about them on every side.
Arrived at an elevation of twelve hundred feet above the
lake, (I ought to mention that the lake lies six hundred
feet
below the level of the Mediterranean-no traveler ever neglects
to flourish that fragment of news in his letters,) as bald
and
unthrilling a panorama as any land can afford, perhaps, was
spread out before us. Yet it was so crowded with historical
interest, that if all the pages that have been written about
it
were spread upon its surface, they would flag it from horizon
to horizon like a pavement. Among the localities comprised
in this view, were Mount Hermon; the hills that border
Ceasurea Philippi, Dan, the Sources of the Jordan and the
Waters
of Merom; Tiberias; the Sea of Galilee; Joseph's Pit; Capernaum;
Bethsaida; the supposed
scenes of the Sermon on the
Mount, the feeding of the multitudes and the miraculous
draught of fishes; the declivity down which the swine ran
to
the sea; the entrance and the exit of the Jordan; Safed,
"the
city set upon a hill," one of the four holy cities of the
Jews,
and the place where they believe the real Messiah will appear
when he comes to redeem the world; part of the battle-field
of Hattin, where the knightly Crusaders fought their last
fight,
and in a blaze of glory passed from the stage and ended their
splendid career forever; Mount Tabor, the traditional scene
of
the Lord's Transfiguration. And down toward the southeast
lay a landscape that suggested to my mind a quotation (imperfectly
remembered, no doubt
We jogged along peacefully over the great caravan route
from Damascus to Jerusalem and Egypt, past Lubia and other
Syrian hamlets, perched, in the unvarying style, upon the
summit of steep mounds and hills, and
fenced round about with
giant cactuses, (the sign of worthless land,) with prickly
pears
upon them like hams, and came at last to the battle-field
of
Hattin.
It is a grand, irregular plateau, and looks as if it might
have
been created for a battle-field. Here the peerless Saladin
met
the Christian host some seven hundred years ago, and broke
their power in Palestine for all time to come. There had
long
been a truce between the opposing forces, but according to
the
Guide-Book, Raynauld of Chatillon, Lord of Kerak, broke it
by plundering a Damascus caravan, and refusing to give up
either the merchants or their goods when Saladin demanded
them. This conduct of an insolent petty chieftain stung the
Sultan to the quick, and he swore that he would slaughter
Raynauld with his own hand, no matter how, or when, or
where he found him. Both armies prepared for war. Under
the weak King of Jerusalem was the very flower of the Christian
chivalry. He foolishly
compelled them to undergo a long,
exhausting march, in the scorching sun, and then, without
water or other refreshment, ordered them to encamp in this
open plain. The splendidly mounted masses of Moslem soldiers
swept round the north end of Genessaret, burning and destroying
as they came, and pitched
their camp in front of the
opposing lines. At dawn the terrific fight began. Surrounded
on
all sides by the Sultan's swarming battalions, the Christian
Knights fought on without a hope for their lives. They fought
with desperate valor, but to no purpose; the odds of heat
and
numbers, and consuming thirst, were too great against them.
Towards the middle of the day the bravest of their band cut
their way through the Moslem ranks and gained the summit
of a little hill, and there, hour after hour, they closed
around
the banner of the Cross, and beat back the charging squadrons
of the enemy.
But the doom of the Christian power was sealed. Sunset
found Salad in Lord of Palestine, the Christian chivalry
strewn
in heaps upon the field, and the King of Jerusalem, the Grand:
faster of the Templar, and Raynauld of Chatillon, captives
in the Sultan's tent. Salad in treated two of the prisoners
with
princely courtesy, and ordered refreshments to be set before
them. When the King handed an iced Sherbet to Chatillon,
the Sultan said," It is thou that givest it to him, not I."
He
remembered his oath, and slaughtered the hapless Knight of
Chatillon with his own hand.
It was hard to realize that this silent plain had once
resounded with martial music and trembled to the tramp of
armed men. It was hard to people this solitude with rushing
columns of cavalry, and stir its torpid pulses with the shouts
of victors, the shrieks of the wounded, and the flash of
banner
and steel above the surging billows of war. A desolation
is
here that not even imagination can grace with the pomp of
life
and action.
We reached Tabor safely, and considerably in advance
of that old iron-clad swindle of a guard. We never saw a
human being on the whole route, much less lawless hordes
of
Bedouins. Tabor stands solitary and alone, a giant sentinel
above the Plain of Esdraelon. It rises some fourteen hundred
feet above the surrounding level, a green, wooden cone, symmetrical
and full of grace--a prominent landmark, and one
that is exceedingly pleasant to eyes surfeited with the
repulsive monotony of desert Syria. We climbed the steep path
to
its summit, through breezy glades of thorn and oak. The view
presented from its highest peak was almost beautiful. Below,
was the broad, level plain of Esdraelon, checkered with fields
like a chess-board, and full as smooth and level, seemingly;
dotted about its borders with white, compact villages, and
faintly penciled, far and near, with the curving lines of
roads
and trails. When it is robed in the fresh verdure of spring,
it
must form a charming picture, even by itself. Skirting its
southern border rises "Little Hermon," over whose summit
a
glimpse of Gilboa is caught. Nain, famous for the raising of
the widow's son, and Endor, as famous for the performances
of her witch are in view. To the eastward lies the Valley
of
the Jordan and beyond it the mountains of Gilead. Westward
is Mount Carmel. Hermon in the north--the table-lands of
Bashan-Safed, the holy city, gleaming white upon a tall spur
of the mountains of Lebanon--a steel-blue corner of the Sea
of Galilee--saddle-peaked Hattin, traditional "Mount of Beatitudes
" and mute witness
brave fights of the Crusading host for Holy Cross--
these fill up the picture.
To glance at the salient features of this landscape
through the picturesque
framework of a ragged and ruined stone window--arch of the
time of Christ, thus hiding from sight all that is unattractive,
is to secure to yourself a pleasure worth climbing the mountain
to enjoy. One must stand on his
head to get the best effect in a fine sunset, and set a landscape
in a bold, strong
framework that is very close at hand, to bring out all its
beauty. One learns this latter truth
never more to forget it, in that
mimic land of enchantment, the wonderful garden of my lord
the Count Pallavicini, near Genoa. You go wandering for
hours among hills and wooded glens, artfully contrived to
leave the impression that Nature shaped them and not man;
following winding paths and coming suddenly upon leaping
cascades and rustic bridges; finding sylvan lakes where you
expected them not; loitering through battered mediæval
castles in miniature that seem
hoary with age and yet were built
a dozen years ago; meditating over ancient crumbling tombs,
whose marble columns were marred and broken purposely by
the modern artist that made them; stumbling unawares upon
toy palaces, wrought of rare and costly materials, and again
upon a peasant's hut, whose dilapidated furniture would never
suggest that it was made so to order; sweeping round and
round in the midst of a forest on an enchanted wooden horse
that is moved by some invisible agency; traversing Roman
roads and passing under majestic triumphal arches; resting
in
quaint bowers where unseen spirits discharge jets of water
on
you from every possible direction, and where even the flowers
you touch assail you with a shower; boating on a subterranean
lake among caverns and arches royally draped with clustering
stalactites, and passing out into open day upon another lake,
which is bordered with sloping banks of grass and gay with
patrician barges that swim at anchor in the shadow of a miniature
marble temple that rises out
of the clear water and glasses its white statues, its rich capitals
and fluted columns
in the tranquil depths. So, from marvel to marvel you have
drifted on, thinking all the time that the one last seen
must be
the chiefest. And, verily, the chiefest wonder is reserved
until
the last, but you do not see it until you step ashore, and
passing through a wilderness of rare
flowers, collected from every
corner of the earth, you stand at the door of one more mimic
temple. Right in this place the artist taxed his genius to
the
utmost, and fairly opened the gates of fairy land. You look
through an unpretending pane of glass, stained yellow - the
first thing you see is a mass of quivering foliage, ten short
steps
before you, in the midst of which is a ragged opening like
a
gateway-a thing that is common enough in nature, and not
apt to excite suspicions of a deep human design-and above
the bottom of the gateway, project, in the most careless
way!
a few broad tropic leaves and brilliant flowers. All of
a sudden, through this bright, bold
gateway, you catch a glimpse
of the faintest, softest, richest picture that ever graced
the
dream of a dying Saint, since John saw the New Jerusalem
glimmering above the clouds of Heaven. A broad sweep of
sea, flecked with careening sails; a sharp, jutting cape,
and a
lofty lighthouse on it; a sloping lawn behind it; beyond,
a
portion of the old "city of palaces," with its parks and
hills
and stately mansions; beyond these, a prodigious mountain,
with its strong outlines sharply cut against ocean and sky;
and
over all, vagrant shreds and flakes of cloud, floating in
a sea
of gold. The ocean is gold, the city is gold, the meadow,
the
mountain, the sky--every thing is golden-rich, and mellow,
and dreamy as a vision of Paradise. No artist could put upon
canvas, its entrancing beauty, and yet, without the yellow
glass, and the carefully contrived accident of a framework
that
cast it into enchanted distance and shut out from it all
unattractive features, it was not a picture to fall into ecstacies
over.
Such is life, and the trail of the serpent is over us all.
There is nothing for it now but to come back to old Tabor,
though the subject is tiresome enough, and I can not stick
to
it for wandering off to scenes that are pleasanter to remember.
I think I will skip, any how. There is nothing about Tabor
(except we concede that it was the scene of the Transfiguration,)
but some gray old ruins,
stacked up there in all ages of
the world from the days of stout Gideon and parties that
flourished thirty centuries ago to the fresh yesterday of
Crusading times. It has its Greek Convent, and the coffee there
is good, but never a splinter of the true cross or bone of
a hallowed saint to arrest the idle
thoughts of worldlings and turn
them into graver channels. Catholic church is nothing to
me that has no relics.
The plain of Esdraelon--" the battle-field of the nations
"--
only sets one to dreaming of Joshua, and Benhadad, and Saul,
and Gideon; Tamerlane, Tancred, Cœur de Lion, and Salad
in:
the warrior Kings of Persia, Egypt's heroes, and Napoleon--
for they all fought here. If the magic of the moonlight could
summon from the graves of forgotten centuries and many lands
the countless myriads that have battled on this wide, farreaching
floor, and array them in the
thousand strange
Costumes of their hundred nationalities, and send the vast host
sweeping down the plain, splendid with plumes and banners
and glittering lances, I could stay here an age to see the
phantom
pageant. But the magic of the moonlight is a vanity and
a fraud; and whoso putteth his trust in it shall suffer sorrow
and disappointment.
Down at the foot of Tabor, and just at the edge of the
storied Plain of Esdraelon, is the insignificant village
of Deburieh,
where Deborah, prophetess of Israel, lived. It is just like
Magdala.
Two hours from Tabor to Nazareth -- and as it was an uncommonly
narrow, crooked trail, we necessarily met all the camel trains
and
jackass caravans between Jericho and Jacksonville in that particular
place and nowhere else. The donkeys do not matter so much, because
they
are so small that you can jump your horse over them if he is
an animal of
spirit,
but a camel is not jumpable. A camel is as tall as any ordinary
dwelling-house in Syria -- which is to say a camel is from one
to two,
and sometimes nearly three feet taller than a good-sized man.
In this
part of the country his load is oftenest in the shape of colossal
sacks
-- one on each side. He and his cargo take up as much room as
a carriage.
Think of meeting this style of obstruction in a narrow trail.
The camel
would not turn out for a king. He stalks serenely along, bringing
his
cushioned stilts forward with the long, regular swing of a pendulum,
and
whatever is in the way must get out of the way peaceably, or
be wiped out
forcibly by the bulky sacks. It was a tiresome ride to us, and
perfectly
exhausting to the horses. We were compelled to jump over upwards
of
eighteen hundred donkeys, and only one person in the party was
unseated
less than sixty times by the camels. This seems like a powerful
statement, but the poet has said, " Things are not what they
seem." I can
not think of any thing, now, more certain to make one shudder,
than to
have a soft-footed camel sneak up behind him and touch him on
the ear
with its cold, flabby under-lip. A camel did this for one of
the boys,
who was drooping over his saddle in a brown study. He glanced
up and saw
the majestic apparition hovering above him, and made frantic
efforts to
get out of the way, but the camel reached out and bit him on
the shoulder
before he accomplished it. This was the only pleasant incident
of the
journey.
At Nazareth we camped in an olive grove near the Virgin
Mary's
fountain, and that wonderful Arab "guard" came to collect some
bucksheesh for his "services" in following us from Tiberias and
warding
off invisible dangers with the terrors of his armament. The dragoman
had
paid his master, but that counted as nothing -- if you hire a
man to
sneeze for you, here, and another man chooses to help him, you
have got
to pay both. They do nothing whatever without pay. How it must
have
surprised these people to hear the way of salvation offered to
them "
without money and without price." If the manners, the
people or
the customs of this country have changed since
the Saviour's time, the figures and metaphors of the Bible are
not the
evidences to prove it by.
We entered the great Latin Convent which is built over
the
traditional dwelling-place of the Holy Family. We went down a
flight of
fifteen steps below the ground level, and stood in a small chapel
tricked
out with tapestry hangings, silver lamps, and oil paintings.
A spot
marked by a cross, in the marble floor, under the altar, was
exhibited as
the place made forever holy by the feet of the Virgin when she
stood up
to receive the message of the angel. So simple, so unpretending
a
locality, to be the scene of so mighty an event! The very scene
of the
Annunciation -- an event which has been commemorated by splendid
shrines
and august temples all over the civilized world, and one which
the
princes of art have made it their loftiest ambition to picture
worthily
on their canvas ; a spot whose history is familiar to the very
children
of every house, and city, and obscure hamlet of the furthest
lands of
Christendom ; a spot which myriads of men would toil across the
breadth
of a world to see, would consider it a priceless privilege to
look upon.
It was easy to think these thoughts. But it was not easy to bring
myself
up to the magnitude of the situation. I could sit off several
thousand
miles and imagine the angel appearing, with shadowy wings and
lustrous
countenance, and note the glory that streamed downward upon the
Virgin's
head while the message from the Throne of God fell upon her ears
-- any
one can do that, beyond the ocean, but few can do it here. I
saw the
little recess from which the angel stepped, but could not fill
its void.
The angels that I know are creatures of unstable fancy -- they
will not
fit in niches of substantial stone. Imagination labors best in
distant
fields. I doubt if any man can stand in the Grotto of the Annunciation
and people with the phantom images of his mind its too tangible
walls of
stone.
They showed us a broken granite pillar, depending from
the roof,
which they said was hacked in two by the Moslem conquerors of
Nazareth,
in the vain hope of pulling down the sanctuary. But the pillar
remained
miraculously suspended
in the air, and, unsupported itself, supported then and still
supports
the roof. By dividing this statement up among eight, it was found
not
difficult to believe it.
These gifted Latin monks never do any thing by halves.
If they
were to show you the Brazen Serpent that was elevated in the
wilderness,
you could depend upon it that they had on hand the pole it was
elevated
on also, and even the hole it stood in. They have got the "Grotto
" of
the Annunciation here; and just as convenient to it as one's
throat is to
his mouth, they have also the Virgin's Kitchen, and even her
sitting-room, where she and Joseph watched the infant Saviour
play with
Hebrew toys eighteen hundred years ago. All under one roof,
and all
clean, spacious, comfortable "grottoes." It seems curious that
personages
intimately connected with the Holy Family always lived in grottoes
-- in
Nazareth, in Bethlehem, in imperial Ephesus -- and yet nobody
else in
their day and generation thought of doing any thing of the kind.
If they
ever did, their grottoes are all gone, and I suppose we ought
to wonder
at the peculiar marvel of the preservation of these I speak of
When the
Virgin fled from Herod's wrath, she hid in a grotto in Bethlehem,
and the
same is there to this day. The slaughter of the innocents in
Bethlehem
was done in a grotto ; the Saviour was born in a grotto -- both
are shown
to pilgrims yet. It is exceedingly strange that these tremendous
events
all happened in grottoes -- and exceedingly fortunate, likewise,
because
the strongest houses must crumble to ruin in time, but a grotto
in the
diving rock will last forever. It is an imposture -- this grotto
stuff --
but it is one that all men ought to thank the Catholics for.
Wherever
they ferret out a lost locality made holy by some Scriptural
event, they
straightway build a massive -- almost imperishable -- church
there, and
preserve the memory of that locality for the gratification of
future
generations. If it had been left to Protestants to do this most
worthy
work, we would not even know where Jerusalem is to-day, and the
man who
could go and put his finger on Nazareth would be too wise for
this world.
The world owes the Catholics its good will even for the happy
rascality
of hewing out these bogus grottoes in the rock ; for it is infinitely
more satisfactory to look at a grotto, where people have faithfully
believed for centuries that the Virgin once lived, than to have
to
imagine a dwelling-place for her somewhere, any where, nowhere,
loose and
at large all over this town of Nazareth. There is too large a
scope of
country. The imagination can not work. There is no one particular
spot to
chain your eye, rivet your interest, and make you think. The
memory of
the Pilgrims can not perish while Plymouth Rock remains to us.
The old
monks are wise. They know how to drive a stake through a pleasant
tradition that will hold it to its place forever.
We visited the places where Jesus worked for fifteen years
as a
carpenter, and where he attempted to teach in the synagogue and
was
driven out by a mob. Catholic chapels stand upon these sites
and protect
the little fragments of the ancient walls which remain. Our pilgrims
broke off specimens. We visited, also, a new chapel, in the midst
of the
town, which is built around a boulder some twelve feet long by
four feet
thick ; the priests discovered, a few years ago, that the disciples
had
sat upon this rock to rest, once, when they had walked up from
Capernaum.
They hastened to preserve the relic. Relics are very good property.
Travelers are expected to pay for seeing them, and they do it
cheerfully.
We like the idea. One's conscience can never be the worse for
the
knowledge that he has paid his way like a man. Our pilgrims would
have
liked very well to get out their lampblack and stencil-plates
and paint
their names on that rock, together with the names of the villages
they
hail from in America, but the priests permit nothing of that
kind. To
speak the strict truth, however, our party seldom offend in that
way,
though we have men in the ship who never lose an opportunity
to do it.
Our pilgrims' chief sin is their lust for "specimens." I suppose
that by
this time they know the dimensions of that rock to an inch, and
its
weight to a ton ; and I do not hesitate to charge that they will
go back
there to-night and try to carry it off.
This "Fountain of the Virgin " is the one which tradition
says Mary used to get water from, twenty times a day, when she
was a
girl, and bear it away in a jar upon her head. The water streams
through
faucets in the face of a wall of ancient masonry which stands
removed
from the houses of the village. The young girls of Nazareth still
collect
about it by the dozen and keep up a riotous laughter and sky-larking.
The
Nazarene girls are homely. Some of them have large, lustrous
eyes, but
none of them have pretty faces. These girls wear a single garment,
usually, and it is loose, shapeless, of undecided color ; it
is generally
out of repair, too. They wear, from crown to jaw, curious strings
of old
coins, after the manner of the belles of Tiberias, and brass
jewelry upon
their wrists and in their ears. They wear no shoes and stockings.
They
are the most human girls we have found in the country yet, and
the best
natured. But there is no question that these picturesque maidens
sadly
lack comeliness.
A pilgrim -- the "Enthusiast " -- said: "See that tall,
graceful
girl! look at the Madonna-like beauty of her countenance!"
Another pilgrim came along presently and said: "Observe
that tall,
graceful girl ; what queenly Madonna-like gracefulness of beauty
is in
her countenance."
I said: "She is not tall, she is short ; she is not beautiful,
she
is homely ; she is graceful
enough, I grant, but she is rather boisterous."
The third and last pilgrim moved by, before long, and
he said:
"Ah, what a tall, graceful girl! what Madonna-like gracefulness
of
queenly beauty!"
The verdicts were all in. It was time, now, to look up
the
authorities for all these opinions. I found this paragraph, which
follows. Written by whom? Wm. C. Grimes:
That is the kind of gruel which has been served out from
Palestine
for ages. Commend me to Fennimore Cooper to find beauty in the
Indians,
and to Grimes to find it in the Arabs. Arab men are often fine
looking,
but Arab women are not. We can all believe that the Virgin Mary
was
beautiful ; it is not natural to think otherwise ; but does it
follow
that it is our duty to find beauty in these present women of
Nazareth?
I love to quote from Grimes, because he is so dramatic.
And
because he is so romantic. And because he seems to care but little
whether he tells the truth or not, so he scares the reader or
excites his
envy or his admiration.
He went through this peaceful land with one hand forever
on his
revolver, and the other on his pocket-handkerchief. Always,
when he was
not on the point of crying over a holy place, he was on the point
of
killing an Arab. More surprising things happened to him in Palestine
than
ever happened to any traveler here or elsewhere since Munchausen
died.
At Beitin, where nobody had interfered with him, he crept
out of
his tent at dead of night and shot at what he took to be an Arab
lying on
a rock, some distance away, planning evil. The ball killed a
wolf. Just
before he fired, he makes a dramatic picture of himself -- as
usual, to
scare the reader:
Reckless creature!
Riding toward Genessaret, they saw two Bedouins, and "
we looked
to our pistols and loosened them quietly in our shawls," etc.
Always
cool.
In Samaria, he charged up a hill, in the face of a volley
of
stones ; he fired into the crowd of men who threw them. He says:
" At Beitin he gave his whole band of Arab muleteers a piece
of his
mind, and then --
Perfectly fearless, this man.
He rode down the perpendicular path in the rocks, from
the
Castle of Banias to the oak grove, at a flying gallop, his horse
striding
"thirty feet " at every bound. I stand prepared to bring thirty
reliable
witnesses to prove that Putnam's famous feat at Horseneck was
insignificant compared to this.
Behold him -- always theatrical -- looking at Jerusalem
-- this
time, by an oversight, with his hand off his pistol for once.
If Latin monks and Arabs cried, I know to a moral certainty
that
the horses cried also, and so the picture is complete.
But when necessity demanded, he could be firm as adamant.
In the
Lebanon Valley an Arab youth -- a Christian; he is particular
to explain
that Mohammedans do not steal -- robbed him of a paltry ten dollars'
worth of powder and shot. He convicted him before a sheik and
looked on
while he was punished by the terrible bastinado. Hear him:
But not he! The punishment was "suspended," at the fifteenth
blow to hear the confession. Then Grimes and his party rode
away, and
left the entire Christian family to be fined and as severely
punished as
the Mohammedan sheik should deem proper.
" As I mounted, Yusef once
more begged
me to interfere and have mercy on them, but I looked around at
the dark
faces of the crowd, and I couldn't find one drop of pity in my
heart for
them."
He closes his picture with a rollicking burst of humor
which
contrasts finely with the grief of the mother and her children.
One more paragraph:
He never bored but he struck water.
I am aware that this is a pretty voluminous notice of
Mr. Grimes'
book. However, it is proper and legitimate to speak of it, for
"Nomadic
Life in Palestine" is a representative book -- the representative
of a
class of Palestine books -- and a criticism upon it will
serve for
a criticism upon them all. And since I am treating it in the
comprehensive capacity of a representative book, I have taken
the liberty
of giving to both book and author fictitious names. Perhaps it
is in
better taste, any how, to do this.
"A young man who had been bewitched and
turned into a mule, miraculously cured by the
infant Savior being put on his back, and is
married to the girl who had been cured of
leprosy. Whereupon the bystanders praise God.
"Chapter 16. Christ miraculously widens or
contracts gates, milk-pails, sieves or boxes, not
properly made by Joseph, he not being skillful at
his carpenter's trade. The King of Jerusalem gives
Joseph an order for a throne. Joseph works on it
for two years and makes it two spans too short.
The King being angry with him, Jesus comforts
him -- commands him to pull one side of the throne
while he pulls the other, and brings it to its proper
dimensions.
"Chapter 19. Jesus, charged with throwing a
boy from the roof of a house, miraculously causes
the dead boy to speak and acquit him; fetches
water for his mother, breaks the pitcher and
miraculously gathers the water in his mantle and
brings it home.
"Sent to a schoolmaster, refuses to
tell his letters, and the schoolmaster going to whip
him, his hand withers."
Further on in this quaint volume of
rejected gospels is an epistle of St. Clement to the
Corinthians, which was used in the churches and
considered genuine fourteen or fifteen hundred
years ago. In it this account of the fabled phoenix
occurs:
"2. There is a certain bird called a
phoenix. Of this there is never but one at a time,
and that lives five hundred years. And when the
time of its dissolution draws near, that it must die,
it makes itself a nest of frankincense, and myrrh,
and other spices, into which, when its time is
fulfilled, it enters and dies.
"3. But its flesh, putrefying, breeds a certain
worm, which, being nourished by the juice of the
dead bird, brings forth feathers; and when it is
grown to a perfect state, it takes up the nest in
which the bones of its parent lie, and carries it
from Arabia into Egypt, to a city ealled
Heliopolis:
"4. And flying in open day in the sight of all
men, lays it upon the altar of the sun, and so
returns from whence it came.
"5. The priests then search into the records of
the time, and find that it returned precisely at the
end of five hundred years."
Business is business, and there is
nothing like punctuality, especially in a phoenix.
The few chapters relating to the
infancy of the Saviour contain many things which
seem frivolous and not worth preserving. A large
part of the remaining portions of the book read
like good Scripture, however. There is one verse
that onght not to have been rejected, because it so
evidently prophetically refers to the general run of
Congresses of the United States:
I have set these extracts down, as
I found them. Everywhere among the cathedrals
of France and Italy, one finds traditions of
personages that do not figure in the Bible, and of
miracles that are not mentioned in its pages. But
they are
all in this Apocryphal New Testament,
and though they have been ruled out of our
modern Bible, it is claimed that they were
accepted gospel twelve or fifteen centuries ago,
and ranked as high in credit as any. One needs to
read this book before he visits those venerable
cathedrals, with their treasures of tabooed and
forgotten tradition.
They imposed another pirate upon us at
Nazareth -- another invincible Arab guard. We
took our last look at the city, clinging like a
whitewashed wasp's nest to the hill-side, and at
eight o'clock in the morning departed. We
dismounted anddrove the horses down a bridle -
path which I think was fully as crooked as a
corkscrew, which I know to be as steep as the
downward sweep of a rainbow, and which I
believe to be the worst piece of road in the
geography, except one in the Sandwich Islands,
which I remember painfully, and possibly one or
two mountain trails in the Sierra Nevadas. Often,
in this narrow path the horse had to poise himself
nicely on a rude stone step and then drop his
fore-feet
over the edge and down something more
than half his own height. This brought his nose
near the ground, while his tail pointed up toward
the sky somewhere, and gave him the appearance
of preparing to stand on his head. A horse cannot
look dignified in this position. We accomplished
the long descent at last, and trotted across the
great Plain of Esdraelon.
Some of us will be shot before we
finish this pilgrimage. The pilgrims read
"Nomadic Life" and keep themselves in a constant
state of Quixotic heroism. They have their hands
on their pistols all the time, and every now and
then, when you least expect it, they snatch them
out and take aim at Bedouins who are not visible,
and draw their knives and make savage passes at
other Bedouins who do not exist. I am in deadly
peril always, for these spasms are sudden and
irregular, and of course I cannot tell when to be
getting out of the way. If I am accidentally
murdered, some time, during one of these
romantic frenzies of the pilgrims, Mr. Grimes
must be rigidly held to answer as an accessory
before the fact. If the pilgrims would take
deliberate aim and shoot at a man, it would be all
right and proper -- because that man would not be
in any danger; but these random assaults are what
I object to. I do not wish to see any more places
like Esdraelon, where the ground is level and
people can gallop. It puts melodramatic nonsense
into the pilgrims' heads. All at once, when one is
jogging along stupidly in the sun, and thinking
about sormething ever so far away, here they
come, at a stormy gallop, spurring and whooping
at those ridgy old sore-backed plugs till their heels
fly higher than their heads, and as they whiz by,
out comes a little potato-gum of a revolver, there
is a startling little pop, and a small pellet goes
singing through the air. Now that I have begun this
pilgrimage, I intend to go through with it, though sooth to say,
nothing but the most desperate valor has kept me to my purpose
up
to the present time. I do not mind Bedouins, -- I am not afraid
of
them; because neither Bedouins nor ordinary Arabs have shown
any disposition to harm us, but I do feel afraid of my
own comrades.
Arriving at the furthest verge of the Plain, we rode
a little
way up a hill and found ourselves at Endor, famous for its
witch. Her descendants are there yet. They were the wildest horde
of half-naked savages we have found thus far. They swarmed out
of mud bee-hives; out of hovels of the dry-goods box pattern;
out
of gaping caves under shelving rocks; out of crevices in the
earth.
In five minutes the dead solitude and silence of the place were
no
more, and a begging, screeching, shouting mob were struggling
about the horses' feet and blocking the way. ''Bucksheesh!
bucksheesh! bucksheesh! howajji, bucksheesh!" It was Magdala
over again, only here the glare from the infidel eyes was fierce
and full of hate. The population numbers two hundred and fifty,
and more than half the citizens live in caves in the rock. Dirt,
degradation and savagery are Endor's specialty. We say no more
about Magdala and Deburieh now. Endor heads the list. It is worse
than any Indian campoodie. The hill is barren, rocky,
and forbidding. No sprig of grass is visible, and only one tree.
This is a fig-tree, which maintains a precarious footing among
the
rocks at the mouth of the dismal cavern once occupied by the
veritable Witch of Endor. In this cavern, tradition says, Saul,
the
king, sat at midnight, and stared and trembled, while the earth
shook, the thunders crashed among the hills, and out of the midst
of fire and smoke the spirit of the dead prophet rose up and
confronted him. Saul had crept to this place in the darkness,
while
his army slept, to learn what fate awaited him in the morrow's
battle. He went away a sad man, to meet disgrace and death.
A spring trickles out of the rock in the gloomy
recesses of the cavern, and we were thirsty. The citizens of
Endor
objected to our going in there. They do not mind dirt; they do
not
mind rags; they do not mind vermin; they do not mind barbarous
ignorance and savagery; they do not mind a reasonable degree
of
starvation, but they do like to be pure and holy before
their god, whoever he may be, and therefore they shudder and
grow almost pale at the idea of Christian lips polluting a spring
whose waters must descend into their sanctified gullets. We had
no
wanton desire to wound even their feel-
ings or trample
upon their prejudices, but we were out of water, thus early in
the
day, and were burning up with thirst. It was at this time, and
under these circumstances, that I framed an aphorism which has
already become celebrated. I said: " Necessity knows no law."
We
went in and drank.
We got away from the noisy wretches, finally,
dropping them in squads and conples as we filed over the
hills -- the aged first, the infants next, the young girls further
on;
the strong men ran beside us a mile, and only left when they
had
secured the last possible piastre in the way of bucksheesh.
In an hour, we reached Nain, where Christ raised the widow's
son to life. Nain is Magdala on a small scale. It has no population
of any consequence. Within a hundred yards of it is the original
graveyard, for aught I know; the tombstones lie flat on the ground,
which is Jewish fashion in Syria. I believe the Moslems do not
allow them to have upright tombstones. A Moslem grave is usually
roughly plastered over and whitewashed, and has at one end an
upright projection which is shaped into exceedingly rude attempts
at ornamentation. In the cities, there is often no appearance
of a
grave at all; a tall, slender marble tombstone, elaborately lettred,
gilded and painted, marks the burial place, and this is surmounted
by a turban, so carved and shaped as to signify the dead man's
rank in life.
They showed a fragment of ancient wall which they said was one
side of the gate out of which the widow's dead son was being
brought so many centuries ago when Jesus met the procession:
"And when the Lord saw her, he had compassion
on her, and said, Weep not.
"And he came and touched the bier: and they that bare him stood
still. And he said, Young man, I say unto thee, arise.
"And he that was dead sat up, and began to speak. And he
delivered him to his mother.
"And there came a fear on all. And they glorified God, saying,
That a great prophet is risen up among us; and That God hath
visited his people."
A little mosque stands upon the spot which tradition
says was occupied by the widow's dwelling. Two or three aged
Arabs sat about its door. We entered, and the pilgrims broke
specimens from the foundation walls, though they had to touch,
and even step, upon the "praying carpets" to do it. It was almost
the same as breaking pieces from the hearts of those old Arabs.
To
step rudely upon the sacred praying mats, with booted feet --
a
thing not done by any Arab -- was to inflict pain upon men who
had
not offended us in any way. Suppose a party of armed foreigners
were to enter a village church in America and break ornaments
from the altar railings for curiosities, and climb up and walk
upon
the Bible and the pulpit cushions? However, the cases are
different. One is the profanation of a temple of our faith --
the other
only the profanation
We descended to the Plain again, and halted a moment at a
well -- of Abraham's time, no doubt. It was in a desert place.
It
was walled three feet above ground with squared and heavy blocks
of stone, after the manner of Bible pictures. Around it some
camels stood, and others knelt. There was a group of sober little
donkeys with naked, dusky children clambering about them, or
sitting astride their rumps, or pulling their tails. Tawny,
black-eyed, barefooted maids, arrayed in rags and adorned with
brazen armlets and pinchbeck ear-rings, were poising waterjars
upon their heads, or drawing water from the well. A flock of
sheep stood by, waiting for the shepherds to fill the hollowed
stones with water, so that they might drink -- stones which,
like
those that walled the well, were worn smooth and deeply creased
by the chafing chins of a hundred generations of thirsty animals.
Picturesque Arabs sat upon the ground, in groups, and solemnly
smoked their longstemmed chibouks. Other Arabs were filling
black hog-skins with water -- skins which, well filled, and distended
with water till the short legs projected painfully out of the
proper
line, looked like the corpses of hogs bloated by drowning. Here
was a grand Oriental picture which I had worshiped a thousand
times in soft, rich steel engravings! But in the engra-
ving there was
no desolation; no dirt; no rags; no fleas; no ugly features;
no sore
eyes; no feasting flies; no besotted ignorance in the countenances;
no raw places on the donkeys' backs; no disagreeable jabbering
in
unknown tongues; no stench of camels; no suggestion that a couple
of tons of powder placed under the party and touched off would
heighten the effect and give to the scene a genuine interest
and a
charm which it would always be pleasant to recall, even though
a
man lived a thousand years. Oriental scenes look best in steel
engravings. I cannot be imposed upon any more by that picture
of
the Queen of Sheba visiting Solomon. I shall say to myself, You
look fine, Madam but your feet are not clean and you smell like
a camel.
Presently a wild Arab in charge of a camel train
recognized an old friend in Ferguson, and they ran and fell upon
each other's necks and kissed each other's grimy, bearded faces
upon both cheeks. It explained instantly a something which had
always seemed to me only a farfetched Oriental figure of speech.
I refer to the circumstance of Christ's rebuking a Pharisee,
or
some such character, and reminding him that from him he had
received no "kiss of welcome." It did not seem reasonable to
me
that men should kiss each other, but I am aware, now, that they
did. There was reason in it, too. The custom was natural and
proper; because people must kiss, and a man would not be likely
to kiss one of the women of this country of his own free will
and
accord. One must travel, to learn. Every day, now, old Scriptural
phrases that never possessed any significance for me before,
take
to themselves a meaning.
We journeyed around the base of the
mountain -- "Little Hermon," -- past the old Crusaders' castle
of El
Fuleh, and arrived at Shunem. This was another Magdala, to a
fraction, frescoes and all. Here, tradition says, the prophet
Samuel
was born, and here the Shunamite woman built a little house upon
the city wall for the accommodation of the prophet Elisha. Elisha
asked her what she expected in return. It was a perfectly natural
question, for these people are and were in the habit of proffering
favors and services and then expecting and begging for pay. Elisha
knew them well. He could not comprehend that any body should
build for him that humble little chamber for the mere sake of
old
friendship, and with no selfish motive whatever. It used to
seem
a very impolite, not to say
a rude, question, for Elisha to ask the
woman, but it does not seem so to me now. The woman said she
expected nothing Then for her goodness and her unselfishness,
he
rejoiced her heart with the news that she should bear a son.
It was
a high reward -- but she would not have thanked him for a daughter
-- daughters have always been unpopular here. The son was born,
grew, waxed strong, died. Elisha restored him to life in Shunem.
We found here a grove of lemon trees -- cool,
shady, hung with fruit. One is apt to overestimate beauty when
it
is rare, but to me this grove seemed very beautifull. It was
beautiful. I do not overestimate it. I must always remember
Shunem gratefully, as a place which gave to us this leafy shelter
after our long, hot ride. We lunched, rested, chatted, smoked
our
pipes an hour, and then mounted and moved on.
As we trotted across the Plain of Jezreel, we met
half a dozen Digger Indians (Bedouins) with very long spears
in
their
hands, cavorting around on old crowbait horses, and spearing
imaginary enemies; whooping, and fluttering their rags in the
wind, and carrying on in every respect like a pack of hopeless
lunatics. At last, here were the "wild, free sons of the desert,
speeding over the plain like the wind, on their beautiful Arabian
mares" we had read so much about and longed so much to see!
Here were the "picturesque costumes"! This was the "gallant
spectacle"! Tatterdemalion vagrants -- cheap braggadocio -- "Arabian
mares" spined and necked like the ichthyosaurus in the museum,
and humped and cornered like a dromedary! To glance at the
genuine son of the desert is to take the romance out of him
forever -- to behold his steed is to long in charity to strip
his
harness off and let him fall to pieces.
Presently we came to a ruinous old town on a hill, the same
being the ancient Jezreel.
Ahab, King of Samaria, (this was a very vast kingdom, for those
days, and was very nearly half as large as Rhode Island) dwelt
in
the city of Jezreel, which was his capital. Near him lived a
man by
the name of Naboth, who had a vineyard. The King asked him for
it, and when he would not give it, offered to buy it. But Naboth
refused to sell it. In those days it was considered a sort of
crime
to part with one's inheritance at any price -- and even if a
man did
part with it, it reverted to himself or his heirs again at the
next
jubilee year. So this spoiled child of a King went and lay down
on
the bed with his face to the wall, and grieved sorely. The Queen,
a notorious character in those days, and whose name is a by-word
and a reproach even in these, came in and asked him wherefore
he
sorrowed, and he told her. Jezebel said she could secure the
vineyard; and she went forth and forged letters to the nobles
and
wise men, in the King's name, and ordered them to proclaim a
fast
and set Naboth on high before the people, and suborn two wit-
nesses to swear that he had blasphemed. They did it, and the
people stoned the accused by the city wall, and he died. Then
Jezebel came and told the King, and said, Behold, Naboth is no
more -- rise up and seize the vineyard. So Ahab seized the
vineyard, and went into it to possess it. But the Prophet Elijah
came to him there and read his fate to him, and the fate of Jezebel;
and said that in the place where dogs licked the blood of Naboth,
dogs should also lick his blood -- and he said, likewise, the
dogs
should eat Jezebel by the wall of Jezreel. In the course of time,
the
King was killed in battle, and when his chariot wheels were
washed in the pool of Samaria, the dogs licked the blood. In
after
years, Jehu, who was King o f Israel, marched down against
Jezreel, by order of one of the Prophets, and administered one
of
those convincing rebukes so common among the people of those
days: he killed many kings and their subjects, and as he came
along he saw .Jezebei, painted and finely dressed, looking out
of
a window, and ordered that she be thrown down to him. A servant
did it, and Jehu's horse trampled her under foot. Then Jehu went
in and sat down to dinner; and presently he said, Go and bury
this
cursed woman, for she is a King's daughter. The spirit of charity
came upon him too late, however, for the prophecy had already
been fulfilled -- the dogs had eaten her, and they "found no
more
of her than the skull, and the feet, and the palms of her hands."
Ahab, the late King, had left a helpless family
behind him, and Jehu killed seventy of the orphan sons. Then
he
killed all the relatives, and teachers, and servants and friends
of
the family, and rested from his labors, until he was come near
to
Samaria, where he met forty-two persons and asked them who they
were; they said they were brothers of the King of Judah. He killed
them. When he got to Samaria, he said he would show his zeal
for
the Lord; so he gathered all the priests and people together
that
worshiped Baal, pretending that he was going to adopt that
worship and offer up a great sacrifice; and when they were all
shut
up where they could not defend themselves, he caused every
person of them to be killed. Then Jehu, the good missionary,
rested from his labors once more.
We went back to the valley, and rode to the Fountain of Ain
Jelud. They call it the Fountain of Jezreel, usually. It is a
pond
about one hundred feet square and four feet deep,
with a stream of
water trickling into it from under an overhanging ledge of rocks.
It is in the midst of a great solitude. Here Gideon pitched his
camp
in the old times; behind Shunem lay the "Midianites, the
Amalekites, and the Children of the East," who were "as
grasshoppers for multitude; both they and their camels were
without number, as the sand by the sea-side for multitude." Which
means that there were one hundred and thirty-five
thousand men,
and that they had transportation service accordingly.
Gideon, with only three hundred men, surprised
them in the night, and stood by and looked on while they
butchered each other until a hundred and twenty thousand lay
dead
on the field.
We camped at Jenin before night, and got up and started again
at one o'clock in the morning. Somewhere towards daylight we
passed the locality where the best authenticated tradition locates
the
pit into which Joseph's brethren threw him, and about noon, after
passing over a succession of mountain tops, clad with groves
of fig
and olive trees, with the Mediterranean in sight some forty miles
away, and going by many ancient Biblical cities whose inhabitants
glowered savagely upon our Christian procession, and were
seemingly inclined to practice on it with stones, we came to
the
singularly terraced and unlovely hills that betrayed that we
were
out of Galilee and into Samaria at last.
We climbed a high hill to visit the city of Samaria, where the
woman may have hailed from who conversed with Christ at
Jacob's Well, and from whence, no doubt, came also the cel-
ebrated Good Samaritan. Herod the Great is said to have made
a
magnificent city of this place, and a great number of coarse
1imestone columns, twenty feet high and two feet through, that
are
almost guiltless of architectural grace of shape and ornament,
are
pointed out by many authors as evidence of the fact. They would
not have been considered handsome in ancient Greece, however.
The inhabitants of this camp are particularly vicious, and stoned
two parties of our pilgrims a day or two ago who
brought about
the difficulty by showing their revolvers when they did not intend
to use them -- a thing which is deemed bad judgment in the Far
West, and ought certainly to be so considered any where. In the
new Territories, when a man puts his hand on a weapon, he knows
that he must use it; he must use it instantly or expect to be
shot
down where he stands. Those pilgrims had been reading Grimes.
There was nothing for us to do in Samaria but buy
handfuls of old Roman coins at a franc a dozen, and look at a
dilapidated church of the Crusaders and a vault in it which once
contained the body of John the Baptist. This relic was long ago
carried away to Genoa.
Samaria stood a disastrous siege, once, in the days of Elisha,
at
the hands of the King of Syria. Provisions reached such a figure
that "an ass' head was sold for eighty pieces of silver and the
fourth part of a cab of dove's dung for five pieces of silver."
An incident recorded of that heavy time will give one a very
good idea of the distress that prevailed within these crumbling
walls. As the King was walking upon the battlements one day,
"a
woman cried out, saying, Help, my lord, O King! And the King
said, What aileth thee? and she answered, This woman said unto
me, Give thy son, that we may eat him to-day, and we will eat
my
son to-morrow. So we boiled my son, and did eat him; and I said
unto her on the next day, Give thy son that we may eat him; and
she hath hid her son."
The prophet Elisha declared that within four and twenty hours
the prices of food should go down to nothing, almost, and it
was
so. The Syrian army broke camp and fled, for some cause or
other, the famine was relieved from without, and many a shoddy
speculator in dove's dung and ass's meat was ruined.
We were glad to leave this hot and dusty old village and hurry
on. At two o'clock we stopped to lunch and rest at ancient
Shechem, between the historic Mounts of Gerizim and Ebal, where
in the old times the books of the law, the curses and the blessings,
were read from the heights to the Jewish multitudes below.
The narrow canon in which Nablous, or Shechem, is situated,
is under
high cultivation, and the soil is exceedingly black and fertile.
It is
well watered, and its affluent vegetation gains effect by contrast
with
the barren hills that tower on either side. One of these hills
is the
ancient Mount of Blessings and the other the Mount of Curses
and wise men
who seek for fulfillments of prophecy think they find here a
wonder of
this kind -- to wit, that the Mount of Blessings is strangely
fertile and
its mate as strangely unproductive. We could not see that there
was
really much difference between them in this respect, however.
Shechem is distinguished as one of the residences of the
patriarch
Jacob, and as the seat of those tribes that cut themselves loose
from
their brethren of Israel and propagated doctrines not in conformity
with
those of the original Jewish creed. For thousands of years this
clan have
dwelt in Shechem under strict tabu and having little commerce
or
fellowship with their fellow men of any religion or nationality.
For
generations they have not numbered more than one or two hundred,
but they
still adhere to their ancient faith and maintain their ancient
rites and
ceremonies. Talk of family and old descent! Princes and nobles
pride
themselves upon lineages they can trace back some hundreds of
years. What
is this trifle to this handful of old first families of Shechem
who can
name their fathers straight back without a flaw for thousands
--
straight back to a period so remote that men reared in a country
where
the days of two hundred years ago are called
"ancient " times grow dazed and bewildered when they try to comprehend
it! Here is respectability for you -- here is "family" -- here
is high
descent worth talking about. This sad, proud remnant of a once
mighty
community still hold themselves aloof from all the world; they
still live
as their fathers lived, labor as their fathers labored, think
as they
did, feel as they did, worship in the same place, in sight of
the same
landmarks, and in the same quaint, patriarchal way their ancestors
did
more than thirty centuries ago. I found myself gazing at any
straggling
scion of this strange race with a riveted fascination, just as
one would
stare at a living mastodon, or a megatherium that had moved in
the grey
dawn of creation and seen the wonders of that mysterious world
that was
before the flood.
Carefully preserved among the sacred archives of this
curious
community is a MSS. copy of the ancient Jewish law, which is
said to be
the oldest document on earth. It is written on vellum, and is
some four
or five thousand years old. Nothing but bucksheesh can purchase
a sight.
Its fame is somewhat dimmed in these latter days, because of
the doubts
so many authors of Palestine travels have felt themselves privileged
to
cast upon it. Speaking of this MSS. reminds me that I procured
from the
high-priest of this ancient Samaritan community, at great expense,
a
secret document of still higher antiquity and far more extraordinary
interest, which I propose to publish as soon as I have finished
translating it.
Joshua gave his dying injunction to the children of Israel
at
Shechem, and buried a valuable treasure secretly under an oak
tree there
about the same time. The superstitious Samaritans have always
been afraid
to hunt for it. They believe it is guarded by fierce spirits
invisible to
men.
About a mile and a half from Shechem we halted at the
base of
Mount Ebal before a little square area, inclosed by a high stone
wall,
neatly whitewashed. Across one end of this inclosure is a tomb
built
after the manner of the Moslems. It is the tomb of Joseph. No
truth is
better authenticated than this.
When Joseph was dying he prophesied that exodus of the
Israelites
from Egypt which occurred four hundred years afterwards. At the
same time
he exacted of his people an oath that when they journeyed to
the land of
Canaan they would bear his bones with them and bury them in the
ancient
inheritance of his fathers. The oath was kept.
"And the bones of Joseph, which
the
children of Israel brought up out of Egypt, buried they in Shechem,
in a
parcel of ground which Jacob bought of the sons of Hamor the
father of
Shechem for a hundred pieces of silver."
Few tombs on earth command the veneration of so many races
and men of
divers creeds as this of Joseph. "Samaritan and Jew, Moslem and
Christian
alike, revere it, and honor it with their visits. The tomb of
Joseph, the
dutiful son, the affectionate, forgiving brother, the virtuous
man, the
wise Prince and ruler. Egypt felt his influence -- the world
knows his
history."
In this same " parcel of ground " which Jacob bought of
the sons
of Hamor for a hundred pieces of silver, is Jacob's celebrated
well. It
is cut in the solid rock, and is nine feet square and ninety
feet deep.
The name of this unpretending hole in the ground, which one might
pass by
and take no notice of, is as familiar as household words to even
the
children and the peasants of many a far-off country. It is more
famous
than the Parthenon; it is older than the Pyramids.
It was by this well that Jesus sat and talked with a woman
of that strange, antiquated Samaritan community I have been speaking
of,
and told her of the mysterious water of life. As descendants
of old
English nobles still cherish in the traditions of their houses
how that
this king or that king tarried a day with some favored ancestor
three
hundred years ago, no doubt the descendants of the woman of Samaria,
living there in Shechem, still refer with pardonable vanity to
this
conversation of their ancestor, held some little time gone by,
with the
Messiah of the Christians. It is not likely that they undervalue
a
distinction such as this. Samaritan nature is human nature, and
human
nature remembers contact with the illustrious, always.
For an offense done to the family honor, the sons of Jacob
exterminated all Shechem once.
We left Jacob's Well and traveled till eight in the evening,
but
rather slowly, for we had been in the saddle nineteen hours,
and the
horses were cruelly tired. We got so far ahead of the tents that
we had
to camp in an Arab village, and sleep on the ground. We could
have slept
in the largest of the houses; but there were some little drawbacks:
it
was populous with vermin, it had a dirt floor, it was in no respect
cleanly, and there was a family of goats in the only bedroom,
and two
donkeys in the parlor. Outside there were no inconveniences,
except that
the dusky, ragged, earnest-eyed villagers of both sexes and all
ages
grouped themselves on their haunches all around us, and discussed
us and
criticised us with noisy tongues till midnight. We did not mind
the
noise, being tired, but, doubtless, the reader is aware that
it is almost
an impossible thing to go to sleep when you know that people
are looking
at you. We went to bed at ten, and got up again at two and started
once
more. Thus are people persecuted by dragomen, whose sole ambition
in life
is to get ahead of each other.
About daylight we passed Shiloh, where the Ark of the
Covenant
rested three hundred years, and at whose gates good old Eli fell
down and
"brake his neck" when the messenger, riding hard from the battle,
told
him of the defeat of his people, the death of his sons, and,
more than
all, the capture of Israel's pride, her hope, her refuge, the
ancient Ark
her
forefathers brought with them out of Egypt. It is little wonder
that
under circumstances like these he fell down and brake his neck.
But
Shiloh had no charms for us. We were so cold that there was no
comfort
but in motion, and so drowsy we could hardly sit upon the horses.
After a while we came to a shapeless mass of ruins, which
still
bears the name of Bethel. It was here that Jacob lay down and
had that
superb vision of angels flitting up and down a ladder that reached
from
the clouds to earth, and caught glimpses of their blessed home
through
the open gates of Heaven
The pilgrims took what was left of the hallowed ruin,
and we
pressed on toward the goal of our crusade, renowned Jerusalem.
The further we went the hotter the sun got, and the more
rocky and
bare, repulsive and dreary the landscape became. There could
not have
been more fragments of stone strewn broadcast over this part
of the
world, if every ten square feet of the land had been occupied
by a
separate and distinct stonecutter's establishment for an age.
There was
hardly a tree or a shrub any where. Even the olive and the cactus,
those
fast friends of a worthless soil, had almost deserted the country.
No
landscape exists that is more tiresome to the eye than that which
bounds
the approaches to Jerusalem. The only difference between the
roads and
the surrounding country, perhaps, is that there are rather more
rocks in
the roads than in the surrounding country.
We passed Ramah, and Beroth, and on the right saw the
tomb of the
prophet Samuel, perched high upon a commanding eminence. Still
no
Jerusalem came in sight. We hurried on impatiently. We halted
a moment at
the ancient Fountain of Beira, but its stones, worn deeply by
the chins
of thirsty animals that are dead and gone centuries ago, had
no interest
for us -- we longed to see Jerusalem. We spurred up hill after
hill, and
usually began to stretch our necks minutes before we got to the
top --
but disappointment always followed: -- more stupid hills beyond
-- more
unsightly landscape -- no Holy City.
At last, away in the middle of the day, ancient bite of wall
and
crumbling arches began to line the way -- we toiled up one more
hill,
and every pilgrim and every sinner swung his hat on high! Jerusalem
!
Perched on its eternal hills, white and domed and solid,
massed
together and hooped with high gray walls, the venerable city
gleamed in
the sun. So small! Why, it was no larger than an American village
of
four thousand inhabitants, and no larger than an ordinary Syrian
city of
thirty thousand. Jerusalem numbers only fourteen thousand people
We dismounted and looked, without speaking a dozen sentences,
across the wide intervening valley for an hour or more; and
noted those
prominent features of the city that pictures make familiar to
all men
from their school days till their death. We could recognize
the Tower of
Hippicus, the Mosque of Omar, the Damascus Gate, the Mount of
Olives,
the Valley of Jehoshaphat, the Tower of David, and the Garden
of
Gethsemane--and dating from these landmarks could tell very
nearly the
localities of many others we were not able to distinguish.
I record it here as a notable but not discreditable fact that
not
even our pilgrims wept. I think there was no individual in the
party
whose brain was not teeming with thoughts and images and memories
invoked by the grand history of the venerable city that lay
before us,
but still among them all was no "voice of them that wept."
There was no call for tears. Tears would have been out
of place.
The thoughts Jerusalem suggests are full of poetry, sublimity,
and more
than all, dignity. Such thoughts do not find their appropriate
expression in the emotions of the nursery.
Just after noon we entered these narrow, crooked streets,
by the
ancient and the famed Damascus Gate, and now for several hours
I have
been trying to comprehend that I am actually in the illustrious
old city
where Solomon dwelt, where Abraham held converse with the Deity,
and
where walls still stand that witnessed the spectacle of the
Crucifixion.
The houses are generally two stories high, built strongly
of masonry, whitewashed
or plastered outside, and have a cage of wooden lattice-work
projecting in front of every
window. To reproduce a Jerusalem street, it would only be necessary
to up-end a chicken-coop
and hang it before each window in an alley of American houses.
The streets are roughly and badly paved with stone, and
are tolerably
crooked -- enough so to make each street appear to close together
constantly and come to an end
about a hundred yards ahead of a pilgrim as long as he chooses
to walk in it. Projecting from
the top of the lower story of many of the
houses is a very narrow porch-roof or shed, without
supports from below; and I have several times seen cats jump
across the street from one shed
to the other when they were out calling. The cats could have
jumped double the distance without
extraordinary exertion. I mention these things to give an idea
of how narrow the streets are.
Since a cat can jump across them without the least inconvenience,
it is hardly necessary to state
that such streets are too narrow for carriages. These vehicles
cannot navigate the Holy City.
The population of Jerusalem is composed of
Moslems, Jews, Greeks, Latins, Armenians,
Syrians, Copts, Abyssinians, Greek Catholics, and a handful of
Protestants. One hundred of the
latter sect are all that dwell now in this birthplace of Christianity.
The nice shades of nationality
comprised in the above list, and the languages spoken by them,
are altogether too numerous to
mention. It seems to me that all the races and colors and tongues
of the earth must be
represented among the fourteen thousand souls that dwell in Jerusalem.
Rags, wretchedness,
poverty and dirt, those signs and symbols that indicate the presence
of Moslem rule more surely
than the crescent-flag itself, abound. Lepers, cripples, the
blind, and the idiotic, assail you on
every hand, and they know but one word of but one language apparently
-- the eternal
"bucksheesh." To see the numbers of maimed, malformed and diseased
humanity that
throng the
holy places and obstruct the gates, one might suppose that the
ancient days had come again, and
that the angel of the Lord was expected to descend at any moment
to stir the waters of Bethesda.
Jerusalem is mournful, and dreary, and lifeless. I would not
desire to live here.
One naturally goes first to the Holy Sepulchre. It is
right in the city, near the western gate; it
and the place of the Crucifixion, and, in fact, every other place
intimately connected with that
tremendous event, are ingeniously massed together and covered
by one roof -- the dome of the
Church of the Holy Sepulchre.
Entering the building, through the midst of the usual assemblage
of beggars, one sees on his
left a few Turkish guards -- for Christians of different sects
will not only quarrel, but fight, also,
in this sacred place, if allowed to do it. Before you is a marble
slab, which covers the Stone of
Unction, whereon the Saviour's body was laid to prepare it for
burial. It was found necessary
to conceal the real stone in this way in order to save it from
destruction. Pilgrims were too much
given to chipping off pieces of it to carry home. Near by is
a circular railing which marks the
spot where the Virgin stood when the Lord's body was anointed.
Entering the great Rotunda, we stand before the most sacred locality
in Christendom -- the
grave of Jesus. It is in the centre of the church, and immediately
under the great dome. It is
inclosed in a sort of little temple of yellow and white stone,
of fanciful design. Within the little
temple is a portion of the very stone which was rolled away from
the door of the Sepulchre, and
on which the angel was sitting when Mary came thither "at early
dawn." Stooping low, we enter
the vault -- the Sepulchre itself. It is only about six feet
by seven, and the stone couch on which
the dead Saviour lay extends from end to end of the apartment
and occupies half its width. It
is covered with a marble slab which has been much worn by the
lips of pilgrims. This slab
serves as an altar, now. Over it hang some fifty gold and silver
lamps, which are kept always
burning, and the place is otherwise scandalized by trumpery,
gewgaws, and tawdry
ornamentation.
All sects of Christians (except Protestants,) have chapels under
the roof of the Church of the
Holy Sepulchre, and each must keep to itself and not venture
upon another's ground. It has been
proven conclusively that they can not worship together around
the grave of the Saviour of the
World in peace. The chapel of the Syrians is not handsome; that
of the Copts is the humblest
of them all. It is nothing but a dismal cavern, roughly hewn
in the living rock of the Hill of
Calvary. In one side of it two ancient tombs are hewn, which
are claimed to be those in which
Nicodemus and Joseph of Aramathea were buried.
As we moved among the great piers and pillars of another part
of the church, we came upon
a party of black-robed, animal-looking Italian monks, with candles
in their hands, who were
chanting something in Latin, and going through some kind of religious
performance around a
disk of white marble let into the floor. It was there that the
risen Saviour appeared to Mary
Magdalen in the likeness of a gardener. Near by was a similar
stone, shaped like a star -- here
the Magdalen herself stood, at the same time. Monks were performing
in this place also. They
perform everywhere -- all over the vast building, and at all
hours. Their candles are always
flitting about in the gloom, and making the dim old church more
dismal than there is any
necessity that it should be, even though it is a tomb.
We were shown the place where our Lord appeared to His mother
after the Resurrection.
Here, also, a marble slab marks the place where St. Helena, the
mother of the Emperor
Constantine, found the crosses about three hundred years after
the Crucifixion. According to the
legend, this great discovery elicited extravagant demonstrations
of joy. But they were of short
duration. The question intruded itself: "Which bore the blessed
Saviour, and which the thieves?"
To be in doubt, in so mighty a matter as this -- to be uncertain
which one to adore -- was a
grievous misfortune. It turned the public joy to sorrow. But
when lived there a holy priest who
could not set to simple a trouble as this at rest? One of these
soon hit
upon a plan that would
be a certain test. A noble lady lay very ill in Jerusalem. The
wise priests ordered that the three
crosses be taken to her bedside one at a time. It was done. When
her eyes fell upon the first
one, she uttered a scream that was heard beyond the Damascus
Gate, and even upon the Mount
of Olives, it was said, and then fell back in a deadly swoon.
They recovered her and brought
the second cross. Instantly she went into fearful convulsions,
and it was with the greatest
difficulty that six strong men could hold her. They were afraid,
now, to bring in the third cross.
They began to fear that possibly they had fallen upon the wrong
crosses, and that the true cross
was not with this number at all. However, as the woman seemed
likely to die with the
convulsions that were tearing her, they concluded that the third
could do no more than put her
out of her misery with a happy dispatch. So they brought it,
and behold, a miracle! The woman
sprang from her bed, smiling and joyful, and perfectly restored
to health. When we listen to
evidence like this, we cannot but believe. We would be ashamed
to doubt, and properly, too.
Even the very part of Jerusalem where this all occurred is there
yet. So there is really no room
for doubt.
The priests tried to show us, through a small screen,
a fragment of the genuine
Pillar of Flagellation, to which Christ was bound when they scourged
him. But we could not see
it, because it was dark inside the screen. However, a baton is
kept here, which the pilgrim
thrusts through a hole in the screen, and then he no longer doubts
that the true Pillar of
Flagellation is in there. He can not have any excuse to doubt
it, for he can feel it with the stick.
He can feel it as distinctly as he could feel any thing.
Not far from here was a niche where they used to preserve a piece
of the True Cross, but it
is gone, now. This piece of the cross was discovered in the sixteenth
century. The Latin priests
say it was stolen away, long ago, by priests of another sect.
That seems like a hard statement
to make, but we know very well that it was stolen, because we
have seen it ourselves in several
of the cathedrals of Italy and France.
But the relic that touched us most was the plain old sword of
that stout Crusader, Godfrey of
Bulloigne -- King Godfrey of Jerusalem. No blade in Christendom
wields such enchantment as
this -- no blade of all that rust in the ancestral halls of Europe
is able to invoke such visions of
romance in the brain of him who looks upon it -- none that can
prate of such chivalric deeds or
tell such brave tales of the warrior days of old. It stirs within
a man every memory of the Holy
Wars that has been sleeping in his brain for years, and peoples
his thoughts with mail-clad
images, with marching armies, with battles and with sieges. It
speaks to him of Baldwin, and
Tancred, the princely Saladin, and great Richard of the Lion
Heart. It was with just such blades
as these that these splendid heroes of romance used to segregate
a man, so to speak, and leave
the half of him to fall one way and the other half the other.
This very sword has cloven
hundreds of Saracen Knights from crown to chin in those old times
when Godfrey wielded it.
It was enchanted, then, by a genius that was under the command
of King Solomon. When danger
approached its master's tent it always struck the shield and
clanged out a fierce alarm upon the
startled ear of night. In times of donbt, or in fog or darkness,
if it were drawn from its sheath
it wonld point instantly toward the foe, and thus reveal the
way -- and it would also attempt to
start after them of its own accord. A Christian could not be
so disguised that it would not know
him and refuse to hurt him -- nor a Moslem so disguised that
it would not leap from its scabbard
and take his life. These statements are all well authenticated
in many legends that are among the
most trustworthy legends the good old Catholic monks preserve.
I can never forget old
Godfrey's sword, now. I tried it on a Moslem, and clove him in
twain like a doughnut. The
spirit of Grimes was upon me, and if I had had a graveyard I
would have destroyed all the
infidels in Jerusalem. I wiped the blood off the old sword and
handed it back to the priest -- I did
not want the fresh gore to obliterate those sacred spots that
crimsoned its brightness one day six
hundred years ago and thus gave Godfrey warning that before the
sun went down his journey
of life would end.
Still moving through the gloom of the Church of the Holy Sepulchre
we came to
a small chapel, hewn out of the rock -- a place which has been
known as "The Prison of Our
Lord" for many centuries. Tradition says that here the Saviour
was
confined just previously to
the crucifixion. Under an altar by the door was a pair of stone
stocks for human legs. These
things are called the "Bonds of Christ," and the use they were
once put to has given them the
name they now bear.
The Greek Chapel is the most roomy, the richest and the
showiest chapel in the
Church of the Holy Sepulchre. Its altar, like that of all the
Greek churches, is a lofty screen that
extends clear across the chapel, and is gorgeous with gilding
and pictures. The numerous lamps
that hang before it are of gold and silver, and cost
great sums.
But the feature of the place is a short column that rises from
the middle of the marble
pavement of the chapel, and marks the exact centre of the
earth. The most reliable
traditions tell us that this was known to be the earth's centre,
ages ago, and that when Christ
was upon earth he set all doubts upon the subject at rest forever,
by stating with his own lips
that the tradition was correct. Remember, He said that that particular
column stood upon the
centre of the world. If the centre of the world changes, the
column changes its position accord-
ingly. This column has moved three different times of its own
accord. This is because, in great
convulsions of nature, at three different times, masses of the
earth -- whole ranges of mountains,
probably -- have flown off into space, thus lessening the diameter
of the earth, and changing the
exact locality of its centre by a point or two. This is a very
curious and interesting circumstance,
and is a withering rebuke to those philosophers who would make
us believe that it is not possible
for any portion of the earth to fly off into space.
To satisfy himself that this spot was really the centre of the
earth, a sceptic once paid well for
the privilege of ascending to the dome of the church to see if
the sun gave him a shadow at
noon. He came down perfectly convinced. The day was very clondy
and the sun threw no
shadows at all; but the man was satisfied that if the sun had
come out and made shadows it could
not have made any for him. Proofs like these are not to be set
aside by the idle tongues of
cavilers. To such as are not bigoted, and are willing to be convinced,
they carry a conviction
that nothing can ever shake.
If even greater proofs than those I have mentioned are wanted,
to satisfy the
headstrong and the foolish that this is the genuine centre of
the earth, they are here. The greatest
of them lies in the fact that from under this very column was
taken the dust from which
Adam was made. This can surely be regarded in the light of
a settler. It is not likely that
the original first man would have been made from an inferior
quality of earth when it was
entirely convenient to get first quality from the world's centre.
This will strike any reflect ing
mind forcibly. That Adam was formed of dirt procured in this
very spot is amply proven by the
fact that in six thousand years no man has ever
been able to prove that the dirt was not
procured here whereof he was made.
It is a singular circumstance that right under the roof of this
same great church, and not far
away from that illustrious column, Adam himself, the father of
the human race, lies buried.
There is no question that he is actually buried
in the grave which is pointed out as his -- there can
be none -- because it has never yet been proven that that grave
is not the grave in which he is
buried.
The tomb of Adam! How touching it was, here in
a land of strangers, far away
from home, and friends, and all who cared for me, thus to discover
the grave of a blood
relation. True, a distant one, but still a relation. The unerring
instinct of nature thrilled its
recognition. The fountain of my filial aflfection was stirred
to its profoundest depths, and I gave
way to tumultuous emotion. I leaned upon a pillar and burst into
tears. I deem it no shame to
have wept over the grave of my poor dead relative. Let him who
would sneer at my emotion
close this volume here, for he will find little to his taste
in my journeyings through Holy Land.
Noble old man -- he did not live to see me -- he did not live
to see his child. And I -- I -- alas, I did
not live to see him. Weighed down by sorrow and disappointment,
he died before
I was born -- six thousand brief summers before I was born. But
let us try to bear it with
fortitude. Let us trust that he is better off where he is. Let
us take comfort in the thought that
his loss is our eternal gain.
The next place the guide took us to in the holy church was an
altar dedicated to the Roman
soldier who was of the military guard that attended at the Crucifixion
to keep order, and
who -- when the vail of the Temple was rent in the awful darkness
that followed; when the rock
of Golgotha was split asunder by an earthquake; when the artillery
of heaven thundered, and in
the baleful glare of the lightnings the shrouded dead flitted
about the streets of Jerusalem -- shook
with fear and said, "Surely this was the Son of God!" Where this
altar stands now, that Roman
soldier stood then, in full view of the crucified Saviour --
in full sight and hearing of all the
marvels that were transpiring far and wide about the circumference
of the Hill of Calvary. And
in this self-same spot the priests of the Temple beheaded him
for those blasphemous words he
had spoken.
In this altar they used to keep one of the most curious
relics
that human eyes ever
looked upon -- a thing that had power to fascinate the beholder
in some mysterious way and keep
him gazing for hours together. It was nothing less than the copper
plate Pilate put upon the
Saviour's cross, and upon which he wrote, "THIS IS THE KING OF
THE JEWS." I think St.
Helena, the mother of Constantine, found this wonderful memento
when she was here in the
third century. She traveled all over Palestine, and was always
fortunate. Whenever the good old
enthusiast found a thing mentioned in her Bible, Old or New,
she would go and search for that
thing, and never stop until she found it. If it was Adam, she
would find Adam; if it was the
Ark, she would find the Ark; if it was Goliath, or Joshua, she
would find them. She found the
inscription here that I was speaking of, I think. She found it
in this very spot, close to where
the martyred Roman soldier stood. That copper plate is in one
of the churches in Rome, now.
Any one can see it there. The inscription is very distinct.
We passed along a few steps and saw the altar built over
the very spot where the
good Catholic priests say the soldiers divided the raiment of
the Saviour.
Then we went down into a cavern which cavilers say was once a
cistern. It is a chapel, now,
however -- the Chapel of St. Helena. It is fifty-one feet long
by forty-three wide. In it is a marble
chair which Helena used to sit in while she superintended her
workmen when they were digging
and delving for the True Cross. In this place is an altar dedicated
to St. Dimas, the penitent
thief. A new bronze statue is here -- a statue of St. Helena.
It reminded us of poor Maximilian,
so lately shot. He presented it to this chapel when he was about
to leave for his throne in
Mexico.
From the cistern we descended twelve steps into a large roughly-shaped
grotto, carved wholly
out of the living rock. Helena blasted it out when she was searching
for the true Cross. She had
a laborious piece of work, here, but it was richly rewarded.
Out of this place she got the crown
of thorns, the nails of the cross, the true Cross itself, and
the cross of the penitent thief. When
she thought she had found every
thing and was about to stop, she was told in a dream to continue
a day longer. It was very fortunate. She did so, and found the
cross of the other thief.
The walls and roof of this grotto still weep bitter tears
in memory of the event
that transpired on Calvary, and devout pilgrims groan and sob
when these sad tears fall upon
them from the dripping rock. The monks call this apartment the
"Chapel of the Invention of the
Cross" -- a name which is unfortunate, because it leads the ignorant
to imagine that a tacit
acknowledgment is thus made that the tradition that Helena found
the true Cross here is a
fiction -- an invention. It is a happiness to know, however,
that intelligent people do not doubt
the story in any of its particulars.
Priests of any of the chapels and denominations in the Church
of the Holy Sepulchre can visit
this sacred grotto to weep and pray and worship the gentle Redeemer.
Two different
congregations are not allowed to enter at the same time, however,
because they always fight.
Still marching through the venerable Church of the Holy Sepulchre,
among chanting priests
in coarse long robes and sandals; pilgrims of all colors and
many nationalities, in all sorts of
strange costumes; under dusky arches and by dingy piers and columns;
through a sombre
cathedral gloom freighted with smoke and incense, and faintly
starred with scores of candles that
appeared suddenly and as suddenly disappeared, or drifted mysteriously
hither and thither about
the distant aisles like ghostly jack-o'-lanterns -- we came at
last to a small chapel which is called
the "Chapel of the Mocking." Under the altar was a fragment of
a marble column; this was the
seat Christ sat on when he was reviled, and mockingly made King,
crowned with a crown of
thorns and sceptred with a reed. It was here that they blindfolded
him and struck him, and said
in derision, "Prophesy who it is that smote thee." The tradition
that this is the identical spot of
the mocking is a very ancient one. The guide said that Saewulf
was the first to mention it. I do
not know Saewulf, but still, I cannot well refuse to receive
his evidence -- none of us can.
They showed us where the great Godfrey and his brother Baldwin,
the first
Christian Kings of Jerusalem, once lay buried by that sacred
sepulchre they had fought so long
and so valiantly to wrest from the hands of the infidel. But
the niches that had contained the
ashes of these renowned crusaders were empty. Even the coverings
of their tombs were
gone -- destroyed by devout members of the Greek Church, because
Godfrey and Baldwin were
Latin princes, and had been reared in a Christian faith whose
creed differed in some unimportant
respects from theirs.
We passed on, and halted before the tomb of Melchisedek!
You will remember
Melchisedek, no doubt; he was the King who came out and levied
a tribute on Abraham the time
that he pursued Lot's captors to Dan, and took all their property
from them. That was about four
thousand years ago, and Melchisedek died shortly afterward. However,
his tomb is in a good
state of preservation.
When one enters the Church of the Holy Sepulchre, the Sepulchre
itself is the first thing he
desires to see, and really is almost the first thing he does
see. The next thing he has a strong
yearning to see is the spot where the Saviour was crucified.
But this they exhibit last. It is the
crowning glory of the place. One is grave and thoughtful when
he stands in the little Tomb of
the Saviour -- he could not well be otherwise in such a place
-- but he has not the slightest possible
belief that ever the Lord lay there, and so the interest he feels
in the spot is very, very greatly
marred by that reflection. He looks at the place where Mary stood,
in another part of the church,
and where John stood, and Mary Magdalen; where the mob derided
the Lord; where the angel
sat; where the crown of thorns was found, and the true Cross;
where the risen Saviour
appeared -- he looks at all these places with interest, but with
the same conviction he felt in the
case of the Sepulchre, that there is nothing genuine about them,
and that they are imaginary holy
places created by the monks. But the place of the Crucifixion
affects him differently. He fully
believes that he is looking upon the very spot where the Savior
gave up his
life. He remembers
that Christ was very celebrated, long before he came to Jerusalem;
he knows that his fame was
so great that crowds followed him all the time; he is aware that
his entry into the city produced
a stirring sensation, and that his reception was a kind of ovation;
he can not overlook the fact
that when he was crucified there were very many in Jerusalem
who believed that he was the true
Son of God. To publicly execute such a personage was sufficient
in itself to make the locality
of the execution a memorable place for ages; added to this, the
storm, the darkness, the
earthquake, the rending of the vail of the Temple, and the untimely
waking of the dead, were
events calculated to fix the execution and the scene of it in
the memory of even the most
thoughtless witness. Fathers would tell their sons about the
strange affair, and point out the spot;
the sons would transmit the story to their children, and thus
a period of three hundred years
would easily be spanned* -- at which time Helena came and built
a church upon Calvary to
commemorate the death and burial of the Lord and preserve the
sacred place in the memories
of men; since that time there has always been a church there.
It is not possible that there can
be any mistake about the locality of the Crucifixion. Not half
a dozen persons knew where they
buried the Saviour, perhaps, and a burial is not a startling
event, any how; therefore, we can
be pardoned for unbelief in the Sepulchre, but not in the place
of the Crucifixion. Five hundred
years hence there will be no vestige of Bunker Hill Monument
left, but America will still know
where the battle was fought and where Warren fell. The crucifixion
of Christ was too notable
an event in Jerusalem, and the Hill of Calvary made too celebrated
by it, to be forgotten in the
short space of three hundred years. I climbed the stairway in
the church which brings one to the
top of the small inclosed pinnacle of rock, and looked upon the
place where the true cross once
stood, with a far more absorbing interest than I had ever felt
in any thing earthly before. I could
not believe that the
three holes in the top of the rock were the actual ones the
crosses stood in, but I
felt satisfied that those crosses had stood so near the place
now occupied by them, that the few
feet of possible difference were a matter of no consequence.
When one stands where the Saviour was crucified, he finds
it all he can do to
keep it strictly before his mind that Christ was not crucified
in a Catholic Church. He must
remind himself every now and then that the great event transpired
in the open air, and not in a
gloomy, candle-lighted cell in a little corner of a vast church,
up-stairs -- a small cell all
bejeweled and bespangled with flashy ornamentation, in execrable
taste.
Under a marble altar like a table, is a circular hole in the
marble floor, corresponding with
the one just under it in which the true Cross stood. The first
thing every one does is to kneel
down and take a candle and examine this hole. He does this strange
prospecting with an amount
of gravity that can never be estimated or appreciated by a man
who has not seen the operation.
Then he holds his candle before a richly engraved picture of
the Saviour, done on a messy slab
of gold, and wonderfully rayed and starred with diamonds, which
hangs above the hole within
the altar, and his solemnity changes to lively admiration. He
rises and faces the finely wrought
figures of the Saviour and the malefactors uplifted upon their
crosses behind the altar, and bright
with a metallic lustre of many colors. He turns next to the figures
close to them of the Virgin
and Mary Magdalen; next to the rift in the living rock made by
the earthquake at the time of the
Crucifixion, and an extension of which he had seen before in
the wall of one of the grottoes
below; he looks next at the show-case with a figure of the Virgin
in it, and is amazed at the
princely fortune in precious gems and jewelry that hangs so thickly
about the form as to hide
it like a garment almost. All about the apartment the gaudy trappings
of the Greek Church
offend the eye and keep the mind on the rack to remember that
this is the Place of the Cruci-
fixion -- Golgotha -- the Mount of Calvary. And the last thing
he looks at is that which was also
the first -- the place where the true Cross stood. That will
chain him to the spot and
compel him
to look once more, and once again, after he has satisfied all
curiosity and lost all interest
concerning the other matters pertaining to the locality.
And so I close my chapter on the Church of the Holy Sepulchre
-- the most sacred
locality on earth to millions and millions of men, and women,
and children, the noble and the
humble, bond and free. In its history from the first, and in
its tremendous associations, it is the
most illustrious edifice in Christendom. With all its clap-trap
side-shows and unseemly
impostures of every kind, it is still grand, reverend, venerable
-- for a god died there; for fifteen
hundred years its shrines have been wet with the tears of pilgrims
from the earth's remotest
confines; for more than two hundred, the most gallant knights
that ever wielded sword wasted
their lives away in a struggle to seize it and hold it sacred
from infidel pollution. Even in our
own day a war, that cost millions of treasure and rivers of blood,
was fought because two rival
nations claimed the sole right to put a new dome upon it. History
is full of this old Church of
the Holy Sepulchre -- full of blood that was shed because of
the respect and the veneration in
which men held the last resting-place of the meek and lowly,
the mild and gentle, Prince of
Peace!
We crossed a street, and came presently to the former
residence of
St. Veronica. When the Saviour passed there, she came out, full
of
womanly compassion, and spoke pitying words to him, undaunted
by the
hootings and the threatenings of the mob, and wiped the perspiration
from
his face with her handkerchief. We had heard so much of St.
Veronica,
and seen
her picture by so many masters, that it was like meeting an old
friend
unexpectedly to come upon her ancient home in Jerusalem. The
strangest
thing about the incident that has made her name so famous, is,
that when
she wiped the perspiration away, the print of the Saviour's face
remained
upon the handkerchief, a perfect portrait, and so remains unto
this day.
We knew this, because we saw this handkerchief in a cathedral
in Paris,
in another in Spain, and in two others in Italy. In the Milan
cathedral
it costs five francs to see it, and at St. Peter's, at Rome,
it is almost
impossible to see it at any price. No tradition is so amply verified
as
this of St. Veronica and her handkerchief.
At the next corner we saw a deep indention in the hard
stone
masonry of the corner of a house, but might have gone heedlessly
by it
but that the guide said it was made by the elbow of the Saviour,
who
stumbled here and fell. Presently we came to just such another
indention
in a stone wall. The guide said the Saviour fell here, also,
and made
this depression with his elbow.
There were other places where the Lord fell, and others
where he
rested; but one of the most curious landmarks of ancient history
we found
on this morning walk through the crooked lanes that lead toward
Calvary,
was a certain stone built into a house -- a stone that was so
seamed and
scarred that it bore a sort of grotesque resemblance to the human
face.
The projections that answered for cheeks were worn smooth by
the
passionate kisses of generations of pilgrims from distant lands.
We asked
"Why?" The guide said it was because this was one of "the very
stones of
Jerusalem " that Christ mentioned when he was reproved for permitting
the
people to cry "Hosannah!" when he made his memorable entry into
the city
upon an ass. One of the pilgrims said, "But there is no evidence
that the
stones did cry out -- Christ said that if the people stopped
from
shouting Hosannah, the very stones would do it." The guide
was
perfectly serene. He said, calmly, "This is one of the stones
that
would have cried out. "It was of little use to try to
shake this
fellow's simple faith -- it was easy to see that.
And so we came at last to another wonder, of deep and
abiding
interest -- the veritable house where the unhappy wretch once
lived who
has been celebrated in song and story for more than eighteen
hundred
years as the Wandering Jew. On the memorable day of the Crucifixion
he
stood in this old doorway with his arms akimbo, looking out upon
the
struggling mob that was approaching, and when the weary Saviour
would
have sat down and rested him a moment, pushed him rudely away
and said,
"Move on!" The Lord said, "Move on, thou, likewise," and the
command has
never been revoked from that day to this. All men know how that
the
miscreant upon whose head that just curse fell has roamed up
and down the
wide world, for ages and ages, seeking rest and never finding
it --
courting death but always in vain -- longing to stop, in city,
in
wilderness, in desert solitudes, yet hearing always that relentless
warning to march -- march on! They say -- do these hoary traditions
--
that when Titus sacked Jerusalem and slaughtered eleven hundred
thousand
Jews in her streets and by-ways, the Wandering Jew was seen always
in the
thickest of the fight, and that when battle-axes gleamed in the
air, he
bowed his head beneath them; when swords flashed their deadly
lightnings,
he sprang in their way; he bared his breast to whizzing javelins,
to
hissing arrows, to any and to every weapon that promised death
and
forgetfulness, and rest. But it was useless -- he walked forth
out of the
carnage without a wound. And it is said that five hundred years
afterward he followed Mahomet when he carried destruction to
the cities
of Arabia, and then turned against him, hoping in this way to
win the
death of a traitor. His calculations were wrong again. No quarter
was
given to any living creature but one, and that was the only one
of all
the host that did not want it. He sought death five hundred years
later,
in the wars of the Crusades, and offered himself to famine and
pestilence
at Ascalon. He escaped again -- he could not die. These repeated
annoyances could have at last but one effect -- they shook his
confidence. Since then the Wandering Jew has carried on a kind
of
desultory toying with the most promising of the aids
and implements of destruction, but with small hope, as a general
thing.
He has speculated some in cholera and railroads, and has taken
almost a
lively interest in infernal machines and patent medicines. He
is old,
now, and grave, as becomes an age like his; he indulges in no
light
amusements save that he goes sometimes to executions, and is
fond of
funerals.
There is one thing he can not avoid; go where he will
about the
world, he must never fail to report in Jerusalem every fiftieth
year.
Only a year or two ago he was here for the thirty-seventh time
since
Jesus was crucified on Calvary. They say that many old people,
who are
here now, saw him then, and had seen him before. He looks always
the same
-- old, and withered, and hollow-eyed, and listless, save that
there is
about him something which seems to suggest that he is looking
for some
one, expecting some one -- the friends of his youth, perhaps.
But the
most of them are dead,now. He always pokes about the
old streets looking lonesome, making his mark on a wall here
and there,
and eyeing the oldest buildings with a sort of friendly half
interest;
and he sheds a few tears at the threshold of his ancient dwelling,
and
bitter, bitter tears they are. Then he collects his rent and
leaves
again. He has been seen standing near the Church of the Holy
Sepulchre on
many a starlight night, for he has cherished an idea for many
centuries
that if he could only enter there, he could rest. But when he
approaches,
the doors slam to with a crash, the earth trembles, and all the
lights in
Jerusalem burn a ghastly blue! He does this every fifty years,
just the
same. It is hopeless, but then it is hard to break habits one
has been
eighteen hundred years accustomed to. The old tourist is far
away on his
wanderings, now. How he must smile to see a pack of blockheads
like us,
galloping about the world, and looking wise, and imagining we
are finding
out a good deal about it! He must have a consuming contempt
for the
ignorant, complacent asses that go skurrying about the world
in these
railroading days and call it traveling.
When the guide pointed out where the Wandering Jew had
left his
familiar mark upon a wall, I was filled with astonishment. It
read:
"S T. -- 1860 -- X."
All I have revealed about the Wandering Jew can be amply
proven by
reference to our guide.
The mighty Mosque of Omar, and the paved court around
it, occupy
a fourth part of Jerusalem. They are upon Mount Moriah,
where King
Solomon's Temple stood. This Mosque is the holiest place the
Mohammedan
knows, outside of Mecca. Up to within a year or two past, no
Christian
could gain admission to it or its court for love or money. But
the
prohibition has been removed, and we entered freely for bucksheesh.
I need not speak of the wonderful beauty and the exquisite
grace
and symmetry that have made this Mosque so celebrated -- because
I did
not see them. One can not see such things at an instant glance
-- one
frequently only finds out how really beautiful a really beautiful
woman
is after considerable
acquaintance with her; and the rule applies to Niagara Falls,
to majestic
mountains and to mosques -- especially to mosques.
The great feature of the Mosque of Omar is the prodigious
rock in
the centre of its rotunda. It was upon this rock that Abraham
came so
near offering up his son Isaac -- this, at least, is authentic--it
is
very much more to be relied on than most of the traditions, at
any rate.
On this rock, also, the angel stood and threatened Jerusalem,
and David
persuaded him to spare the city. Mahomet was well acquainted
with this
stone. From it he ascended to heaven. The stone tried to follow
him, and
if the angel Gabriel had not happened by the merest good luck
to be there
to seize it, it would have done it. Very few people have a grip
like
Gabriel -- the prints of his monstrous fingers, two inches deep,
are to
be seen in that rock to-day.
This rock, large as it is, is suspended in the air. It
does not
touch any thing at all. The guide said so. This is very wonderful.
In the
place on it where Mahomet stood, he left his foot-prints in the
solid
stone. I should judge that he wore about eighteens. But what
I was going
to say, when I spoke of the rock being suspended, was, that in
the floor
of the cavern under it they showed us a slab which they said
covered a
hole which was a thing of extraordinary interest to all Mohammedans,
because that hole leads down to perdition, and every soul that
is
transferred from thence to Heaven must pass up through this orifice.
Mahomet stands there and lifts them out by the hair. All Mohammedans
shave their heads, but they are careful to leave a lock of hair
for the
Prophet to take hold of. Our guide observed that a good Mohammedan
would
consider himself doomed to stay with the damned forever if he
were to
lose his scalp-lock and die before it grew again. The most of
them that I
have seen ought to stay with the damned, any how, without reference
to
how they were barbered.
For several ages no woman has been allowed to enter the
cavern
where that important hole is. The reason is that one of the sex
was once
caught there blabbing every thing she
knew about what was going on above ground, to the rapscallions
in the
infernal regions down below. She carried her gossiping to such
an extreme
that nothing could be kept private -- nothing could be done
or said on
earth but every body in perdition knew all about it before the
sun went
down. It was about time to suppress this woman's telegraph, and
it was
promptly done. Her breath subsided about the same time.
The inside of the great mosque is very showy with variegated
marble walls and with windows and inscriptions of elaborate mosaic.
The
Turks have their sacred relics, like the Catholics. The guide
showed us
the veritable armor worn by the great son-in-law and successor
of
Mahomet, and also the buckler of Mahomet's uncle. The great iron
railing
which surrounds the rock was ornamented in one place with a thousand
rags
tied to its open work. These are to remind Mahomet not to forget
the
worshipers who placed them there. It is considered the next
best thing
to tying threads around his finger by way of reminders.
Just outside the mosque is a miniature temple, which marks
the
spot where David and Goliath used to sit and judge the people.*
Every where about the Mosque of Omar are portions of pillars,
curiously wrought altars, and fragments of elegantly carved marble--
precious remains of Solomon's Temple. These have been dug from
all depths
in the soil and rubbish of Mount Moriah, and the Moslems have
always
shown a disposition to preserve them with the utmost care. At
that
portion of the ancient wall of Solomon's Temple which is called
the Jew's
Place of Wailing, and where the Hebrews assemble every Friday
to kiss the
venerated stones and weep over the fallen greatness of Zion,
any one can
see a part of the unquestioned and undisputed Temple of Solomon,
the same
consisting of three or four stones lying one upon the other,
each of
which is about twice as long as a seven-octave piano, and about
as thick
as such a piano is high. But, as I have remarked before, it is
only a year or two ago that the ancient edict prohibiting Christian
rubbish like ourselves to enter the Mosque of Omar and
see the
costly marbles that once adorned the inner Temple was annulled.
The
designs wrought upon these fragments are all quaint and peculiar,
and so
the charm of novelty is added to the deep interest they naturally
inspire. One meets with these venerable scraps at every turn,
especially
in the neighboring Mosque el Aksa, into whose inner walls a very
large
number of them are carefully built for preservation. These pieces
of
stone, stained and dusty with age, dimly hint at a grandeur we
have all
been taught to regard as the princeliest ever seen on earth;
and they
call up pictures of a pageant that is familiar to all imaginations
--
camels laden with spices and treasure -- beautiful slaves, presents
for
Solomon's harem -- a long cavalcade of richly caparisoned beasts
and
warriors -- and Sheba's Queen in the van of this vision of "Oriental
magnificence." These elegant fragments bear a richer interest
than the
solemn vastness of the stones the Jews kiss in the Place of Wailing
can
ever have for the heedless sinner.
Down in the hollow ground, underneath the olives and the
orange-trees that flourish in the court of the great Mosque,
is a
wilderness of pillars -- remains of the ancient Temple; they
supported
it. There are ponderous archways down there, also, over which
the
destroying "plough " of prophecy passed harmless. It is pleasant
to know
we are disappointed, in that we never dreamed we might see portions
of
the actual Temple of Solomon, and yet experience no shadow of
suspicion
that they were a monkish humbug and a fraud.
We are surfeited with sights. Nothing has any fascination
for us,
now, but the Church of the Holy Sepulchre. We have been there
every day,
and have not grown tired of it; but we are weary of every thing
else. The
sights are too many. They swarm about you at every step; no single
foot
of ground in all Jerusalem or within its neighborhood seems to
be without
a stirring and important history of its own. It is a very relief
to steal
a walk of a hundred yards without a guide along to talk unceasingly
about
every stone you step upon and drag you back ages and ages to
the day when
it achieved celebrity.
It seems hardly real when I find myself leaning for a
moment on a
ruined wall and looking listlessly down into the historic
pool of
Bethesda. I did not think such things could be so crowded
together
as to diminish their interest. But in serious truth, we have
been
drifting about, for several days, using our eyes and our ears
more from a
sense of duty than any higher and worthier reason. And too often
we have
been glad when it was time to go home and be distressed no more
about
illustrious localities.
Our pilgrims compress too much into one day. One can gorge
sights
to repletion as well as sweetmeats. Since we breakfasted, this
morning,
we have seen enough to have furnished us food for a year's reflection
if
we could have seen the various objects in comfort and looked
upon them
deliberately. We visited the pool of Hezekiah, where David saw
Uriah's
wife coming from the bath and fell in love with her.
We went out of the city by the Jaffa gate, and of course
were told
many things about its Tower of Hippicus.
We rode across the Valley of Hinnom, between two of the
Pools of Gihon, and by an aqueduct built by Solomon, which still
conveys
water to the city. We ascended the Hill of Evil Counsel, where
Judas
received his thirty pieces of silver, and we also lingered a
moment under
the tree a venerable tradition says he hanged himself on.
We descended to the canon again, and then the guide began
to give
name and history to every bank and boulder we came to: "This
was the
Field of Blood; these cuttings in the rocks were shrines and
temples of
Moloch; here they sacrificed children; yonder is the Zion Gate;
the
Tyropean Valley, the Hill of Ophel; here is the junction of the
Valley of
Jehoshaphat -- on your right is the Well of Job." We turned up
Jehoshaphat. The recital went on. "This is the Mount of Olives;
this is
the Hill of Offense; the nest of huts is the Village of Siloam;
here,
yonder, every where, is the King's Garden; under this great tree
Zacharias, the high priest, was murdered; yonder is Mount Moriah
and the
Temple wall; the tomb of Absalom; the tomb of St. James; the
tomb of
Zacharias; beyond, are the Garden of Gethsemane and the tomb
of the
Virgin Mary; here is the Pool of Siloam, and -- "
We said we would dismount, and quench our thirst, and
rest. We
were burning up with the heat. We were failing under the accumulated
fatigue of days and days of ceaseless marching. All were willing.
The Pool is a deep, walled ditch, through which a clear
stream of
water runs, that comes from under Jerusalem somewhere, and passing
through the Fountain of the Virgin, or being supplied from it,
reaches
this place by way of a tunnel of heavy masonry. The famous pool
looked
exactly as it looked in Solomon's time, no doubt, and the same
dusky,
Oriental women, came down in their old Oriental way, and carried
off jars
of the water on their heads, just as they did three thousand
years ago,
and just as they will do fifty thousand years hence if any of
them are
still left on earth.
We went away from there and stopped at the Fountain of
the Virgin.
But the water was not good, and there was no comfort or peace
any where,
on account of the regiment of boys
and girls and beggars that persecuted us all the time for bucksheesh.
The
guide wanted us to give them some money, and we did it; but when
he went
on to say that they were starving to death we could not but feel
that we
had done a great sin in throwing obstacles in the way of such
a desirable
consummation, and so we tried to collect it back, but it could
not be
done.
We entered the Garden of Gethsemane, and we visited the
Tomb of
the Virgin, both of which we had seen before. It is not meet
that I
should speak of them now. A more fitting time will come.
I can not speak now of the Mount of Olives or its view
of
Jerusalem, the Dead Sea and the mountains of Moab; nor of the
Damascus
Gate or the tree that was planted by King Godfrey of Jerusalem.
One ought
to feel pleasantly when he talks of these things. I can not say
any thing
about the stone column that projects over Jehoshaphat from the
Temple
wall like a cannon, except that the Moslems believe Mahomet will
sit
astride of it when he comes to judge the world. It is a pity
he could not
judge it from some roost of his own in Mecca, without trespassing
on our
holy ground. Close by is the Golden Gate, in the Temple wall
-- a gate
that was an elegant piece of sculpture in the time of the Temple,
and is
even so yet. From it, in ancient times, the Jewish High Priest
turned
loose the scapegoat and let him flee to the wilderness and bear
away his
twelve-month load of the sins of the people. If they were to
turn one
loose now, he would not get as far as the Garden of Gethsemane,
till
these miserable vagabonds here would gobble him up,* sins and
all.
They wouldn't care. Mutton-chops and sin is good enough
living for
them. The Moslems watch the Golden Gate with a jealous eye, and
an
anxious one, for they have an honored tradition that when it
falls,
Islamism will fall and with it the Ottoman Empire. It did not
grieve me
any to notice that the old gate was getting a little shaky.
We are at home again. We are exhausted. The sun has roasted
us,
almost.
We have full comfort in one reflection, however. Our experiences
in Europe have taught us that in time this fatigue will be forgotten;
the
heat will be forgotten; the thirst, the tiresome volubility of
the guide,
the persecutions of the beggars -- and then, all that will be
left will
be pleasant memories of Jerusalem, memories we shall call up
with always
increasing interest as the years go by, memories which some day
will
become all beautiful when the last annoyance that incumbers them
shall
have faded out of our minds never again to return. School-boy
days are no
happier than the days of after life, but we look back upon them
regretfully because we have forgotten our punishments at school,
and how
we grieved when our marbles were lost and our kites destroyed
-- because
we have forgotten all the sorrows and privations of that canonized
epoch
and remember only its orchard robberies, its wooden sword pageants
and
its fishing holydays. We are satisfied. We can wait. Our reward
will
come. To us, Jerusalem and to-day's experiences will be an enchanted
memory a year hence -- memory which money could not buy from
us.
We cast up the account. It footed up pretty
fairly. There was nothing more at Jerusalem to be
seen, except the traditional houses of Dives and
Lazarus of the parable, the Tombs of the Kings,
and those of the Judges; the spot where they
stoned one of the disciples to death, and beheaded
another; the room and the table made celebrated
by the Last Supper; the fig-tree that Jesus
withered; a number of historical places about
Gethsemane and the Mount of Olives, and fifteen
or twenty others in different portions of the city
itself.
We were approaching the end.
Human nature asserted itself, now. Overwork and
consequent exhaustion began to have their natural
effect. They began to master the energies and dull
the ardor of the party. Perfectly secure now,
against failing to accomplish any detail of the
pilgrimage, they felt like drawing in advance upon
the holiday soon to be placed to their credit. They
grew a little lazy. They were late to breakfast and
sat long at dinner. Thirty or forty pilgrims had
arrived from the ship, by the short routes, and
much swapping of gossip had to be indulged in.
And in hot afternoons, they showed a strong
disposition to lie on the cool divans in the hotel
and smoke and talk about pleasant experiences of
a month or so gone by -- for even thus early do
episodes of travel which were sometimes
annoying, sometimes exasperating and full as
often of no consequence at all when they
transpired, begin to rise above the dead level of
monotonous reminiscences and become shapely
landmarks in one's memory. The fog-whistle,
smothered among a million of trifling sounds, is
not noticed a block away, in the city, but the
sailor hears it far at sea, whither none of those
thousands of trifiing sounds can reach. When one
is in Rome, all the domes are alike; but when he
has gone away twelve miles, the city fades utterly
from sight and leaves St. Peter's swelling above
the level plain like an anchored balloon. When
one is traveling in Europe, the daily incidents
seem all alike; but when he has placed them all
two months and two thousand miles behind him,
those that were worthy of being remembered are
prominent, and those that were really insignificant
have vanished. This disposition to smoke, and idle
and talk, was not well. It was plain that it must
not be allowed to gain ground. A diversion must
be tried, or demoralization would ensue. The
Jordan, Jericho and the Dead Sea were suggested.
The remainder of Jerusalem must be left
unvisited, for a little while. The journey was
approved at once. New life stirred in every pulse.
In the saddle -- abroad on the plains -- sleeping in
beds bounded only by the horizon: fancy was at
work with these things in a moment. -- It was
painful to note how readily these town-bred men
had taken to the free life of the camp and the
desert The nomadic instinct is a human instinct; it
was born with Adam and transmitted through the
patriarchs, and after thirty centuries of steady
effort, civilization has not educated it entirely out
of us yet. It has a charm which, once tasted, a
man will yearn to taste again. The nomadic
instinct can not be educated out of an Indian at
all.
The Jordan journey being approved,
our dragoman was notified.
At nine in the morning the caravan
was before the hotel door and we were at
breakfast. There was a commotion about the
place. Rumors of war and bloodshed were flying
every where. The lawless Bedouins in the Valley
of the Jordan and the deserts down by the Dead
Sea were up in arms, and were going to destroy
all comers. They had had a battle with a troop of
Turkish cavalry and defeated them; several men
killed. They had shut up the inhabitants of a
village and a
Turkish garrison in an old fort near
Jericho, and were besieging them. They had
marched upon a camp of our excursionists by the
Jordan, and the pilgrims only saved their lives by
stealing away and flying to Jerusalem under whip
and spur in the darkness of the night. Another of
our parties had been fired on from an ambush and
then attacked in the open day. Shots were fired on
both sides. Fortunately there was no bloodshed.
We spoke with the very pilgrim who had fired
one of the shots, and learned from his own lips
how, in this imminent deadly peril, only the cool
courage of the pilgrims, their strength of numbers
and imposing display of war material, had saved
them from utter destruction. It was reported that
the Consul had requested that no more of our
pilgrims should go to the Jordan while this state
of things lasted; and further, that he was unwilling
that any more should go, at least without an
unusually strong military guard. Here was trouble.
But with the horses at the door and every body
aware of what they were there for, what would
you have done? Acknowledged that you were
afraid, and backed shamefully out? Hardly. It
would not be human nature, where there were so
many women. You would have done as we did:
said you were not afraid of a million
Bedouins -- and made your will and proposed
quietly to yourself to take up an unostentatious
position in the rear of the procession.
I think we must all have determined
upon the same line of tactics, for it did seem as if
we never would get to Jericho. I had a notoriously
slow horse, but somehow I could not keep him in
the rear, to save rmy neck. He was forever
turning up in the lead. In such cases I trembled a
little, and got down to fix my saddle. But it was
not of any use. The others all got down to fix
their saddles, too. I never saw such a time with
saddles. It was the first time any of them had got
out of order in three weeks, and now they had all
broken dovvn at once. I tried walking, for
exercise -- I had not had enough in Jerusalem
searching for holy places. But it was a failure.
The whole mob were suffering for exercise, and
it was not fifteen
minutes till they were all on foot
and I had the lead again. It was very
discouraging.
This was all after we got beyond
Bethany. We stopped at the village of Bethany, an
hour out from Jerusalem. They showed us the
tomb of Lazarus. I had rather live in it than in
any house in the town. And they showed us also
a large "Fountain of Lazarus," and in the centre
of the village the ancient dwelling of Lazarus.
Lazarus appears to have been a man of property.
The legends of the Sunday Schools do him great
injustice; they give one the impression that he was
poor. It is because they get him confused with
that Lazarus who had no merit but his virtne, and
virtue never has been as respectable as money.
The house of Lazarus is a three-story edifice, of
stone masonry, but the accumulated rubbish of
ages has buried all of it but the upper story. We
took candles and descended to the dismal cell-like
chambers where Jesus sat at meat with Martha
and Mary, and conversed with them about their
brother. We could not but look upon these old
dingy apartments with a more than common
interest.
We had had a glimpse, from a
mountain top, of the Deao Sea, lying like a blue
shield in the plain of the Jordan, and now we
were marching down a close, flaming, rugged,
desolate defile, where no living creature could
enjoy life, except, perhaps, a salamander. It was
such a dreary, repulsive, horrible solitude! It was
the "wilderness" where John preached, with
camel's hair about his loins -- raiment enough -- but
he never could have got his locusts and wild
honey here. We were moping along down through
this dreadful place, every man in the rear. Our
guards -- two gorgeous young Arab sheiks, with
cargoes of swords, guns, pistols and daggers on
board -- were loafing ahead.
"Bedouins!"
Every man shrunk up and
disappeared in his clothes like a mud-turtle. My
first impulse was to dash forward and destroy the
Bedouins. My second was to dash to the rear to
see if there were any coming in that direction. I
acted on the latter impulse. So did all the others.
If any Bedouins had approached us, then, from
that point of the compass, they would have paid
dearly for their rashness. We all remarked that,
afterwards. There would have been scenes of riot
and
bloodshed there that no pen could describe. I
know that, because each man told what he would
have done, individually; and such a medley of
strange and unheard-of inventions of cruelty you
could not conceive of. One man said he had
calmly made up his mind to perish where he
stood, if need be, but never yield an inch; he was
going to wait, with deadly patience, till he could
count the stripes upon the first Bedouin's jacket,
and then count them and let him have it. Another
was going to sit still till the first lance reached
within an inch of his breast, and then dodge it and
seize it. I forbear to tell what he was going to do
to that Bedouin that owned it. It makes my blood
run cold to think of it. Another was going to scalp
such Bedouins as fell to his share, and take his
bald-headed sons of the desert home with him
alive for trophies. But the wild-eyed pilgrim
rhapsodist was silent. His orbs gleamed with a
deadly light, but his lips moved not. Anxiety
grew, and he was questioned. If he had got a
Bedouin, what would he have done with
him -- shot him? He smiled a smile of grim
contempt and shook his head. Would he have
stabbed him? Another shake. Would he have
quartered him -- flayed him? More shakes. Oh!
horror what would he have done?
"Eat him!"
Such was the awful sentence that
thundered from his lips. What was grammar to a
desperado like that? I was glad in my heart that
I had been spared these scenes of malignant
carnage. No Bedouins attacked our terrible rear.
And none attacked the front. The new-comers
were only a reinforcement of cadaverous Arabs,
in shirts and bare legs, sent far ahead of us to
brandish rusty guns, and shout and brag, and
carry on like lunatics, and thus scare away all
bands of marauding Bedouins that might lurk
about our path. What a shame it is that armed
white Christians must travel under guard of
vermin like this as a protection against the
prowling vagabonds of the desert -- those
sanguinary outlaws who are always going to do
something desperate, but never do it. I may as
well mention here that on our whole trip we saw
no
Bedouins, and had no more use for an Arab
guard than we could have had for patent leather
boots and white kid gloves. The Bedouins that
attacked the other parties of pilgrims so fiercely
were provided for the occasion by the Arab
guards of those parties, and shipped from
Jerusalem for temporary service as Bedouins.
They met together in full view of the pilgrims,
after the battle, and took lunch, divided the
bucksheesh extorted in the season of danger, and
then accompanied the cavalcade home to the city!
The nuisance of an Arab guard is one which is
created by the Sheiks and the Bedouins together,
for mutual profit, it is said, and no doubt there is
a good deal of truth in it.
We visited the fountain the prophet
Elisha sweetened (it is sweet yet,) where he
remained some time and was fed by the ravens.
Ancient Jericho is not very
picturesque as a ruin. When Joshua marched
around it seven times, some three thousand years
ago, and blew it down with his trumpet, he did
the work so well and so completely that he hardly
left enough of the city to cast a shadow. The
curse pronounced against the rebuilding of it, has
never been removed. One King, holding the curse
in light estimation, made the attempt, but was
stricken sorely for his presumption. Its site will
always remain unoccupied; and yet it is one of the
very best locations for a town we have seen in all
Palestine.
At two in the morning they routed
us out of bed -- another piece of unwarranted
cruelty -- another stupid effort of our dragoman to
get ahead of a rival. It was not two hours to the
Jordan. However, we were dressed and under
way before any one thought of looking to see
what time it was, and so we drowsed on through
the chill night air and dreamed of camp fires,
warm beds, and other comfortable things.
There was no conversation. People
do not talk when they are cold, and wretched, and
sleepy. We nodded in the saddle, at times, and
woke up with a start to find that the procession
had disappeared in the gloom. Then there was
energy and attention to business until its dusky
outlines came in sight
again. Occasionally the
order was passed in a low voice down the line:
"Close up -- close up! Bedouins lurk here, every
where!" What an exquisite shudder it sent
shivering along one's spine!
We reached the famous river before
four o'clock, and the night was so black that we
could have ridden into it without seeing it. Some
of us were in an unhappy frame of mind. We
waited and waited for daylight, but it did not
come. Finally we went away in the dark and slept
an hour on the ground, in the bushes, and caught
cold. It was a costly nap, on that account, but
otherwise it was a paying investment because it
brought unconsciousness of the dreary minutes
and put us in a somewhat fitter mood for a first
glimpse of the sacred river.
With the first suspicion of dawn,
every pilgrim took off his clothes and waded into
the dark torrent, singing
But they did not sing long. The
water was so fearfully cold that they were obliged
to stop singing and scamper out again. Then they
stood on the bank shivering, and so chagrined and
so grieved, that they merited holiest compassion.
Because another dream, another cherished hope,
had failed. They had promised themselves all
along that they would cross the Jordan where the
Israelites crossed it when they entered Canaan
from their long pilgrimage in the desert. They
would cross where the twelve stones were placed
in memory of that great event. While they did it
they would picture to themselves that vast army of
pilgrims marching through the cloven waters,
bearing the hallowed ark of the covenant and
shouting hosannahs, and singing songs of
thanksgiving and praise. Each had promised
himself that he would be the first to cross. They
were at the goal of their hopes at last, but the
current was too swift, the water was too cold!
It was then that Jack did them a
service. With that engaging recklessness of
consequences which is natural to youth, and so
proper and so seemly, as well, he went and led
the way across the Jordan, and all was happiness
again. Every individual waded over, then, and
stood upon the further bank. The water was not
quite breast deep, any where. If it had been more,
we could hardly have accomplished the feat, for
the strong current would have swept us down the
stream, and we would have been exhausted and
drowned before reaching a place where we could
make a landing. The main object compassed, the
drooping, miserable party sat down to wait for the
sun again, for all wanted to see the water as well
as feel it. But it was too cold a pastime. Some
cans were filled from the holy river, some canes
cut from its banks, and then we mounted and rode
reluctantly away to keep from freezing to death.
So we saw the Jordan very dimly. The thickets of
bushes that bordered its banks threw their
shadows across its shallow, turbulent waters
("stormy," the hymn makes them, which is rather
a complimentary stretch of fancy,) and we could
not judge of the width of the stream by the eye.
We knew by our wading experience, however,
that many streets in America are double as wide
as the Jordan.
Daylight came, soon after we got
under way, and in the course of an hour or two
we reached the Dead Sea. Nothing grows in the
flat, burning desert around it but weeds and the
Dead Sea apple the poets say is beautiful to the
eye, but crumbles to ashes and dust when you
break it. Such as we found were not handsome,
but they were bitter to the taste. They yielded no
dust. It was because they were not ripe, perhaps.
The desert and the barren hills
gleam painfully in the sun, around the Dead Sea,
and there is no pleasant thing or living creature
upon it or about its borders to cheer the eye. It is
a scorching, arid, repulsive solitude. A silence
broods over the scene that is depressing to the
spirits. It makes one think of funerals and death.
The Dead Sea is small. Its waters
are very clear, and it has a pebbly bottom and is
shallow for some distance out from the shores. It
yields quantities of asphaltum; fragments of it lie
all about its banks; this stuff gives the place
something of an unpleasant smell.
All our reading had taught us to
expect that the first plunge into the Dead Sea
would be attended with distressing results -- our
bodies would feel as if they were suddenly pierced
by millions of red-hot needles; the dreadful
smarting would continue for hours; we might even
look to be blistered from head to foot, and suffer
miserably for many days. We were disappointed.
Our eight sprang in at the same time that another
party of pilgrims did, and nobody screamed once.
None of them ever did complain of any thing
more than a slight pricking sensation in places
where their skin was abraded, and then only for
a short time. My face smarted for a couple of
hours, but it was partly because I got it badly
sun-burned while I was bathing, and staid in so
long that it became plastered over with salt.
No, the water did not blister us; it
did not cover us with a slimy ooze and confer
upon us an atrocious fragrance; it was not very
slimy; and I could not discover that we smelt
really any worse than we have always smelt since
we have been in Palestine. It was only a different
kind of smell, but not conspicuous on that
account, because we have a great deal of variety
in that respect. We didn't smell, there on the
Jordan, the same as we do in Jerusalem; and we
don't smell in Jerusalem just as we did in
Nazareth, or Tiberias, or Cesarea Philippi, or any
of those other ruinous ancient towns in Galilee.
No, we change all the time, and generally for the
worse. We do our own washing.
It was a funny bath. We could not
sink. One could stretch himself at full length on
his back, with his arms on his breast, and all of
his body above a line drawn from the corner of
his jaw past the middle of his side, the middle of
his leg and through his ancle bone, would remain
out of water. He could lift his head clear out, if
he chose. No position can be retained long; you
lose your balance and whirl over, first on your
back and then on your face, and so on. You can
lie comfortably, on your back, with your head
out, and your legs out from your knees down, by
steadying yourself with your hands. You can sit,
with your knees drawn up to your chin and your
arms clasped around them, but you are bound to
turn over presently, because you are top-heavy in
that position. You can stand up straight in water
that is over your head, and from the middle of
your breast upward you will not be wet. But you
can not remain so. The water will soon float your
feet to the surface. You can not swim on your
back and make any progress of any consequence,
because your feet stick away above the surface,
and there is nothing to propel yourself with but
your heels. If you swim on your face, you kick up
the water like a stern-wheel boat. You make no
headway. A horse is so top-heavy that he can
neither swim nor stand up in the Dead Sea. He
turns over on his side at once. Some of us bathed
for more than an hour, and then came out coated
with salt till we shone like icicles. We scrubbed it
off with a coarse towel and rode off with a
splendid brand-new smell, though it was one
which was not any more disagreeable than those
we have been for several weeks enjoying. It was
the variegated villainy and novelty of it that
charmed us. Salt crystals glitter in the sun abont
the shores of the lake. In places they coat the
ground like a brilliant crust of ice.
When I was a boy I somehow got
the impression that the river Jordan was four
thousand miles long and thirty-five miles wide. It
is only ninety miles long, and so crooked that a
man does not know which side of it he is on half
the time. In going ninety miles it does not get
over more than fifty miles of ground. It is not any
wider than Broadway in New York.
There is the Sea of Galilee and this
Dead Sea -- neither of them twenty miles long or
thirteen wide. And yet when I was in Sunday
School I thought they were sixty thousand miles in
diameter.
Travel and experience mar the
grandest pictures and rob us of the most cherished
traditions of our boyhood. Well, let them go. I
have already seen the Empire of King Solomon
diminish to the size of the State of Pennsylvania;
I suppose I can bear the reduction of the seas and
the river.
We looked every where, as we
passed along, but never saw grain or crystal of
Lot's wife. It was a great disappointment. For
many and many a year we had known her sad
story, and taken that interest in her which
misfortune always inspires. But she was gone.
Her picturesque form no longer looms above the
desert of the Dead Sea to remind the tourist of the
doom that fell upon the lost cities.
I can not describe the hideous
afternoon's ride from the Dead Sea to Mars Saba.
It oppresses me yet, to think of it. The sun so
pelted us that the tears ran down our cheeks once
or twice. The ghastly, treeless, grassless,
breathless canons smothered us as if we had been
in an oven. The sun had positive
weight to it, I think. Not a man could
sit erect under it. All drooped low in the saddles.
John preached in this "Wilderness!" It must have
been exhausting work. What a very heaven the
messy towers and ramparts of vast Hars Saba looked
to us when we caught a first glimpse of them!
We staid at this great convent all night, guests of
the hospitable priests. Mars Saba, perched upon a crag, a human
nest stock high up against a perpendicular mountain wall, is
a
world of grand masonry that rises, terrace upon terrace away
above your head, like the terraced and retreating colonnades
one
sees in fanciful pictures of Belshazzar's Feast and the palaces
of
the ancient Pharaohs. No other human dwelling is near. It was
founded many ages ago by a holy recluse who lived at first in
a
cave in the rock -- a cave which is inclosed in the convent walls,
now, and was reverently shown to us by the priests. This recluse,
by his rigorous torturing of his flesh,
his diet of bread and water,
his utter withdrawal from all society and from the vanities of
the
world, and his constant prayer and saintly contemplation of a
skull, inspired an emulation that brought about him many disciples.
The precipice on the opposite side of the canyon is well perforated
with the small holes they dug in the rock to live in. The present
occupants of Mars Saba, about seventy in number, are all hermits.
They wear a coarse robe, an ugly, brimless stove-pipe of a hat,
and go without shoes. They eat nothing whatever but bread and
salt; they drink nothing but water. As long as they live they
can
never go outside the walls, or look upon a woman -- for no woman
is permitted to enter Mars Saba, upon any pretext whatsoever.
Some of those men have been shut up there for
thirty years. In all that dreary time they have not heard the
laughter of a child or the blessed voice of a woman; they have
seen no human tears, no human smiles; they have known no
human joys, no wholesome human sorrows. In their hearts are no
memories of the past, in their brains no dreams of the future.
All
that is lovable, beautiful, worthy, they have put far away from
them; against all things that are pleasant to look upon, and
all
sounds that are music to the ear, they have barred their massive
doors and reared their relentless walls of stone forever. They
have
banished the tender grace of life and left only the sapped and
skinny mockery. Their lips are lips that never kiss and never
sing;
their hearts are hearts that never hate and never love; their
breasts
are breasts that never swell with the sentiment, "I have a country
and a flag." They are dead men who walk.
I set down these first thoughts because they are
natural -- not because they are just or because it is right to
set them
down. It is easy for book-makers to say "I thought so and so
as I
looked upon such and such a scene" -- when the truth is, they
thought all those fine things afterwards. One's first thought
is not
likely to be strictly accurate, yet it is no crime to think it
and none
to write it down, subject to modification by later experience.
These
hermits are dead men, in several
respects, but not in
all; and it is not proper, that, thinking ill of them at first,
I should
go on doing so, or, speaking ill of them I should reiterate the
words and stick to them. No, they treated us too kindly for that.
There is something human about them somewhere. They knew we
were foreigners and Protestants, and not likely to feel admiration
or much friendliness toward them. But their large charity was
above considering such things. They simply saw in us men who
were hungry, and thirsty, and tired, and that was sufficient.
They
opened their doors and gave us welcome. They asked no questions,
and they made no self-righteous display of their hospipitality.
They
fished for no compliments. They moved quietly about, setting
the
table for us, making the beds, and bringing water to wash in,
and
paid no heed when we said it was wrong for them to do that when
we had men whose business it was to perform such offices. We
fared most comfortably, and sat late at dinner. We walked all
over
the building with the hermits afterward, and then sat on the
lofty
battlements and smoked while we enjoyed the cool air, the wild
scenery and the sunset. One or two chose cosy bed-rooms to sleep
in, but the nomadic instinct prompted the rest to sleep on the
broad
divan that extended around the great hall, because it seemed
like
sleeping out of doors, and so was more cheery and inviting. It
was
a royal rest we had.
When we got up to breakfast in the morning, we
were new men. For all this hospitality no strict charge was made.
We could give something if we chose; we need give nothing, if
we
were poor or if we were stingy. The pauper and the miser are
as
free as any in the Catholic Convents of Palestine. I have been
educated to enmity toward every thing that is Catholic, and
sometimes, in consequence of this, I find it much easier to
discover Catholic faults than Catholic merits. But there is one
thing I feel no disposition to overlook, and no disposition to
forget: and that is, the honest gratitude I and all pilgrims
owe, to
the Convent Fathers in Palestine. Their doors are always open,
and
there is always a welcome for any worthy man who comes,
whether he comes in rags or clad in
purple. The Catholic Convents
are a priceless blessing to the poor. A pilgrim without money,
whether he be a Protestant or a Catholic, can travel the length
and
breadth of Palestine, and in the midst of her desert wastes find
wholesome food and a clean bed every night, in these buildings.
Pilgrims in better circumstances are often stricken down by the
sun
and the fevers of the country, and then their saving refuge is
the
Convent. Without these hospitable retreats, travel in Palestine
would be a pleasure which none but the strongest men could dare
to undertake. Our party, pilgrims and all, will always be ready
and
always willing, to touch glasses and drink health, prosperity
and
long life to the Convent Fathers of Palestine.
So, rested and refreshed, we fell into line and filed
away over the barren mountains of Judea, and along rocky ridges
and through sterile gorges, where eternal silence and solitude
reigned. Even the scattering groups of armed shepherds we met
the
afternoon before, tending their flocks of long-haired goats,
were
wanting here. We saw but two living creatures. They were
gazelles, of "soft-eyed" notoriety. They looked like very young
kids, but they annihilated distance like an express train. I
have not
seen animals that moved faster, unless I might say it of the
antelopes of our own great plains.
At nine or ten in the morning we reached the Plain
of the Shepherds, and stood in a walled garden of olives where
the
shepherds were watching their flocks by night, eighteen centuries
ago, when the multitude of angels brought them the tidings that
the
Saviour was born. A quarter of a mile away was Bethlehem of
Judea, and the pilgrims took some of the stone wall and hurried
on.
The Plain of the Shepherds is a desert, paved with
loose stones, void of vegetation, glaring in the fierce sun.
Only the
music of the angels it knew once could charm its shrubs and
flowers to life again and restore its vanished beauty. No less
potent
enchantment could avail to work this miracle.
In the huge Church of the Nativity, in Bethlehem,
built fifteen hundred years ago by the inveterate St. Helena,
they
took us below ground, and into a grotto cut in the living rock.
This was
the "manger" where Christ was born. A silver star set in
the floor bears a Latin inscription to that effect. It is polished
with
the kisses of many generations of worshiping pilgrims. The grotto
was tricked out in the usual tasteless style observable in all
the
holy places of Palestine. As in the Church of the Holy Sepulchre,
envy and uncharitableness were apparent here. The priests and
the
members of the Greek and Latin churches can not come by the
same corridor to kneel in the sacred birthplace of the Redeemer,
but are compelled to approach and retire by different avenues,
lest
they quarrel and fight on this holiest ground on earth.
I have no "meditations," suggested by this spot
where the very first "Merry Christmas!" was uttered in all the
world, and from whence the friend of my childhood, Santa Claus,
departed on his first journey, to gladden and continue to gladden
roaring firesides on wintry mornings in many a distant land forever
and forever. I touch, with reverent finger, the actual spot where
the infant Jesus lay, but I think -- nothing.
You can not think in this place any
more than you can in any other in Palestine that would be likely
to inspire reflection. Beggars, cripples and monks compass you
about, and make you think only of bucksheesh when you would
rather think of something more in keeping with the character
of the
spot.
I was glad to get away, and glad when we had
walked through the grottoes where Eusebius wrote, and Jerome
fasted, and Joseph prepared for the flight into Egypt, and the
dozen other distinguished grottoes, and knew we were done. The
Church of the Nativity is almost as well packed with exceeding
holy places as the Church of the Holy Sepulchre itself. They
even
have in it a grotto wherein twenty thousand children were
slaughtered by Herod when he was seeking the life of the infant
Saviour.
We went to the Milk Grotto, of course -- a cavern
where Mary hid herself for a while before the flight into Egypt.
Its
walls were black before she entered, but in suckling the Child,
a
drop of her milk fell upon the floor and instantly changed the
darkness of the walls to its own snowy hue. We took
many little
fragments of stone from here, because it is well known in all
the
East that a barren woman hath need only to touch her lips to
one
of these and her failing will depart from her. We took many
specimens, to the end that we might confer happiness upon certain
households that we wot of.
We got away from Bethlehem and its troops of
beggars and relic-peddlers in the afternoon, and after spending
some little time at Rachel's tomb, hurried to Jerusalem as fast
as
possible. I never was so glad to get home again before.
I never have enjoyed rest as I have enjoyed it during these last
few
hours. The journey to the Dead Sea, the Jordan and Bethlehem
was short, but it was an exhausting one. Such roasting heat,
such
oppressive solitude, and such dismal desolation can not surely
exist
elsewhere on earth. And such fatigue!
The commonest sagacity warns me that I ought to
tell the customary pleasant lie, and say I tore myself reluctantly
away from every noted place in Palestine. Every body tells that,
but with as little ostentation as I may, I doubt the word of
every
he who tells it. I could take a dreadful oath that I have never
heard
any one of our forty pilgrims say any thing of the sort, and
they
are as worthy and as sincerely devout as any that come here.
They
will say it when they get home, fast enough, but why should they
not? They do not wish to array themselves against all the
Lamartines and Grimeses in the world. It does not stand to reason
that men are reluctant to leave places where the very life is
almost
badgered out of them by importunate swarms of beggars and
peddlers who hang in strings to one's sleeves and coat-tails
and
shriek and shout in his ears and horrify his vision with the
ghastly
sores and malformations they exhibit. One is glad to
get away. I have heard shameless people say they were glad to
get
away from Ladies' Festivals where they were importuned to buy
by bevies of lovely young ladies. Transform those houris into
dusky hags and ragged savages, and replace their rounded forms
with shrunken and knotted distortions, their soft hands with
scarred
and hideous deformities, and the persuasive music of their voices
with the discordant din of a hated language, and then
see how much lingering reluctance to leave could be mustered.
No, it is the neat thing to say you were reluctant, and then
append
the profound thoughts that "struggled for utterance," in your
brain;
but it is the true thing to say you were not reluctant, and found
it
impossible to think at all -- though in good sooth it is not
respectable to say it, and not poetical, either.
We do not think, in the holy places; we think in
bed, afterwards, when the glare, and the noise, and the confusion
are gone, and in fancy we revisit alone, the solemn monuments
of
the past, and summon the phantom pageants of an age that has
passed away.
For about four hours we traveled down hill constantly.
We followed a narrow
bridle-path which traversed the beds of the mountain gorges,
and when we could we got out of
the way of the long trains of laden camels and asses, and when
we could not we suffered the
misery of being mashed up against perpendicular walls of rock
and having our legs bruised by
the passing freight. Jack was caught two or three times, and
Dan and Moult as often. One horse
had a heavy fall on the slippery rocks, and the others had narrow
escapes. However, this was
as good a road as we had found in Palestine, and possibly even
the best, and so there was not
much grumbling.
Sometimes, in the glens, we came upon luxuriant orchards
of figs, apricots,
pomegranates, and such things, but oftener the scenery was rugged,
mountainous, verdureless
and forbidding. Here and there, towers were perched high up on
acclivities which seemed almost
inaccessible. This fashion is as old as Palestine itself and
was adopted in ancient times for
security against enemies.
We crossed the brook which furnished David the stone
that
killed Goliath, and no
doubt we looked upon the very ground whereon that noted battle
was fought. We passed by a
picturesque old gothic ruin whose stone pavements had rung to
the armed heels of many a
valorous Crusader, and we rode through a piece of country which
we were told once knew
Samson as a citizen.
We staid all night with the good monks at the convent
of Ramleh, and in the
morning got up and galloped the horses a good part of the distance
from there to Jaffa, or Joppa,
for the plain was as level as a floor and free from stones, and
besides this was our last march
in Holy Land. These two or three hours finished, we and the tired
horses could have rest and
sleep as long as we wanted it. This was the plain of which Joshua
spoke when he said, "Sun,
stand thou still on Gibeon, and thou moon in the valley of Ajalon."
As we drew near to Jaffa,
the boys spurred up the horses and indulged in the excitement
of an actual race -- an experience
we had hardly had since we raced on donkeys in the Azores islands.
We came finally to the noble grove of orange-trees in
which the Oriental city of
Jaffa lies buried; we passed through the walls, and rode again
down narrow streets and among
swarms of animated rags, and saw other sights and had other experiences
we had long been
familiar with. We dismounted, for the last time, and out in the
offing, riding at anchor, we saw
the ship! I put an exclamation point there because we felt one
when we saw the vessel. The
long pilgrimage was ended, and somehow we seemed to feel glad
of it.
[For description of Jaffa, see Universal Gazetteer.]
Simon the Tanner formerly
lived here. We went to his house. All the pilgrims visit Simon
the Tanner's house. Peter saw
the vision of the beasts let down in a sheet when he lay upon
the roof of Simon the Tanner's
house. It was from Jaffa that Jonah sailed when he was told to
go and prophesy against Nineveh,
and no doubt it was not far from the town that the whale threw
him up when he discovered that
he had no ticket. Jonah was disobedient, and of a fault-finding,
complaining disposition, and
deserves to be lightly spoken of, almost. The
timbers used in the construction of Solomon's
Temple were floated to Jaffa in rafts, and the narrow opening
in the reef through which they
passed to the shore is not an inch wider or a shade less dangerous
to navigate than it was then.
Such is the sleepy nature of the population Palestine's only
good seaport has now and always
had. Jaffa has a history and a stirring one. It will not be discovered
any where in this book. If
the reader will call at the circulating library and mention my
name, he will be furnished with
books which will afford him the fullest information concerning
Jaffa.
So ends the pilgrimage. We ought to be glad that we did
not make it for the
purpose of feasting our eyes upon fascinating aspects of nature,
for we should have been
disappointed -- at least at this season of the year. A writer
in "Life in the Holy Land" observes:
Which all of us will freely grant. But it truly is
"monotonous and
uninviting," and there is no sufficient reason
for describing it as being otherwise.
Of all the lands there are for dismal scenery, I think
Palestine must be the
prince. The hills are barren, they are dull of color, they are
unpicturesque in shape. The valleys
are unsightly deserts fringed with a feeble vegetation that has
an expression about it of being
sorrowful and despondent. The Dead Sea and the Sea of Galilee
sleep in the midst of a vast
stretch of hill and plain wherein the eye rests upon no pleasant
tint, no striking object, no soft
picture dreaming in a purple haze or mottled with the shadows
of the clouds. Every outline is
harsh, every feature is distinct, there is no perspective --
distance works no enchantment here.
It is a hopeless, dreary, heart-broken land.
Small shreds and patches of it must be very beautiful
in the full flush of spring,
however, and all the more beautiful by
contrast with the far-reaching desolation that surrounds
them on every side. I would like much to see the fringes of the
Jordan in spring-time, and
Shechem, Esdraelon, Ajalon and the borders of Galilee -- but
even then these spots would seem
mere toy gardens set at wide intervals in the waste of a limitless
desolation.
Palestine sits in sackcloth and ashes. Over it broods
the spell of a curse that has
w ithered its fields and fettered its energies. Where Sodom and
Gomorrah reared their domes
and towers, that solemn sea now floods the plain, in whose bitter
waters no living thing
exists -- over whose waveless surface the blistering air hangs
motionless and dead -- about whose
borders nothing grows but weeds, and scattering tufts of cane,
and that treacherous fruit that
promises refreshment to parching lips, but turns to ashes at
the touch. Nazareth is forlorn; about
that ford of Jordan where the hosts of Israel entered the Promised
Land with songs of rejoicing,
one finds only a squalid camp of fantastic Bedouins of the desert;
Jericho the accursed, lies a
moldering ruin, to-day, even as Joshua's miracle left it more
than three thousand years ago;
Bethlehem and Bethany, in their poverty and their humiliation,
have nothing about them now
to remind one that they once knew the high honor of the Saviour's
presence; the hallowed spot
where the shepherds watched their flocks by night, and where
the angels sang Peace on earth,
good will to men, is untenanted by any living creature, and unblessed
by any feature that is
pleasant to the eye. Renowned Jerusalem itself, the stateliest
name in history, has lost all its
ancient grandeur, and is becorme a pauper village; the riches
of Solomon are no longer there
to compel the admiration of visiting Oriental queens; the wonderful
temple which was the pride
and the glory of Israel, is gone, and the Ottoman crescent is
lifted above the spot where, on that
most memorable day in the annals of the world, they reared the
Holy Cross. The noted Sea of
Galilee, where Roman fleets once rode at anchor and the disciples
of the Saviour sailed in their
ships, was long ago deserted by the devotees of war and commerce,
and its borders are a silent
wilderness; Caper-
naum is a shapeless ruin; Magdala is the home of beggared Arabs;
Bethsaida
and Chorazin have vanished from the earth, and the "desert places"
round about them where
thousands of men once listened to the Saviour's voice and ate
the miraculous bread, sIeep in the
hush of a solitude that is inhabited only by birds of prey and
skulking foxes.
Palestine is desolate and unlovely. And why should it
be otherwise? Can the
curse of the Deity beautify a land?
Palestine is no more of this work-day world. It is sacred
to poetry and
tradition -- it is dream-land.
We took off our blue woollen shirts, our spurs, and heavy
boots,
our sanguinary revolvers and our buckskin-seated pantaloons,
and
got shaved and came out in Christian costume once more. All
but
Jack, who changed all other articles of his dress, but clung
to
his traveling pantaloons. They still preserved their ample
buckskin seat intact; and so his short pea jacket and his
long,
thin legs assisted to make him a pictu-
resque object whenever he stood on the forecastle looking
abroad upon the ocean over the bows. At such times his
father's last injunction suggested itself to me. He said:
"Jack, my boy, you are about to go among a brilliant
company of gentlemen and ladies, who are refined and
cultivated, and thoroughly accomplished in the manners and
customs of good society. Listen to their conversation, study
their habits of life, and learn. Be polite and obliging to
all, and
considerate towards every one's opinions, failings and
prejudices. Command the just respect of all your
fellow-voyagers, even though you fail to win their friendly
regard. And Jack--don't you ever dare, while you live, appear
in public on those decks in fair weather, in a costume
unbecoming your mother's drawing-room!"
It would have been worth any price if the father of
this
hopeful youth could have stepped on board some time, and seen
him
standing high on the fore-castle, pea jacket, tasseled red fez,
buckskin patch and all, placidly contemplating the ocean--a rare
spectacle for any body's drawing-room.
After a pleasant voyage
and a good rest, we drew near to Egypt and out of the mellowest
of
sunsets we saw the domes and minarets of Alexandria rise
into
view. As soon as the anchor was down, Jack and I got a boat
and
went ashore. It was night by this time, and the other passengers
were content to remain at home
and visit ancient Egypt after breakfast. It was the way they
did at Constantinople. They took a lively interest in new
countries, but their school-boy impatience had worn off,
and
they had learned that it was wisdom to take things easy and
go
along comfortably--these old countries do not go away in
the
night; they stay till after breakfast.
When we reached the pier we found an army of Egyptian
boys with donkeys no larger than themselves, waiting for
passengers--for donkeys are the omnibuses of Egypt. We
preferred to walk, but we could not have our own way. The
boys crowded about us, clamored around us, and slewed their
donkeys exactly across our path, no matter which way we
turned. They were good-natured rascals, and so were the
donkeys. We mounted, and the boys ran behind us and kept
the donkeys in a furious gallop, as is the fashion at Damascus.
I believe I would rather ride a donkey than any beast in
the
world. He goes briskly, he puts on no airs, he is docile,
though
opinionated. Satan himself could not scare him, and he is
convenient--very convenient. When you are tired riding you
can rest your feet on the ground and let him gallop from
under
you.
We found the hotel and secured rooms, and were happy to
know that the Prince of Wales had stopped there once. They
had it every where on signs. No other princes had stopped
there since, till Jack and I came. We went abroad through
the
town, then, and found it a city of huge commercial buildings,
and broad, handsome streets brilliant with gas-light. By
night it
was a sort of reminiscence of Paris. But finally Jack found
an
ice-cream saloon, and that closed investigations for that
evening. The weather was very hot, it had been many a day
since Jack had seen ice-cream, and so it was useless to talk
of
leaving the saloon till it shut up.
In the morning the lost tribes of America came ashore
and
infested the hotels and took possession of all the donkeys
and
other open barouches that offered. They went in picturesque
procession to the American Consul's; to the great gardens;
to
Cleopatra's Needles; to Pompey's Pillar; to the palace of
the
Viceroy of Egypt; to the Nile; to the superb groves of date-palms.
One of our most inveterate relic-hunters had his hammer with
him, and
tried to break a
fragment off the upright Needle and could not do it; he tried
the
prostrate one and failed; he borrowed a heavy sledge hammer
from a
mason and tried again. He tried Pompey's
Pillar, and this baffled him. Scattered all about the mighty
monolith were sphinxes of noble countenance, carved out of
Egyptian granite as
hard as blue steel, and whose shapely features the wear of
five
thousand years had failed to mark or mar. The relic-hunter
battered at these persistently, and sweated profusely over
his
work. He might as well have attempted to deface the moon.
They regarded him serenely with the stately smile they had
worn so long, and which seemed to say, "Peck away, poor
insect; we were not made to fear such as you; in ten-score
dragging ages we have seen more of your kind than there are
sands at your feet: have they left a blemish upon us?"
But I am forgetting the Jaffa Colonists. At Jaffa we had
taken on board some forty members of a very celebrated
community. They were male and female; babies, young boys
and young girls; young married people, and some who had
passed a shade beyond the prime of life. I refer to the "Adams
Jaffa Colony." Others had deserted before. We left in Jaffa
Mr. Adams, his wife, and fifteen unfortunates who not only
had
no money but did not know where to turn or whither to go.
Such was the statement made to us. Our forty were miserable
enough in the first place, and they lay about the decks seasick
all the voyage, which about completed their misery, I take
it.
However, one or two young men remained upright, and by
constant persecution we wormed out of them some little
information. They gave it reluctantly and in a very fragmentary
condition, for, having been shamefully humbugged by their
prophet, they felt humiliated and unhappy. In such
circumstances people do not like to talk.
The colony was a complete fiasco. I have already
said that such as could get away did so, from time to time.
The
prophet Adams--once an actor, then several other things,
afterward a Mormon and a missionary, always an
adventurer--remains at Jaffa with his handful of sorrowful
subjects. The forty we brought away with us were chiefly
destitute, though not all of them. They wished to get to
Egypt.
What might become of them then they did not know and
probably did not care--any thing to get away from hated
Jaffa. They had little to hope for. Because after many appeals
to the sympathies of
New England, made by strangers of Boston, through the newspapers,
and
after the establishment of an office there for the reception
of
moneyed contributions for the Jaffa colonists, One Dollar
was
subscribed. The consul-general for Egypt showed me the newspaper
paragraph which mentioned the circumstance and mentioned
also the
discontinuance of the effort and the closing of the office.
It was
evident that practical New England was not sorry to be rid
of such
visionaries and was not in the least inclined to hire any
body to
bring them back to her. Still, to get to Egypt, was something,
in
the eyes of the unfortunate colonists, hopeless as the prospect
seemed of ever getting further.
Thus circumstanced, they landed at Alexandria from our
ship. One of our passengers, Mr. Moses S. Beach, of the New
York Sun, inquired of the consul-general what it would
cost to
send these people to their home in Maine by the way of
Liverpool, and he said fifteen hundred dollars in gold would
do
it. Mr. Beach gave his check for the money and so the troubles
of the Jaffa colonists were at an end.*
Alexandria was too much like a European city to be novel,
and we soon tired of it. We took the cars and came up here
to ancient Cairo, which is an
Oriental city
and of the completest pattern. There is little about it to
disabuse one's mind of the error if he should take it into
his
head that he was in the heart of Arabia. Stately camels and
dromedaries, swarthy Egyptians, and likewise Turks and black
Ethiopians, turbaned, sashed, and blazing in a rich variety
of
Oriental costumes of all shades of flashy colors, are what one
sees on
every hand crowding the narrow streets and the honeycombed
bazaars. We are stopping at Shepherd's Hotel, which is the
worst
on earth except the one I stopped at once in a small town
in the
United States. It is pleasant to read this sketch in my
note-book, now, and know that I can stand Shepherd's Hotel,
sure,
because I have been in one just like it in America and survived:
It was late at night when I got there, and I told the
clerk I
would like plenty of lights, because I wanted to read an hour
or two.
When I reached No. 15 with the porter (we came along a dim hall
that
was clad in ancient carpeting, faded, worn out in many places,
and
patched with old scraps of oil cloth--a hall that sank under
one's feet,
and creaked dismally to every footstep,) he struck a light--two
inches
of sallow, sorrowful, consumptive tallow candle, that burned
blue, and
sputtered, and got discouraged and went out. The porter lit it
again,
and I asked if that was all the light the clerk sent. He said,
"Oh
no, I've got another one here," and he produced another couple
of
inches of tallow candle. I said, "Light them both--I'll have
to have
one to see the other by." He did it, but the result was drearier
than
darkness itself. He was a cheery, accommodating rascal. He said
he
would
go "somewheres" and steal a lamp. I
abetted and
encouraged him in his
criminal design. I heard the landlord get after him in the hall
ten
minutes afterward.
"Where are you going with that lamp?"
"Fifteen wants it, sir."
"Fifteen! why he's got a double lot of candles--does the
man
want to illuminate the house?--does he want to get up a
torch-light procession?--what is he up to, any how?"
"He don't like them candles--says he wants a lamp."
"Why what in the nation does--why I never heard of such
a thing?
What on earth can he want with that lamp?"
"Well, he only wants to read--that's what he says."
"Wants to read, does he?--ain't satisfied with a thousand
candles, but has to have a lamp!--I do wonder what the devil
that
fellow wants that lamp for? Take him another candle, and then
if--"
"But he wants the lamp--says he'll burn the d--d old house
down
if he don't get a lamp!" (a remark which I never made.)
"I'd like to see him at it once. Well, you take it along--but
I
swear it beats my time, though--and see if you can't find
out what
in
the very nation he wants with that lamp."
And he went off growling to himself and still wondering
and
wondering over the unaccountable conduct of No. 15. The lamp
was a
good one, but it revealed some disagreeable things--a bed in
the
suburbs of a desert of room--a bed that had hills and valleys
in it,
and you'd have to accommodate your body to the impression left
in it
by the man that slept there last, before you could lie comfortably;
a
carpet that had seen better days; a melancholy washstand in a
remote
corner, and a dejected pitcher on it sorrowing over a broken
nose; a
looking-glass split across the centre, which chopped your head
off at
the chin and made you look like some dreadful unfinished monster
or
other; the paper peeling in shreds from the walls.
I sighed and said: "This is charming; and now don't you
think
you could get me something to read?"
The porter said, "Oh, certainly; the old man's got dead
loads
of books;" and he was gone before I could tell him what sort
of
literature I would rather have. And yet his countenance expressed
the
utmost confidence in his ability to execute the commission with
credit
to himself. The old man made a descent on him.
"What are you going to do with that pile of books?"
"Fifteen wants 'em, sir."
"Fifteen, is it? He'll want a warming-pan, next--he'll
want a
nurse! Take him every thing there is in the house--take him the
bar-keeper--take him the baggage-wagon--take him a chamber-maid!
Confound me, I never saw any thing like it. What did he say he
wants
with those books?"
"Wants to read 'em, like enough; it ain't likely he wants
to
eat 'em, I don't reckon."
"Wants to read 'em--wants to read 'em this time of night,
the
infernal lunatic! Well, he can't have them."
"But he says he's mor'ly bound to have 'em; he says he'll
just
go a-rairin' and a-chargin' through this house and raise more--well,
there's no tellin' what he
won't do if he don't get 'em; because
he's
drunk and crazy and desperate, and nothing'll soothe him down
but them
cussed books." [I had not made any threats, and was not in the
condition
ascribed to me by the porter.]
"Well, go on; but I will be around when he goes to rairing
and
charging, and the first rair he makes I'll make him rair out
of the
window." And then the old gentleman went off, growling as before.
The genius of that porter was something wonderful. He
put an armful
of books on the bed and said "Good night" as confidently as if
he knew
perfectly well that those books were exactly my style of reading
matter.
And well he might. His selection covered the whole range of legitimate
literature. It comprised "The Great Consummation," by Rev. Dr.
Cummings--theology; "Revised Statutes of the State of Missouri"--law;
"The
Complete Horse-Doctor"--medicine; "The Toilers of the Sea,"
by Victor
Hugo--romance; "The works of William Shakespeare"--poetry. I shall never
cease to admire the tact and the intelligence of that gifted
porter. But all the donkeys in Christendom, and most of the
Egyptian boys, I think, are at the door, and there is some
noise going on, not to put it in stronger language.--We
are about starting to the illustrious Pyramids of Egypt,
and the donkeys for the voyage are under inspection. I
will go and select one before the choice animals are all
taken.
Somewhere along this route we had a few startling exhibitions
of Oriental simplicity. A girl apparently thirteen years of
age came along the great thoroughfare dressed like Eve before
the fall. We would have called her thirteen at home; but here
girls who look thirteen are often not more than nine, in reality.
Occasionally we saw stark-naked men of superb build, bathing,
and making no attempt at concealment. However, an hour's acquaintance
with this cheerful custom reconciled the pilgrims to it, and
then it ceased to occasion remark. Thus easily do even the most
startling novelties grow tame and spiritless to these sight-surfeited
wanderers.
Arrived at Old Cairo, the camp-followers took up the
donkeys and tumbled them bodily aboard a small boat with a lateen
sail, and we followed and got under way. The deck was closely
packed with donkeys and men; the two sailors had to climb over
and under and through the wedged mass to work the sails, and
the steersman had to crowd four or five donkeys out of the way
when he wished to swing his tiller and put his helm hard-down.
But what were their troubles to us? We had nothing to do; nothing
to do but enjoy the trip; nothing to do but shove the donkeys
off our corns and look at the charming scenery of the Nile.
On the island at our right was the machine they call
the Nilometer, a stone-column whose business it is to mark the
rise of the river and prophecy whether it will reach only thirty-two
feet and produce a famine, or whether it will properly flood
the land at forty and produce plenty, or whether it will rise
to forty-three and bring death and destruction to flocks and
crops--but how it does all this they could not explain to us
so
that we could understand On the same island is still shown the
spot where Pharaoh's daughter found Moses in the bulrushes.
Near the spot we sailed from, the Holy Family dwelt when they
sojourned in Egypt till Herod should complete his slaughter
of the innocents. The same tree they rested under when they
first arrived, was there a short time ago, but the Viceroy of
Egypt sent it to the Empress Eugenie lately. He was just in
time, otherwise our pilgrims would have had it.
The Nile at this point is muddy, swift and turbid, and
does not lack a great deal of being as wide as the Mississippi.
We scrambled up the steep bank at the shabby town of
Ghizeh, mounted the donkeys again, and scampered away. For four
or five miles the route lay along a high embankment which they
say is to be the bed of a railway the Sultan means to build
for no other reason than that when the Empress of the French
comes to visit him she can go to the Pyramids in comfort. This
is true Oriental hospitality. I am very glad it is our privilege
to have donkeys instead of cars.
At the distance of a few miles the Pyramids rising above
the palms, looked very clean-cut, very grand and imposing, and
very soft and filmy, as well. They swam in a rich haze that
took from them all suggestions of unfeeling stone, and made them
seem only the airy nothings of a dream--structures which might
blossom into tiers of vague arches, or ornate colonnades, may
be, and change and change again, into all graceful forms of
architecture, while we looked, and then melt deliciously away
and blend with the tremulous atmosphere.
At the end of the levee we left the mules and went in
a sailboat across an arm of the Nile or an overflow, and landed
where the sands of the Great Sahara left their embankment, as
straight as a wall, along the verge of the alluvial plain of
the river. A laborious walk in the flaming sun brought us to
the foot of the great Pyramid of Cheops. It was a fairy vision
no longer. It was a corrugated, unsightly mountain of stone.
Each of its monstrous sides was a wide stairway which rose upward,
step above step, narrowing as it went, till it tapered to a
point far aloft in the air. Insect men and women--pilgrims from
the Quaker City--were creeping about its dizzy perches,
and one little black swarm were waving postage stamps from the
airy summit--handkerchiefs will be understood.
Of course we were besieged by a rabble of muscular Egyptians
and Arabs who wanted the contract of dragging us to the top--all
tourists are. Of course you could not hear your own voice for
the din that was around you. Of course the Sheiks said they
were the only responsible parties; that all contracts must be
made with them, all moneys paid over to them, and none exacted
from us by any but themselves alone. Of course they contracted
that the varlets who dragged us up should not mention bucksheesh
once. For such is the usual routine. Of course we contracted
with them, paid them, were delivered into the hands of the draggers,
dragged up the Pyramids, and harried and be-deviled for bucksheesh
from the foundation clear to the summit. We paid it, too, for
we were purposely spread very far apart over the vast side of
the Pyramid. There was no help near if we called, and the Herculeses
who dragged us had a way of asking sweetly and flatteringly
for bucksheesh, which was seductive, and of looking fierce and
threatening to
throw us down the precipice, which was persuasive and convincing.
Each step being full as high as a dinner-table; there
being very, very many of the steps; an Arab having hold of each
of our arms and springing upward from step to step and snatching
us with them, forcing us to lift our feet as high as our breasts
every time, and do it rapidly and keep it up till we were ready
to faint, who shall say it is not lively, exhilarating, lacerating,
muscle-straining, bone-wrenching and perfectly excruciating
and exhausting pastime, climbing the Pyramids? I beseeched the
varlets not to twist all my joints asunder; I iterated,
reiterated, even swore to them that I did not wish to
beat any body to the top; did all I could to convince them that
if I got there the last of all I would feel blessed above men
and grateful to them forever; I begged them, prayed them, pleaded
with them to let me stop and rest a moment--only one little
moment: and they only answered with some more frightful springs,
and an unenlisted volunteer behind opened a bombardment of determined
boosts
with his head which threatened to batter my whole political economy
to wreck and ruin.
Twice, for one minute, they let me rest while they extorted
bucksheesh, and then continued their maniac flight up the Pyramid.
They wished to beat the other parties. It was nothing to them
that I, a stranger, must be sacrificed upon the altar of their
unholy ambition. But in the midst of sorrow, joy blooms. Even
in this dark hour I had a sweet consolation. For I knew that
except these Mohammedans repented they would go straight to
perdition some day. And they never repent--they never
forsake their paganism. This thought calmed me, cheered me,
and I sank down, limp and exhausted, upon the summit, but happy,
so happy and serene within.
On the one hand, a mighty sea of yellow sand stretched
away toward the ends of the earth, solemn, silent, shorn of
vegetation, its solitude uncheered by any forms of creature
life; on the other, the Eden of Egypt was spread below us--a
broad green floor, cloven by the sinuous river, dotted with
villages, its vast distances measured and marked by the diminishing
stature of receding clusters of palms. It lay asleep in an enchanted
atmosphere. There was no sound, no motion. Above the date-plumes
in the middle distance, swelled a domed and pinnacled mass,
glimmering through a tinted, exquisite mist; away toward the
horizon a dozen shapely pyramids watched over ruined Memphis:
and at our feet the bland impassible Sphynx looked out upon
the picture from her throne in the sands as placidly and pensively
as she had looked upon its like full fifty lagging centuries
ago.
We suffered torture no pen can describe from the hungry
appeals for bucksheesh that gleamed from Arab eyes and poured
incessantly from Arab lips. Why try to call up the traditions
of vanished Egyptian grandeur; why try to fancy Egypt following
dead Rameses to his tomb in the Pyramid, or the long multitude
of Israel departing over the desert yonder? Why try to think
at all? The thing was impossible. One must bring his meditations
cut and dried, or else cut and dry them afterward.
The traditional Arab proposed, in the traditional way,
to run down Cheops, cross the eighth of a mile of sand intervening
between it and the tall pyramid of Cephron, ascend to Cephron's
summit and return to us on the top of Cheops--all in nine minutes
by the watch, and the whole service to be rendered for a single
dollar. In the first flush of irritation, I said let the Arab
and his exploits go to the mischief. But stay. The upper third
of Cephron was coated with dressed marble, smooth as glass.
A blessed thought entered my brain. He must infallibly break
his neck. Close the contract with dispatch, I said, and let
him go. He started. We watched. He went bounding down the vast
broadside, spring after spring, like an ibex. He grew small
and smaller till he became a bobbing pigmy, away down toward
the bottom--then disappeared. We turned and peered over the
other side--forty seconds--eighty seconds--a hundred--happiness,
he is dead already!--two minutes--and a quarter--"There he goes!"
Too true--it was too true. He was very small, now. Gradually,
but surely, he overcame the level ground. He began to spring
and climb again. Up, up, up--at last he reached the smooth coating--now
for it. But he clung to it with toes and fingers, like a fly.
He crawled this way and that--away to the right, slanting upward--away
to the left, still slanting upward--and stood at last, a black
peg on the summit, and waved his pigmy scarf! Then he crept
downward to the raw steps again, then picked up his agile heels
and flew. We lost him presently. But presently again we saw
him under us, mounting with undiminished energy. Shortly he
bounded into our midst with a gallant war-whoop. Time, eight
minutes, forty-one seconds. He had won. His bones were intact.
It was a failure. I reflected. I said to myself, he is tired,
and must grow dizzy. I will risk another dollar on him.
He started again. Made the trip again. Slipped on the
smooth coating--I almost had him. But an infamous crevice saved
him. He was with us once more--perfectly sound. Time, eight
minutes, forty-six seconds.
I said to Dan, "Lend me a dollar--I can beat this game,
yet."
Worse and worse. He won again. Time, eight minutes,
forty-eight seconds. I was out of all patience, now. I was desperate.--Money
was no longer of any consequence. I said, "Sirrah, I will give
you a hundred dollars to jump off this pyramid head first. If
you do not like the terms, name your bet. I scorn to stand on
expenses now. I will stay right here and risk money on you as
long as Dan has got a cent."
I was in a fair way to win, now, for it was a dazzling
opportunity for an Arab. He pondered a moment, and would have
done it, I think, but his mother arrived, then, and interfered.
Her tears moved me--I never can look upon the tears of woman
with indifference--and I said I would give her a hundred to
jump off, too.
But it was a failure. The Arabs are too high-priced in
Egypt. They put on airs unbecoming to such savages.
We descended, hot and out of humor. The dragoman lit candles,
and we all entered a hole near the base of the pyramid, attended
by a crazy rabble of Arabs who thrust their services upon us
uninvited. They dragged us up a long inclined chute, and dripped
candle-grease all over us. This chute was not more than twice
as wide and high as a Saratoga trunk, and was walled, roofed
and floored with solid blocks of Egyptian granite as wide as
a wardrobe, twice as thick and three times as long. We kept
on climbing, through the oppressive gloom, till I thought we
ought to be nearing the top of the pyramid again, and then came
to the "Queen's Chamber," and shortly to the Chamber of the
King. These large apartments were tombs. The walls were built
of monstrous masses of smoothed granite, neatly joined together.
Some of them were nearly as large square as an ordinary parlor.
A great stone sarcophagus like a bath-tub stood in the centre
of the King's Chamber. Around it were gathered a picturesque
group of Arab savages and soiled and tattered pilgrims, who
held their candles aloft in the gloom while they chattered,
and the winking blurs of light shed a dim glory down upon one
of the irrepressible memento-seekers who was pecking at the
venerable sarcophagus with his sacrilegious hammer.
We struggled out to the open air and the bright sunshine,
and for the space of thirty minutes received ragged Arabs by
couples, dozens and platoons, and paid them bucksheesh for services
they swore and proved by each other that they had rendered,
but which we had not been aware of before--and as each party
was paid, they dropped into the rear of the procession and in
due time arrived again with a newly-invented delinquent list
for liquidation.
We lunched in the shade of the pyramid, and in the midst
of this encroaching and unwelcome company, and then Dan and
Jack and I started away for a walk. A howling swarm of beggars
followed us--surrounded us--almost headed us off. A sheik, in
flowing white bournous and gaudy head-gear, was with them. He
wanted more bucksheesh. But we had adopted a new code--it was
millions for defense, but not a cent for
bucksheesh. I asked him if he could persuade the others to depart
if we paid him. He said yes--for ten francs. We accepted the
contract, and said--
"Now persuade your vassals to fall back."
He swung his long staff round his head and three Arabs
bit the dust. He capered among the mob like a very maniac. His
blows fell like hail, and wherever one fell a subject went down.
We had to hurry to the rescue and tell him it was only necessary
to damage them a little, he need not kill them.--In two minutes
we were alone with the sheik, and remained so. The persuasive
powers of this illiterate savage were remarkable.
Each side of the Pyramid of Cheops is about as long as
the Capitol at Washington, or the Sultan's new palace on the
Bosporus, and is longer than the greatest depth of St. Peter's
at Rome--which is to say that each side of Cheops extends seven
hundred and some odd feet. It is about seventy-five feet higher
than the cross on St. Peter's. The first time I ever went down
the Mississippi, I thought the highest bluff on the river between
St. Louis and New Orleans--it was near Selma, Missouri--was
probably the highest mountain in the world. It is four hundred
and thirteen feet high. It still looms in my memory with undiminished
grandeur. I can still see the trees and bushes growing smaller
and smaller as I followed them up its huge slant with my eye,
till they became a feathery fringe on the distant summit. This
symmetrical Pyramid of Cheops
--this solid mountain of stone reared by the patient hands of
men--this mighty tomb of a forgotten monarch--dwarfs my cherished
mountain. For it is four hundred and eighty feet high. In still
earlier years than those I have been recalling, Holliday's Hill,
in our town, was to me the noblest work of God. It appeared
to pierce the skies. It was nearly three hundred feet high.
In those days I pondered the subject much, but I never could
understand why it did not swathe its summit with never-failing
clouds, and crown its majestic brow with everlasting snows.
I had heard that such was the custom of great mountains in other
parts of the world. I remembered how I worked with another boy,
at odd afternoons stolen from study and paid for with stripes,
to undermine and start from its bed an immense boulder that
rested upon the edge of that hilltop; I remembered how, one
Saturday afternoon, we gave three hours of honest effort to
the task, and saw at last that our reward was at hand; I remembered
how we sat down, then, and wiped the perspiration away, and
waited to let a picnic party get out of the way in the road
below--and then we started the boulder. It was splendid. It
went crashing down the hillside, tearing up saplings, mowing
bushes down like grass, ripping and crushing and smashing every
thing in its path--eternally splintered and scattered a wood
pile at the foot of the hill, and then sprang from the high
bank clear over a dray in the road--the negro glanced up once
and dodged--and the next second it made infinitesimal mince-meat
of a frame cooper-shop, and the coopers swarmed out like bees.
Then we said it was perfectly magnificent, and left. Because
the coopers were starting up the hill to inquire.
Still, that mountain, prodigious as it was, was nothing
to the Pyramid of Cheops. I could conjure up no comparison that
would convey to my mind a satisfactory comprehension of the
magnitude of a pile of monstrous stones that covered thirteen
acres of ground and stretched upward four hundred and eighty
tiresome feet, and so I gave it up and walked down
to the Sphynx.
After years of waiting, it was before me at last. The
great
face was so sad, so earnest, so longing, so patient. There was
a dignity not of earth in its mien, and in its countenance a
benignity such as never any thing human wore. It was stone,
but it seemed sentient. If ever image of stone thought, it was
thinking. It was looking toward the verge of the landscape,
yet looking at nothing--nothing but distance and vacancy.
It was looking over and beyond every thing of the present, and
far into the past. It was gazing out over the ocean of Time--over
lines of century-waves which, further and further receding,
closed nearer and nearer together, and blended at last into
one unbroken tide, away toward the horizon of remote antiquity.
It was thinking of the wars of departed ages; of the empires
it had seen created and destroyed; of the nations whose birth
it had witnessed, whose progress it had watched, whose annihilation
it had noted; of the joy and sorrow, the life and death, the
grandeur and decay, of five thousand slow revolving years. It
was the type of an attribute of man--of a faculty of his heart
and brain. It was MEMORY--RETROSPECTION--wrought
into visible, tangible form. All who know what pathos there
is in memories of days that are accomplished and faces that
have vanished--albeit only a trifling score of years gone by--will
have some appreciation of the pathos that dwells in these grave
eyes that look so steadfastly back upon the things they knew
before History was born--before Tradition had being--things
that were, and forms that moved, in a vague era which even Poetry
and Romance scarce know of--and passed one by one away and left
the stony dreamer solitary in the midst of a strange new age,
and uncomprehended scenes.
The Sphynx is grand in its loneliness; it is imposing
in its magnitude; it is impressive in the mystery that hangs
over its story. And there is that in the overshadowing majesty
of this eternal figure of stone, with its accusing memory of
the deeds of all ages, which reveals to one something of what
he shall feel when he shall stand at last in the awful presence
of God.
There are some things which, for the credit of America,
should be left unsaid, perhaps; but these very things happen
sometimes to be the very things which, for the real benefit
of
Americans, ought to have prominent notice. While we stood looking,
a wart, or an excrescence of some kind, appeared on the jaw
of the Sphynx. We heard the familiar clink of a hammer, and
understood the case at once. One of our well meaning reptiles--I
mean relic-hunters--had crawled up there and was trying to break
a "specimen " from the face of this the most majestic creation
the hand of man has wrought. But the great image contemplated
the dead ages as calmly as ever, unconscious of the small insect
that was fretting at its jaw. Egyptian granite that has defied
the storms and earthquakes of all time has nothing to fear from
the tack-hammers of ignorant excursionists--highwaymen like
this specimen. He failed in his enterprise. We sent a sheik
to arrest him if he had the authority, or to warn him, if he
had not, that by the laws of Egypt the crime he was attempting
to commit was punishable with imprisonment or the bastinado.
Then he desisted and went away.
The Sphynx: a hundred and twenty-five feet long, sixty
feet high, and a hundred and two feet around the head, if I
remember rightly--carved out of one solid block of stone harder
than any iron. The block must have been as large as the Fifth
Avenue Hotel before the usual waste (by the necessities of sculpture)
of a fourth or a half of the original mass was begun. I only
set
down these figures and these remarks to suggest the prodigious
labor the carving of it so elegantly, so symmetrically, so faultlessly,
must have cost. This species of stone is so hard that figures
cut in it remain sharp and unmarred after exposure to the weather
for two or three thousand years. Now did it take a hundred years
of patient toil to carve the Sphynx? It seems probable.
Something interfered, and we did not visit the Red Sea
and walk upon the sands of Arabia. I shall not describe the
great mosque of Mehemet Ali, whose entire inner walls are built
of polished and glistening alabaster; I shall not tell how the
little birds have built their nests in the globes of the great
chandeliers that hang in the mosque, and how they fill the whole
place with their music and are not afraid of any body because
their audacity is pardoned, their rights are respected, and
nobody is allowed to interfere with them, even though the mosque
be thus doomed to go unlighted; I certainly shall not tell the
hackneyed story of the massacre of the Mamelukes, because I
am glad the lawless rascals were massacred, and I do not wish
to get up any sympathy in their behalf; I shall not tell how
that one solitary Mameluke jumped his horse a hundred feet down
from the battlements of the citadel and escaped, because I do
not think much of that--I could have done it myself; I shall
not tell of Joseph's well which he dug in the solid rock of
the citadel hill and which is still as good as new, nor how
the
same mules he bought to draw up the water (with an endless chain)
are still at it yet and are getting tired of it, too; I shall
not tell about Joseph's granaries which he built to store the
grain in, what time the Egyptian brokers were "selling short,"
unwitting that there would be no corn in all the land when it
should be time for them to deliver; I shall not tell any thing
about the strange, strange city of Cairo, because it is only
a repetition, a good deal intensified and exaggerated, of the
Oriental cities I have already spoken of; I shall not tell of
the Great Caravan which leaves for Mecca every year, for I did
not see it; nor of the fashion the people have of prostrating
themselves and so forming a long human pavement to be ridden
over by the chief of the expedition on its return, to the end
that their salvation may be thus secured, for I did not see
that either; I shall not speak of the railway, for it is like
any other railway--I shall only say that the fuel they use for
the locomotive is composed of mummies three thousand years old,
purchased by the ton or by the graveyard for that purpose, and
that sometimes one hears the profane engineer call out pettishly,
"D--n these plebeians, they don't burn worth a cent--pass out
a King;"* I shall not tell of the groups of mud cones stuck
like wasps' nests upon a thousand mounds above high water-mark
the length and breadth of Egypt--villages of the lower classes;
I shall not speak of the boundless sweep of level plain, green
with luxuriant grain, that gladdens the eye as far as it can
pierce through the soft, rich atmosphere of Egypt; I shall not
speak of the vision of the Pyramids seen at a distance of five
and twenty miles, for the picture is too ethereal to be limned
by an uninspired pen; I shall not tell of the crowds of dusky
women who flocked to the cars when they stopped a moment at
a station, to sell us a drink of water or a ruddy, juicy pomegranate;
I shall not tell of the motley multitudes and wild costumes
that graced a fair we found in full blast at another barbarous
station; I shall not tell how we feasted on fresh dates and
enjoyed the pleasant landscape all through the
flying journey; nor how we thundered into Alexandria, at last,
swarmed out of the cars, rowed aboard the ship, left a comrade
behind, (who was to return to Europe, thence home,) raised the
anchor, and turned our bows homeward finally and forever from
the long voyage; nor how, as the mellow sun went down upon the
oldest land on earth, Jack and Moult assembled in solemn state
in the smoking-room and mourned over the lost comrade the whole
night long, and would not be comforted. I shall not speak a
word of any of these things, or write aline. They shall be as
a sealed book. I do not know what a sealed book is, because
I never saw one, but a sealed book is the expression to use
in this connection, because it is popular.
We were glad to have seen the land which was the mother
of civilization--which taught Greece her letters, and through
Greece Rome, and through Rome the world; the land which could
have humanized and civilized the hapless children of Israel,
but allowed them to depart out of her borders little better
than savages. We were glad to have seen that land which had
an enlightened religion with future eternal rewards and punishment
in it, while even Israel's religion contained no promise of
a hereafter. We were glad to have seen that land which had
glass three thousand years before England had it, and could
paint upon it as none of us can paint now; that land which knew,
three thousand years ago, well nigh all of medicine and surgery
which science has discovered lately; which had all those
curious surgical instruments which science has invented
recently; which had in high excellence a thousand luxuries and
necessities of an advanced civilization which we have gradually
contrived and accumulated in modern times and claimed as things
that were new under the sun; that had paper untold centuries
before we dreampt of it--and waterfalls before our women thought
of them; that had a perfect system of common schools so long
before we boasted of our achievements in that direction that
it seems forever and forever ago; that so embalmed the dead
that flesh was made almost immortal--which we can not do; that
built temples which mock at destroying time and smile grimly
upon our lauded little prodigies of architecture; that old land
that knew all which we know now, perchance, and more; that walked
in the broad highway of civilization in the gray dawn of creation,
ages and ages before we were born; that left the impress of
exalted, cultivated Mind upon the eternal front of the Sphynx
to confound all scoffers who, when all her other proofs had
passed away, might seek to persuade the world that imperial
Egypt, in the days of her high renown, had groped in darkness.
We were all lazy and satisfied, now, as the meager
entries
in my note-book (that sure index, to me, of my condition,)
prove. What a stupid thing a note-book gets to be at sea,
any
way. Please observe the style:
"Monday--Beautiful day, but rained hard. The cattle
purchased at Alexandria for beef ought to be shingled. Or else
fattened.
The water stands in deep puddles in the depressions forward of
their
after shoulders. Also here and there all over their backs.
It is
well they are not cows--it would soak in and ruin the milk.
The poor
devil eagle* from Syria looks miserable and droopy in the
rain,
perched on the forward capstan. He appears to have his own
opinion of a sea voyage, and if it were put into language
and the
language solidified, it would probably essentially dam the
widest river in the world.
"Tuesday--Somewhere in the neighborhood of the
island of
Malta. Can not stop there. Cholera. Weather very stormy. Many
passengers
seasick and invisible.
"Wednesday--Weather still very savage. Storm blew
two land
birds to sea, and they came on board. A hawk was blown off, also.
He
circled round and round the ship, wanting to light, but afraid
of
the people. He was so tired, though, that he had to light,
at
last, or perish. He stopped in the foretop, repeatedly, and
was as
often blown away by the wind. At last Harry caught him. Sea
full
of flying-fish. They rise in flocks of three hundred and
flash
along above the tops of the waves a distance of two or three
hundred feet, then fall and disappear.
"Thursday--Anchored off Algiers, Africa. Beautiful
city,
beautiful green hilly landscape behind it. Staid half a day and
left. Not
permitted to land, though we showed a clean bill of health. They
were
afraid of Egyptian plague and cholera.
"Friday--Morning, dominoes. Afternoon, dominoes.
Evening,
promenading the deck. Afterwards, charades.
"Saturday--Morning, dominoes. Afternoon, dominoes.
Evening,
promenading the decks. Afterwards, dominoes.
"Sunday--Morning service, four bells. Evening service,
eight
bells. Monotony till midnight.--Whereupon, dominoes.
"Monday--Morning, dominoes. Afternoon, dominoes.
Evening,
promenading the decks. Afterward, charades and a lecture from
Dr. C.
Dominoes.
"No date--Anchored off the picturesque city of
Cagliari,
Sardinia. Staid till midnight, but not permitted to land by these
infamous
foreigners. They smell inodorously--they do not wash--they dare
not risk
cholera.
"Thursday--Anchored off the beautiful cathedral
city of
Malaga, Spain.--Went ashore in the captain's boat--not ashore,
either, for
they would not let us land. Quarantine. Shipped my newspaper
correspondence, which they took with tongs, dipped it in sea
water,
clipped it full of holes, and then fumigated it with villainous
vapors
till it smelt like a Spaniard. Inquired about chances to run
to blockade
and visit the Alhambra at Granada. Too risky--they might hang
a body. Set
sail--middle of afternoon.
"And so on, and so on, and so
forth, for
several days. Finally, anchored off Gibraltar, which looks familiar
and
home-like." It reminds me of the journal I opened with the New Year,
once, when I was a boy and a confiding and a willing prey to
those impossible schemes of reform which well-meaning old
maids and grandmothers set for the feet of unwary youths
at
that season of the year--setting oversized tasks for them,
which, necessarily failing, as infallibly weaken the boy's
strength of will, diminishsh his confidence in himself and
injure
his chances of success in life. Please accept of an extract:
I stopped, then, discouraged. Startling events
appeared to
be too rare, in my career, to render a diary necessary. I
still
reflect with pride, however, that even at that early age
I
washed when I got up. That journal finished me. I never
have had the nerve to keep one since. My loss of confidence
in myself in that line was permanent.
The ship had to stay a week or more at Gibraltar to take
in coal for the home voyage.
It would be very tiresome staying here, and so four of
us ran the
quarantine blockade and spent seven delightful days in Seville,
Cordova, Cadiz, and wandering through the pleasant rural
scenery
of Andalusia, the garden of Old Spain. The experiences of
that
cheery week were too varied and numerous for a short chapter
and
I have not room for a long one. Therefore I shall leave
them all
out.
It had long ago been decided in a noisy public meeting
in the main cabin that we could not go to Lisbon,
because we must surely be quarantined there. We did every thing
by mass-meeting, in the good old national way, from
swapping off one empire for another on the programme of the voyage
down to complaining of the cookery and the
scarcity of napkins. I am reminded, now, of one of these complaints
of the cookery made by a passenger. The coffee
had been steadily growing more and more execrable for the space
of three weeks, till at last it had ceased to be coffee
altogether and had assumed the nature of mere discolored water--so
this person said. He said it was so weak that it was
transparent an inch in depth around the edge of the cup. As he
approached the table one morning he saw the transparent
edge--by means of his extraordinary vision long before he got
to his seat. He went back and complained in a
high-handed way to Capt. Duncan. He said the coffee was disgraceful.
The Captain showed his. It seemed tolerably
good. The incipient mutineer was more outraged than ever, then,
at what he denounced as the partiality shown
the captain's table over the other tables in the ship. He flourished
back and got his cup and set it down triumphantly,
and said:
"Just try that mixture once, Captain Duncan."
He smelt it--tasted it--smiled benignantly--then said:
"It is inferior--for coffee--but it is pretty
fair tea."
The humbled mutineer smelt it, tasted it, and returned
to his seat. He had made an egregious ass of himself
before the whole ship. He did it no more. After that he took
things as they came. That was me.
The old-fashioned ship-life had returned, now that we
were no longer in sight of land. For days and days it
continued just the same, one day being exactly like another,
and, to me, every one of them pleasant. At last we anchored
in the open roadstead of Funchal, in the beautiful islands we
call the Madeiras.
The mountains looked surpassingly lovely, clad as they
were in living, green; ribbed with lava ridges; flecked
with white cottages; riven by deep chasms purple with shade;
the great slopes dashed with sunshine and mottled with
shadows flung from the drifting squadrons of the sky, and the
superb picture fitly crowned by towering peaks whose
fronts were swept by the trailing fringes of the clouds.
But we could not land. We staid all day and looked, we
abused the man who invented quarantine, we held
half a dozen mass-meetings and crammed them full of interrupted
speeches,
motions that fell still-born, amendments that came to nought
and resolutions that died from sheer exhaustion in trying
to get before the house. At night we set sail.
We averaged four mass-meetings a week for the voyage--we
seemed always in labor in this way, and yet
so often fallaciously that whenever at long intervals we were
safely delivered of a resolution, it was cause for public
rejoicing, and we hoisted the flag and fired
a salute.
Days passed--and nights; and then the beautiful Bermudas
rose out of the sea, we entered the tortuous channel,
steamed hither and thither among the bright summer islands, and
rested at last under the flag of England and were
welcome. We were not a nightmare here, where were civilization
and intelligence in place of Spanish and Italian
superstition, dirt and dread of cholera. A few days among the
breezy groves, the flower gar-
dens, the coral caves, and the lovely vistas of blue water that
went curving in and out, disappearing and anon again
appearing through jungle walls of brilliant foliage, restored
the energies dulled by long drowsing on the ocean, and fitted
us for our final cruise--our little run of a thousand miles to
New York--America--HOME.
We bade good-bye to "our friends the Bermudians," as our
programme hath it--the majority of those we
were most intimate with were negroes--and courted the great deep
again. I said the majority. We knew more negroes
than white people, because we had a deal of washing to be done,
but we made some most excellent friends among the
whites, whom it will be a pleasant duty to hold long in grateful
remembrance.
We sailed, and from that hour all idling ceased. Such
another system of overhauling, general littering of cabins
and packing of trunks we had not seen since we let go the anchor
in the harbor of Beirout. Every body was busy. Lists
of all purchases had to be made out, and values attached, to
facilitate matters at the custom-house. Purchases bought
by bulk in partnership had to be equitably divided, outstanding
debts canceled, accounts compared, and trunks, boxes
and packages labeled. All day long the bustle and confusion continued.
And now came our first accident. A passenger was running
through a gangway, between decks, one
stormy night, when he caught his foot in the iron staple of a
door that had been heedlessly left off a hatchway, and
the bones of his leg broke
at the ancle. It was our first serious misfortune. We had traveled
much more than twenty thousand miles, by land and
sea, in many trying climates, without a single hurt, without
a serious case of sickness and without a death among five
and sixty passengers. Our good fortune had been wonderful. A
sailor had jumped overboard at Constantinople one
night, and was seen no more, but it was suspected that his object
was to desert, and there was a slim chance, at least,
that he reached the shore. But the passenger list was complete.
There was no name missing from the register.
At last, one pleasant morning, we steamed up the harbor
of New York, all on deck, all dressed in Christian
garb--by special order, for there was a latent disposition in
some quarters to come out as Turks--and amid a waving
of handkerchiefs from welcoming friends, the glad pilgrims noted
the shiver of the decks that told that ship and pier
had joined hands again and the long, strange cruise was over.
Amen.
TO THE EDITOR OF THE HERALD:
The steamer Quaker City has accomplished at last her extraordinary
voyage and returned to her old pier at the foot of Wall street.
The expedition was a success in some respects, in some it was
not. Originally it was advertised as a "pleasure excursion."
Well, perhaps, it was a pleasure excursion, but certainly it
did not look like one; certainly it did not act like one. Any
body's and every body's notion of a pleasure excursion is that
the parties to it will of a necessity be young and giddy and
somewhat boisterous. They will dance a good deal, sing a good
deal, make love, but sermonize very little. Any body's and every
body's notion of a well conducted funeral is that there must
be a hearse and a corpse, and chief mourners and mourners by
courtesy, many old people, much solemnity, no levity, and a
prayer and a sermon withal. Three-fourths of the Quaker City's
passengers were between forty and seventy years of age! There
was a picnic crowd for you! It may be supposed that the other
fourth was composed of young girls. But it was not. It was chiefly
composed of rusty old bachelors and a child of six years. Let
us average the ages of the Quaker City's pilgrims and set the
figure down as fifty years. Is any man insane enough to imagine
that this picnic of patriarchs sang, made love, danced, laughed,
told anecdotes, dealt in ungodly levity? In my experience they
sinned little in these matters. No doubt it was presumed here
at home that these frolicsome veterans laughed and sang and
romped all day, and day after day, and kept up a noisy excitement
from one end of the ship to the other; and that they played
blind-man's buff or danced quadrilles and waltzes on moonlight
evenings on the quarter-deck; and that at odd moments of unoccupied
time they jotted a laconic item or two in the journals they
opened on such an elaborate plan when they left home, and then
skurried off to their whist and euchre labors under the cabin
lamps. If these things were presumed, the presumption was at
fault. The venerable excursionists were not gay and frisky.
They played no blind-man's buff; they dealt not in whist; they
shirked not the irksome journal, for alas! most of them were
even writing books. They never romped, they talked but little,
they never sang, save in the nightly prayer-meeting. The pleasure
ship was a synagogue, and the pleasure trip was a funeral excursion
without a corpse. (There is nothing exhilarating about a funeral
excursion without a corpse.) A free, hearty laugh was a sound
that was not heard oftener than once in seven days about those
decks or in those cabins, and when it was heard it met with
precious little sympathy. The excursionists danced, on three
separate evenings, long, long ago,
(it seems an age.) quadrilles, of a single set,
made up of three ladies and five gentlemen, (the latter with
handkerchiefs around their arms to signify their sex.) who timed
their feet to the solemn wheezing of a melodeon; but even this
melancholy orgie was voted to be sinful, and dancing was discontinued.
The pilgrims played dominoes when too much Josephus or
Robinson's Holy Land Researches, or book-writing, made recreation
necessary--for dominoes is about as mild and sinless a game
as any in the world, perhaps, excepting always the ineffably
insipid diversion they call croquet, which is a game where you
don't pocket any balls and don't carom on any thing of any consequence,
and when you are done nobody has to pay, and there are no refreshments
to saw off, and, consequently, there isn't any satisfaction
whatever about it--they played dominoes till they were rested,
and then they blackguarded each other privately till prayer-time.
When they were not seasick they were uncommonly prompt when
the dinner-gong sounded. Such was our daily life on board the
ship--solemnity, decorum, dinner, dominoes, devotions, slander.
It was not lively enough for a pleasure trip; but if we had
only had a corpse it would have made a noble funeral excursion.
It is all over now; but when I look back, the idea of these
venerable fossils skipping forth on a six months' picnic, seems
exquisitely refreshing. The advertised title of the expedition--"The
Grand Holy Land Pleasure Excursion "--was a misnomer. "The Grand
Holy Land Funeral Procession" would have been better--much better.
Wherever we went, in Europe, Asia, or Africa, we made
a sensation, and, I suppose I may add, created a famine. None
of us had ever been any where before; we all hailed from the
interior; travel was a wild novelty to us, and we conducted
ourselves in accordance with the natural instincts that were
in us, and trammeled ourselves with no ceremonies, no conventionalities.
We always took care to make it understood that we were Americans--Americans!
When we found that a good many foreigners had hardly ever heard
of America, and that a good many more knew it only as a barbarous
province away off somewhere, that had lately been at war with
somebody, we pitied the ignorance of the Old World, but abated
no jot of our importance. Many and many a simple community in
the Eastern hemisphere will remember for years the incursion
of the strange horde in the year of our Lord 1867, that called
themselves Americans, and seemed to imagine in some unaccountable
way that they had a right to be proud of it. We generally created
a famine, partly because the coffee on the Quaker City was unendurable,
and sometimes the more substantial fare was not strictly first
class; and partly because one naturally tires of sitting long
at the same board and eating from the same dishes.
The people of those foreign countries are very, very ignorant.
They looked curiously at the costumes we had brought from the
wilds of America. They observed that we talked loudly at table
sometimes. They noticed that we looked out for expenses, and
got what we conveniently could out of a franc, and wondered
where in the mischief we came from. In Paris they just simply
opened their eyes and stared when we spoke to them in French!
We never did succeed in making those idiots understand their
own language. One of our passengers said to a shopkeeper, in
reference to a proposed return to buy a pair of gloves, "Allong
restay trankeel--may be ve coom Moonday;" and would you
believe it, that shopkeeper, a born
Frenchman, had to ask what it was that had been said. Sometimes
it seems to me, somehow, that there must be a difference between
Parisian French and Quaker City French.
The people stared at us every where, and we stared at
them. We generally made them feel rather small, too, before
we got done with them, because we bore down on them with America's
greatness until we crushed them. And yet we took kindly to the
manners and customs, and especially to the fashions of the various
people we visited. When we left the Azores, we wore awful capotes
and used fine tooth combs--successfully. When we came back from
Tangier, in Africa, we were topped with fezzes of the bloodiest
hue, hung with tassels like an Indian's scalp-lock. In France
and Spain we attracted some attention in these costumes. In
Italy they naturally took us for distempered Garibaldians, and
set a gunboat to look for any thing significant in our changes
of uniform. We made Rome howl. We could have made any place
howl when we had all our clothes on. We got no fresh raiment
in Greece--they had but little there of any kind. But at Constantinople,
how we turned out! Turbans, scimetars, fezzes, horse-pistols,
tunics, sashes, baggy trowsers, yellow slippers--Oh, we were
gorgeous! The illustrious dogs of Constantinople barked their
under jaws off, and even then failed to do us justice. They
are all dead by this time. They could not go through such a
run of business as we gave them and survive.
And then we went to see the Emperor of Russia. We just
called on him as comfortably as if we had known him a century
or so, and when we had finished our visit we variegated ourselves
with selections from Russian costumes and sailed away again
more picturesque than ever. In Smyrna we picked up camel's hair
shawls and other dressy things from Persia; but in Palestine--ah,
in Palestine--our splendid career ended. They didn't wear any
clothes there to speak of. We were satisfied, and stopped. We
made no experiments. We did not try their costume. But we astonished
the natives of that country. We astonished them with such eccentricities
of dress as we could muster. We prowled through the Holy Land,
from Cesarea Philippi to Jerusalem and the Dead Sea, a weird
procession of pilgrims, gotten up regardless of expense, solemn,
gorgeous, green-spectacled, drowsing under blue umbrellas, and
astride of a sorrier lot of horses, camels and asses than those
that came out of Noah's ark, after eleven months of seasickness
and short rations. If ever those children of Israel in Palestine
forget when Gideon's Band went through there from America, they
ought to be cursed once more and finished. It was the rarest
spectacle that ever astounded mortal eyes, perhaps.
Well, we were at home in Palestine. It was easy to see
that that was the grand feature of the expedition. We had cared
nothing much about Europe. We galloped through the Louvre, the
Pitti, the Ufizzi, the Vatican--all the galleries--and through
the pictured and frescoed churches of Venice, Naples, and the
cathedrals of Spain; some of us said that certain of the great
works of the old masters were glorious creations of genius,
(we found it out in the guide-book, though we got hold of the
wrong picture sometimes,) and the others said they were disgraceful
old daubs. We examined modern and ancient statuary with a critical
eye in Florence, Rome, or any where we found it, and praised
it if we saw fit, and if we didn't we said we preferred the
wooden Indians in front of the cigar stores of America. But
the Holy Land brought out all our enthusiasm. We fell into raptures
by the barren shores of Galilee; we pondered at Tabor and at
Nazareth; we exploded into poetry over the questionable loveliness
of Esdraelon; we meditated at Jezreel and Samaria over the missionary
zeal of Jehu; we rioted--fairly rioted among the holy places
of Jerusalem; we bathed in Jordan and the Dead Sea, reckless
whether our accident-insurance policies were extra-hazardous
or not, and brought away so many jugs of precious water from
both places that all the country from Jericho to the mountains
of Moab will suffer from drouth this year, I think. Yet, the
pilgrimage part of the excursion was its pet feature--there
is no question about that. After dismal, smileless Palestine,
beautiful Egypt had few charms for us. We merely glanced at
it and were ready for home.
They wouldn't let us land at Malta--quarantine; they would
not let us land in Sardinia; nor at Algiers, Africa; nor at
Malaga, Spain, nor Cadiz, nor at the Madeira islands. So we
got offended at all foreigners and turned our backs upon them
and came home. I suppose we only stopped at the Bermudas because
they were in the programme. We did not care any thing about
any place at all. We wanted to go home. Homesickness was abroad
in the ship--it was epidemic. If the authorities of New York
had known how badly we had it, they would have quarantined us
here.
The grand pilgrimage is over. Good-bye to it, and a pleasant
memory to it, I am able to say in all kindness. I bear no malice,
no ill-will toward any individual that was connected with it,
either as passenger or officer. Things I did not like at all
yesterday I like very well to-day, now that I am at home, and
always hereafter I shall be able to poke fun at the whole gang
if the spirit so moves me to do, without ever saying a malicious
word. The expedition accomplished all that its programme promised
that it should accomplish, and we ought all to be satisfied
with the management of the matter, certainly. Bye-bye!
MARK TWAIN. I call that complimentary. It is complimentary;
and yet I never have received a word of thanks for it from the
Hadjis; on the contrary I speak nothing but the serious truth
when I say that many of them even took exceptions to the article.
In endeavoring to please them I slaved over that sketch for
two hours, and had my labor for my pains. I never will do a
generous deed again.
And I will say, here, that I would rather travel with
an excursion party of Methuselahs than have to be changing ships
and comrades constantly, as people do who travel in the ordinary
way. Those latter are always grieving over some other
ship they have known and lost, and over other comrades
whom diverging routes have separated from them. They learn
to
love a ship just in time to change it for another, and they
become attached to a pleasant traveling companion only to lose
him. They have that most dismal experience of being in a strange
vessel, among strange people who care nothing about them, and
of undergoing the customary bullying by strange officers and
the insolence of strange servants, repeated over and over again
within the compass of every month. They have also that other
misery of packing and unpacking trunks--of running the distressing
gauntlet of custom-houses--of the anxieties attendant upon getting
a mass of baggage from point to point on land in safety. I
had
rasher sail with a whole brigade of patriarchs than suffer so.
We never packed our trunks but twice--when we sailed from New
York, and when we returned to it. Whenever we made a land journey,
we estimated how many days we should be gone and what amount
of clothing we should need, figured it down to a mathematical
nicety, packed a valise or two accordingly, and left the trunks
on board. We chose our comrades from among our old, tried friends,
and started. We were never dependent upon strangers for companionship.
We often had occasion to pity Americans whom we found traveling
drearily among strangers with no friends to exchange pains and
pleasures with. Whenever we were coming back from a land journey,
our eyes sought one thing in the distance first--the ship--and
when we saw it riding at anchor with the flag apeak, we felt
as a returning wanderer feels when he sees his home. When we
stepped on board, our cares vanished, our troubles were at an
end--for the ship was home to us. We always had the same familiar
old state-room to go to, and feel safe and at peace and comfortable
again.
I have no fault to find with the manner in which our excursion
was conducted. Its programme was faithfully carried out--a
thing which surprised me, for great enterprises usually promise
vastly more than they perform. It would be well if such an
excursion
could be gotten up every year and the system regularly inaugurated.
Travel is fatal to prejudice, bigotry and narrow-mindedness,
and many of our people need it sorely on these accounts. Broad,
wholesome, charitable views of men and things can not be acquired
by vegetating in one little corner of the earth all one's lifetime.
The Excursion is ended, and has passed to its place among
the things that were. But its varied scenes and its manifold
incidents will linger pleasantly in our memories for many a
year to come. Always on the wing, as we were, and merely pausing
a moment to catch fitful glimpses of the wonders of half a world,
we could not hope to receive or retain vivid impressions of
all it was our fortune to see. Yet our holyday flight has not
been in vain--for above the confusion of vague recollections,
certain of its best prized pictures lift themselves and will
still continue perfect in tint and outline after their surroundings
shall have faded away.
We shall remember something of pleasant France; and something
also of Paris, though it flashed upon us a splendid meteor,
and was gone again, we hardly knew how or where. We shall remember,
always, how we saw majestic Gibraltar glorified with the rich
coloring of a Spanish sunset and swimming in a sea of rainbows.
In fancy we shall see Milan again, and her stately Cathedral
with its marble wilderness of graceful spires. And Padua--Verona--Como,
jeweled with stars; and patrician Venice, afloat on her stagnant
flood--silent, desolate, haughty--scornful of her humbled state--wrapping
herself in memories of her lost fleets, of battle and triumph,
and all the pageantry of a glory that is departed.
We can not forget Florence--Naples--nor the foretaste
of heaven that is in the delicious atmosphere of Greece--and
surely not Athens and the broken temples of the Acropolis.
Surely
not venerable Rome--nor the green plain that compasses her round
about, contrasting its brightness with her
gray decay--nor the ruined arches that stand apart in the plain
and clothe their looped and windowed raggedness with vines.
We shall remember St. Peter's: not as one sees it when he walks
the streets of Rome and fancies all her domes are just alike,
but as he sees it leagues away, when every meaner edifice has
faded out of sight and that one dome looms superbly up in the
flush of sunset, full of dignity and grace, strongly outlined
as a mountain.
We shall remember Constantinople and the Bosporus--the
colossal magnificence of Baalbec--the Pyramids of Egypt--the
prodigious form, the benignant countenance of the Sphynx--Oriental
Smyrna--sacred Jerrusalem--Damascus, the "Pearl of the East,"
the pride of Syria, the fabled Garden of Eden, the home of princes
and genii of the Arabian Nights, the oldest metropolis on earth,
the one city in all the world that has kept its name and held
its place and looked serenely on while the Kingdoms and Empires
of four thousand years have risen to life, enjoyed their little
season of pride and pomp, and then vanished and been forgotten!
Chapter 5
Taking it "by and large," as the sailors say, we had a
pleasant ten days' run from New York to the Azores islands--not a fast run, for
the distance is only twenty-four hundred miles, but a right pleasant one in the
main. True, we had head winds all the time, and several stormy
experiences which sent fifty percent of the passengers to bed sick and made the
ship look dismal and deserted--stormy experiences that all will remember who
weathered them on the tumbling deck and caught the vast sheets of spray that
every now and then sprang high in air from the weather bow and swept the ship
like a thundershower; but for the most part we had balmy summer weather and
nights that were even finer than the days. We had the phenomenon of a full
moon located just in the same spot in the heavens at the same hour every night.
The reason of this singular conduct on the part of the moon did not occur to us
at first, but it did afterward when we reflected that we were gaining about
twenty minutes every day because we were going east so fast--we gained just
about enough every day to keep along with the moon. It was becoming an old
moon to the friends we had left behind us, but to us Joshuas it stood still in
the same place and remained always the same.
10 dinners, 6,000 reis, or $6.00
Happiness reigned once more in Blucher's dinner party. More refreshments were
ordered.
25 cigars, 2,500 reis, or 2.50
11 bottles wine, 13,200 reis, or 13.20
Chapter 6
I think the Azores must be very little known in America.
Out of our whole ship's company there was not a solitary individual who knew
anything whatever about them. Some of the party, well read concerning most
other lands, had no other information about the Azores than that they were a
group of nine or ten small islands far out in the Atlantic, something more than
halfway between New York and Gibraltar. That was all. These considerations
move me to put in a paragraph of dry facts just here.
Chapter 7
A week of buffeting a tempestuous and relentless sea; a
week of seasickness and deserted cabins; of lonely quarterdecks drenched with
spray--spray so ambitious that it even coated the smokestacks thick with a
white crust of salt to their very tops; a week of shivering in the shelter of
the lifeboats and deckhouses by day and blowing suffocating "clouds" and
boisterously performing at dominoes in the smoking room at night.
Chapter 8
This is royal! Let those who went up through Spain make
the best of it--these dominions of the Emperor of Morocco suit our little party
well enough. We have had enough of Spain at Gibraltar for the present.
Tangier is the spot we have been longing for all the time. Elsewhere we have
found foreign-looking things and foreign-looking people, but always with things
and people intermixed that we were familiar with before, and so the novelty of
the situation lost a deal of its force. We wanted something thoroughly and
uncompromisingly foreign--foreign from top to bottom--foreign from center to
circumference--foreign inside and outside and all around--nothing anywhere
about it to dilute its foreignness--nothing to remind us of any other people or
any other land under the sun. And lo! In Tangier we have found it. Here is
not the slightest thing that ever we have seen save in pictures--and we always
mistrusted the pictures before. We cannot anymore. The pictures used to seem
exaggerations--they seemed too weird and fanciful for reality. But behold,
they were not wild enough--they were not fanciful enough--they have not told
half the story. Tangier is a foreign land if ever there was one, and the true
spirit of it can never be found in any book save The Arabian Nights.
Here are no white men visible, yet swarms of humanity are all about us.
Here is a packed and jammed city enclosed in a massive stone wall which is more
than a thousand years old. All the houses nearly are one- and two-story, made
of thick walls of stone, plastered outside, square as a dry. goods box, flat as
a floor on top, no cornices, whitewashed all over--a crowded city of snowy
tombs! And the doors are arched with the peculiar arch we see in Moorish
pictures; the floors are laid in varicolored diamond flags; in tessellated,
many-colored porcelain squares wrought in the furnaces of Fez; in red tiles and
broad bricks that time cannot wear; there is no furniture in the rooms (of
Jewish dwellings) save divans--what there is in Moorish ones no man may know;
within their sacred walls no Christian dog can enter. And the streets are
oriental--some of them three feet wide, some six, but only two that are over a
dozen; a man can blockade the most of them by extending his body across them.
Isn't it an oriental picture?
WE ARE THE CANAANITES. WE ARE THEY THAT HAVE BEEN DRIVEN OUT
OF THE LAND OF CANAAN BY THE JEWISH ROBBER, JOSHUA.
Joshua drove them out, and they came here. Not many leagues from here is a
tribe of Jews whose ancestors fled thither after an unsuccessful revolt against
King David, and these their descendants are still under a ban and keep to
themselves.
Chapter 9
About the first adventure we had yesterday afternoon,
after landing here, came near finishing that heedless Blucher. We had just
mounted some mules and asses and started out under the guardianship of the
stately, the princely, the magnificent Hadji Muhammad Lamarty (may his tribe
increase!) when we came upon a fine Moorish mosque, with tall tower, rich with
checkerwork of many-colored porcelain, and every part and portion of the
edifice adorned with the quaint architecture of the Alhambra, and Blucher
started to ride into the open doorway. A startling "Hi-hi!" from our camp
followers and a loud "Halt!" from an English gentleman in the party checked the
adventurer, and then we were informed that so dire a profanation is it for a
Christian dog to set foot upon the sacred threshold of a Moorish mosque that no
amount of purification can ever make it fit for the faithful to pray in again.
Had Blucher succeeded in entering the place, he would no doubt have been chased
through the town and stoned; and the time has been, and not many years ago,
either, when a Christian would have been most ruthlessly slaughtered if
captured in a mosque. We caught a glimpse of the handsome tessellated
pavements within and of the devotees performing their ablutions at the
fountains, but even that we took that glimpse was a thing not relished by the
Moorish bystanders.
Chapter 10
We passed the Fourth of July on board the Quaker City,
in midocean. It was in all respects a characteristic Mediterranean
day--faultlessly beautiful. A cloudless sky; a refreshing summer wind; a
radiant sunshine that glinted cheerily from dancing wavelets instead of crested
mountains of water; a sea beneath us that was so wonderfully blue, so richly,
brilliantly blue, that it overcame the dullest sensibilities with the spell of
its fascination.
Chapter 11
We are getting foreignized rapidly and with facility. We
are getting reconciled to halls and bedchambers with unhomelike stone floors
and no carpets--floors that ring to the tread of one's heels with a sharpness
that is death to sentimental musing. We are getting used to tidy, noiseless
waiters, who glide hither and thither, and hover about your back and your
elbows like butterflies, quick to comprehend orders, quick to fill them;
thankful for a gratuity without regard to the amount; and always polite--never
otherwise than polite. That is the strangest curiosity yet--a really polite
hotel waiter who isn't an idiot. We are getting used to driving right into the
central court of the hotel, in the midst of a fragrant circle of vines and
flowers, and in the midst also of parties of gentlemen sitting quietly reading
the paper and smoking. We are getting used to ice frozen by artificial process
in ordinary bottles--the only kind of ice they have here. We are getting used
to all these things, but we are, not getting used to carrying our own
soap. We are sufficiently civilized to carry our own combs and toothbrushes,
but this thing of having to ring for soap every time we wash is new to us and
not pleasant at all. We think of it just after we get our heads and faces
thoroughly wet or just when we think we have been in the bathtub long enough,
and then, of course, an annoying delay follows. These Marseillaises make
Marseillaise hymns and Marseilles vests and Marseilles soap for all the world,
but they never sing their hymns or wear their vests or wash with their soap
themselves.
Chapter 12
We have come five hundred miles by rail through the heart
of France. What a bewitching land it is! What a garden! Surely the leagues of
bright green lawns are swept and brushed and watered every day and their
grasses trimmed by the barber. Surely the hedges are shaped and measured and
their symmetry preserved by the most architectural of gardeners. Surely the
long straight rows of stately poplars that divide the beautiful landscape like
the squares of a checkerboard are set with line and plummet, and their uniform
height determined with a spirit level. Surely the straight, smooth, pure white
turnpikes are jack-planed and sandpapered every day. How else are these
marvels of symmetry, cleanliness, and order attained? It is wonderful. There
are no unsightly stone walls and never a fence of any kind. There is no dirt,
no decay, no rubbish anywhere--nothing that even hints at untidiness--nothing
that ever suggests neglect. All is orderly and beautiful--everything is
charming to the eye.
O pleasant land of France!
It was pitiful,
No gas to read by--nothing but dismal candles. It was a shame. We tried to
map out excursions for the morrow; we puzzled over French "guides to Paris"; we
talked disjointedly in a vain endeavor to make head or tail of the wild chaos
of the day's sights and experiences; we subsided to indolent smoking; we gaped
and yawned and stretched--then feebly wondered if we were really and truly in
renowned Paris, and drifted drowsily away into that vast mysterious void which
men call sleep.
In a whole city-full,
Gas we had none.
1. They go on the principle that it is better that one innocent man should
suffer than five hundred.
Chapter 13
The next morning we were up and dressed at ten o'clock.
We went to the commissionaire of the hotel--I don't know what a
commissionaire is, but that is the man we went to--and told him we
wanted a guide. He said the national Exposition had drawn such multitudes of
Englishmen and Americans to Paris that it would be next to impossible to find a
good guide unemployed. He said he usually kept a dozen or two on hand, but he
only had three now. He called them. One looked so like a very pirate that we
let him go at once. The next one spoke with a simpering precision of
pronunciation that was irritating and said:
A. BILLFINGER
Spain, &c., &c.
Grande Hotel du Louvre
"Billfinger! Oh, carry me home to die!"
Chapter 14
We went to see the Cathedral of Notre Dame. We had heard
of it before. It surprises me sometimes to think how much we do know
and how intelligent we are. We recognized the brown old Gothic pile in a
moment; it was like the pictures. We stood at a little distance and changed
from one point of observation to another and gazed long at its lofty square
towers and its rich front, clustered thick with stony, mutilated saints who had
been looking calmly down from their perches for ages. The Patriarch of
Jerusalem stood under them in the old days of chivalry and romance, and
preached the third Crusade, more than six hundred years ago; and since that day
they have stood there and looked quietly down upon the most thrilling scenes,
the grandest pageants, the most extraordinary spectacles that have grieved or
delighted Paris. These battered and broken-nosed old fellows saw many and many
a cavalcade of mail-clad knights come marching home from Holy Land; they heard
the bells above them toll the signal for the St. Bartholomew's Massacre, and
they saw the slaughter that followed; later they saw the Reign of Terror, the
carnage of the Revolution, the overthrow of a king, the coronation of two
Napoleons, the christening of the young prince that lords it over a regiment of
servants in the Tuileries today--and they may possibly continue to stand there
until they see the Napoleon dynasty swept away and the banners of a great
republic floating above its ruins. I wish these old parties could speak. They
could tell a tale worth the listening to.
Chapter 15
One of our pleasantest visits was to Père la
Chaise, the national burying ground of France, the honored resting place of
some of her greatest and best children, the last home of scores of illustrious
men and women who were born to no titles, but achieved fame by their own energy
and their own genius. It is a solemn city of winding streets and of miniature
marble temples and mansions of the dead gleaming white from out a wilderness of
foliage and fresh flowers. Not every city is so well peopled as this or has so
ample an area within its walls. Few palaces exist in any city that are so
exquisite in design, so rich in art, so costly in material, so graceful, so
beautiful.
STORY OF ABELARD
Héloïse was born seven hundred and sixty-six years ago. She may
have had parents. There is no telling. She lived with her uncle Fulbert, a
canon of the cathedral of Paris. I do not know what a canon of a cathedral is,
but that is what he was. He was nothing more than a sort of a mountain
howitzer, likely, because they had no heavy artillery in those days. Suffice
it, then, that Héloïse lived with her uncle the howitzer and was
happy. She spent the most of her childhood in the convent of Argenteuil--never
heard of Argenteuil before, but suppose there was really such a place. She
then returned to her uncle, the old gun, or son of a gun, as the case may be,
and he taught her to write and speak Latin, which was the language of
literature and polite society at that period.
I cannot cease to be astonished at the simplicity of Fulbert; I was as much
surprised as if he had placed a lamb in the power of a hungry wolf.
Héloïse and I, under pretext of study, gave ourselves up wholly to
love, and the solitude that love seeks our studies procured for us. Books were
open before us, but we spoke oftener of love than philosophy, and kisses came
more readily from our lips than words.
And so, exulting over an honorable confidence which to his degraded instinct
was a ludicrous "simplicity," this unmanly Abelard seduced the niece of the man
whose guest he was. Paris found it out. Fulbert was told of it--told
often--but refused to believe it. He could not comprehend how a man could be
so depraved as to use the sacred protection and security of hospitality as a
means for the commission of such a crime as that. But when he heard the
rowdies in the streets singing the lovesongs of Abelard to Héloïse,
the case was too plain--lovesongs come not properly within the teachings of
rhetoric and philosophy.
Ruffians, hired by Fulbert, fell upon Abelard by night, and
inflicted upon him a terrible and nameless mutilation.
I am seeking the last resting place of those "ruffians." When I find it I shall
shed some tears on it, and stack up some bouquets and immortelles, and cart
away from it some gravel whereby to remember that howsoever blotted by crime
their lives may have been, these ruffians did one just deed, at any rate,
albeit it was not warranted by the strict letter of the law.
Chapter 16
Versailles! It is wonderfully beautiful! You gaze and
stare and try to understand that it is real, that it is on the earth, that it
is not the Garden of Eden--but your brain grows giddy, stupefied by the world
of beauty around you, and you half believe you are the dupe of an exquisite
dream. The scene thrills one like military music! A noble palace, stretching
its ornamented front, block upon block away, till it seemed that it would never
end; a grand promenade before it, whereon the armies of an empire might parade;
all about it rainbows of flowers, and colossal statues that were almost
numberless and yet seemed only scattered over the ample space; broad flights of
stone steps leading down from the promenade to lower grounds of the
park--stairways that whole regiments might stand to arms upon and have room to
spare; vast fountains whose great bronze effigies discharged rivers of
sparkling water into the air and mingled a hundred curving jets together in
forms of matchless beauty; wide grass-carpeted avenues that branched hither and
thither in every direction and wandered to seemingly interminable distances,
walled all the way on either side with compact ranks of leafy trees whose
branches met above and formed arches as faultless and as symmetrical as ever
were carved in stone; and here and there were glimpses of sylvan lakes with
miniature ships glassed in their surfaces. And everywhere--on the palace
steps, and the great promenade, around the fountains, among the trees, and far
under the arches of the endless avenues--hundreds and hundreds of people in gay
costumes walked or ran or danced, and gave to the fairy picture the life and
animation which was all of perfection it could have lacked.
* July, 1867.
Chapter 17
We had a pleasant journey of it seaward again. We found
that for the three past nights our ship had been in a state of war. The first
night the sailors of a British ship, being happy with grog, came down on the
pier and challenged our sailors to a free fight. They accepted with alacrity,
repaired to the pier, and gained--their share of a drawn battle. Several
bruised and bloody members of both parties were carried off by the police and
imprisoned until the following morning. The next night the British boys came
again to renew the fight, but our men had had strict orders to remain on board
and out of sight. They did so, and the besieging party grew noisy and more and
more abusive as the fact became apparent (to them) that our men were afraid to
come out. They went away finally with a closing burst of ridicule and
offensive epithets. The third night they came again and were more obstreperous
than ever. They swaggered up and down the almost deserted pier and hurled
curses, obscenity, and stinging sarcasms at our crew. It was more than human
nature could bear. The executive officer ordered our men ashore--with
instructions not to fight. They charged the British and gained a brilliant
victory. I probably would not have mentioned this war had it ended
differently. But I travel to learn, and I still remember that they picture no
French defeats in the battle galleries of Versailles.
Chapter 18
All day long we sped through a mountainous country whose
peaks were bright with sunshine, whose hillsides were dotted with pretty villas
sitting in the midst of gardens and shrubbery, and whose deep ravines were cool
and shady and looked ever so inviting from where we and the birds were winging
our flight through the sultry upper air.
Chapter 19
"Do you wis zo haut can be?"
PARIS, le 7 Juillet.
I remonstrated against the sending of this note, because it was so mixed up
that the landlord would never be able to make head or tail of it; but Blucher
said he guessed the old man could read the French of it and average the rest.
NOTISH
How is that for a specimen? In the hotel is a handsome little chapel where an
English clergyman is employed to preach to such of the guests of the house as
hail from England and America, and this fact is also set forth in barbarous
English in the same advertisement. Wouldn't you have supposed that the
adventurous linguist who framed the card would have known enough to submit it
to that clergyman before he sent it to the printer?
Bartholomew (that is the first figure on the left hand side at the spectator)
uncertain and doubtful about what he thinks to have heard, and upon which he
wants to be assured by himself at Christ and by no others.
Good, isn't it? And then Peter is described as "argumenting in a threatening
and angrily condition at Judas Iscariot."
Chapter 20
We left Milan by rail. The cathedral six or seven miles
behind us; vast, dreamy, bluish, snow-clad mountains twenty miles in front of
us--these were the accented points in the scenery. The more immediate scenery
consisted of fields and farmhouses outside the car and a monster-headed dwarf
and a moustached woman inside it. These latter were not show people. Alas,
deformity and female beards are too common in Italy to attract attention.
A deep vale,
That is all very well, except the "clear" part of the lake. It certainly is
clearer than a great many lakes, but how dull its waters are compared with the
wonderful transparence of Lake Tahoe! I speak of the north shore of Tahoe,
where one can count the scales on a trout at a depth of a hundred and eighty
feet. I have tried to get this statement off at par here, but with no success;
so I have been obliged to negotiate it at fifty percent discount. At this rate
I find some takers; perhaps the reader will receive it on the same
terms--ninety feet instead of one hundred and eighty. But let it be remembered
that those are forced terms--sheriffs sale prices. As far as I am privately
concerned, I abate not a jot of the original assertion that in those strangely
magnifying waters one may count the scales on a trout (a trout of the large
kind) at a depth of a hundred and eighty feet--may see every pebble on the
bottom--might even count a paper of dray pins. People talk of the transparent
waters of the Mexican Bay of Acapulco, but in my own experience I know they
cannot compare with those I am speaking of. I have fished for trout in Tahoe,
and at a measured depth of eighty-four feet I have seen them put their noses to
the bait and I could see their gills open and shut. I could hardly have seen
the trout themselves at that distance in the open air.
Shut out by Alpine hills from the rude world,
Near a clear lake margined by fruits of gold
And whispering myrtles:
Glassing softest skies, cloudless,
Save with rare and roseate shadows;
A palace, lifting to eternal heaven its marbled walls,
From out a glossy bower of coolest foliage musical with birds.
* Colonel J. Heron Foster, editor of a Pittsburgh journal, and a most estimable
gentleman. As these sheets are being prepared for the press I am pained to
learn of his decease shortly after his return home--M.T.
Chapter 21
THE LEGEND.
Well, then, all the world, at that time, was in a wild
excitement about the Holy Sepulchre. All the great feudal lords
in Europe were pledging their lands and pawning their plate
to fit out men-at-arms so that they might join the grand armies
of Christendom and win renown in the Holy Wars. The Count Luigi
raised money, like the rest, and one mild September morning,
armed with battle-ax, portcullis and thundering culverin, he
rode through the greaves and bucklers of his donjon-keep with
as gallant a troop of Christian bandits as ever stepped in Italy.
He had his sword, Excalibur, with him. His beautiful countess
and her young daughter waved him a tearful adieu from the battering-rams
and buttresses of the fortress, and he galloped away with a
happy heart.
Chapter 22
"There is a glorious city in the sea;
The sea is in the broad, the narrow streets,
Ebbing and flowing;
and the salt-sea weed
Clings to the marble of her palaces.
No track of men, no footsteps to and fro,
Lead to her gates! The path lies o'er the sea,
Invisible: and from the land we went,
to a floating city--steering in,
And gliding up her streets, as in a dream,
So smoothly, silently--by many a dome,
Mosque-like, and many a stately portico,
The statues ranged along an azure sky;
By many a pile, in more than Eastern pride,
Of old the residence of merchant kings;
The fronts of some, tho' time had shatter'd them,
Still glowing with the richest hues of art,
As tho' the wealth within them had run o'er."
Chapter 23
"John P. Whitcomb, Etats Unis.
"Wm. L. Ainsworth, travailleur (he meant traveler, I suppose,) Etats Unis.
"George P. Morton et fils, d'Amerique.
"Lloyd B. Williams, et trois amis, ville de Boston, Amerique.
"J. Ellsworth Baker, tout de suite de France, place de
naissance Amerique, destination la Grand Bretagne."
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
"Meet me on the Tarpeian Rock tomorrow
evening, dear, at sharp seven. Mother will be absent on a visit
to her friends in the Sabine Hills.
"THE OPENING SEASON.--COLISEUM.--Notwithstanding
the inclemency of the weather, quite a respectable number of
the rank and fashion of the city assembled last night to witness
the debut upon metropolitan boards of the young tragedian
who has of late been winning such golden opinions
in the amphitheatres of the provinces. Some sixty thousand persons
were present, and but for the fact that the streets were almost
impassable, it is fair to presume that the house would have
been full. His august Majesty, the Emperor Aurelius, occupied
the imperial box, and was the cynosure of all eyes. Many illustrious
nobles and generals of the Empire graced the occasion with their
presence, and not the least among them was the young patrician
lieutenant whose laurels, won in the ranks of the "Thundering
Legion," are still so green upon his brow. The cheer which greeted
his entrance was heard beyond the Tiber!
Chapter 27
"Here the heart of St. Philip Neri was so inflamed
with
divine love as to burst
his ribs."
"His tongue and his heart, which were found
after nearly a
century to be whole,
when the body was disinterred before his canonization, are still
preserved in a glass case, and
after two centuries the heart is still whole. When the French
troops came to Rome, and when
Pius VII. was carried away prisoner, blood dropped from it."
"In the roof of the church, directly above
the high altar,
is engraved, 'Regina
Coeli laetare Alleluia." In the sixth century Rome was
visited by a fearful
pestilence. Gregory the Great urged the people to do penance,
and
a general procession was
formed. It was to proceed from Ara Coeli to St. Peter's. As it
passed before the mole of
Adrian, now the Castle of St. Angelo, the sound of heavenly voices
was heard singing (it was
Easter morn,) Regina Coeli, laetare! alleluia! quia quem
meruisti portare, alleluia!
resurrexit sicut dixit; alleluia!" The Pontiff, carrying
in
his hands the portrait of the
Virgin, (which is over the high altar and is said to have been
painted by St. Luke,) answered,
with the astonished people, 'Ora pro nobis Deum, alleluia!'
At the same time an
angel was seen to put up a sword in a scabbard, and the pestilence
ceased on the same day.
There are four circumstances which confirm* this miracle:
the annual procession
which takes place in the western church on the feast of St Mark;
the statue of St. Michael,
placed on the mole of Adrian, which has since that time been
called
the Castle of St. Angelo;
the antiphon Regina Coeli which the Catholic church sings
during paschal time; and the
inscription in the church."
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
THE BURIED CITY OF POMPEII.
'By this time the murky darkness had so
increased
that one might have believed himself abroad in a black and moonless
night,
or in a chamber where all the lights had been extinguished. On
every hand
was heard the complaints of women, the wailing of children, and
the cries
of men. One called his father, another his son, and another his
wife, and
only by their voices could they know each other. Many in their
despair
begged that death would come and end their distress.
"URIAH S. (or Z.) GRAUNT--popular poet of
ancient
times in the Aztec provinces of the United States of British
America.
Some authors say flourished about A. D. 742; but the learned
Ah-ah Foo-
foo states that he was a cotemporary of Scharkspyre, the English
poet, and
flourished about A. D. 1328, some three centuries after
the Trojan
war instead of before it. He wrote 'Rock me to Sleep, Mother.'"
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Chapter 36
Chapter 37
"Save us and sanctify us, and finally, then,
See good provisions we enjoy while we journey to Jerusalem.
For so man proposes, which it is most true
And time will wait for none, nor for us too."
Chapter 38
"Remember, therefore, from whence thou
art fallen, and repent, and do the first works; or else I will
come unto thee quickly, and will remove thy candlestick out
of his place, except thou repent."
Chapter 39
Chapter 40
"If after the manner of men I have
fought with beasts at Ephesus,"
etc.,
when many men still lived who had seen the Christ; here
Mary Magdalen died, and here the Virgin Mary ended her days with
John,
albeit Rome has since judged it best to locate her grave elsewhere;
six or
seven hundred years ago--almost yesterday, as it were--troops
of mail-clad
Crusaders thronged the streets; and to come down to trifles,
we speak of
meandering streams, and find a new interest in a common word
when we
discover that the crooked river Meander, in yonder valley, gave
it to our
dictionary. It makes me feel as old as these
dreary hills to look down upon these moss-hung ruins, this historic
desolation. One may read the Scriptures and believe, but he can
not go and
stand yonder in the ruined theatre and in imagination people
it again with the
vanished multitudes who mobbed Paul's
comrades there and shouted, with one voice, " Great is Diana
of the
Ephesians!" The idea of a shout in such a solitude as this almost
makes one
shudder.
Chapter 41
When I last made a memorandum, we were at Ephesus. We are
in Syria, now, encamped in
the mountaina of Lebanon.
The interregnum has been long, both as to time and distance.
We brought not a relic from
Ephesus! After gathering up
fragments of sculptured marbles and breaking ornaments from the
interior work of the Mosques;
and after bringing them
at a cost of infinite trouble and fatigue, five miles on muleback
to the railway depot, a
government officer compelled all
who had such things to disgorge! He had an order from Constantinople
to look out for our
party, and see that we carried
nothing off. It was a wise, a just, and a well-deserved rebuke,
but it created a sensation. I never
resist a temptation to
plunder a stranger's premises without feeling insufferably vain
about it. This time I felt proud
beyond expression. I was
serene in the midst of the scoldings that were heaped upon the
Ottoman government for its affront
offered to a pleasuring
party of entirely respectable gentlemen and ladies I said, "
We that have free souls, it touches us
not." The shoe not only
pinched our party, but it pinched hard; a principal sufferer
discovered that the imperial order was
inclosed in an envelop
bearing the seal of the British Embassy at Constantinople, and
therefore must have been inspired
by the representative of
the Queen. This was bad--very bad. Coming solely from the Ottomans,
it might have signified
only Ottoman hatred of
Christians, and a vulgar ignorance as to genteel methods of expressing
it; but coming from the
Christianized, educated,
politic British legation, it simply intimated that we were a
sort
of gentlemen and ladies who would bear watching! So the
party regarded it, and were incensed accordingly. The truth
doubtless was, that the same precautions would have been
taken against any travelers, because the English Company
who have acquired the right to excavate Ephesus, and have
paid a great sum for that right, need to be protected, and
deserve to be. They can not afford to run the risk of having
their hospitality abused by travelers, especially since travelers
are such notorions scorners of honest behavior.
Chapter 42
"COME LIKE SPIRITS, SO DEPART."
And the cares that infest the day
Shall fold their tents like the Arabs,
And as silently steal away."
"...no man dug that sepulchre,
And no man saw it e'er--
For the Sons of God upturned the sod
And laid the dead man there!"
Chapter 43
"Rode to-day, altogether, thirteen hours, through deserts, partly,
and
partly over barren, unsightly hills, and latterly through wild,
rocky
scenery, and camped at about eleven o'clock at night on the banks
of a
limpid stream, near a Syrian village. Do not know its name--do
not wish
to know it--want to go to bed. Two horses lame (mine and Jack's)
and the
others worn out. Jack and I walked three or four miles, over
the hills,
and led the horses. Fun--but of a mild type."
Chapter 44
Broke camp at 7 A.M., and made a ghastly trip through the Zeb Dana valley
and the rough mountains--horses limping and that Arab screech-owl
that does most of the singing and carries the water-skins, always
a thousand miles ahead, of course, and no water to drink--will
he never die? Beautiful stream in a chasm, lined thick
with pomegranate, fig, olive and quince orchards, and nooned
an hour at the celebrated Baalam's Ass Fountain of Figia, second
in size in Syria, and the coldest water out of Siberia--guide-books
do not say Baalam's ass ever drank there--somebody been imposing
on the pilgrims, may be. Bathed in it--Jack and I. Only a second--ice-water.
It is the principal source of the Abana river--only one-half
mile down to where it joins. Beautiful place--giant trees all
around--so shady and cool, if one could keep awake--vast
stream gushes straight out from under the mountain in a torrent.
Over it is a very ancient ruin, with no known history--supposed
to have been for the worship of the deity of the fountain or
Baalam's ass or somebody. Wretched nest of human vermin about
the fountain--rags, dirt, sunken cheeks, pallor of sickness,
sores, projecting bones, dull, aching misery in
their eyes and ravenous hunger speaking from every eloquent fibre
and muscle from head to foot. How they sprang upon a bone, how
they crunched the bread we gave them! Such as these to swarm
about one and watch every bite he takes, with greedy looks,
and swallow unconsciously every time he swallows, as if they
half fancied the precious morsel went down their own throats--hurry
up the caravan!--I never shall enjoy a meal in this distressful
country. To think of eating three times every day under such
circumstances for three weeks yet--it is worse punishment than
riding all day in the sun. There are sixteen starving babies
from one to six years old in the party, and their legs are no
larger than broom handles. Left the fountain at 1 P.M.
(the fountain took us at
least two hours out of our way,) and reached Mahomet's lookout
perch, over Damascus, in time to get a good long look before
it was necessary to move on. Tired? Ask of the winds that far
away with fragments strewed the sea."
"Though old as history itself, thou art
fresh as the breath of spring, blooming as thine own rose-bud,
and fragrant as thine own orange flower, O Damascus, pearl of
the East!"
"And as he journeyed, he came near Damascus,
and suddenly there shined round about him a light from heaven:
Chapter 45
"Thou art Peter; and upon this
rock will
I build my church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against
it. And
I will give unto thee the keys of the Kingdom
of Heaven; and whatsoever thou
shalt bind
on earth shall be bound in heaven, and whatsoever thou shalt
loose on
earth shall be loosed in heaven."
Chapter 46
About an hour's ride over a rough, rocky road, half
flooded with water, and through a forest of oaks of Bashan,
brought us to Dan.
"And when all these Kings were met together,
they
came and pitched together by the Waters of Merom, to fight
against Israel.
"Blessed above women shall Jael the wife of Heber the Kenite
be, blessed shall she be above women in the tent.
I will bring the land into desolation; and
your
enemies which dwell therein shall be astonished at it. And I
will
scatter you among the heathen, and I will draw out a sword after
you; and your land shall be desolate and your cities waste."
Chapter 47
We traversed some miles of desolate country whose
soil is rich enough, but is given over wholly to weeds -- a silent,
mournful expanse, wherein we saw only three persons -- Arabs,
with nothing on but a long coarse shirt like the "tow-linen"
shirts
which used to form the only summer garment of little negro boys
on Southern plantations. Shepherds they were, and they charmed
their flocks with the traditional shepherd's pipe -- a reed
instrument that made music as exquisitely infernal as these same
Arabs create when they sing.
Chapter 48
* I measure all lakes by Tahoe, partly because
I am far more familiar with it than with any other, and partly
because I have such a high admiration for it and such a world
of pleasant recollections of it, that it is very nearly impossible
for me to speak of lakes and not mention it.
"We had taken ship to go over to the other
side. The sea was not more than six miles wide. Of the beauty
of the scene, however, I can not say enough, nor can I imagine
where those travelers carried their eyes who have described
the scenery of the lake as tame or uninteresting. The first
great characteristic of it is
the deep basin in which it lies. This is from
three to four hundred feet deep on all sides except at the lower
end, and the sharp slope of the banks, which are all of the
richest green, is broken and diversified by the wâdys
and water-courses which work their way down through the sides
of the basin, forming dark chasms or light sunny valleys. Near
Tiberias these banks are rocky, and ancient sepulchres open
in them, with their doors toward the water. They selected grand
spots, as did the Egyptians of old, for burial places, as if
they designed that when the voice of God should reach the sleepers,
they should walk forth and open their eyes on scenes of glorious
beauty. On the east, the wild and desolate mountains contrast
finely with the deep blue lake; and toward the north, sublime
and majestic, Hermon looks down on the sea, lifting his white
crown to heaven with the pride of a hill that has seen the departing
footsteps of a hundred generations. On the north-east shore
of the sea was a single tree, and this is the only tree of any
size visible from the water of the lake, except a few lonely
palms in the city of Tiberias, and by its solitary position
attracts more attention than would a forest. The whole appearance
of the scene is precisely what we would expect and desire the
scenery of Genessaret to be, grand beauty, but quiet calm. The
very mountains are calm."
"A beautiful sea lies unbosomed among the
Galilean hills, in the midst of that land once possessed by
Zebulon and Naphtali, Asher and Dan. The azure of the sky penetrates
the depths of the lake, and the waters are sweet and cool. On
the west, stretch broad fertile plains; on the north the rocky
shores rise step by step until in the far distance tower the
snowy heights of Hermon; on the east through a misty veil are
seen the high plains of Perea, which stretch away in rugged
mountains leading the mind by varied paths toward Jerusalem
the Holy. Flowers bloom in this terrestrial paradise, once beautiful
and verdant with waving trees; singing birds enchant the ear;
the turtle-dove soothes with its soft note; the crested lark
sends up its song toward heaven, and the grave and stately stork
inspires the mind with thought, and leads it on to meditation
and repose. Life here was once idyllic, charming; here were
once no rich, no poor, no high, no low. It was a world of ease,
simplicity, and beauty; now it is a scene of desolation and
misery."
Chapter 49
"The Ephraimites not being called
upon to share in the rich spoils
of the Ammonitish war, assembled a mighty host to fight against
Jeptha, Judge of Israel;
who, being apprised of their approach, gathered together
the men of Israel and
gave them battle and put them to flight. To make his victory
the more secure, he
stationed guards at the different fords and passages of the
Jordan, with instructions
to let none pass who could not say Shibboleth. The Ephraimites,
being Of a different tribe,
could not frame to pronounce the word right, but called it Sibboleth,
which proved them enemies and coet them their lives; wherefore,
forty and two
thousand fell at the different fords and passages of the
Jordan that day."
Chapter 50
We descended from Mount Tabor, crossed a deep ravine, followed
a
hilly, rocky road to Nazareth -- distant two hours. All distances
in the
East are measured by hours, not miles. A good horse will walk
three miles
an hour over nearly any kind of a road ; therefore, an hour,
here, always
stands for three miles. This method of computation is bothersome
and
annoying ; and until one gets thoroughly accustomed to it, it
carries no
intelligence to his mind until he has stopped and translated
the pagan
hours into christian miles, just as people do with the spoken
words of a
foreign language they are acquainted with, but not familiarly
enough to
catch the meaning in a moment. Distances traveled by human feet
are also
estimated by hours and minutes, though I do not know what the
base of the
calculation is. In Constantinople you ask, " How far is it to
the
Consulate?" and they answer, " About ten minutes." " How far
is it to
the Lloyds' Agency'" " Quarter of an hour." " How far is it to
the lower
bridge?" " Four minutes." I can not be positive about it, but
I think
that there, when a man orders a pair of pantaloons, he says he
wants them
a quarter of a minute in the legs and nine seconds around the
waist.
"After we were in the saddle, we
rode down to
the spring to have a last look at the women of Nazareth, who
were, as a
class, much the prettiest that we had seen in the East. As we
approached
the crowd a tall girl of nineteen advanced toward
Miriam and offered her a cup of water. Her movement was graceful
and
queenly. We exclaimed on the spot at the Madonna-like beauty
of her
countenance. Whitely was suddenly thirsty, and begged for water,
and
drank it slowly, with his eyes over the top of the cup, fixed
on her
large black eyes, which gazed on him quite as curiously as he
on her.
Then Moreright wanted water. She gave it to him and he managed
to spill
it so as to ask for another cup, and by the time she came to
me she saw
through the operation ; her eyes were full of fun as she looked
at me. I
laughed outright, and she joined me in as gay a shout as ever
country
maiden in old Orange county. I wished for a picture of her. A
Madonna,
whose face was a portrait of that beautiful Nazareth girt would
be a
'thing of beauty' and 'a joy forever.'"
"Was it imagination, or did I see
a moving
object on the surface of the rock? If it were a man, why did
he not now
drop me? He had a beautiful shot as I stood out in my black
boornoose
against the white tent. I had the sensation of an entering bullet
in my
throat, breast, brain."
I never lost an opportunity of impressing
the Arabs with the perfection of American and English weapons,
and the
danger of attacking any one of the armed Franks. I think the
lesson of
that ball not lost."
" I contented myself with a solemn
assurance
that if there occurred another instance of disobedience to orders
I would
thrash the responsible party as he never dreamed of being thrashed,
and
if I could not find who was responsible, I would whip them all,
from
first to last, whether there was a governor at hand to do it
or I had to
do it myself "
"I stood in the road, my hand on
my horse's
neck, and with my dim eyes sought to trace the outlines of the
holy
places which I had long before fixed in my mind, but the fast-flowing
tears forbade my succeeding. There were our Mohammedan servants,
a Latin
monk, two Armenians and a Jew in our cortege, and all alike gazed
with
overflowing eyes."
" He (Mousa) was on his back in a
twinkling,
howling, shouting, screaming, but he was carried out to the piazza
before
the door, where we could see the operation, and laid face down.
One man
sat on his back and one on his legs, the latter holding up his
feet,
while a third laid on the bare soles a rhinoceros-hide koorbash*
that
whizzed through the air at every stroke. Poor Moreright was in
agony, and
Nama and Nama the Second (mother and sister of Mousa,) were on
their
faces begging and wailing, now embracing my knees and now Whitely's,
while the brother, outside, made the air ring with cries louder
than
Mousa's. Even Yusef came and asked me on his knees to relent,
and last of
all, Betuni -- the rascal had lost a feedbag in their house and
had been
loudest in his denunciations that morning -- besought the Howajji
to have
mercy on the fellow."
"A Koorbash is Arabic for cowhide, the
cow being a
rhinoceros. It is the most cruel whip known to fame. Heavy
as lead, and
flexible as India-rubber, usually about forty inches long and
tapering
gradually from an inch in diameter to a point, it administers
a blow
which leaves its mark for time." -- Scow Life in Egypt,
by
the same author.
"Then once more I bowed my head.
It is no
shame to have wept in Palestine. I wept, when I saw Jerusalem,
I wept
when I lay in the starlight at Bethlehem. I wept on the blessed
shores of
Galilee. My hand was no less firm on the rein, my anger did not
tremble
on the trigger of my pistol when I rode with it in my right hand
along
the shore of the blue sea" (weeping.) "My eye was not dimmed
by those
tears nor my heart in aught weakened. Let him who would sneer
at my
emotion close this volume here, for he will find little to his
taste in
my journeyings through Holy Land."
Chapter 51
Nazareth is wonderfully interesting because
the town has an air about it of being precisely as
Jesus left it, and one finds himself saying, all the
time, "The boy Jesus has stood in this
doorway -- has played in that street -- has touched
these stones with his hands -- has rambled over
these chalky hills." Whoever shall write the
boyhood of Jesus ingeniously will make a book
which will possess a vivid interest for young and
old alike. I judge so from the greater interest we
found in Nazareth than any of our speculations
upon Capernaum and the Sea of Galilee gave rise
to. It was not possible, standing by the Sea of
Galilee, to frame more than a vague, far-away
idea of the majestic Personage who walked upon
the crested waves as if they had been solid earth,
and who touched the dead and they rose up and
spoke. I read among my notes, now, with a new
interest, some sentences from an edition of 1621
of the Apocryphal New Testament. [Extract.]
"Christ, kissed by a bride made
dumb by sorcerers, cures her. A leprous girl
cured by the water in which the infant Christ was
washed, and becomes the servant of Joseph and
Hary. The leprous son of a Prince cured in like
manner.
"1. Let us consider that wonderful
type of the resurrection, which is seen in the
Eastern countries, that is to say, in Arabia.
"199. They carry themselves high,
and as prudent men; and though they are fools,
yet would seem to be teachers."
"Now when he came nigh to the gate of the
city,
behold there was a dead man carried out, the only son of his
mother, and she was a widow: and much people of the city was
with her.
Chapter 52
Chapter 53
A fast walker could go outside the walls of Jerusalem and
walk entirely around the city
in an hour. I do not know how else to make one understand how
small it is. The appearance of
the city is peculiar. It is as knobby with countless little domes
as a prison door is with
bolt-heads. Every house has from one to half a dozen of these
white plastered domes of stone,
broad and low, sitting in the centre of, or in a cluster upon,
the flat roof. Wherefore, when one
looks down from an eminence, upon the compact mass of houses
(so closely crowded together,
in fact, that there is no appearance of streets at all, and so
the city looks solid,) he sees the
knobbiest town in the world, except Constantinople. It looks
as if it might be roofed, from
centre to circumference, with inverted saucers. The monotony
of the view is interrupted only
by the great Mosque of Omar, the Tower of Hippicus, and one or
two other buildings that rise
into commanding prominence.
* The thought is Mr. Prime's, not mine, and is full of good sense.
I borrowed it from his
"Tent Life." -- M. T.
Chapter 54
We were standing in a narrow street, by the Tower of Antonio.
"On
these stones that are crumbling away," the guide said, "the Saviour
sat
and rested before taking up the cross. This is the beginning
of the
Sorrowful Way, or the Way of Grief." The party took note of the
sacred
spot, and moved on. We passed under the "Ecce Homo Arch," and
saw the
very window from which Pilate's wife warned her husband to have
nothing
to do with the persecution of the Just Man. This window is in
an
excellent state of preservation, considering its great age. They
showed
us where Jesus rested the second time, and where the mob refused
to give
him up, and said, "Let his blood be upon our heads, and upon
our
children's children forever." The French Catholics are building
a church
on this spot, and with their usual veneration for historical
relics, are
incorporating into the new such scraps of ancient walls as they
have
found there. Further on, we saw the spot where the fainting Saviour
fell
under the weight of his cross. A great granite column of some
ancient
temple lay there at the time, and the heavy cross struck it such
a blow
that it broke in two in the middle. Such was the guide's story
when he
halted us before the broken column.
* A pilgrim informs me that it was not
David and
Goliath, but David and Saul. I stick to my own statement -- the
guide
told me, and he ought to know.
Chapter 55
"On Jordan's stormy banks I stand,
And cast a wistful eye
To Canaan's fair and happy land,
Where my possessions lie."
Chapter 56
We visited all the holy places about Jerusalem which we had left
unvisited when we journeyed
to the Jordan and then, about three o'clock one afternoon, we
fell into procession and marched
out at the stately Damascus gate, and the walls of Jerusalem
shut us out forever. We paused on
the summit of a distant hill and took a final look and made a
final farewell to the venerable city
which had been such a good home to us.
"Monotonous and uninviting as much of the
Holy Land will appear to persons
accustomed to the almost constant verdure of flowers, ample streams
and varied surface of our
own country, we must remember that its aspect to the Israelites
after the weary march of forty
years through the desert must have been very different."
Chapter 57
It was worth a kingdom to be at sea again. It was a relief
to drop
all anxiety whatsoever--all questions as to where we should
go;
how long we should stay; whether it were worth while to go
or not;
all anxieties about the condition of the horses; all such
questions as "Shall we ever get to water?" "Shall
we
ever lunch?" "Ferguson, how many more million miles
have we
got to creep under this awful sun before we camp?" It was a relief
to
cast all these torturing little anxieties far away--ropes
of steel
they were, and every one with a separate and distinct strain
on
it--and feel the temporary contentment that is born of the
banishment of all care and responsibility. We did not look
at the
compass: we did not care, now, where the ship went to, so
that she
went out of sight of land as quickly as possible. When I
travel
again, I wish to go in a pleasure ship. No amount of money
could
have purchased for us, in a strange vessel and among unfamiliar
faces, the perfect satisfaction and the sense of being at
home
again which we experienced when we stepped on board the "Quaker
City,"--our own ship--after this wearisome pilgrimage.
It is a
something we have felt always when we returned to her, and
a
something we had no desire to sell.
* It was an unselfish act of benevolence;
it was done without
any ostentation, and has never been mentioned in any newspaper,
I
think. Therefore it is refreshing to learn now, several months
after
the above narrative was written, that another man received all
the
credit of this rescue of the colonists. Such is life.
I stopped at the Benton House.
It used
to be a good hotel,
but that proves nothing--I used to be a good boy, for that matter.
Both of us have lost character of late years. The Benton is not
a good
hotel. The Benton lacks a very great deal of being a good hotel.
Perdition is full of better hotels than the Benton.
Chapter 58
The donkeys were all good, all handsome, all strong and in
good condition, all fast and all willing to prove it. They were
the best we had found any where, and the most recherche.
I do not know what recherche is, but that is what these
donkeys were, anyhow. Some were of a soft mouse-color, and the
others were white, black, and vari-colored. Some were close-shaven,
all over, except that a tuft like a paint-brush was left on
the end of the tail. Others were so shaven in fanciful landscape
garden patterns, as to mark their bodies with curving lines,
which were bounded on one side by hair and on the other by the
close plush left by the shears. They had all been newly barbered,
and were exceedingly stylish. Several of the white ones were
barred like zebras with rainbow stripes of blue and red and
yellow paint. These were indescribably gorgeous. Dan and Jack
selected from this lot because they brought back Italian reminiscences
of the "old masters." The saddles were the high, stuffy, frog-shaped
things we had known in Ephesus and Smyrna. The donkey-boys were
lively young Egyptian rascals who could follow a donkey and
keep him in a canter half a day without tiring. We had plenty
of spectators when we mounted, for the hotel was full of English
people bound overland to India and officers getting ready for
the African campaign against the Abyssinian King Theodorus.
We were not a very large party, but as we charged through the
streets of the great metropolis, we made noise for five hundred,
and displayed activity and created excitement in proportion.
Nobody can steer a donkey, and some collided with camels, dervishes,
effendis, asses, beggars and every thing else that offered to
the donkeys a reasonable chance for a collision. When we turned
into the broad avenue that leads out of the city toward Old
Cairo, there was plenty of room. The walls of stately date-palms
that fenced the gardens and bordered the way, threw their shadows
down and made the air cool and bracing. We rose to the spirit
of the time and the race became a wild rout, a stampede, a terrific
panic. I wish to live to enjoy it again.
* Stated to me for a fact. I only tell
it as I got it. I am willing to believe it. I can believe any
thing.
Chapter 59
We were at sea now, for a very long voyage--we were to
pass through the entire length of the Levant; through
the entire length of the Mediterranean proper, also, and
then
cross the full width of the Atlantic--a voyage
of several weeks. We naturally settled down into a very slow,
stay-at-home manner of life, and resolved to be quiet, exemplary
people, and roam no more for twenty or thirty days. No more,
at
least, than from stem to stern of the ship. It was a very
comfortable prospect, though, for we were tired and needed
a long
rest.
"Sunday--Services, as usual, at four bells. Services at
night,
also. No cards.
"Monday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Tuesday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Wednesday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Thursday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Friday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Next Friday--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Friday fortnight--Got up, washed, went to bed.
"Following month--Got up, washed, went to
bed."
Chapter 60
Ten or eleven o'clock found us coming down to breakfast one
morning in Cadiz. They told us the ship had been
lying at anchor in the harbor two or three hours. It was time
for us to bestir ourselves. The ship could wait only
a little while because of the quarantine. We were soon on board,
and within the hour the white city and the
pleasant shores of Spain sank down behind the waves and passed
out of sight. We had seen no land fade from view
so regretfully.
Chapter 61
In this place I will print an article which I wrote for the
New York Herald the night we arrived. I do it partly
because my contract with my publishers makes it compulsory;
partly because it is a proper, tolerably accurate, and exhaustive
summing up of the cruise of the ship and the performances of
the pilgrims in foreign lands; and partly because some of the
passengers have abused me for writing it, and I wish the public
to see how thankless a task it is to put one's self to trouble
to glorify unappreciative people. I was charged with "rushing
into print" with these compliments. I did not rush. I had written
news letters to the Herald sometimes, but yet when I
visited the office that day I did not say any thing about writing
a valedictory. I did go to the Tribune office to see
if such an article was wanted, because I belonged on the regular
staff of that paper and it was simply a duty to do it. The managing
editor was absent, and so I thought no more about it. At night
when the Herald's request came for an article, I did
not "rush." In fact, I demurred for a while, because I did not
feel like writing compliments then, and therefore was afraid
to speak of the cruise lest I might be betrayed into using other
than complimentary language. However, I reflected that it would
be a just and righteous thing to go down and write a kind word
for the Hadjis--Hadjis are people who have made the pilgrimage--because
parties not interested could not do it so feelingly as I, a
fellow-Hadji, and so I penned the valedictory. I have read it,
and read it again; and if there is a sentence in it that is
not fulsomely complimentary to
captain, ship and passengers, I can not find it. If it
is not a chapter that any company might be proud to have a body
write about them, my judgment is fit for nothing. With these
remarks I confidently submit it to the unprejudiced judgment
of the reader:
Conclusion
Nearly one year has flown since this notable pilgrimage was
ended; and as I sit here at home in San Francisco thinking,
I am moved to confess that day by day the mass of my memories
of the excursion have grown more and more pleasant as the disagreeable
incidents of travel which encumbered them flitted one by one
out of my mind--and now, if the Quaker City were weighing
her anchor to sail away on the very same cruise again, nothing
could gratify me more than to be a passenger. With the same
captain and even the same pilgrims, the same sinners. I was
on excellent terms with eight or nine of the excursionists (they
are my staunch friends yet,) and was even on speaking terms
with the rest of the sixty-five. I have been at sea quite enough
to know that that was a very good average. Because a long sea-voyage
not only brings out all the mean traits one has, and exaggerates
them, but raises up others which he never suspected he possessed,
and even creates new ones. A twelve months' voyage at sea would
make of an ordinary man a very miracle of meanness. On the
other
hand, if a man has good qualities, the spirit seldom moves him
to exhibit them on shipboard, at least with any sort of emphasis.
Now I am satisfied that our pilgrims are pleasant old people
on shore; I am also satisfied that at sea on a second voyage
they would be pleasanter, somewhat, than they were on our grand
excursion, and so I say without hesitation that I would be glad
enough to sail with them again. I could at least enjoy life
with my handful of old friends. They could enjoy life with
their
cliques as well--passengers invariably divide up into cliques,
on all ships.
Table of Contents
Comments, questions or corrections?
Back to Alan Eliasen's Mark Twain Library